FEDERALIST No. 1. General Introduction
FEDERALIST No. 2. Concerning Dangers from
Foreign Force and Influence
FEDERALIST No. 3. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force and Influence)
FEDERALIST No. 4. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force and Influence)
FEDERALIST No. 5. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force and Influence)
FEDERALIST No. 6. Concerning Dangers from
Dissensions Between the States
FEDERALIST No. 7. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning Dangers from Dissensions Between the States)
FEDERALIST No. 8. The Consequences of
Hostilities Between the States
FEDERALIST No. 9. The Union as a Safeguard
Against Domestic Faction and Insurrection
FEDERALIST No. 10. The Same Subject Continued
(The Union as a Safeguard Against Domestic Faction and Insurrection)
FEDERALIST No. 11. The Utility of the Union in
Respect to Commercial Relations and a Navy
FEDERALIST No. 12. The Utility of the Union In
Respect to Revenue
FEDERALIST No. 13. Advantage of the Union in
Respect to Economy in Government
FEDERALIST No. 14. Objections to the Proposed
Constitution From Extent of Territory Answered
FEDERALIST No. 15. The Insufficiency of the
Present Confederation to Preserve the Union
FEDERALIST No. 16. The Same Subject Continued
(The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 17. The Same Subject Continued
(The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 18. The Same Subject Continued
(The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 19. The Same Subject Continued
(The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 20. The Same Subject Continued
(The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 21. Other Defects of the
Present Confederation
FEDERALIST No. 22. The Same Subject Continued
(Other Defects of the Present Confederation)
FEDERALIST No. 23. The Necessity of a
Government as Energetic as the One Proposed to the Preservation of the
Union
FEDERALIST No. 24. The Powers Necessary to the
Common Defense Further Considered
FEDERALIST No. 25. The Same Subject Continued
(The Powers Necessary to the Common Defense Further Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 26. The Idea of Restraining the
Legislative Authority in Regard to the Common Defense Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 27. The Same Subject Continued
(The Idea of Restraining the Legislative Authority in Regard to the
Common Defense Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 28. The Same Subject Continued
(The Idea of Restraining the Legislative Authority in Regard to the
Common Defense Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 29. Concerning the Militia
FEDERALIST No. 30. Concerning the General
Power of Taxation
FEDERALIST No. 31. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 32. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 33. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 34. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 35. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 36. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 37. Concerning the Difficulties
of the Convention in Devising a Proper Form of Government.
FEDERALIST No. 38. The Same Subject Continued,
and the Incoherence of the Objections to the New Plan Exposed.
FEDERALIST No. 39. The Conformity of the Plan
to Republican Principles
FEDERALIST No. 40. On the Powers of the
Convention to Form a Mixed Government Examined and Sustained.
FEDERALIST No. 41. General View of the Powers
Conferred by The Constitution
FEDERALIST No. 42. The Powers Conferred by the
Constitution Further Considered
FEDERALIST No. 43. The Same Subject Continued
(The Powers Conferred by the Constitution Further Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 44. Restrictions on the
Authority of the Several States
FEDERALIST No. 45. The Alleged Danger From the
Powers of the Union to the State Governments.
FEDERALIST No. 46. The Influence of the State
and Federal Governments Compared
FEDERALIST No. 47. The Particular Structure of
the New Government and the Distribution of Power Among Its Different
Parts.
FEDERALIST No. 48. These Departments Should
Not Be So Far Separated as to Have No Constitutional Control Over Each
Other.
FEDERALIST No. 49. Method of Guarding Against
the Encroachments of Any One Department of Government by Appealing to
the People Through a Convention.
FEDERALIST No. 50. Periodical Appeals to the
People Considered
FEDERALIST No. 51. The Structure of the
Government Must Furnish the Proper Checks and Balances Between the
Different Departments.
FEDERALIST No. 52. The House of
Representatives
FEDERALIST No. 53. The Same Subject Continued
(The House of Representatives)
FEDERALIST No. 54. The Apportionment of
Members Among the States
FEDERALIST No. 55. The Total Number of the
House of Representatives
FEDERALIST No. 56. The Same Subject Continued
(The Total Number of the House of Representatives)
FEDERALIST No. 57. The Alleged Tendency of the
New Plan to Elevate the Few at the Expense of the Many Considered in
Connection with Representation.
FEDERALIST No. 58. Objection That The Number
of Members Will Not Be Augmented as the Progress of Population Demands.
FEDERALIST No. 59. Concerning the Power of
Congress to Regulate the Election of Members
FEDERALIST No. 60. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the Power of Congress to Regulate the Election of Members)
FEDERALIST No. 61. The Same Subject Continued
(Concerning the Power of Congress to Regulate the Election of Members)
FEDERALIST No. 62. The Senate
FEDERALIST No. 63. The Senate Continued
FEDERALIST No. 64. The Powers of the Senate
FEDERALIST No. 65. The Powers of the Senate
Continued
FEDERALIST No. 66. Objections to the Power of
the Senate To Set as a Court for Impeachments Further Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 67. The Executive Department
FEDERALIST No. 68. The Mode of Electing the
President
FEDERALIST No. 69. The Real Character of the
Executive
FEDERALIST No. 70. The Executive Department
Further Considered
FEDERALIST No. 71. The Duration in Office of
the Executive
FEDERALIST No. 72. The Same Subject Continued,
and Re-Eligibility of the Executive Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 73. The Provision For The
Support of the Executive, and the Veto Power
FEDERALIST No. 74. The Command of the Military
and Naval Forces, and the Pardoning Power of the Executive.
FEDERALIST No. 75. The Treaty-Making Power of
the Executive
FEDERALIST No. 76. The Appointing Power of the
Executive
FEDERALIST No. 77. The Appointing Power
Continued and Other Powers of the Executive Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 78. The Judiciary Department
FEDERALIST No. 79. The Judiciary Continued
FEDERALIST No. 80. The Powers of the Judiciary
FEDERALIST No. 81. The Judiciary Continued,
and the Distribution of the Judicial Authority.
FEDERALIST No. 82. The Judiciary Continued.
FEDERALIST No. 83. The Judiciary Continued in
Relation to Trial by Jury
FEDERALIST No. 84. Certain General and
Miscellaneous Objections to the Constitution Considered and Answered.
FEDERALIST No. 85. Concluding Remarks
FEDERALIST No. 1. General Introduction
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, October 27, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
AFTER an unequivocal experience of the inefficacy of the subsisting
federal government, you are called upon to deliberate on a new
Constitution for the United States of America. The subject speaks its own
importance; comprehending in its consequences nothing less than the
existence of the UNION, the safety and welfare of the parts of which it is
composed, the fate of an empire in many respects the most interesting in
the world. It has been frequently remarked that it seems to have been
reserved to the people of this country, by their conduct and example, to
decide the important question, whether societies of men are really capable
or not of establishing good government from reflection and choice, or
whether they are forever destined to depend for their political
constitutions on accident and force. If there be any truth in the remark,
the crisis at which we are arrived may with propriety be regarded as the
era in which that decision is to be made; and a wrong election of the part
we shall act may, in this view, deserve to be considered as the general
misfortune of mankind.
This idea will add the inducements of philanthropy to those of patriotism,
to heighten the solicitude which all considerate and good men must feel
for the event. Happy will it be if our choice should be directed by a
judicious estimate of our true interests, unperplexed and unbiased by
considerations not connected with the public good. But this is a thing
more ardently to be wished than seriously to be expected. The plan offered
to our deliberations affects too many particular interests, innovates upon
too many local institutions, not to involve in its discussion a variety of
objects foreign to its merits, and of views, passions and prejudices
little favorable to the discovery of truth.
Among the most formidable of the obstacles which the new Constitution will
have to encounter may readily be distinguished the obvious interest of a
certain class of men in every State to resist all changes which may hazard
a diminution of the power, emolument, and consequence of the offices they
hold under the State establishments; and the perverted ambition of another
class of men, who will either hope to aggrandize themselves by the
confusions of their country, or will flatter themselves with fairer
prospects of elevation from the subdivision of the empire into several
partial confederacies than from its union under one government.
It is not, however, my design to dwell upon observations of this nature. I
am well aware that it would be disingenuous to resolve indiscriminately
the opposition of any set of men (merely because their situations might
subject them to suspicion) into interested or ambitious views. Candor will
oblige us to admit that even such men may be actuated by upright
intentions; and it cannot be doubted that much of the opposition which has
made its appearance, or may hereafter make its appearance, will spring
from sources, blameless at least, if not respectable—the honest
errors of minds led astray by preconceived jealousies and fears. So
numerous indeed and so powerful are the causes which serve to give a false
bias to the judgment, that we, upon many occasions, see wise and good men
on the wrong as well as on the right side of questions of the first
magnitude to society. This circumstance, if duly attended to, would
furnish a lesson of moderation to those who are ever so much persuaded of
their being in the right in any controversy. And a further reason for
caution, in this respect, might be drawn from the reflection that we are
not always sure that those who advocate the truth are influenced by purer
principles than their antagonists. Ambition, avarice, personal animosity,
party opposition, and many other motives not more laudable than these, are
apt to operate as well upon those who support as those who oppose the
right side of a question. Were there not even these inducements to
moderation, nothing could be more ill-judged than that intolerant spirit
which has, at all times, characterized political parties. For in politics,
as in religion, it is equally absurd to aim at making proselytes by fire
and sword. Heresies in either can rarely be cured by persecution.
And yet, however just these sentiments will be allowed to be, we have
already sufficient indications that it will happen in this as in all
former cases of great national discussion. A torrent of angry and
malignant passions will be let loose. To judge from the conduct of the
opposite parties, we shall be led to conclude that they will mutually hope
to evince the justness of their opinions, and to increase the number of
their converts by the loudness of their declamations and the bitterness of
their invectives. An enlightened zeal for the energy and efficiency of
government will be stigmatized as the offspring of a temper fond of
despotic power and hostile to the principles of liberty. An
over-scrupulous jealousy of danger to the rights of the people, which is
more commonly the fault of the head than of the heart, will be represented
as mere pretense and artifice, the stale bait for popularity at the
expense of the public good. It will be forgotten, on the one hand, that
jealousy is the usual concomitant of love, and that the noble enthusiasm
of liberty is apt to be infected with a spirit of narrow and illiberal
distrust. On the other hand, it will be equally forgotten that the vigor
of government is essential to the security of liberty; that, in the
contemplation of a sound and well-informed judgment, their interest can
never be separated; and that a dangerous ambition more often lurks behind
the specious mask of zeal for the rights of the people than under the
forbidden appearance of zeal for the firmness and efficiency of
government. History will teach us that the former has been found a much
more certain road to the introduction of despotism than the latter, and
that of those men who have overturned the liberties of republics, the
greatest number have begun their career by paying an obsequious court to
the people; commencing demagogues, and ending tyrants.
In the course of the preceding observations, I have had an eye, my
fellow-citizens, to putting you upon your guard against all attempts, from
whatever quarter, to influence your decision in a matter of the utmost
moment to your welfare, by any impressions other than those which may
result from the evidence of truth. You will, no doubt, at the same time,
have collected from the general scope of them, that they proceed from a
source not unfriendly to the new Constitution. Yes, my countrymen, I own
to you that, after having given it an attentive consideration, I am
clearly of opinion it is your interest to adopt it. I am convinced that
this is the safest course for your liberty, your dignity, and your
happiness. I affect not reserves which I do not feel. I will not amuse you
with an appearance of deliberation when I have decided. I frankly
acknowledge to you my convictions, and I will freely lay before you the
reasons on which they are founded. The consciousness of good intentions
disdains ambiguity. I shall not, however, multiply professions on this
head. My motives must remain in the depository of my own breast. My
arguments will be open to all, and may be judged of by all. They shall at
least be offered in a spirit which will not disgrace the cause of truth.
I propose, in a series of papers, to discuss the following interesting
particulars:
THE UTILITY OF THE UNION TO YOUR POLITICAL PROSPERITY THE INSUFFICIENCY OF
THE PRESENT CONFEDERATION TO PRESERVE THAT UNION THE NECESSITY OF A
GOVERNMENT AT LEAST EQUALLY ENERGETIC WITH THE ONE PROPOSED, TO THE
ATTAINMENT OF THIS OBJECT THE CONFORMITY OF THE PROPOSED CONSTITUTION TO
THE TRUE PRINCIPLES OF REPUBLICAN GOVERNMENT ITS ANALOGY TO YOUR OWN STATE
CONSTITUTION and lastly, THE ADDITIONAL SECURITY WHICH ITS ADOPTION WILL
AFFORD TO THE PRESERVATION OF THAT SPECIES OF GOVERNMENT, TO LIBERTY, AND
TO PROPERTY.
In the progress of this discussion I shall endeavor to give a satisfactory
answer to all the objections which shall have made their appearance, that
may seem to have any claim to your attention.
It may perhaps be thought superfluous to offer arguments to prove the
utility of the UNION, a point, no doubt, deeply engraved on the hearts of
the great body of the people in every State, and one, which it may be
imagined, has no adversaries. But the fact is, that we already hear it
whispered in the private circles of those who oppose the new Constitution,
that the thirteen States are of too great extent for any general system,
and that we must of necessity resort to separate confederacies of distinct
portions of the whole.(1) This doctrine will, in all probability, be
gradually propagated, till it has votaries enough to countenance an open
avowal of it. For nothing can be more evident, to those who are able to
take an enlarged view of the subject, than the alternative of an adoption
of the new Constitution or a dismemberment of the Union. It will therefore
be of use to begin by examining the advantages of that Union, the certain
evils, and the probable dangers, to which every State will be exposed from
its dissolution. This shall accordingly constitute the subject of my next
address.
PUBLIUS
1. The same idea, tracing the arguments to their consequences, is held out
in several of the late publications against the new Constitution.
FEDERALIST No. 2. Concerning Dangers from Foreign Force and Influence
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, October 31, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
WHEN the people of America reflect that they are now called upon to decide
a question, which, in its consequences, must prove one of the most
important that ever engaged their attention, the propriety of their taking
a very comprehensive, as well as a very serious, view of it, will be
evident.
Nothing is more certain than the indispensable necessity of government,
and it is equally undeniable, that whenever and however it is instituted,
the people must cede to it some of their natural rights in order to vest
it with requisite powers. It is well worthy of consideration therefore,
whether it would conduce more to the interest of the people of America
that they should, to all general purposes, be one nation, under one
federal government, or that they should divide themselves into separate
confederacies, and give to the head of each the same kind of powers which
they are advised to place in one national government.
It has until lately been a received and uncontradicted opinion that the
prosperity of the people of America depended on their continuing firmly
united, and the wishes, prayers, and efforts of our best and wisest
citizens have been constantly directed to that object. But politicians now
appear, who insist that this opinion is erroneous, and that instead of
looking for safety and happiness in union, we ought to seek it in a
division of the States into distinct confederacies or sovereignties.
However extraordinary this new doctrine may appear, it nevertheless has
its advocates; and certain characters who were much opposed to it
formerly, are at present of the number. Whatever may be the arguments or
inducements which have wrought this change in the sentiments and
declarations of these gentlemen, it certainly would not be wise in the
people at large to adopt these new political tenets without being fully
convinced that they are founded in truth and sound policy.
It has often given me pleasure to observe that independent America was not
composed of detached and distant territories, but that one connected,
fertile, wide-spreading country was the portion of our western sons of
liberty. Providence has in a particular manner blessed it with a variety
of soils and productions, and watered it with innumerable streams, for the
delight and accommodation of its inhabitants. A succession of navigable
waters forms a kind of chain round its borders, as if to bind it together;
while the most noble rivers in the world, running at convenient distances,
present them with highways for the easy communication of friendly aids,
and the mutual transportation and exchange of their various commodities.
With equal pleasure I have as often taken notice that Providence has been
pleased to give this one connected country to one united people—a
people descended from the same ancestors, speaking the same language,
professing the same religion, attached to the same principles of
government, very similar in their manners and customs, and who, by their
joint counsels, arms, and efforts, fighting side by side throughout a long
and bloody war, have nobly established general liberty and independence.
This country and this people seem to have been made for each other, and it
appears as if it was the design of Providence, that an inheritance so
proper and convenient for a band of brethren, united to each other by the
strongest ties, should never be split into a number of unsocial, jealous,
and alien sovereignties.
Similar sentiments have hitherto prevailed among all orders and
denominations of men among us. To all general purposes we have uniformly
been one people each individual citizen everywhere enjoying the same
national rights, privileges, and protection. As a nation we have made
peace and war; as a nation we have vanquished our common enemies; as a
nation we have formed alliances, and made treaties, and entered into
various compacts and conventions with foreign states.
A strong sense of the value and blessings of union induced the people, at
a very early period, to institute a federal government to preserve and
perpetuate it. They formed it almost as soon as they had a political
existence; nay, at a time when their habitations were in flames, when many
of their citizens were bleeding, and when the progress of hostility and
desolation left little room for those calm and mature inquiries and
reflections which must ever precede the formation of a wise and
well-balanced government for a free people. It is not to be wondered at,
that a government instituted in times so inauspicious, should on
experiment be found greatly deficient and inadequate to the purpose it was
intended to answer.
This intelligent people perceived and regretted these defects. Still
continuing no less attached to union than enamored of liberty, they
observed the danger which immediately threatened the former and more
remotely the latter; and being persuaded that ample security for both
could only be found in a national government more wisely framed, they as
with one voice, convened the late convention at Philadelphia, to take that
important subject under consideration.
This convention composed of men who possessed the confidence of the
people, and many of whom had become highly distinguished by their
patriotism, virtue and wisdom, in times which tried the minds and hearts
of men, undertook the arduous task. In the mild season of peace, with
minds unoccupied by other subjects, they passed many months in cool,
uninterrupted, and daily consultation; and finally, without having been
awed by power, or influenced by any passions except love for their
country, they presented and recommended to the people the plan produced by
their joint and very unanimous councils.
Admit, for so is the fact, that this plan is only RECOMMENDED, not
imposed, yet let it be remembered that it is neither recommended to BLIND
approbation, nor to BLIND reprobation; but to that sedate and candid
consideration which the magnitude and importance of the subject demand,
and which it certainly ought to receive. But this (as was remarked in the
foregoing number of this paper) is more to be wished than expected, that
it may be so considered and examined. Experience on a former occasion
teaches us not to be too sanguine in such hopes. It is not yet forgotten
that well-grounded apprehensions of imminent danger induced the people of
America to form the memorable Congress of 1774. That body recommended
certain measures to their constituents, and the event proved their wisdom;
yet it is fresh in our memories how soon the press began to teem with
pamphlets and weekly papers against those very measures. Not only many of
the officers of government, who obeyed the dictates of personal interest,
but others, from a mistaken estimate of consequences, or the undue
influence of former attachments, or whose ambition aimed at objects which
did not correspond with the public good, were indefatigable in their
efforts to persuade the people to reject the advice of that patriotic
Congress. Many, indeed, were deceived and deluded, but the great majority
of the people reasoned and decided judiciously; and happy they are in
reflecting that they did so.
They considered that the Congress was composed of many wise and
experienced men. That, being convened from different parts of the country,
they brought with them and communicated to each other a variety of useful
information. That, in the course of the time they passed together in
inquiring into and discussing the true interests of their country, they
must have acquired very accurate knowledge on that head. That they were
individually interested in the public liberty and prosperity, and
therefore that it was not less their inclination than their duty to
recommend only such measures as, after the most mature deliberation, they
really thought prudent and advisable.
These and similar considerations then induced the people to rely greatly
on the judgment and integrity of the Congress; and they took their advice,
notwithstanding the various arts and endeavors used to deter them from it.
But if the people at large had reason to confide in the men of that
Congress, few of whom had been fully tried or generally known, still
greater reason have they now to respect the judgment and advice of the
convention, for it is well known that some of the most distinguished
members of that Congress, who have been since tried and justly approved
for patriotism and abilities, and who have grown old in acquiring
political information, were also members of this convention, and carried
into it their accumulated knowledge and experience.
It is worthy of remark that not only the first, but every succeeding
Congress, as well as the late convention, have invariably joined with the
people in thinking that the prosperity of America depended on its Union.
To preserve and perpetuate it was the great object of the people in
forming that convention, and it is also the great object of the plan which
the convention has advised them to adopt. With what propriety, therefore,
or for what good purposes, are attempts at this particular period made by
some men to depreciate the importance of the Union? Or why is it suggested
that three or four confederacies would be better than one? I am persuaded
in my own mind that the people have always thought right on this subject,
and that their universal and uniform attachment to the cause of the Union
rests on great and weighty reasons, which I shall endeavor to develop and
explain in some ensuing papers. They who promote the idea of substituting
a number of distinct confederacies in the room of the plan of the
convention, seem clearly to foresee that the rejection of it would put the
continuance of the Union in the utmost jeopardy. That certainly would be
the case, and I sincerely wish that it may be as clearly foreseen by every
good citizen, that whenever the dissolution of the Union arrives, America
will have reason to exclaim, in the words of the poet: "FAREWELL! A LONG
FAREWELL TO ALL MY GREATNESS."
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 3. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers From
Foreign Force and Influence)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, November 3, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS not a new observation that the people of any country (if, like the
Americans, intelligent and wellinformed) seldom adopt and steadily
persevere for many years in an erroneous opinion respecting their
interests. That consideration naturally tends to create great respect for
the high opinion which the people of America have so long and uniformly
entertained of the importance of their continuing firmly united under one
federal government, vested with sufficient powers for all general and
national purposes.
The more attentively I consider and investigate the reasons which appear
to have given birth to this opinion, the more I become convinced that they
are cogent and conclusive.
Among the many objects to which a wise and free people find it necessary
to direct their attention, that of providing for their SAFETY seems to be
the first. The SAFETY of the people doubtless has relation to a great
variety of circumstances and considerations, and consequently affords
great latitude to those who wish to define it precisely and
comprehensively.
At present I mean only to consider it as it respects security for the
preservation of peace and tranquillity, as well as against dangers from
FOREIGN ARMS AND INFLUENCE, as from dangers of the LIKE KIND arising from
domestic causes. As the former of these comes first in order, it is proper
it should be the first discussed. Let us therefore proceed to examine
whether the people are not right in their opinion that a cordial Union,
under an efficient national government, affords them the best security
that can be devised against HOSTILITIES from abroad.
The number of wars which have happened or will happen in the world will
always be found to be in proportion to the number and weight of the
causes, whether REAL or PRETENDED, which PROVOKE or INVITE them. If this
remark be just, it becomes useful to inquire whether so many JUST causes
of war are likely to be given by UNITED AMERICA as by DISUNITED America;
for if it should turn out that United America will probably give the
fewest, then it will follow that in this respect the Union tends most to
preserve the people in a state of peace with other nations.
The JUST causes of war, for the most part, arise either from violation of
treaties or from direct violence. America has already formed treaties with
no less than six foreign nations, and all of them, except Prussia, are
maritime, and therefore able to annoy and injure us. She has also
extensive commerce with Portugal, Spain, and Britain, and, with respect to
the two latter, has, in addition, the circumstance of neighborhood to
attend to.
It is of high importance to the peace of America that she observe the laws
of nations towards all these powers, and to me it appears evident that
this will be more perfectly and punctually done by one national government
than it could be either by thirteen separate States or by three or four
distinct confederacies.
Because when once an efficient national government is established, the
best men in the country will not only consent to serve, but also will
generally be appointed to manage it; for, although town or country, or
other contracted influence, may place men in State assemblies, or senates,
or courts of justice, or executive departments, yet more general and
extensive reputation for talents and other qualifications will be
necessary to recommend men to offices under the national government,—especially
as it will have the widest field for choice, and never experience that
want of proper persons which is not uncommon in some of the States. Hence,
it will result that the administration, the political counsels, and the
judicial decisions of the national government will be more wise,
systematical, and judicious than those of individual States, and
consequently more satisfactory with respect to other nations, as well as
more SAFE with respect to us.
Because, under the national government, treaties and articles of treaties,
as well as the laws of nations, will always be expounded in one sense and
executed in the same manner,—whereas, adjudications on the same
points and questions, in thirteen States, or in three or four
confederacies, will not always accord or be consistent; and that, as well
from the variety of independent courts and judges appointed by different
and independent governments, as from the different local laws and
interests which may affect and influence them. The wisdom of the
convention, in committing such questions to the jurisdiction and judgment
of courts appointed by and responsible only to one national government,
cannot be too much commended.
Because the prospect of present loss or advantage may often tempt the
governing party in one or two States to swerve from good faith and
justice; but those temptations, not reaching the other States, and
consequently having little or no influence on the national government, the
temptation will be fruitless, and good faith and justice be preserved. The
case of the treaty of peace with Britain adds great weight to this
reasoning.
Because, even if the governing party in a State should be disposed to
resist such temptations, yet as such temptations may, and commonly do,
result from circumstances peculiar to the State, and may affect a great
number of the inhabitants, the governing party may not always be able, if
willing, to prevent the injustice meditated, or to punish the aggressors.
But the national government, not being affected by those local
circumstances, will neither be induced to commit the wrong themselves, nor
want power or inclination to prevent or punish its commission by others.
So far, therefore, as either designed or accidental violations of treaties
and the laws of nations afford JUST causes of war, they are less to be
apprehended under one general government than under several lesser ones,
and in that respect the former most favors the SAFETY of the people.
As to those just causes of war which proceed from direct and unlawful
violence, it appears equally clear to me that one good national government
affords vastly more security against dangers of that sort than can be
derived from any other quarter.
Because such violences are more frequently caused by the passions and
interests of a part than of the whole; of one or two States than of the
Union. Not a single Indian war has yet been occasioned by aggressions of
the present federal government, feeble as it is; but there are several
instances of Indian hostilities having been provoked by the improper
conduct of individual States, who, either unable or unwilling to restrain
or punish offenses, have given occasion to the slaughter of many innocent
inhabitants.
The neighborhood of Spanish and British territories, bordering on some
States and not on others, naturally confines the causes of quarrel more
immediately to the borderers. The bordering States, if any, will be those
who, under the impulse of sudden irritation, and a quick sense of apparent
interest or injury, will be most likely, by direct violence, to excite war
with these nations; and nothing can so effectually obviate that danger as
a national government, whose wisdom and prudence will not be diminished by
the passions which actuate the parties immediately interested.
But not only fewer just causes of war will be given by the national
government, but it will also be more in their power to accommodate and
settle them amicably. They will be more temperate and cool, and in that
respect, as well as in others, will be more in capacity to act advisedly
than the offending State. The pride of states, as well as of men,
naturally disposes them to justify all their actions, and opposes their
acknowledging, correcting, or repairing their errors and offenses. The
national government, in such cases, will not be affected by this pride,
but will proceed with moderation and candor to consider and decide on the
means most proper to extricate them from the difficulties which threaten
them.
Besides, it is well known that acknowledgments, explanations, and
compensations are often accepted as satisfactory from a strong united
nation, which would be rejected as unsatisfactory if offered by a State or
confederacy of little consideration or power.
In the year 1685, the state of Genoa having offended Louis XIV.,
endeavored to appease him. He demanded that they should send their Doge,
or chief magistrate, accompanied by four of their senators, to FRANCE, to
ask his pardon and receive his terms. They were obliged to submit to it
for the sake of peace. Would he on any occasion either have demanded or
have received the like humiliation from Spain, or Britain, or any other
POWERFUL nation?
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 4. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers From
Foreign Force and Influence)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 7, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
MY LAST paper assigned several reasons why the safety of the people would
be best secured by union against the danger it may be exposed to by JUST
causes of war given to other nations; and those reasons show that such
causes would not only be more rarely given, but would also be more easily
accommodated, by a national government than either by the State
governments or the proposed little confederacies.
But the safety of the people of America against dangers from FOREIGN force
depends not only on their forbearing to give JUST causes of war to other
nations, but also on their placing and continuing themselves in such a
situation as not to INVITE hostility or insult; for it need not be
observed that there are PRETENDED as well as just causes of war.
It is too true, however disgraceful it may be to human nature, that
nations in general will make war whenever they have a prospect of getting
anything by it; nay, absolute monarchs will often make war when their
nations are to get nothing by it, but for the purposes and objects merely
personal, such as thirst for military glory, revenge for personal
affronts, ambition, or private compacts to aggrandize or support their
particular families or partisans. These and a variety of other motives,
which affect only the mind of the sovereign, often lead him to engage in
wars not sanctified by justice or the voice and interests of his people.
But, independent of these inducements to war, which are more prevalent in
absolute monarchies, but which well deserve our attention, there are
others which affect nations as often as kings; and some of them will on
examination be found to grow out of our relative situation and
circumstances.
With France and with Britain we are rivals in the fisheries, and can
supply their markets cheaper than they can themselves, notwithstanding any
efforts to prevent it by bounties on their own or duties on foreign fish.
With them and with most other European nations we are rivals in navigation
and the carrying trade; and we shall deceive ourselves if we suppose that
any of them will rejoice to see it flourish; for, as our carrying trade
cannot increase without in some degree diminishing theirs, it is more
their interest, and will be more their policy, to restrain than to promote
it.
In the trade to China and India, we interfere with more than one nation,
inasmuch as it enables us to partake in advantages which they had in a
manner monopolized, and as we thereby supply ourselves with commodities
which we used to purchase from them.
The extension of our own commerce in our own vessels cannot give pleasure
to any nations who possess territories on or near this continent, because
the cheapness and excellence of our productions, added to the circumstance
of vicinity, and the enterprise and address of our merchants and
navigators, will give us a greater share in the advantages which those
territories afford, than consists with the wishes or policy of their
respective sovereigns.
Spain thinks it convenient to shut the Mississippi against us on the one
side, and Britain excludes us from the Saint Lawrence on the other; nor
will either of them permit the other waters which are between them and us
to become the means of mutual intercourse and traffic.
From these and such like considerations, which might, if consistent with
prudence, be more amplified and detailed, it is easy to see that
jealousies and uneasinesses may gradually slide into the minds and
cabinets of other nations, and that we are not to expect that they should
regard our advancement in union, in power and consequence by land and by
sea, with an eye of indifference and composure.
The people of America are aware that inducements to war may arise out of
these circumstances, as well as from others not so obvious at present, and
that whenever such inducements may find fit time and opportunity for
operation, pretenses to color and justify them will not be wanting.
Wisely, therefore, do they consider union and a good national government
as necessary to put and keep them in SUCH A SITUATION as, instead of
INVITING war, will tend to repress and discourage it. That situation
consists in the best possible state of defense, and necessarily depends on
the government, the arms, and the resources of the country.
As the safety of the whole is the interest of the whole, and cannot be
provided for without government, either one or more or many, let us
inquire whether one good government is not, relative to the object in
question, more competent than any other given number whatever.
One government can collect and avail itself of the talents and experience
of the ablest men, in whatever part of the Union they may be found. It can
move on uniform principles of policy. It can harmonize, assimilate, and
protect the several parts and members, and extend the benefit of its
foresight and precautions to each. In the formation of treaties, it will
regard the interest of the whole, and the particular interests of the
parts as connected with that of the whole. It can apply the resources and
power of the whole to the defense of any particular part, and that more
easily and expeditiously than State governments or separate confederacies
can possibly do, for want of concert and unity of system. It can place the
militia under one plan of discipline, and, by putting their officers in a
proper line of subordination to the Chief Magistrate, will, as it were,
consolidate them into one corps, and thereby render them more efficient
than if divided into thirteen or into three or four distinct independent
companies.
What would the militia of Britain be if the English militia obeyed the
government of England, if the Scotch militia obeyed the government of
Scotland, and if the Welsh militia obeyed the government of Wales? Suppose
an invasion; would those three governments (if they agreed at all) be
able, with all their respective forces, to operate against the enemy so
effectually as the single government of Great Britain would?
We have heard much of the fleets of Britain, and the time may come, if we
are wise, when the fleets of America may engage attention. But if one
national government, had not so regulated the navigation of Britain as to
make it a nursery for seamen—if one national government had not
called forth all the national means and materials for forming fleets,
their prowess and their thunder would never have been celebrated. Let
England have its navigation and fleet—let Scotland have its
navigation and fleet—let Wales have its navigation and fleet—let
Ireland have its navigation and fleet—let those four of the
constituent parts of the British empire be be under four independent
governments, and it is easy to perceive how soon they would each dwindle
into comparative insignificance.
Apply these facts to our own case. Leave America divided into thirteen or,
if you please, into three or four independent governments—what
armies could they raise and pay—what fleets could they ever hope to
have? If one was attacked, would the others fly to its succor, and spend
their blood and money in its defense? Would there be no danger of their
being flattered into neutrality by its specious promises, or seduced by a
too great fondness for peace to decline hazarding their tranquillity and
present safety for the sake of neighbors, of whom perhaps they have been
jealous, and whose importance they are content to see diminished? Although
such conduct would not be wise, it would, nevertheless, be natural. The
history of the states of Greece, and of other countries, abounds with such
instances, and it is not improbable that what has so often happened would,
under similar circumstances, happen again.
But admit that they might be willing to help the invaded State or
confederacy. How, and when, and in what proportion shall aids of men and
money be afforded? Who shall command the allied armies, and from which of
them shall he receive his orders? Who shall settle the terms of peace, and
in case of disputes what umpire shall decide between them and compel
acquiescence? Various difficulties and inconveniences would be inseparable
from such a situation; whereas one government, watching over the general
and common interests, and combining and directing the powers and resources
of the whole, would be free from all these embarrassments, and conduce far
more to the safety of the people.
But whatever may be our situation, whether firmly united under one
national government, or split into a number of confederacies, certain it
is, that foreign nations will know and view it exactly as it is; and they
will act toward us accordingly. If they see that our national government
is efficient and well administered, our trade prudently regulated, our
militia properly organized and disciplined, our resources and finances
discreetly managed, our credit re-established, our people free, contented,
and united, they will be much more disposed to cultivate our friendship
than provoke our resentment. If, on the other hand, they find us either
destitute of an effectual government (each State doing right or wrong, as
to its rulers may seem convenient), or split into three or four
independent and probably discordant republics or confederacies, one
inclining to Britain, another to France, and a third to Spain, and perhaps
played off against each other by the three, what a poor, pitiful figure
will America make in their eyes! How liable would she become not only to
their contempt but to their outrage, and how soon would dear-bought
experience proclaim that when a people or family so divide, it never fails
to be against themselves.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 5. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers From
Foreign Force and Influence)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, November 10, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
QUEEN ANNE, in her letter of the 1st July, 1706, to the Scotch Parliament,
makes some observations on the importance of the UNION then forming
between England and Scotland, which merit our attention. I shall present
the public with one or two extracts from it: "An entire and perfect union
will be the solid foundation of lasting peace: It will secure your
religion, liberty, and property; remove the animosities amongst
yourselves, and the jealousies and differences betwixt our two kingdoms.
It must increase your strength, riches, and trade; and by this union the
whole island, being joined in affection and free from all apprehensions of
different interest, will be ENABLED TO RESIST ALL ITS ENEMIES." "We most
earnestly recommend to you calmness and unanimity in this great and
weighty affair, that the union may be brought to a happy conclusion, being
the only EFFECTUAL way to secure our present and future happiness, and
disappoint the designs of our and your enemies, who will doubtless, on
this occasion, USE THEIR UTMOST ENDEAVORS TO PREVENT OR DELAY THIS UNION."
It was remarked in the preceding paper, that weakness and divisions at
home would invite dangers from abroad; and that nothing would tend more to
secure us from them than union, strength, and good government within
ourselves. This subject is copious and cannot easily be exhausted.
The history of Great Britain is the one with which we are in general the
best acquainted, and it gives us many useful lessons. We may profit by
their experience without paying the price which it cost them. Although it
seems obvious to common sense that the people of such an island should be
but one nation, yet we find that they were for ages divided into three,
and that those three were almost constantly embroiled in quarrels and wars
with one another. Notwithstanding their true interest with respect to the
continental nations was really the same, yet by the arts and policy and
practices of those nations, their mutual jealousies were perpetually kept
inflamed, and for a long series of years they were far more inconvenient
and troublesome than they were useful and assisting to each other.
Should the people of America divide themselves into three or four nations,
would not the same thing happen? Would not similar jealousies arise, and
be in like manner cherished? Instead of their being "joined in affection"
and free from all apprehension of different "interests," envy and jealousy
would soon extinguish confidence and affection, and the partial interests
of each confederacy, instead of the general interests of all America,
would be the only objects of their policy and pursuits. Hence, like most
other BORDERING nations, they would always be either involved in disputes
and war, or live in the constant apprehension of them.
The most sanguine advocates for three or four confederacies cannot
reasonably suppose that they would long remain exactly on an equal footing
in point of strength, even if it was possible to form them so at first;
but, admitting that to be practicable, yet what human contrivance can
secure the continuance of such equality? Independent of those local
circumstances which tend to beget and increase power in one part and to
impede its progress in another, we must advert to the effects of that
superior policy and good management which would probably distinguish the
government of one above the rest, and by which their relative equality in
strength and consideration would be destroyed. For it cannot be presumed
that the same degree of sound policy, prudence, and foresight would
uniformly be observed by each of these confederacies for a long succession
of years.
Whenever, and from whatever causes, it might happen, and happen it would,
that any one of these nations or confederacies should rise on the scale of
political importance much above the degree of her neighbors, that moment
would those neighbors behold her with envy and with fear. Both those
passions would lead them to countenance, if not to promote, whatever might
promise to diminish her importance; and would also restrain them from
measures calculated to advance or even to secure her prosperity. Much time
would not be necessary to enable her to discern these unfriendly
dispositions. She would soon begin, not only to lose confidence in her
neighbors, but also to feel a disposition equally unfavorable to them.
Distrust naturally creates distrust, and by nothing is good-will and kind
conduct more speedily changed than by invidious jealousies and uncandid
imputations, whether expressed or implied.
The North is generally the region of strength, and many local
circumstances render it probable that the most Northern of the proposed
confederacies would, at a period not very distant, be unquestionably more
formidable than any of the others. No sooner would this become evident
than the NORTHERN HIVE would excite the same ideas and sensations in the
more southern parts of America which it formerly did in the southern parts
of Europe. Nor does it appear to be a rash conjecture that its young
swarms might often be tempted to gather honey in the more blooming fields
and milder air of their luxurious and more delicate neighbors.
They who well consider the history of similar divisions and confederacies
will find abundant reason to apprehend that those in contemplation would
in no other sense be neighbors than as they would be borderers; that they
would neither love nor trust one another, but on the contrary would be a
prey to discord, jealousy, and mutual injuries; in short, that they would
place us exactly in the situations in which some nations doubtless wish to
see us, viz., FORMIDABLE ONLY TO EACH OTHER.
From these considerations it appears that those gentlemen are greatly
mistaken who suppose that alliances offensive and defensive might be
formed between these confederacies, and would produce that combination and
union of wills of arms and of resources, which would be necessary to put
and keep them in a formidable state of defense against foreign enemies.
When did the independent states, into which Britain and Spain were
formerly divided, combine in such alliance, or unite their forces against
a foreign enemy? The proposed confederacies will be DISTINCT NATIONS. Each
of them would have its commerce with foreigners to regulate by distinct
treaties; and as their productions and commodities are different and
proper for different markets, so would those treaties be essentially
different. Different commercial concerns must create different interests,
and of course different degrees of political attachment to and connection
with different foreign nations. Hence it might and probably would happen
that the foreign nation with whom the SOUTHERN confederacy might be at war
would be the one with whom the NORTHERN confederacy would be the most
desirous of preserving peace and friendship. An alliance so contrary to
their immediate interest would not therefore be easy to form, nor, if
formed, would it be observed and fulfilled with perfect good faith.
Nay, it is far more probable that in America, as in Europe, neighboring
nations, acting under the impulse of opposite interests and unfriendly
passions, would frequently be found taking different sides. Considering
our distance from Europe, it would be more natural for these confederacies
to apprehend danger from one another than from distant nations, and
therefore that each of them should be more desirous to guard against the
others by the aid of foreign alliances, than to guard against foreign
dangers by alliances between themselves. And here let us not forget how
much more easy it is to receive foreign fleets into our ports, and foreign
armies into our country, than it is to persuade or compel them to depart.
How many conquests did the Romans and others make in the characters of
allies, and what innovations did they under the same character introduce
into the governments of those whom they pretended to protect.
Let candid men judge, then, whether the division of America into any given
number of independent sovereignties would tend to secure us against the
hostilities and improper interference of foreign nations.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 6. Concerning Dangers from Dissensions Between the States
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 14, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE three last numbers of this paper have been dedicated to an enumeration
of the dangers to which we should be exposed, in a state of disunion, from
the arms and arts of foreign nations. I shall now proceed to delineate
dangers of a different and, perhaps, still more alarming kind—those
which will in all probability flow from dissensions between the States
themselves, and from domestic factions and convulsions. These have been
already in some instances slightly anticipated; but they deserve a more
particular and more full investigation.
A man must be far gone in Utopian speculations who can seriously doubt
that, if these States should either be wholly disunited, or only united in
partial confederacies, the subdivisions into which they might be thrown
would have frequent and violent contests with each other. To presume a
want of motives for such contests as an argument against their existence,
would be to forget that men are ambitious, vindictive, and rapacious. To
look for a continuation of harmony between a number of independent,
unconnected sovereignties in the same neighborhood, would be to disregard
the uniform course of human events, and to set at defiance the accumulated
experience of ages.
The causes of hostility among nations are innumerable. There are some
which have a general and almost constant operation upon the collective
bodies of society. Of this description are the love of power or the desire
of pre-eminence and dominion—the jealousy of power, or the desire of
equality and safety. There are others which have a more circumscribed
though an equally operative influence within their spheres. Such are the
rivalships and competitions of commerce between commercial nations. And
there are others, not less numerous than either of the former, which take
their origin entirely in private passions; in the attachments, enmities,
interests, hopes, and fears of leading individuals in the communities of
which they are members. Men of this class, whether the favorites of a king
or of a people, have in too many instances abused the confidence they
possessed; and assuming the pretext of some public motive, have not
scrupled to sacrifice the national tranquillity to personal advantage or
personal gratification.
The celebrated Pericles, in compliance with the resentment of a
prostitute,(1) at the expense of much of the blood and treasure of his
countrymen, attacked, vanquished, and destroyed the city of the SAMMIANS.
The same man, stimulated by private pique against the MEGARENSIANS,(2)
another nation of Greece, or to avoid a prosecution with which he was
threatened as an accomplice of a supposed theft of the statuary
Phidias,(3) or to get rid of the accusations prepared to be brought
against him for dissipating the funds of the state in the purchase of
popularity,(4) or from a combination of all these causes, was the
primitive author of that famous and fatal war, distinguished in the
Grecian annals by the name of the PELOPONNESIAN war; which, after various
vicissitudes, intermissions, and renewals, terminated in the ruin of the
Athenian commonwealth.
The ambitious cardinal, who was prime minister to Henry VIII., permitting
his vanity to aspire to the triple crown,(5) entertained hopes of
succeeding in the acquisition of that splendid prize by the influence of
the Emperor Charles V. To secure the favor and interest of this
enterprising and powerful monarch, he precipitated England into a war with
France, contrary to the plainest dictates of policy, and at the hazard of
the safety and independence, as well of the kingdom over which he presided
by his counsels, as of Europe in general. For if there ever was a
sovereign who bid fair to realize the project of universal monarchy, it
was the Emperor Charles V., of whose intrigues Wolsey was at once the
instrument and the dupe.
The influence which the bigotry of one female,(6) the petulance of
another,(7) and the cabals of a third,(8) had in the contemporary policy,
ferments, and pacifications, of a considerable part of Europe, are topics
that have been too often descanted upon not to be generally known.
To multiply examples of the agency of personal considerations in the
production of great national events, either foreign or domestic, according
to their direction, would be an unnecessary waste of time. Those who have
but a superficial acquaintance with the sources from which they are to be
drawn, will themselves recollect a variety of instances; and those who
have a tolerable knowledge of human nature will not stand in need of such
lights to form their opinion either of the reality or extent of that
agency. Perhaps, however, a reference, tending to illustrate the general
principle, may with propriety be made to a case which has lately happened
among ourselves. If Shays had not been a DESPERATE DEBTOR, it is much to
be doubted whether Massachusetts would have been plunged into a civil war.
But notwithstanding the concurring testimony of experience, in this
particular, there are still to be found visionary or designing men, who
stand ready to advocate the paradox of perpetual peace between the States,
though dismembered and alienated from each other. The genius of republics
(say they) is pacific; the spirit of commerce has a tendency to soften the
manners of men, and to extinguish those inflammable humors which have so
often kindled into wars. Commercial republics, like ours, will never be
disposed to waste themselves in ruinous contentions with each other. They
will be governed by mutual interest, and will cultivate a spirit of mutual
amity and concord.
Is it not (we may ask these projectors in politics) the true interest of
all nations to cultivate the same benevolent and philosophic spirit? If
this be their true interest, have they in fact pursued it? Has it not, on
the contrary, invariably been found that momentary passions, and immediate
interest, have a more active and imperious control over human conduct than
general or remote considerations of policy, utility or justice? Have
republics in practice been less addicted to war than monarchies? Are not
the former administered by MEN as well as the latter? Are there not
aversions, predilections, rivalships, and desires of unjust acquisitions,
that affect nations as well as kings? Are not popular assemblies
frequently subject to the impulses of rage, resentment, jealousy, avarice,
and of other irregular and violent propensities? Is it not well known that
their determinations are often governed by a few individuals in whom they
place confidence, and are, of course, liable to be tinctured by the
passions and views of those individuals? Has commerce hitherto done
anything more than change the objects of war? Is not the love of wealth as
domineering and enterprising a passion as that of power or glory? Have
there not been as many wars founded upon commercial motives since that has
become the prevailing system of nations, as were before occasioned by the
cupidity of territory or dominion? Has not the spirit of commerce, in many
instances, administered new incentives to the appetite, both for the one
and for the other? Let experience, the least fallible guide of human
opinions, be appealed to for an answer to these inquiries.
Sparta, Athens, Rome, and Carthage were all republics; two of them, Athens
and Carthage, of the commercial kind. Yet were they as often engaged in
wars, offensive and defensive, as the neighboring monarchies of the same
times. Sparta was little better than a wellregulated camp; and Rome was
never sated of carnage and conquest.
Carthage, though a commercial republic, was the aggressor in the very war
that ended in her destruction. Hannibal had carried her arms into the
heart of Italy and to the gates of Rome, before Scipio, in turn, gave him
an overthrow in the territories of Carthage, and made a conquest of the
commonwealth.
Venice, in later times, figured more than once in wars of ambition, till,
becoming an object to the other Italian states, Pope Julius II. found
means to accomplish that formidable league,(9) which gave a deadly blow to
the power and pride of this haughty republic.
The provinces of Holland, till they were overwhelmed in debts and taxes,
took a leading and conspicuous part in the wars of Europe. They had
furious contests with England for the dominion of the sea, and were among
the most persevering and most implacable of the opponents of Louis XIV.
In the government of Britain the representatives of the people compose one
branch of the national legislature. Commerce has been for ages the
predominant pursuit of that country. Few nations, nevertheless, have been
more frequently engaged in war; and the wars in which that kingdom has
been engaged have, in numerous instances, proceeded from the people.
There have been, if I may so express it, almost as many popular as royal
wars. The cries of the nation and the importunities of their
representatives have, upon various occasions, dragged their monarchs into
war, or continued them in it, contrary to their inclinations, and
sometimes contrary to the real interests of the State. In that memorable
struggle for superiority between the rival houses of AUSTRIA and BOURBON,
which so long kept Europe in a flame, it is well known that the
antipathies of the English against the French, seconding the ambition, or
rather the avarice, of a favorite leader,(10) protracted the war beyond
the limits marked out by sound policy, and for a considerable time in
opposition to the views of the court.
The wars of these two last-mentioned nations have in a great measure grown
out of commercial considerations,—the desire of supplanting and the
fear of being supplanted, either in particular branches of traffic or in
the general advantages of trade and navigation, and sometimes even the
more culpable desire of sharing in the commerce of other nations without
their consent.
The last war but between Britain and Spain sprang from the attempts of the
British merchants to prosecute an illicit trade with the Spanish main.
These unjustifiable practices on their part produced severity on the part
of the Spaniards toward the subjects of Great Britain which were not more
justifiable, because they exceeded the bounds of a just retaliation and
were chargeable with inhumanity and cruelty. Many of the English who were
taken on the Spanish coast were sent to dig in the mines of Potosi; and by
the usual progress of a spirit of resentment, the innocent were, after a
while, confounded with the guilty in indiscriminate punishment. The
complaints of the merchants kindled a violent flame throughout the nation,
which soon after broke out in the House of Commons, and was communicated
from that body to the ministry. Letters of reprisal were granted, and a
war ensued, which in its consequences overthrew all the alliances that but
twenty years before had been formed with sanguine expectations of the most
beneficial fruits.
From this summary of what has taken place in other countries, whose
situations have borne the nearest resemblance to our own, what reason can
we have to confide in those reveries which would seduce us into an
expectation of peace and cordiality between the members of the present
confederacy, in a state of separation? Have we not already seen enough of
the fallacy and extravagance of those idle theories which have amused us
with promises of an exemption from the imperfections, weaknesses and evils
incident to society in every shape? Is it not time to awake from the
deceitful dream of a golden age, and to adopt as a practical maxim for the
direction of our political conduct that we, as well as the other
inhabitants of the globe, are yet remote from the happy empire of perfect
wisdom and perfect virtue?
Let the point of extreme depression to which our national dignity and
credit have sunk, let the inconveniences felt everywhere from a lax and
ill administration of government, let the revolt of a part of the State of
North Carolina, the late menacing disturbances in Pennsylvania, and the
actual insurrections and rebellions in Massachusetts, declare—!
So far is the general sense of mankind from corresponding with the tenets
of those who endeavor to lull asleep our apprehensions of discord and
hostility between the States, in the event of disunion, that it has from
long observation of the progress of society become a sort of axiom in
politics, that vicinity or nearness of situation, constitutes nations
natural enemies. An intelligent writer expresses himself on this subject
to this effect: "NEIGHBORING NATIONS (says he) are naturally enemies of
each other unless their common weakness forces them to league in a
CONFEDERATE REPUBLIC, and their constitution prevents the differences that
neighborhood occasions, extinguishing that secret jealousy which disposes
all states to aggrandize themselves at the expense of their
neighbors."(11) This passage, at the same time, points out the EVIL and
suggests the REMEDY.
PUBLIUS
1. Aspasia, vide "Plutarch's Life of Pericles."
2. Ibid.
3. Ibid.
4. Ibid. Phidias was supposed to have stolen some public gold, with the
connivance of Pericles, for the embellishment of the statue of Minerva.
5. Worn by the popes.
6. Madame de Maintenon.
7. Duchess of Marlborough.
8. Madame de Pompadour.
9. The League of Cambray, comprehending the Emperor, the King of France,
the King of Aragon, and most of the Italian princes and states.
10. The Duke of Marlborough.
11. Vide "Principes des Negociations" par l'Abbé de Mably.
FEDERALIST No. 7. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers from
Dissensions Between the States)
For the Independent Journal. Thursday, November 15, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS sometimes asked, with an air of seeming triumph, what inducements
could the States have, if disunited, to make war upon each other? It would
be a full answer to this question to say—precisely the same
inducements which have, at different times, deluged in blood all the
nations in the world. But, unfortunately for us, the question admits of a
more particular answer. There are causes of differences within our
immediate contemplation, of the tendency of which, even under the
restraints of a federal constitution, we have had sufficient experience to
enable us to form a judgment of what might be expected if those restraints
were removed.
Territorial disputes have at all times been found one of the most fertile
sources of hostility among nations. Perhaps the greatest proportion of
wars that have desolated the earth have sprung from this origin. This
cause would exist among us in full force. We have a vast tract of
unsettled territory within the boundaries of the United States. There
still are discordant and undecided claims between several of them, and the
dissolution of the Union would lay a foundation for similar claims between
them all. It is well known that they have heretofore had serious and
animated discussion concerning the rights to the lands which were
ungranted at the time of the Revolution, and which usually went under the
name of crown lands. The States within the limits of whose colonial
governments they were comprised have claimed them as their property, the
others have contended that the rights of the crown in this article
devolved upon the Union; especially as to all that part of the Western
territory which, either by actual possession, or through the submission of
the Indian proprietors, was subjected to the jurisdiction of the king of
Great Britain, till it was relinquished in the treaty of peace. This, it
has been said, was at all events an acquisition to the Confederacy by
compact with a foreign power. It has been the prudent policy of Congress
to appease this controversy, by prevailing upon the States to make
cessions to the United States for the benefit of the whole. This has been
so far accomplished as, under a continuation of the Union, to afford a
decided prospect of an amicable termination of the dispute. A
dismemberment of the Confederacy, however, would revive this dispute, and
would create others on the same subject. At present, a large part of the
vacant Western territory is, by cession at least, if not by any anterior
right, the common property of the Union. If that were at an end, the
States which made the cession, on a principle of federal compromise, would
be apt when the motive of the grant had ceased, to reclaim the lands as a
reversion. The other States would no doubt insist on a proportion, by
right of representation. Their argument would be, that a grant, once made,
could not be revoked; and that the justice of participating in territory
acquired or secured by the joint efforts of the Confederacy, remained
undiminished. If, contrary to probability, it should be admitted by all
the States, that each had a right to a share of this common stock, there
would still be a difficulty to be surmounted, as to a proper rule of
apportionment. Different principles would be set up by different States
for this purpose; and as they would affect the opposite interests of the
parties, they might not easily be susceptible of a pacific adjustment.
In the wide field of Western territory, therefore, we perceive an ample
theatre for hostile pretensions, without any umpire or common judge to
interpose between the contending parties. To reason from the past to the
future, we shall have good ground to apprehend, that the sword would
sometimes be appealed to as the arbiter of their differences. The
circumstances of the dispute between Connecticut and Pennsylvania,
respecting the land at Wyoming, admonish us not to be sanguine in
expecting an easy accommodation of such differences. The articles of
confederation obliged the parties to submit the matter to the decision of
a federal court. The submission was made, and the court decided in favor
of Pennsylvania. But Connecticut gave strong indications of
dissatisfaction with that determination; nor did she appear to be entirely
resigned to it, till, by negotiation and management, something like an
equivalent was found for the loss she supposed herself to have sustained.
Nothing here said is intended to convey the slightest censure on the
conduct of that State. She no doubt sincerely believed herself to have
been injured by the decision; and States, like individuals, acquiesce with
great reluctance in determinations to their disadvantage.
Those who had an opportunity of seeing the inside of the transactions
which attended the progress of the controversy between this State and the
district of Vermont, can vouch the opposition we experienced, as well from
States not interested as from those which were interested in the claim;
and can attest the danger to which the peace of the Confederacy might have
been exposed, had this State attempted to assert its rights by force. Two
motives preponderated in that opposition: one, a jealousy entertained of
our future power; and the other, the interest of certain individuals of
influence in the neighboring States, who had obtained grants of lands
under the actual government of that district. Even the States which
brought forward claims, in contradiction to ours, seemed more solicitous
to dismember this State, than to establish their own pretensions. These
were New Hampshire, Massachusetts, and Connecticut. New Jersey and Rhode
Island, upon all occasions, discovered a warm zeal for the independence of
Vermont; and Maryland, till alarmed by the appearance of a connection
between Canada and that State, entered deeply into the same views. These
being small States, saw with an unfriendly eye the perspective of our
growing greatness. In a review of these transactions we may trace some of
the causes which would be likely to embroil the States with each other, if
it should be their unpropitious destiny to become disunited.
The competitions of commerce would be another fruitful source of
contention. The States less favorably circumstanced would be desirous of
escaping from the disadvantages of local situation, and of sharing in the
advantages of their more fortunate neighbors. Each State, or separate
confederacy, would pursue a system of commercial policy peculiar to
itself. This would occasion distinctions, preferences, and exclusions,
which would beget discontent. The habits of intercourse, on the basis of
equal privileges, to which we have been accustomed since the earliest
settlement of the country, would give a keener edge to those causes of
discontent than they would naturally have independent of this
circumstance. WE SHOULD BE READY TO DENOMINATE INJURIES THOSE THINGS WHICH
WERE IN REALITY THE JUSTIFIABLE ACTS OF INDEPENDENT SOVEREIGNTIES
CONSULTING A DISTINCT INTEREST. The spirit of enterprise, which
characterizes the commercial part of America, has left no occasion of
displaying itself unimproved. It is not at all probable that this
unbridled spirit would pay much respect to those regulations of trade by
which particular States might endeavor to secure exclusive benefits to
their own citizens. The infractions of these regulations, on one side, the
efforts to prevent and repel them, on the other, would naturally lead to
outrages, and these to reprisals and wars.
The opportunities which some States would have of rendering others
tributary to them by commercial regulations would be impatiently submitted
to by the tributary States. The relative situation of New York,
Connecticut, and New Jersey would afford an example of this kind. New
York, from the necessities of revenue, must lay duties on her
importations. A great part of these duties must be paid by the inhabitants
of the two other States in the capacity of consumers of what we import.
New York would neither be willing nor able to forego this advantage. Her
citizens would not consent that a duty paid by them should be remitted in
favor of the citizens of her neighbors; nor would it be practicable, if
there were not this impediment in the way, to distinguish the customers in
our own markets. Would Connecticut and New Jersey long submit to be taxed
by New York for her exclusive benefit? Should we be long permitted to
remain in the quiet and undisturbed enjoyment of a metropolis, from the
possession of which we derived an advantage so odious to our neighbors,
and, in their opinion, so oppressive? Should we be able to preserve it
against the incumbent weight of Connecticut on the one side, and the
co-operating pressure of New Jersey on the other? These are questions that
temerity alone will answer in the affirmative.
The public debt of the Union would be a further cause of collision between
the separate States or confederacies. The apportionment, in the first
instance, and the progressive extinguishment afterward, would be alike
productive of ill-humor and animosity. How would it be possible to agree
upon a rule of apportionment satisfactory to all? There is scarcely any
that can be proposed which is entirely free from real objections. These,
as usual, would be exaggerated by the adverse interest of the parties.
There are even dissimilar views among the States as to the general
principle of discharging the public debt. Some of them, either less
impressed with the importance of national credit, or because their
citizens have little, if any, immediate interest in the question, feel an
indifference, if not a repugnance, to the payment of the domestic debt at
any rate. These would be inclined to magnify the difficulties of a
distribution. Others of them, a numerous body of whose citizens are
creditors to the public beyond proportion of the State in the total amount
of the national debt, would be strenuous for some equitable and effective
provision. The procrastinations of the former would excite the resentments
of the latter. The settlement of a rule would, in the meantime, be
postponed by real differences of opinion and affected delays. The citizens
of the States interested would clamour; foreign powers would urge for the
satisfaction of their just demands, and the peace of the States would be
hazarded to the double contingency of external invasion and internal
contention.
Suppose the difficulties of agreeing upon a rule surmounted, and the
apportionment made. Still there is great room to suppose that the rule
agreed upon would, upon experiment, be found to bear harder upon some
States than upon others. Those which were sufferers by it would naturally
seek for a mitigation of the burden. The others would as naturally be
disinclined to a revision, which was likely to end in an increase of their
own incumbrances. Their refusal would be too plausible a pretext to the
complaining States to withhold their contributions, not to be embraced
with avidity; and the non-compliance of these States with their
engagements would be a ground of bitter discussion and altercation. If
even the rule adopted should in practice justify the equality of its
principle, still delinquencies in payments on the part of some of the
States would result from a diversity of other causes—the real
deficiency of resources; the mismanagement of their finances; accidental
disorders in the management of the government; and, in addition to the
rest, the reluctance with which men commonly part with money for purposes
that have outlived the exigencies which produced them, and interfere with
the supply of immediate wants. Delinquencies, from whatever causes, would
be productive of complaints, recriminations, and quarrels. There is,
perhaps, nothing more likely to disturb the tranquillity of nations than
their being bound to mutual contributions for any common object that does
not yield an equal and coincident benefit. For it is an observation, as
true as it is trite, that there is nothing men differ so readily about as
the payment of money.
Laws in violation of private contracts, as they amount to aggressions on
the rights of those States whose citizens are injured by them, may be
considered as another probable source of hostility. We are not authorized
to expect that a more liberal or more equitable spirit would preside over
the legislations of the individual States hereafter, if unrestrained by
any additional checks, than we have heretofore seen in too many instances
disgracing their several codes. We have observed the disposition to
retaliation excited in Connecticut in consequence of the enormities
perpetrated by the Legislature of Rhode Island; and we reasonably infer
that, in similar cases, under other circumstances, a war, not of
PARCHMENT, but of the sword, would chastise such atrocious breaches of
moral obligation and social justice.
The probability of incompatible alliances between the different States or
confederacies and different foreign nations, and the effects of this
situation upon the peace of the whole, have been sufficiently unfolded in
some preceding papers. From the view they have exhibited of this part of
the subject, this conclusion is to be drawn, that America, if not
connected at all, or only by the feeble tie of a simple league, offensive
and defensive, would, by the operation of such jarring alliances, be
gradually entangled in all the pernicious labyrinths of European politics
and wars; and by the destructive contentions of the parts into which she
was divided, would be likely to become a prey to the artifices and
machinations of powers equally the enemies of them all. Divide et
impera(1) must be the motto of every nation that either hates or fears
us.(2)
PUBLIUS
1. Divide and command.
2. In order that the whole subject of these papers may as soon as possible
be laid before the public, it is proposed to publish them four times a
week—on Tuesday in the New York Packet and on Thursday in the Daily
Advertiser.
FEDERALIST No. 8. The Consequences of Hostilities Between the States
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, November 20, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
ASSUMING it therefore as an established truth that the several States, in
case of disunion, or such combinations of them as might happen to be
formed out of the wreck of the general Confederacy, would be subject to
those vicissitudes of peace and war, of friendship and enmity, with each
other, which have fallen to the lot of all neighboring nations not united
under one government, let us enter into a concise detail of some of the
consequences that would attend such a situation.
War between the States, in the first period of their separate existence,
would be accompanied with much greater distresses than it commonly is in
those countries where regular military establishments have long obtained.
The disciplined armies always kept on foot on the continent of Europe,
though they bear a malignant aspect to liberty and economy, have,
notwithstanding, been productive of the signal advantage of rendering
sudden conquests impracticable, and of preventing that rapid desolation
which used to mark the progress of war prior to their introduction. The
art of fortification has contributed to the same ends. The nations of
Europe are encircled with chains of fortified places, which mutually
obstruct invasion. Campaigns are wasted in reducing two or three frontier
garrisons, to gain admittance into an enemy's country. Similar impediments
occur at every step, to exhaust the strength and delay the progress of an
invader. Formerly, an invading army would penetrate into the heart of a
neighboring country almost as soon as intelligence of its approach could
be received; but now a comparatively small force of disciplined troops,
acting on the defensive, with the aid of posts, is able to impede, and
finally to frustrate, the enterprises of one much more considerable. The
history of war, in that quarter of the globe, is no longer a history of
nations subdued and empires overturned, but of towns taken and retaken; of
battles that decide nothing; of retreats more beneficial than victories;
of much effort and little acquisition.
In this country the scene would be altogether reversed. The jealousy of
military establishments would postpone them as long as possible. The want
of fortifications, leaving the frontiers of one state open to another,
would facilitate inroads. The populous States would, with little
difficulty, overrun their less populous neighbors. Conquests would be as
easy to be made as difficult to be retained. War, therefore, would be
desultory and predatory. PLUNDER and devastation ever march in the train
of irregulars. The calamities of individuals would make the principal
figure in the events which would characterize our military exploits.
This picture is not too highly wrought; though, I confess, it would not
long remain a just one. Safety from external danger is the most powerful
director of national conduct. Even the ardent love of liberty will, after
a time, give way to its dictates. The violent destruction of life and
property incident to war, the continual effort and alarm attendant on a
state of continual danger, will compel nations the most attached to
liberty to resort for repose and security to institutions which have a
tendency to destroy their civil and political rights. To be more safe,
they at length become willing to run the risk of being less free.
The institutions chiefly alluded to are STANDING ARMIES and the
correspondent appendages of military establishments. Standing armies, it
is said, are not provided against in the new Constitution; and it is
therefore inferred that they may exist under it.(1) Their existence,
however, from the very terms of the proposition, is, at most,
problematical and uncertain. But standing armies, it may be replied, must
inevitably result from a dissolution of the Confederacy. Frequent war and
constant apprehension, which require a state of as constant preparation,
will infallibly produce them. The weaker States or confederacies would
first have recourse to them, to put themselves upon an equality with their
more potent neighbors. They would endeavor to supply the inferiority of
population and resources by a more regular and effective system of
defense, by disciplined troops, and by fortifications. They would, at the
same time, be necessitated to strengthen the executive arm of government,
in doing which their constitutions would acquire a progressive direction
toward monarchy. It is of the nature of war to increase the executive at
the expense of the legislative authority.
The expedients which have been mentioned would soon give the States or
confederacies that made use of them a superiority over their neighbors.
Small states, or states of less natural strength, under vigorous
governments, and with the assistance of disciplined armies, have often
triumphed over large states, or states of greater natural strength, which
have been destitute of these advantages. Neither the pride nor the safety
of the more important States or confederacies would permit them long to
submit to this mortifying and adventitious superiority. They would quickly
resort to means similar to those by which it had been effected, to
reinstate themselves in their lost pre-eminence. Thus, we should, in a
little time, see established in every part of this country the same
engines of despotism which have been the scourge of the Old World. This,
at least, would be the natural course of things; and our reasonings will
be the more likely to be just, in proportion as they are accommodated to
this standard.
These are not vague inferences drawn from supposed or speculative defects
in a Constitution, the whole power of which is lodged in the hands of a
people, or their representatives and delegates, but they are solid
conclusions, drawn from the natural and necessary progress of human
affairs.
It may, perhaps, be asked, by way of objection to this, why did not
standing armies spring up out of the contentions which so often distracted
the ancient republics of Greece? Different answers, equally satisfactory,
may be given to this question. The industrious habits of the people of the
present day, absorbed in the pursuits of gain, and devoted to the
improvements of agriculture and commerce, are incompatible with the
condition of a nation of soldiers, which was the true condition of the
people of those republics. The means of revenue, which have been so
greatly multiplied by the increase of gold and silver and of the arts of
industry, and the science of finance, which is the offspring of modern
times, concurring with the habits of nations, have produced an entire
revolution in the system of war, and have rendered disciplined armies,
distinct from the body of the citizens, the inseparable companions of
frequent hostility.
There is a wide difference, also, between military establishments in a
country seldom exposed by its situation to internal invasions, and in one
which is often subject to them, and always apprehensive of them. The
rulers of the former can have no good pretext, if they are even so
inclined, to keep on foot armies so numerous as must of necessity be
maintained in the latter. These armies being, in the first case, rarely,
if at all, called into activity for interior defense, the people are in no
danger of being broken to military subordination. The laws are not
accustomed to relaxations, in favor of military exigencies; the civil
state remains in full vigor, neither corrupted, nor confounded with the
principles or propensities of the other state. The smallness of the army
renders the natural strength of the community an overmatch for it; and the
citizens, not habituated to look up to the military power for protection,
or to submit to its oppressions, neither love nor fear the soldiery; they
view them with a spirit of jealous acquiescence in a necessary evil, and
stand ready to resist a power which they suppose may be exerted to the
prejudice of their rights.
The army under such circumstances may usefully aid the magistrate to
suppress a small faction, or an occasional mob, or insurrection; but it
will be unable to enforce encroachments against the united efforts of the
great body of the people.
In a country in the predicament last described, the contrary of all this
happens. The perpetual menacings of danger oblige the government to be
always prepared to repel it; its armies must be numerous enough for
instant defense. The continual necessity for their services enhances the
importance of the soldier, and proportionably degrades the condition of
the citizen. The military state becomes elevated above the civil. The
inhabitants of territories, often the theatre of war, are unavoidably
subjected to frequent infringements on their rights, which serve to weaken
their sense of those rights; and by degrees the people are brought to
consider the soldiery not only as their protectors, but as their
superiors. The transition from this disposition to that of considering
them masters, is neither remote nor difficult; but it is very difficult to
prevail upon a people under such impressions, to make a bold or effectual
resistance to usurpations supported by the military power.
The kingdom of Great Britain falls within the first description. An
insular situation, and a powerful marine, guarding it in a great measure
against the possibility of foreign invasion, supersede the necessity of a
numerous army within the kingdom. A sufficient force to make head against
a sudden descent, till the militia could have time to rally and embody, is
all that has been deemed requisite. No motive of national policy has
demanded, nor would public opinion have tolerated, a larger number of
troops upon its domestic establishment. There has been, for a long time
past, little room for the operation of the other causes, which have been
enumerated as the consequences of internal war. This peculiar felicity of
situation has, in a great degree, contributed to preserve the liberty
which that country to this day enjoys, in spite of the prevalent venality
and corruption. If, on the contrary, Britain had been situated on the
continent, and had been compelled, as she would have been, by that
situation, to make her military establishments at home coextensive with
those of the other great powers of Europe, she, like them, would in all
probability be, at this day, a victim to the absolute power of a single
man. It is possible, though not easy, that the people of that island may
be enslaved from other causes; but it cannot be by the prowess of an army
so inconsiderable as that which has been usually kept up within the
kingdom.
If we are wise enough to preserve the Union we may for ages enjoy an
advantage similar to that of an insulated situation. Europe is at a great
distance from us. Her colonies in our vicinity will be likely to continue
too much disproportioned in strength to be able to give us any dangerous
annoyance. Extensive military establishments cannot, in this position, be
necessary to our security. But if we should be disunited, and the integral
parts should either remain separated, or, which is most probable, should
be thrown together into two or three confederacies, we should be, in a
short course of time, in the predicament of the continental powers of
Europe—our liberties would be a prey to the means of defending
ourselves against the ambition and jealousy of each other.
This is an idea not superficial or futile, but solid and weighty. It
deserves the most serious and mature consideration of every prudent and
honest man of whatever party. If such men will make a firm and solemn
pause, and meditate dispassionately on the importance of this interesting
idea; if they will contemplate it in all its attitudes, and trace it to
all its consequences, they will not hesitate to part with trivial
objections to a Constitution, the rejection of which would in all
probability put a final period to the Union. The airy phantoms that flit
before the distempered imaginations of some of its adversaries would
quickly give place to the more substantial forms of dangers, real,
certain, and formidable.
PUBLIUS
1. This objection will be fully examined in its proper place, and it will
be shown that the only natural precaution which could have been taken on
this subject has been taken; and a much better one than is to be found in
any constitution that has been heretofore framed in America, most of which
contain no guard at all on this subject.
FEDERALIST No. 9. The Union as a Safeguard Against Domestic Faction and
Insurrection
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 21, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
A FIRM Union will be of the utmost moment to the peace and liberty of the
States, as a barrier against domestic faction and insurrection. It is
impossible to read the history of the petty republics of Greece and Italy
without feeling sensations of horror and disgust at the distractions with
which they were continually agitated, and at the rapid succession of
revolutions by which they were kept in a state of perpetual vibration
between the extremes of tyranny and anarchy. If they exhibit occasional
calms, these only serve as short-lived contrast to the furious storms that
are to succeed. If now and then intervals of felicity open to view, we
behold them with a mixture of regret, arising from the reflection that the
pleasing scenes before us are soon to be overwhelmed by the tempestuous
waves of sedition and party rage. If momentary rays of glory break forth
from the gloom, while they dazzle us with a transient and fleeting
brilliancy, they at the same time admonish us to lament that the vices of
government should pervert the direction and tarnish the lustre of those
bright talents and exalted endowments for which the favored soils that
produced them have been so justly celebrated.
From the disorders that disfigure the annals of those republics the
advocates of despotism have drawn arguments, not only against the forms of
republican government, but against the very principles of civil liberty.
They have decried all free government as inconsistent with the order of
society, and have indulged themselves in malicious exultation over its
friends and partisans. Happily for mankind, stupendous fabrics reared on
the basis of liberty, which have flourished for ages, have, in a few
glorious instances, refuted their gloomy sophisms. And, I trust, America
will be the broad and solid foundation of other edifices, not less
magnificent, which will be equally permanent monuments of their errors.
But it is not to be denied that the portraits they have sketched of
republican government were too just copies of the originals from which
they were taken. If it had been found impracticable to have devised models
of a more perfect structure, the enlightened friends to liberty would have
been obliged to abandon the cause of that species of government as
indefensible. The science of politics, however, like most other sciences,
has received great improvement. The efficacy of various principles is now
well understood, which were either not known at all, or imperfectly known
to the ancients. The regular distribution of power into distinct
departments; the introduction of legislative balances and checks; the
institution of courts composed of judges holding their offices during good
behavior; the representation of the people in the legislature by deputies
of their own election: these are wholly new discoveries, or have made
their principal progress towards perfection in modern times. They are
means, and powerful means, by which the excellences of republican
government may be retained and its imperfections lessened or avoided. To
this catalogue of circumstances that tend to the amelioration of popular
systems of civil government, I shall venture, however novel it may appear
to some, to add one more, on a principle which has been made the
foundation of an objection to the new Constitution; I mean the ENLARGEMENT
of the ORBIT within which such systems are to revolve, either in respect
to the dimensions of a single State or to the consolidation of several
smaller States into one great Confederacy. The latter is that which
immediately concerns the object under consideration. It will, however, be
of use to examine the principle in its application to a single State,
which shall be attended to in another place.
The utility of a Confederacy, as well to suppress faction and to guard the
internal tranquillity of States, as to increase their external force and
security, is in reality not a new idea. It has been practiced upon in
different countries and ages, and has received the sanction of the most
approved writers on the subject of politics. The opponents of the plan
proposed have, with great assiduity, cited and circulated the observations
of Montesquieu on the necessity of a contracted territory for a republican
government. But they seem not to have been apprised of the sentiments of
that great man expressed in another part of his work, nor to have adverted
to the consequences of the principle to which they subscribe with such
ready acquiescence.
When Montesquieu recommends a small extent for republics, the standards he
had in view were of dimensions far short of the limits of almost every one
of these States. Neither Virginia, Massachusetts, Pennsylvania, New York,
North Carolina, nor Georgia can by any means be compared with the models
from which he reasoned and to which the terms of his description apply. If
we therefore take his ideas on this point as the criterion of truth, we
shall be driven to the alternative either of taking refuge at once in the
arms of monarchy, or of splitting ourselves into an infinity of little,
jealous, clashing, tumultuous commonwealths, the wretched nurseries of
unceasing discord, and the miserable objects of universal pity or
contempt. Some of the writers who have come forward on the other side of
the question seem to have been aware of the dilemma; and have even been
bold enough to hint at the division of the larger States as a desirable
thing. Such an infatuated policy, such a desperate expedient, might, by
the multiplication of petty offices, answer the views of men who possess
not qualifications to extend their influence beyond the narrow circles of
personal intrigue, but it could never promote the greatness or happiness
of the people of America.
Referring the examination of the principle itself to another place, as has
been already mentioned, it will be sufficient to remark here that, in the
sense of the author who has been most emphatically quoted upon the
occasion, it would only dictate a reduction of the SIZE of the more
considerable MEMBERS of the Union, but would not militate against their
being all comprehended in one confederate government. And this is the true
question, in the discussion of which we are at present interested.
So far are the suggestions of Montesquieu from standing in opposition to a
general Union of the States, that he explicitly treats of a confederate
republic as the expedient for extending the sphere of popular government,
and reconciling the advantages of monarchy with those of republicanism.
"It is very probable," (says he(1)) "that mankind would have been obliged
at length to live constantly under the government of a single person, had
they not contrived a kind of constitution that has all the internal
advantages of a republican, together with the external force of a
monarchical government. I mean a CONFEDERATE REPUBLIC."
"This form of government is a convention by which several smaller STATES
agree to become members of a larger ONE, which they intend to form. It is
a kind of assemblage of societies that constitute a new one, capable of
increasing, by means of new associations, till they arrive to such a
degree of power as to be able to provide for the security of the united
body."
"A republic of this kind, able to withstand an external force, may support
itself without any internal corruptions. The form of this society prevents
all manner of inconveniences."
"If a single member should attempt to usurp the supreme authority, he
could not be supposed to have an equal authority and credit in all the
confederate states. Were he to have too great influence over one, this
would alarm the rest. Were he to subdue a part, that which would still
remain free might oppose him with forces independent of those which he had
usurped and overpower him before he could be settled in his usurpation."
"Should a popular insurrection happen in one of the confederate states the
others are able to quell it. Should abuses creep into one part, they are
reformed by those that remain sound. The state may be destroyed on one
side, and not on the other; the confederacy may be dissolved, and the
confederates preserve their sovereignty."
"As this government is composed of small republics, it enjoys the internal
happiness of each; and with respect to its external situation, it is
possessed, by means of the association, of all the advantages of large
monarchies."
I have thought it proper to quote at length these interesting passages,
because they contain a luminous abridgment of the principal arguments in
favor of the Union, and must effectually remove the false impressions
which a misapplication of other parts of the work was calculated to make.
They have, at the same time, an intimate connection with the more
immediate design of this paper; which is, to illustrate the tendency of
the Union to repress domestic faction and insurrection.
A distinction, more subtle than accurate, has been raised between a
CONFEDERACY and a CONSOLIDATION of the States. The essential
characteristic of the first is said to be, the restriction of its
authority to the members in their collective capacities, without reaching
to the individuals of whom they are composed. It is contended that the
national council ought to have no concern with any object of internal
administration. An exact equality of suffrage between the members has also
been insisted upon as a leading feature of a confederate government. These
positions are, in the main, arbitrary; they are supported neither by
principle nor precedent. It has indeed happened, that governments of this
kind have generally operated in the manner which the distinction taken
notice of, supposes to be inherent in their nature; but there have been in
most of them extensive exceptions to the practice, which serve to prove,
as far as example will go, that there is no absolute rule on the subject.
And it will be clearly shown in the course of this investigation that as
far as the principle contended for has prevailed, it has been the cause of
incurable disorder and imbecility in the government.
The definition of a CONFEDERATE REPUBLIC seems simply to be "an assemblage
of societies," or an association of two or more states into one state. The
extent, modifications, and objects of the federal authority are mere
matters of discretion. So long as the separate organization of the members
be not abolished; so long as it exists, by a constitutional necessity, for
local purposes; though it should be in perfect subordination to the
general authority of the union, it would still be, in fact and in theory,
an association of states, or a confederacy. The proposed Constitution, so
far from implying an abolition of the State governments, makes them
constituent parts of the national sovereignty, by allowing them a direct
representation in the Senate, and leaves in their possession certain
exclusive and very important portions of sovereign power. This fully
corresponds, in every rational import of the terms, with the idea of a
federal government.
In the Lycian confederacy, which consisted of twenty-three CITIES or
republics, the largest were entitled to THREE votes in the COMMON COUNCIL,
those of the middle class to TWO, and the smallest to ONE. The COMMON
COUNCIL had the appointment of all the judges and magistrates of the
respective CITIES. This was certainly the most, delicate species of
interference in their internal administration; for if there be any thing
that seems exclusively appropriated to the local jurisdictions, it is the
appointment of their own officers. Yet Montesquieu, speaking of this
association, says: "Were I to give a model of an excellent Confederate
Republic, it would be that of Lycia." Thus we perceive that the
distinctions insisted upon were not within the contemplation of this
enlightened civilian; and we shall be led to conclude, that they are the
novel refinements of an erroneous theory.
PUBLIUS
1. "Spirit of Laws," vol. i., book ix., chap. i.
FEDERALIST No. 10. The Same Subject Continued (The Union as a Safeguard
Against Domestic Faction and Insurrection)
From the Daily Advertiser. Thursday, November 22, 1787.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
AMONG the numerous advantages promised by a well constructed Union, none
deserves to be more accurately developed than its tendency to break and
control the violence of faction. The friend of popular governments never
finds himself so much alarmed for their character and fate, as when he
contemplates their propensity to this dangerous vice. He will not fail,
therefore, to set a due value on any plan which, without violating the
principles to which he is attached, provides a proper cure for it. The
instability, injustice, and confusion introduced into the public councils,
have, in truth, been the mortal diseases under which popular governments
have everywhere perished; as they continue to be the favorite and fruitful
topics from which the adversaries to liberty derive their most specious
declamations. The valuable improvements made by the American constitutions
on the popular models, both ancient and modern, cannot certainly be too
much admired; but it would be an unwarrantable partiality, to contend that
they have as effectually obviated the danger on this side, as was wished
and expected. Complaints are everywhere heard from our most considerate
and virtuous citizens, equally the friends of public and private faith,
and of public and personal liberty, that our governments are too unstable,
that the public good is disregarded in the conflicts of rival parties, and
that measures are too often decided, not according to the rules of justice
and the rights of the minor party, but by the superior force of an
interested and overbearing majority. However anxiously we may wish that
these complaints had no foundation, the evidence, of known facts will not
permit us to deny that they are in some degree true. It will be found,
indeed, on a candid review of our situation, that some of the distresses
under which we labor have been erroneously charged on the operation of our
governments; but it will be found, at the same time, that other causes
will not alone account for many of our heaviest misfortunes; and,
particularly, for that prevailing and increasing distrust of public
engagements, and alarm for private rights, which are echoed from one end
of the continent to the other. These must be chiefly, if not wholly,
effects of the unsteadiness and injustice with which a factious spirit has
tainted our public administrations.
By a faction, I understand a number of citizens, whether amounting to a
majority or a minority of the whole, who are united and actuated by some
common impulse of passion, or of interest, adversed to the rights of other
citizens, or to the permanent and aggregate interests of the community.
There are two methods of curing the mischiefs of faction: the one, by
removing its causes; the other, by controlling its effects.
There are again two methods of removing the causes of faction: the one, by
destroying the liberty which is essential to its existence; the other, by
giving to every citizen the same opinions, the same passions, and the same
interests.
It could never be more truly said than of the first remedy, that it was
worse than the disease. Liberty is to faction what air is to fire, an
aliment without which it instantly expires. But it could not be less folly
to abolish liberty, which is essential to political life, because it
nourishes faction, than it would be to wish the annihilation of air, which
is essential to animal life, because it imparts to fire its destructive
agency.
The second expedient is as impracticable as the first would be unwise. As
long as the reason of man continues fallible, and he is at liberty to
exercise it, different opinions will be formed. As long as the connection
subsists between his reason and his self-love, his opinions and his
passions will have a reciprocal influence on each other; and the former
will be objects to which the latter will attach themselves. The diversity
in the faculties of men, from which the rights of property originate, is
not less an insuperable obstacle to a uniformity of interests. The
protection of these faculties is the first object of government. From the
protection of different and unequal faculties of acquiring property, the
possession of different degrees and kinds of property immediately results;
and from the influence of these on the sentiments and views of the
respective proprietors, ensues a division of the society into different
interests and parties.
The latent causes of faction are thus sown in the nature of man; and we
see them everywhere brought into different degrees of activity, according
to the different circumstances of civil society. A zeal for different
opinions concerning religion, concerning government, and many other
points, as well of speculation as of practice; an attachment to different
leaders ambitiously contending for pre-eminence and power; or to persons
of other descriptions whose fortunes have been interesting to the human
passions, have, in turn, divided mankind into parties, inflamed them with
mutual animosity, and rendered them much more disposed to vex and oppress
each other than to co-operate for their common good. So strong is this
propensity of mankind to fall into mutual animosities, that where no
substantial occasion presents itself, the most frivolous and fanciful
distinctions have been sufficient to kindle their unfriendly passions and
excite their most violent conflicts. But the most common and durable
source of factions has been the various and unequal distribution of
property. Those who hold and those who are without property have ever
formed distinct interests in society. Those who are creditors, and those
who are debtors, fall under a like discrimination. A landed interest, a
manufacturing interest, a mercantile interest, a moneyed interest, with
many lesser interests, grow up of necessity in civilized nations, and
divide them into different classes, actuated by different sentiments and
views. The regulation of these various and interfering interests forms the
principal task of modern legislation, and involves the spirit of party and
faction in the necessary and ordinary operations of the government.
No man is allowed to be a judge in his own cause, because his interest
would certainly bias his judgment, and, not improbably, corrupt his
integrity. With equal, nay with greater reason, a body of men are unfit to
be both judges and parties at the same time; yet what are many of the most
important acts of legislation, but so many judicial determinations, not
indeed concerning the rights of single persons, but concerning the rights
of large bodies of citizens? And what are the different classes of
legislators but advocates and parties to the causes which they determine?
Is a law proposed concerning private debts? It is a question to which the
creditors are parties on one side and the debtors on the other. Justice
ought to hold the balance between them. Yet the parties are, and must be,
themselves the judges; and the most numerous party, or, in other words,
the most powerful faction must be expected to prevail. Shall domestic
manufactures be encouraged, and in what degree, by restrictions on foreign
manufactures? are questions which would be differently decided by the
landed and the manufacturing classes, and probably by neither with a sole
regard to justice and the public good. The apportionment of taxes on the
various descriptions of property is an act which seems to require the most
exact impartiality; yet there is, perhaps, no legislative act in which
greater opportunity and temptation are given to a predominant party to
trample on the rules of justice. Every shilling with which they overburden
the inferior number, is a shilling saved to their own pockets.
It is in vain to say that enlightened statesmen will be able to adjust
these clashing interests, and render them all subservient to the public
good. Enlightened statesmen will not always be at the helm. Nor, in many
cases, can such an adjustment be made at all without taking into view
indirect and remote considerations, which will rarely prevail over the
immediate interest which one party may find in disregarding the rights of
another or the good of the whole.
The inference to which we are brought is, that the CAUSES of faction
cannot be removed, and that relief is only to be sought in the means of
controlling its EFFECTS.
If a faction consists of less than a majority, relief is supplied by the
republican principle, which enables the majority to defeat its sinister
views by regular vote. It may clog the administration, it may convulse the
society; but it will be unable to execute and mask its violence under the
forms of the Constitution. When a majority is included in a faction, the
form of popular government, on the other hand, enables it to sacrifice to
its ruling passion or interest both the public good and the rights of
other citizens. To secure the public good and private rights against the
danger of such a faction, and at the same time to preserve the spirit and
the form of popular government, is then the great object to which our
inquiries are directed. Let me add that it is the great desideratum by
which this form of government can be rescued from the opprobrium under
which it has so long labored, and be recommended to the esteem and
adoption of mankind.
By what means is this object attainable? Evidently by one of two only.
Either the existence of the same passion or interest in a majority at the
same time must be prevented, or the majority, having such coexistent
passion or interest, must be rendered, by their number and local
situation, unable to concert and carry into effect schemes of oppression.
If the impulse and the opportunity be suffered to coincide, we well know
that neither moral nor religious motives can be relied on as an adequate
control. They are not found to be such on the injustice and violence of
individuals, and lose their efficacy in proportion to the number combined
together, that is, in proportion as their efficacy becomes needful.
From this view of the subject it may be concluded that a pure democracy,
by which I mean a society consisting of a small number of citizens, who
assemble and administer the government in person, can admit of no cure for
the mischiefs of faction. A common passion or interest will, in almost
every case, be felt by a majority of the whole; a communication and
concert result from the form of government itself; and there is nothing to
check the inducements to sacrifice the weaker party or an obnoxious
individual. Hence it is that such democracies have ever been spectacles of
turbulence and contention; have ever been found incompatible with personal
security or the rights of property; and have in general been as short in
their lives as they have been violent in their deaths. Theoretic
politicians, who have patronized this species of government, have
erroneously supposed that by reducing mankind to a perfect equality in
their political rights, they would, at the same time, be perfectly
equalized and assimilated in their possessions, their opinions, and their
passions.
A republic, by which I mean a government in which the scheme of
representation takes place, opens a different prospect, and promises the
cure for which we are seeking. Let us examine the points in which it
varies from pure democracy, and we shall comprehend both the nature of the
cure and the efficacy which it must derive from the Union.
The two great points of difference between a democracy and a republic are:
first, the delegation of the government, in the latter, to a small number
of citizens elected by the rest; secondly, the greater number of citizens,
and greater sphere of country, over which the latter may be extended.
The effect of the first difference is, on the one hand, to refine and
enlarge the public views, by passing them through the medium of a chosen
body of citizens, whose wisdom may best discern the true interest of their
country, and whose patriotism and love of justice will be least likely to
sacrifice it to temporary or partial considerations. Under such a
regulation, it may well happen that the public voice, pronounced by the
representatives of the people, will be more consonant to the public good
than if pronounced by the people themselves, convened for the purpose. On
the other hand, the effect may be inverted. Men of factious tempers, of
local prejudices, or of sinister designs, may, by intrigue, by corruption,
or by other means, first obtain the suffrages, and then betray the
interests, of the people. The question resulting is, whether small or
extensive republics are more favorable to the election of proper guardians
of the public weal; and it is clearly decided in favor of the latter by
two obvious considerations:
In the first place, it is to be remarked that, however small the republic
may be, the representatives must be raised to a certain number, in order
to guard against the cabals of a few; and that, however large it may be,
they must be limited to a certain number, in order to guard against the
confusion of a multitude. Hence, the number of representatives in the two
cases not being in proportion to that of the two constituents, and being
proportionally greater in the small republic, it follows that, if the
proportion of fit characters be not less in the large than in the small
republic, the former will present a greater option, and consequently a
greater probability of a fit choice.
In the next place, as each representative will be chosen by a greater
number of citizens in the large than in the small republic, it will be
more difficult for unworthy candidates to practice with success the
vicious arts by which elections are too often carried; and the suffrages
of the people being more free, will be more likely to centre in men who
possess the most attractive merit and the most diffusive and established
characters.
It must be confessed that in this, as in most other cases, there is a
mean, on both sides of which inconveniences will be found to lie. By
enlarging too much the number of electors, you render the representatives
too little acquainted with all their local circumstances and lesser
interests; as by reducing it too much, you render him unduly attached to
these, and too little fit to comprehend and pursue great and national
objects. The federal Constitution forms a happy combination in this
respect; the great and aggregate interests being referred to the national,
the local and particular to the State legislatures.
The other point of difference is, the greater number of citizens and
extent of territory which may be brought within the compass of republican
than of democratic government; and it is this circumstance principally
which renders factious combinations less to be dreaded in the former than
in the latter. The smaller the society, the fewer probably will be the
distinct parties and interests composing it; the fewer the distinct
parties and interests, the more frequently will a majority be found of the
same party; and the smaller the number of individuals composing a
majority, and the smaller the compass within which they are placed, the
more easily will they concert and execute their plans of oppression.
Extend the sphere, and you take in a greater variety of parties and
interests; you make it less probable that a majority of the whole will
have a common motive to invade the rights of other citizens; or if such a
common motive exists, it will be more difficult for all who feel it to
discover their own strength, and to act in unison with each other. Besides
other impediments, it may be remarked that, where there is a consciousness
of unjust or dishonorable purposes, communication is always checked by
distrust in proportion to the number whose concurrence is necessary.
Hence, it clearly appears, that the same advantage which a republic has
over a democracy, in controlling the effects of faction, is enjoyed by a
large over a small republic,—is enjoyed by the Union over the States
composing it. Does the advantage consist in the substitution of
representatives whose enlightened views and virtuous sentiments render
them superior to local prejudices and schemes of injustice? It will not be
denied that the representation of the Union will be most likely to possess
these requisite endowments. Does it consist in the greater security
afforded by a greater variety of parties, against the event of any one
party being able to outnumber and oppress the rest? In an equal degree
does the increased variety of parties comprised within the Union, increase
this security. Does it, in fine, consist in the greater obstacles opposed
to the concert and accomplishment of the secret wishes of an unjust and
interested majority? Here, again, the extent of the Union gives it the
most palpable advantage.
The influence of factious leaders may kindle a flame within their
particular States, but will be unable to spread a general conflagration
through the other States. A religious sect may degenerate into a political
faction in a part of the Confederacy; but the variety of sects dispersed
over the entire face of it must secure the national councils against any
danger from that source. A rage for paper money, for an abolition of
debts, for an equal division of property, or for any other improper or
wicked project, will be less apt to pervade the whole body of the Union
than a particular member of it; in the same proportion as such a malady is
more likely to taint a particular county or district, than an entire
State.
In the extent and proper structure of the Union, therefore, we behold a
republican remedy for the diseases most incident to republican government.
And according to the degree of pleasure and pride we feel in being
republicans, ought to be our zeal in cherishing the spirit and supporting
the character of Federalists.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 11. The Utility of the Union in Respect to Commercial
Relations and a Navy
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, November 24, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE importance of the Union, in a commercial light, is one of those points
about which there is least room to entertain a difference of opinion, and
which has, in fact, commanded the most general assent of men who have any
acquaintance with the subject. This applies as well to our intercourse
with foreign countries as with each other.
There are appearances to authorize a supposition that the adventurous
spirit, which distinguishes the commercial character of America, has
already excited uneasy sensations in several of the maritime powers of
Europe. They seem to be apprehensive of our too great interference in that
carrying trade, which is the support of their navigation and the
foundation of their naval strength. Those of them which have colonies in
America look forward to what this country is capable of becoming, with
painful solicitude. They foresee the dangers that may threaten their
American dominions from the neighborhood of States, which have all the
dispositions, and would possess all the means, requisite to the creation
of a powerful marine. Impressions of this kind will naturally indicate the
policy of fostering divisions among us, and of depriving us, as far as
possible, of an ACTIVE COMMERCE in our own bottoms. This would answer the
threefold purpose of preventing our interference in their navigation, of
monopolizing the profits of our trade, and of clipping the wings by which
we might soar to a dangerous greatness. Did not prudence forbid the
detail, it would not be difficult to trace, by facts, the workings of this
policy to the cabinets of ministers.
If we continue united, we may counteract a policy so unfriendly to our
prosperity in a variety of ways. By prohibitory regulations, extending, at
the same time, throughout the States, we may oblige foreign countries to
bid against each other, for the privileges of our markets. This assertion
will not appear chimerical to those who are able to appreciate the
importance of the markets of three millions of people—increasing in
rapid progression, for the most part exclusively addicted to agriculture,
and likely from local circumstances to remain so—to any
manufacturing nation; and the immense difference there would be to the
trade and navigation of such a nation, between a direct communication in
its own ships, and an indirect conveyance of its products and returns, to
and from America, in the ships of another country. Suppose, for instance,
we had a government in America, capable of excluding Great Britain (with
whom we have at present no treaty of commerce) from all our ports; what
would be the probable operation of this step upon her politics? Would it
not enable us to negotiate, with the fairest prospect of success, for
commercial privileges of the most valuable and extensive kind, in the
dominions of that kingdom? When these questions have been asked, upon
other occasions, they have received a plausible, but not a solid or
satisfactory answer. It has been said that prohibitions on our part would
produce no change in the system of Britain, because she could prosecute
her trade with us through the medium of the Dutch, who would be her
immediate customers and paymasters for those articles which were wanted
for the supply of our markets. But would not her navigation be materially
injured by the loss of the important advantage of being her own carrier in
that trade? Would not the principal part of its profits be intercepted by
the Dutch, as a compensation for their agency and risk? Would not the mere
circumstance of freight occasion a considerable deduction? Would not so
circuitous an intercourse facilitate the competitions of other nations, by
enhancing the price of British commodities in our markets, and by
transferring to other hands the management of this interesting branch of
the British commerce?
A mature consideration of the objects suggested by these questions will
justify a belief that the real disadvantages to Britain from such a state
of things, conspiring with the pre-possessions of a great part of the
nation in favor of the American trade, and with the importunities of the
West India islands, would produce a relaxation in her present system, and
would let us into the enjoyment of privileges in the markets of those
islands elsewhere, from which our trade would derive the most substantial
benefits. Such a point gained from the British government, and which could
not be expected without an equivalent in exemptions and immunities in our
markets, would be likely to have a correspondent effect on the conduct of
other nations, who would not be inclined to see themselves altogether
supplanted in our trade.
A further resource for influencing the conduct of European nations toward
us, in this respect, would arise from the establishment of a federal navy.
There can be no doubt that the continuance of the Union under an efficient
government would put it in our power, at a period not very distant, to
create a navy which, if it could not vie with those of the great maritime
powers, would at least be of respectable weight if thrown into the scale
of either of two contending parties. This would be more peculiarly the
case in relation to operations in the West Indies. A few ships of the
line, sent opportunely to the reinforcement of either side, would often be
sufficient to decide the fate of a campaign, on the event of which
interests of the greatest magnitude were suspended. Our position is, in
this respect, a most commanding one. And if to this consideration we add
that of the usefulness of supplies from this country, in the prosecution
of military operations in the West Indies, it will readily be perceived
that a situation so favorable would enable us to bargain with great
advantage for commercial privileges. A price would be set not only upon
our friendship, but upon our neutrality. By a steady adherence to the
Union we may hope, erelong, to become the arbiter of Europe in America,
and to be able to incline the balance of European competitions in this
part of the world as our interest may dictate.
But in the reverse of this eligible situation, we shall discover that the
rivalships of the parts would make them checks upon each other, and would
frustrate all the tempting advantages which nature has kindly placed
within our reach. In a state so insignificant our commerce would be a prey
to the wanton intermeddlings of all nations at war with each other; who,
having nothing to fear from us, would with little scruple or remorse,
supply their wants by depredations on our property as often as it fell in
their way. The rights of neutrality will only be respected when they are
defended by an adequate power. A nation, despicable by its weakness,
forfeits even the privilege of being neutral.
Under a vigorous national government, the natural strength and resources
of the country, directed to a common interest, would baffle all the
combinations of European jealousy to restrain our growth. This situation
would even take away the motive to such combinations, by inducing an
impracticability of success. An active commerce, an extensive navigation,
and a flourishing marine would then be the offspring of moral and physical
necessity. We might defy the little arts of the little politicians to
control or vary the irresistible and unchangeable course of nature.
But in a state of disunion, these combinations might exist and might
operate with success. It would be in the power of the maritime nations,
availing themselves of our universal impotence, to prescribe the
conditions of our political existence; and as they have a common interest
in being our carriers, and still more in preventing our becoming theirs,
they would in all probability combine to embarrass our navigation in such
a manner as would in effect destroy it, and confine us to a PASSIVE
COMMERCE. We should then be compelled to content ourselves with the first
price of our commodities, and to see the profits of our trade snatched
from us to enrich our enemies and persecutors. That unequaled spirit of
enterprise, which signalizes the genius of the American merchants and
navigators, and which is in itself an inexhaustible mine of national
wealth, would be stifled and lost, and poverty and disgrace would
overspread a country which, with wisdom, might make herself the admiration
and envy of the world.
There are rights of great moment to the trade of America which are rights
of the Union—I allude to the fisheries, to the navigation of the
Western lakes, and to that of the Mississippi. The dissolution of the
Confederacy would give room for delicate questions concerning the future
existence of these rights; which the interest of more powerful partners
would hardly fail to solve to our disadvantage. The disposition of Spain
with regard to the Mississippi needs no comment. France and Britain are
concerned with us in the fisheries, and view them as of the utmost moment
to their navigation. They, of course, would hardly remain long indifferent
to that decided mastery, of which experience has shown us to be possessed
in this valuable branch of traffic, and by which we are able to undersell
those nations in their own markets. What more natural than that they
should be disposed to exclude from the lists such dangerous competitors?
This branch of trade ought not to be considered as a partial benefit. All
the navigating States may, in different degrees, advantageously
participate in it, and under circumstances of a greater extension of
mercantile capital, would not be unlikely to do it. As a nursery of
seamen, it now is, or when time shall have more nearly assimilated the
principles of navigation in the several States, will become, a universal
resource. To the establishment of a navy, it must be indispensable.
To this great national object, a NAVY, union will contribute in various
ways. Every institution will grow and flourish in proportion to the
quantity and extent of the means concentred towards its formation and
support. A navy of the United States, as it would embrace the resources of
all, is an object far less remote than a navy of any single State or
partial confederacy, which would only embrace the resources of a single
part. It happens, indeed, that different portions of confederated America
possess each some peculiar advantage for this essential establishment. The
more southern States furnish in greater abundance certain kinds of naval
stores—tar, pitch, and turpentine. Their wood for the construction
of ships is also of a more solid and lasting texture. The difference in
the duration of the ships of which the navy might be composed, if chiefly
constructed of Southern wood, would be of signal importance, either in the
view of naval strength or of national economy. Some of the Southern and of
the Middle States yield a greater plenty of iron, and of better quality.
Seamen must chiefly be drawn from the Northern hive. The necessity of
naval protection to external or maritime commerce does not require a
particular elucidation, no more than the conduciveness of that species of
commerce to the prosperity of a navy.
An unrestrained intercourse between the States themselves will advance the
trade of each by an interchange of their respective productions, not only
for the supply of reciprocal wants at home, but for exportation to foreign
markets. The veins of commerce in every part will be replenished, and will
acquire additional motion and vigor from a free circulation of the
commodities of every part. Commercial enterprise will have much greater
scope, from the diversity in the productions of different States. When the
staple of one fails from a bad harvest or unproductive crop, it can call
to its aid the staple of another. The variety, not less than the value, of
products for exportation contributes to the activity of foreign commerce.
It can be conducted upon much better terms with a large number of
materials of a given value than with a small number of materials of the
same value; arising from the competitions of trade and from the
fluctuations of markets. Particular articles may be in great demand at
certain periods, and unsalable at others; but if there be a variety of
articles, it can scarcely happen that they should all be at one time in
the latter predicament, and on this account the operations of the merchant
would be less liable to any considerable obstruction or stagnation. The
speculative trader will at once perceive the force of these observations,
and will acknowledge that the aggregate balance of the commerce of the
United States would bid fair to be much more favorable than that of the
thirteen States without union or with partial unions.
It may perhaps be replied to this, that whether the States are united or
disunited, there would still be an intimate intercourse between them which
would answer the same ends; this intercourse would be fettered,
interrupted, and narrowed by a multiplicity of causes, which in the course
of these papers have been amply detailed. A unity of commercial, as well
as political, interests, can only result from a unity of government.
There are other points of view in which this subject might be placed, of a
striking and animating kind. But they would lead us too far into the
regions of futurity, and would involve topics not proper for a newspaper
discussion. I shall briefly observe, that our situation invites and our
interests prompt us to aim at an ascendant in the system of American
affairs. The world may politically, as well as geographically, be divided
into four parts, each having a distinct set of interests. Unhappily for
the other three, Europe, by her arms and by her negotiations, by force and
by fraud, has, in different degrees, extended her dominion over them all.
Africa, Asia, and America, have successively felt her domination. The
superiority she has long maintained has tempted her to plume herself as
the Mistress of the World, and to consider the rest of mankind as created
for her benefit. Men admired as profound philosophers have, in direct
terms, attributed to her inhabitants a physical superiority, and have
gravely asserted that all animals, and with them the human species,
degenerate in America—that even dogs cease to bark after having
breathed awhile in our atmosphere.(1) Facts have too long supported these
arrogant pretensions of the Europeans. It belongs to us to vindicate the
honor of the human race, and to teach that assuming brother, moderation.
Union will enable us to do it. Disunion will will add another victim to
his triumphs. Let Americans disdain to be the instruments of European
greatness! Let the thirteen States, bound together in a strict and
indissoluble Union, concur in erecting one great American system, superior
to the control of all transatlantic force or influence, and able to
dictate the terms of the connection between the old and the new world!
PUBLIUS "Recherches philosophiques sur les Americains."
FEDERALIST No. 12. The Utility of the Union In Respect to Revenue
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, November 27, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE effects of Union upon the commercial prosperity of the States have
been sufficiently delineated. Its tendency to promote the interests of
revenue will be the subject of our present inquiry.
The prosperity of commerce is now perceived and acknowledged by all
enlightened statesmen to be the most useful as well as the most productive
source of national wealth, and has accordingly become a primary object of
their political cares. By multiplying the means of gratification, by
promoting the introduction and circulation of the precious metals, those
darling objects of human avarice and enterprise, it serves to vivify and
invigorate the channels of industry, and to make them flow with greater
activity and copiousness. The assiduous merchant, the laborious
husbandman, the active mechanic, and the industrious manufacturer,—all
orders of men, look forward with eager expectation and growing alacrity to
this pleasing reward of their toils. The often-agitated question between
agriculture and commerce has, from indubitable experience, received a
decision which has silenced the rivalship that once subsisted between
them, and has proved, to the satisfaction of their friends, that their
interests are intimately blended and interwoven. It has been found in
various countries that, in proportion as commerce has flourished, land has
risen in value. And how could it have happened otherwise? Could that which
procures a freer vent for the products of the earth, which furnishes new
incitements to the cultivation of land, which is the most powerful
instrument in increasing the quantity of money in a state—could
that, in fine, which is the faithful handmaid of labor and industry, in
every shape, fail to augment that article, which is the prolific parent of
far the greatest part of the objects upon which they are exerted? It is
astonishing that so simple a truth should ever have had an adversary; and
it is one, among a multitude of proofs, how apt a spirit of ill-informed
jealousy, or of too great abstraction and refinement, is to lead men
astray from the plainest truths of reason and conviction.
The ability of a country to pay taxes must always be proportioned, in a
great degree, to the quantity of money in circulation, and to the celerity
with which it circulates. Commerce, contributing to both these objects,
must of necessity render the payment of taxes easier, and facilitate the
requisite supplies to the treasury. The hereditary dominions of the
Emperor of Germany contain a great extent of fertile, cultivated, and
populous territory, a large proportion of which is situated in mild and
luxuriant climates. In some parts of this territory are to be found the
best gold and silver mines in Europe. And yet, from the want of the
fostering influence of commerce, that monarch can boast but slender
revenues. He has several times been compelled to owe obligations to the
pecuniary succors of other nations for the preservation of his essential
interests, and is unable, upon the strength of his own resources, to
sustain a long or continued war.
But it is not in this aspect of the subject alone that Union will be seen
to conduce to the purpose of revenue. There are other points of view, in
which its influence will appear more immediate and decisive. It is evident
from the state of the country, from the habits of the people, from the
experience we have had on the point itself, that it is impracticable to
raise any very considerable sums by direct taxation. Tax laws have in vain
been multiplied; new methods to enforce the collection have in vain been
tried; the public expectation has been uniformly disappointed, and the
treasuries of the States have remained empty. The popular system of
administration inherent in the nature of popular government, coinciding
with the real scarcity of money incident to a languid and mutilated state
of trade, has hitherto defeated every experiment for extensive
collections, and has at length taught the different legislatures the folly
of attempting them.
No person acquainted with what happens in other countries will be
surprised at this circumstance. In so opulent a nation as that of Britain,
where direct taxes from superior wealth must be much more tolerable, and,
from the vigor of the government, much more practicable, than in America,
far the greatest part of the national revenue is derived from taxes of the
indirect kind, from imposts, and from excises. Duties on imported articles
form a large branch of this latter description.
In America, it is evident that we must a long time depend for the means of
revenue chiefly on such duties. In most parts of it, excises must be
confined within a narrow compass. The genius of the people will ill brook
the inquisitive and peremptory spirit of excise laws. The pockets of the
farmers, on the other hand, will reluctantly yield but scanty supplies, in
the unwelcome shape of impositions on their houses and lands; and personal
property is too precarious and invisible a fund to be laid hold of in any
other way than by the imperceptible agency of taxes on consumption.
If these remarks have any foundation, that state of things which will best
enable us to improve and extend so valuable a resource must be best
adapted to our political welfare. And it cannot admit of a serious doubt,
that this state of things must rest on the basis of a general Union. As
far as this would be conducive to the interests of commerce, so far it
must tend to the extension of the revenue to be drawn from that source. As
far as it would contribute to rendering regulations for the collection of
the duties more simple and efficacious, so far it must serve to answer the
purposes of making the same rate of duties more productive, and of putting
it into the power of the government to increase the rate without prejudice
to trade.
The relative situation of these States; the number of rivers with which
they are intersected, and of bays that wash there shores; the facility of
communication in every direction; the affinity of language and manners;
the familiar habits of intercourse;—all these are circumstances that
would conspire to render an illicit trade between them a matter of little
difficulty, and would insure frequent evasions of the commercial
regulations of each other. The separate States or confederacies would be
necessitated by mutual jealousy to avoid the temptations to that kind of
trade by the lowness of their duties. The temper of our governments, for a
long time to come, would not permit those rigorous precautions by which
the European nations guard the avenues into their respective countries, as
well by land as by water; and which, even there, are found insufficient
obstacles to the adventurous stratagems of avarice.
In France, there is an army of patrols (as they are called) constantly
employed to secure their fiscal regulations against the inroads of the
dealers in contraband trade. Mr. Neckar computes the number of these
patrols at upwards of twenty thousand. This shows the immense difficulty
in preventing that species of traffic, where there is an inland
communication, and places in a strong light the disadvantages with which
the collection of duties in this country would be encumbered, if by
disunion the States should be placed in a situation, with respect to each
other, resembling that of France with respect to her neighbors. The
arbitrary and vexatious powers with which the patrols are necessarily
armed, would be intolerable in a free country.
If, on the contrary, there be but one government pervading all the States,
there will be, as to the principal part of our commerce, but ONE SIDE to
guard—the ATLANTIC COAST. Vessels arriving directly from foreign
countries, laden with valuable cargoes, would rarely choose to hazard
themselves to the complicated and critical perils which would attend
attempts to unlade prior to their coming into port. They would have to
dread both the dangers of the coast, and of detection, as well after as
before their arrival at the places of their final destination. An ordinary
degree of vigilance would be competent to the prevention of any material
infractions upon the rights of the revenue. A few armed vessels,
judiciously stationed at the entrances of our ports, might at a small
expense be made useful sentinels of the laws. And the government having
the same interest to provide against violations everywhere, the
co-operation of its measures in each State would have a powerful tendency
to render them effectual. Here also we should preserve by Union, an
advantage which nature holds out to us, and which would be relinquished by
separation. The United States lie at a great distance from Europe, and at
a considerable distance from all other places with which they would have
extensive connections of foreign trade. The passage from them to us, in a
few hours, or in a single night, as between the coasts of France and
Britain, and of other neighboring nations, would be impracticable. This is
a prodigious security against a direct contraband with foreign countries;
but a circuitous contraband to one State, through the medium of another,
would be both easy and safe. The difference between a direct importation
from abroad, and an indirect importation through the channel of a
neighboring State, in small parcels, according to time and opportunity,
with the additional facilities of inland communication, must be palpable
to every man of discernment.
It is therefore evident, that one national government would be able, at
much less expense, to extend the duties on imports, beyond comparison,
further than would be practicable to the States separately, or to any
partial confederacies. Hitherto, I believe, it may safely be asserted,
that these duties have not upon an average exceeded in any State three per
cent. In France they are estimated to be about fifteen per cent., and in
Britain they exceed this proportion.(1) There seems to be nothing to
hinder their being increased in this country to at least treble their
present amount. The single article of ardent spirits, under federal
regulation, might be made to furnish a considerable revenue. Upon a ratio
to the importation into this State, the whole quantity imported into the
United States may be estimated at four millions of gallons; which, at a
shilling per gallon, would produce two hundred thousand pounds. That
article would well bear this rate of duty; and if it should tend to
diminish the consumption of it, such an effect would be equally favorable
to the agriculture, to the economy, to the morals, and to the health of
the society. There is, perhaps, nothing so much a subject of national
extravagance as these spirits.
What will be the consequence, if we are not able to avail ourselves of the
resource in question in its full extent? A nation cannot long exist
without revenues. Destitute of this essential support, it must resign its
independence, and sink into the degraded condition of a province. This is
an extremity to which no government will of choice accede. Revenue,
therefore, must be had at all events. In this country, if the principal
part be not drawn from commerce, it must fall with oppressive weight upon
land. It has been already intimated that excises, in their true
signification, are too little in unison with the feelings of the people,
to admit of great use being made of that mode of taxation; nor, indeed, in
the States where almost the sole employment is agriculture, are the
objects proper for excise sufficiently numerous to permit very ample
collections in that way. Personal estate (as has been before remarked),
from the difficulty in tracing it, cannot be subjected to large
contributions, by any other means than by taxes on consumption. In
populous cities, it may be enough the subject of conjecture, to occasion
the oppression of individuals, without much aggregate benefit to the
State; but beyond these circles, it must, in a great measure, escape the
eye and the hand of the tax-gatherer. As the necessities of the State,
nevertheless, must be satisfied in some mode or other, the defect of other
resources must throw the principal weight of public burdens on the
possessors of land. And as, on the other hand, the wants of the government
can never obtain an adequate supply, unless all the sources of revenue are
open to its demands, the finances of the community, under such
embarrassments, cannot be put into a situation consistent with its
respectability or its security. Thus we shall not even have the
consolations of a full treasury, to atone for the oppression of that
valuable class of the citizens who are employed in the cultivation of the
soil. But public and private distress will keep pace with each other in
gloomy concert; and unite in deploring the infatuation of those counsels
which led to disunion.
PUBLIUS
1. If my memory be right they amount to twenty per cent.
FEDERALIST No. 13. Advantage of the Union in Respect to Economy in
Government
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 28, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
As CONNECTED with the subject of revenue, we may with propriety consider
that of economy. The money saved from one object may be usefully applied
to another, and there will be so much the less to be drawn from the
pockets of the people. If the States are united under one government,
there will be but one national civil list to support; if they are divided
into several confederacies, there will be as many different national civil
lists to be provided for—and each of them, as to the principal
departments, coextensive with that which would be necessary for a
government of the whole. The entire separation of the States into thirteen
unconnected sovereignties is a project too extravagant and too replete
with danger to have many advocates. The ideas of men who speculate upon
the dismemberment of the empire seem generally turned toward three
confederacies—one consisting of the four Northern, another of the
four Middle, and a third of the five Southern States. There is little
probability that there would be a greater number. According to this
distribution, each confederacy would comprise an extent of territory
larger than that of the kingdom of Great Britain. No well-informed man
will suppose that the affairs of such a confederacy can be properly
regulated by a government less comprehensive in its organs or institutions
than that which has been proposed by the convention. When the dimensions
of a State attain to a certain magnitude, it requires the same energy of
government and the same forms of administration which are requisite in one
of much greater extent. This idea admits not of precise demonstration,
because there is no rule by which we can measure the momentum of civil
power necessary to the government of any given number of individuals; but
when we consider that the island of Britain, nearly commensurate with each
of the supposed confederacies, contains about eight millions of people,
and when we reflect upon the degree of authority required to direct the
passions of so large a society to the public good, we shall see no reason
to doubt that the like portion of power would be sufficient to perform the
same task in a society far more numerous. Civil power, properly organized
and exerted, is capable of diffusing its force to a very great extent; and
can, in a manner, reproduce itself in every part of a great empire by a
judicious arrangement of subordinate institutions.
The supposition that each confederacy into which the States would be
likely to be divided would require a government not less comprehensive
than the one proposed, will be strengthened by another supposition, more
probable than that which presents us with three confederacies as the
alternative to a general Union. If we attend carefully to geographical and
commercial considerations, in conjunction with the habits and prejudices
of the different States, we shall be led to conclude that in case of
disunion they will most naturally league themselves under two governments.
The four Eastern States, from all the causes that form the links of
national sympathy and connection, may with certainty be expected to unite.
New York, situated as she is, would never be unwise enough to oppose a
feeble and unsupported flank to the weight of that confederacy. There are
other obvious reasons that would facilitate her accession to it. New
Jersey is too small a State to think of being a frontier, in opposition to
this still more powerful combination; nor do there appear to be any
obstacles to her admission into it. Even Pennsylvania would have strong
inducements to join the Northern league. An active foreign commerce, on
the basis of her own navigation, is her true policy, and coincides with
the opinions and dispositions of her citizens. The more Southern States,
from various circumstances, may not think themselves much interested in
the encouragement of navigation. They may prefer a system which would give
unlimited scope to all nations to be the carriers as well as the
purchasers of their commodities. Pennsylvania may not choose to confound
her interests in a connection so adverse to her policy. As she must at all
events be a frontier, she may deem it most consistent with her safety to
have her exposed side turned towards the weaker power of the Southern,
rather than towards the stronger power of the Northern, Confederacy. This
would give her the fairest chance to avoid being the Flanders of America.
Whatever may be the determination of Pennsylvania, if the Northern
Confederacy includes New Jersey, there is no likelihood of more than one
confederacy to the south of that State.
Nothing can be more evident than that the thirteen States will be able to
support a national government better than one half, or one third, or any
number less than the whole. This reflection must have great weight in
obviating that objection to the proposed plan, which is founded on the
principle of expense; an objection, however, which, when we come to take a
nearer view of it, will appear in every light to stand on mistaken ground.
If, in addition to the consideration of a plurality of civil lists, we
take into view the number of persons who must necessarily be employed to
guard the inland communication between the different confederacies against
illicit trade, and who in time will infallibly spring up out of the
necessities of revenue; and if we also take into view the military
establishments which it has been shown would unavoidably result from the
jealousies and conflicts of the several nations into which the States
would be divided, we shall clearly discover that a separation would be not
less injurious to the economy, than to the tranquillity, commerce,
revenue, and liberty of every part.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 14. Objections to the Proposed Constitution From Extent of
Territory Answered
From the New York Packet. Friday, November 30, 1787.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE HAVE seen the necessity of the Union, as our bulwark against foreign
danger, as the conservator of peace among ourselves, as the guardian of
our commerce and other common interests, as the only substitute for those
military establishments which have subverted the liberties of the Old
World, and as the proper antidote for the diseases of faction, which have
proved fatal to other popular governments, and of which alarming symptoms
have been betrayed by our own. All that remains, within this branch of our
inquiries, is to take notice of an objection that may be drawn from the
great extent of country which the Union embraces. A few observations on
this subject will be the more proper, as it is perceived that the
adversaries of the new Constitution are availing themselves of the
prevailing prejudice with regard to the practicable sphere of republican
administration, in order to supply, by imaginary difficulties, the want of
those solid objections which they endeavor in vain to find.
The error which limits republican government to a narrow district has been
unfolded and refuted in preceding papers. I remark here only that it seems
to owe its rise and prevalence chiefly to the confounding of a republic
with a democracy, applying to the former reasonings drawn from the nature
of the latter. The true distinction between these forms was also adverted
to on a former occasion. It is, that in a democracy, the people meet and
exercise the government in person; in a republic, they assemble and
administer it by their representatives and agents. A democracy,
consequently, will be confined to a small spot. A republic may be extended
over a large region.
To this accidental source of the error may be added the artifice of some
celebrated authors, whose writings have had a great share in forming the
modern standard of political opinions. Being subjects either of an
absolute or limited monarchy, they have endeavored to heighten the
advantages, or palliate the evils of those forms, by placing in comparison
the vices and defects of the republican, and by citing as specimens of the
latter the turbulent democracies of ancient Greece and modern Italy. Under
the confusion of names, it has been an easy task to transfer to a republic
observations applicable to a democracy only; and among others, the
observation that it can never be established but among a small number of
people, living within a small compass of territory.
Such a fallacy may have been the less perceived, as most of the popular
governments of antiquity were of the democratic species; and even in
modern Europe, to which we owe the great principle of representation, no
example is seen of a government wholly popular, and founded, at the same
time, wholly on that principle. If Europe has the merit of discovering
this great mechanical power in government, by the simple agency of which
the will of the largest political body may be concentred, and its force
directed to any object which the public good requires, America can claim
the merit of making the discovery the basis of unmixed and extensive
republics. It is only to be lamented that any of her citizens should wish
to deprive her of the additional merit of displaying its full efficacy in
the establishment of the comprehensive system now under her consideration.
As the natural limit of a democracy is that distance from the central
point which will just permit the most remote citizens to assemble as often
as their public functions demand, and will include no greater number than
can join in those functions; so the natural limit of a republic is that
distance from the centre which will barely allow the representatives to
meet as often as may be necessary for the administration of public
affairs. Can it be said that the limits of the United States exceed this
distance? It will not be said by those who recollect that the Atlantic
coast is the longest side of the Union, that during the term of thirteen
years, the representatives of the States have been almost continually
assembled, and that the members from the most distant States are not
chargeable with greater intermissions of attendance than those from the
States in the neighborhood of Congress.
That we may form a juster estimate with regard to this interesting
subject, let us resort to the actual dimensions of the Union. The limits,
as fixed by the treaty of peace, are: on the east the Atlantic, on the
south the latitude of thirty-one degrees, on the west the Mississippi, and
on the north an irregular line running in some instances beyond the
forty-fifth degree, in others falling as low as the forty-second. The
southern shore of Lake Erie lies below that latitude. Computing the
distance between the thirty-first and forty-fifth degrees, it amounts to
nine hundred and seventy-three common miles; computing it from thirty-one
to forty-two degrees, to seven hundred and sixty-four miles and a half.
Taking the mean for the distance, the amount will be eight hundred and
sixty-eight miles and three-fourths. The mean distance from the Atlantic
to the Mississippi does not probably exceed seven hundred and fifty miles.
On a comparison of this extent with that of several countries in Europe,
the practicability of rendering our system commensurate to it appears to
be demonstrable. It is not a great deal larger than Germany, where a diet
representing the whole empire is continually assembled; or than Poland
before the late dismemberment, where another national diet was the
depositary of the supreme power. Passing by France and Spain, we find that
in Great Britain, inferior as it may be in size, the representatives of
the northern extremity of the island have as far to travel to the national
council as will be required of those of the most remote parts of the
Union.
Favorable as this view of the subject may be, some observations remain
which will place it in a light still more satisfactory.
In the first place it is to be remembered that the general government is
not to be charged with the whole power of making and administering laws.
Its jurisdiction is limited to certain enumerated objects, which concern
all the members of the republic, but which are not to be attained by the
separate provisions of any. The subordinate governments, which can extend
their care to all those other subjects which can be separately provided
for, will retain their due authority and activity. Were it proposed by the
plan of the convention to abolish the governments of the particular
States, its adversaries would have some ground for their objection; though
it would not be difficult to show that if they were abolished the general
government would be compelled, by the principle of self-preservation, to
reinstate them in their proper jurisdiction.
A second observation to be made is that the immediate object of the
federal Constitution is to secure the union of the thirteen primitive
States, which we know to be practicable; and to add to them such other
States as may arise in their own bosoms, or in their neighborhoods, which
we cannot doubt to be equally practicable. The arrangements that may be
necessary for those angles and fractions of our territory which lie on our
northwestern frontier, must be left to those whom further discoveries and
experience will render more equal to the task.
Let it be remarked, in the third place, that the intercourse throughout
the Union will be facilitated by new improvements. Roads will everywhere
be shortened, and kept in better order; accommodations for travelers will
be multiplied and meliorated; an interior navigation on our eastern side
will be opened throughout, or nearly throughout, the whole extent of the
thirteen States. The communication between the Western and Atlantic
districts, and between different parts of each, will be rendered more and
more easy by those numerous canals with which the beneficence of nature
has intersected our country, and which art finds it so little difficult to
connect and complete.
A fourth and still more important consideration is, that as almost every
State will, on one side or other, be a frontier, and will thus find, in
regard to its safety, an inducement to make some sacrifices for the sake
of the general protection; so the States which lie at the greatest
distance from the heart of the Union, and which, of course, may partake
least of the ordinary circulation of its benefits, will be at the same
time immediately contiguous to foreign nations, and will consequently
stand, on particular occasions, in greatest need of its strength and
resources. It may be inconvenient for Georgia, or the States forming our
western or northeastern borders, to send their representatives to the seat
of government; but they would find it more so to struggle alone against an
invading enemy, or even to support alone the whole expense of those
precautions which may be dictated by the neighborhood of continual danger.
If they should derive less benefit, therefore, from the Union in some
respects than the less distant States, they will derive greater benefit
from it in other respects, and thus the proper equilibrium will be
maintained throughout.
I submit to you, my fellow-citizens, these considerations, in full
confidence that the good sense which has so often marked your decisions
will allow them their due weight and effect; and that you will never
suffer difficulties, however formidable in appearance, or however
fashionable the error on which they may be founded, to drive you into the
gloomy and perilous scene into which the advocates for disunion would
conduct you. Hearken not to the unnatural voice which tells you that the
people of America, knit together as they are by so many cords of
affection, can no longer live together as members of the same family; can
no longer continue the mutual guardians of their mutual happiness; can no
longer be fellow citizens of one great, respectable, and flourishing
empire. Hearken not to the voice which petulantly tells you that the form
of government recommended for your adoption is a novelty in the political
world; that it has never yet had a place in the theories of the wildest
projectors; that it rashly attempts what it is impossible to accomplish.
No, my countrymen, shut your ears against this unhallowed language. Shut
your hearts against the poison which it conveys; the kindred blood which
flows in the veins of American citizens, the mingled blood which they have
shed in defense of their sacred rights, consecrate their Union, and excite
horror at the idea of their becoming aliens, rivals, enemies. And if
novelties are to be shunned, believe me, the most alarming of all
novelties, the most wild of all projects, the most rash of all attempts,
is that of rendering us in pieces, in order to preserve our liberties and
promote our happiness. But why is the experiment of an extended republic
to be rejected, merely because it may comprise what is new? Is it not the
glory of the people of America, that, whilst they have paid a decent
regard to the opinions of former times and other nations, they have not
suffered a blind veneration for antiquity, for custom, or for names, to
overrule the suggestions of their own good sense, the knowledge of their
own situation, and the lessons of their own experience? To this manly
spirit, posterity will be indebted for the possession, and the world for
the example, of the numerous innovations displayed on the American
theatre, in favor of private rights and public happiness. Had no important
step been taken by the leaders of the Revolution for which a precedent
could not be discovered, no government established of which an exact model
did not present itself, the people of the United States might, at this
moment have been numbered among the melancholy victims of misguided
councils, must at best have been laboring under the weight of some of
those forms which have crushed the liberties of the rest of mankind.
Happily for America, happily, we trust, for the whole human race, they
pursued a new and more noble course. They accomplished a revolution which
has no parallel in the annals of human society. They reared the fabrics of
governments which have no model on the face of the globe. They formed the
design of a great Confederacy, which it is incumbent on their successors
to improve and perpetuate. If their works betray imperfections, we wonder
at the fewness of them. If they erred most in the structure of the Union,
this was the work most difficult to be executed; this is the work which
has been new modelled by the act of your convention, and it is that act on
which you are now to deliberate and to decide.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 15. The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to
Preserve the Union
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, December 1, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York.
IN THE course of the preceding papers, I have endeavored, my fellow
citizens, to place before you, in a clear and convincing light, the
importance of Union to your political safety and happiness. I have
unfolded to you a complication of dangers to which you would be exposed,
should you permit that sacred knot which binds the people of America
together be severed or dissolved by ambition or by avarice, by jealousy or
by misrepresentation. In the sequel of the inquiry through which I propose
to accompany you, the truths intended to be inculcated will receive
further confirmation from facts and arguments hitherto unnoticed. If the
road over which you will still have to pass should in some places appear
to you tedious or irksome, you will recollect that you are in quest of
information on a subject the most momentous which can engage the attention
of a free people, that the field through which you have to travel is in
itself spacious, and that the difficulties of the journey have been
unnecessarily increased by the mazes with which sophistry has beset the
way. It will be my aim to remove the obstacles from your progress in as
compendious a manner as it can be done, without sacrificing utility to
despatch.
In pursuance of the plan which I have laid down for the discussion of the
subject, the point next in order to be examined is the "insufficiency of
the present Confederation to the preservation of the Union." It may
perhaps be asked what need there is of reasoning or proof to illustrate a
position which is not either controverted or doubted, to which the
understandings and feelings of all classes of men assent, and which in
substance is admitted by the opponents as well as by the friends of the
new Constitution. It must in truth be acknowledged that, however these may
differ in other respects, they in general appear to harmonize in this
sentiment, at least, that there are material imperfections in our national
system, and that something is necessary to be done to rescue us from
impending anarchy. The facts that support this opinion are no longer
objects of speculation. They have forced themselves upon the sensibility
of the people at large, and have at length extorted from those, whose
mistaken policy has had the principal share in precipitating the extremity
at which we are arrived, a reluctant confession of the reality of those
defects in the scheme of our federal government, which have been long
pointed out and regretted by the intelligent friends of the Union.
We may indeed with propriety be said to have reached almost the last stage
of national humiliation. There is scarcely anything that can wound the
pride or degrade the character of an independent nation which we do not
experience. Are there engagements to the performance of which we are held
by every tie respectable among men? These are the subjects of constant and
unblushing violation. Do we owe debts to foreigners and to our own
citizens contracted in a time of imminent peril for the preservation of
our political existence? These remain without any proper or satisfactory
provision for their discharge. Have we valuable territories and important
posts in the possession of a foreign power which, by express stipulations,
ought long since to have been surrendered? These are still retained, to
the prejudice of our interests, not less than of our rights. Are we in a
condition to resent or to repel the aggression? We have neither troops,
nor treasury, nor government.(1) Are we even in a condition to remonstrate
with dignity? The just imputations on our own faith, in respect to the
same treaty, ought first to be removed. Are we entitled by nature and
compact to a free participation in the navigation of the Mississippi?
Spain excludes us from it. Is public credit an indispensable resource in
time of public danger? We seem to have abandoned its cause as desperate
and irretrievable. Is commerce of importance to national wealth? Ours is
at the lowest point of declension. Is respectability in the eyes of
foreign powers a safeguard against foreign encroachments? The imbecility
of our government even forbids them to treat with us. Our ambassadors
abroad are the mere pageants of mimic sovereignty. Is a violent and
unnatural decrease in the value of land a symptom of national distress?
The price of improved land in most parts of the country is much lower than
can be accounted for by the quantity of waste land at market, and can only
be fully explained by that want of private and public confidence, which
are so alarmingly prevalent among all ranks, and which have a direct
tendency to depreciate property of every kind. Is private credit the
friend and patron of industry? That most useful kind which relates to
borrowing and lending is reduced within the narrowest limits, and this
still more from an opinion of insecurity than from the scarcity of money.
To shorten an enumeration of particulars which can afford neither pleasure
nor instruction, it may in general be demanded, what indication is there
of national disorder, poverty, and insignificance that could befall a
community so peculiarly blessed with natural advantages as we are, which
does not form a part of the dark catalogue of our public misfortunes?
This is the melancholy situation to which we have been brought by those
very maxims and councils which would now deter us from adopting the
proposed Constitution; and which, not content with having conducted us to
the brink of a precipice, seem resolved to plunge us into the abyss that
awaits us below. Here, my countrymen, impelled by every motive that ought
to influence an enlightened people, let us make a firm stand for our
safety, our tranquillity, our dignity, our reputation. Let us at last
break the fatal charm which has too long seduced us from the paths of
felicity and prosperity.
It is true, as has been before observed that facts, too stubborn to be
resisted, have produced a species of general assent to the abstract
proposition that there exist material defects in our national system; but
the usefulness of the concession, on the part of the old adversaries of
federal measures, is destroyed by a strenuous opposition to a remedy, upon
the only principles that can give it a chance of success. While they admit
that the government of the United States is destitute of energy, they
contend against conferring upon it those powers which are requisite to
supply that energy. They seem still to aim at things repugnant and
irreconcilable; at an augmentation of federal authority, without a
diminution of State authority; at sovereignty in the Union, and complete
independence in the members. They still, in fine, seem to cherish with
blind devotion the political monster of an imperium in imperio. This
renders a full display of the principal defects of the Confederation
necessary, in order to show that the evils we experience do not proceed
from minute or partial imperfections, but from fundamental errors in the
structure of the building, which cannot be amended otherwise than by an
alteration in the first principles and main pillars of the fabric.
The great and radical vice in the construction of the existing
Confederation is in the principle of LEGISLATION for STATES or
GOVERNMENTS, in their CORPORATE or COLLECTIVE CAPACITIES, and as
contradistinguished from the INDIVIDUALS of which they consist. Though
this principle does not run through all the powers delegated to the Union,
yet it pervades and governs those on which the efficacy of the rest
depends. Except as to the rule of appointment, the United States has an
indefinite discretion to make requisitions for men and money; but they
have no authority to raise either, by regulations extending to the
individual citizens of America. The consequence of this is, that though in
theory their resolutions concerning those objects are laws,
constitutionally binding on the members of the Union, yet in practice they
are mere recommendations which the States observe or disregard at their
option.
It is a singular instance of the capriciousness of the human mind, that
after all the admonitions we have had from experience on this head, there
should still be found men who object to the new Constitution, for
deviating from a principle which has been found the bane of the old, and
which is in itself evidently incompatible with the idea of GOVERNMENT; a
principle, in short, which, if it is to be executed at all, must
substitute the violent and sanguinary agency of the sword to the mild
influence of the magistracy.
There is nothing absurd or impracticable in the idea of a league or
alliance between independent nations for certain defined purposes
precisely stated in a treaty regulating all the details of time, place,
circumstance, and quantity; leaving nothing to future discretion; and
depending for its execution on the good faith of the parties. Compacts of
this kind exist among all civilized nations, subject to the usual
vicissitudes of peace and war, of observance and non-observance, as the
interests or passions of the contracting powers dictate. In the early part
of the present century there was an epidemical rage in Europe for this
species of compacts, from which the politicians of the times fondly hoped
for benefits which were never realized. With a view to establishing the
equilibrium of power and the peace of that part of the world, all the
resources of negotiation were exhausted, and triple and quadruple
alliances were formed; but they were scarcely formed before they were
broken, giving an instructive but afflicting lesson to mankind, how little
dependence is to be placed on treaties which have no other sanction than
the obligations of good faith, and which oppose general considerations of
peace and justice to the impulse of any immediate interest or passion.
If the particular States in this country are disposed to stand in a
similar relation to each other, and to drop the project of a general
DISCRETIONARY SUPERINTENDENCE, the scheme would indeed be pernicious, and
would entail upon us all the mischiefs which have been enumerated under
the first head; but it would have the merit of being, at least, consistent
and practicable Abandoning all views towards a confederate government,
this would bring us to a simple alliance offensive and defensive; and
would place us in a situation to be alternate friends and enemies of each
other, as our mutual jealousies and rivalships, nourished by the intrigues
of foreign nations, should prescribe to us.
But if we are unwilling to be placed in this perilous situation; if we
still will adhere to the design of a national government, or, which is the
same thing, of a superintending power, under the direction of a common
council, we must resolve to incorporate into our plan those ingredients
which may be considered as forming the characteristic difference between a
league and a government; we must extend the authority of the Union to the
persons of the citizens,—the only proper objects of government.
Government implies the power of making laws. It is essential to the idea
of a law, that it be attended with a sanction; or, in other words, a
penalty or punishment for disobedience. If there be no penalty annexed to
disobedience, the resolutions or commands which pretend to be laws will,
in fact, amount to nothing more than advice or recommendation. This
penalty, whatever it may be, can only be inflicted in two ways: by the
agency of the courts and ministers of justice, or by military force; by
the COERCION of the magistracy, or by the COERCION of arms. The first kind
can evidently apply only to men; the last kind must of necessity, be
employed against bodies politic, or communities, or States. It is evident
that there is no process of a court by which the observance of the laws
can, in the last resort, be enforced. Sentences may be denounced against
them for violations of their duty; but these sentences can only be carried
into execution by the sword. In an association where the general authority
is confined to the collective bodies of the communities, that compose it,
every breach of the laws must involve a state of war; and military
execution must become the only instrument of civil obedience. Such a state
of things can certainly not deserve the name of government, nor would any
prudent man choose to commit his happiness to it.
There was a time when we were told that breaches, by the States, of the
regulations of the federal authority were not to be expected; that a sense
of common interest would preside over the conduct of the respective
members, and would beget a full compliance with all the constitutional
requisitions of the Union. This language, at the present day, would appear
as wild as a great part of what we now hear from the same quarter will be
thought, when we shall have received further lessons from that best oracle
of wisdom, experience. It at all times betrayed an ignorance of the true
springs by which human conduct is actuated, and belied the original
inducements to the establishment of civil power. Why has government been
instituted at all? Because the passions of men will not conform to the
dictates of reason and justice, without constraint. Has it been found that
bodies of men act with more rectitude or greater disinterestedness than
individuals? The contrary of this has been inferred by all accurate
observers of the conduct of mankind; and the inference is founded upon
obvious reasons. Regard to reputation has a less active influence, when
the infamy of a bad action is to be divided among a number than when it is
to fall singly upon one. A spirit of faction, which is apt to mingle its
poison in the deliberations of all bodies of men, will often hurry the
persons of whom they are composed into improprieties and excesses, for
which they would blush in a private capacity.
In addition to all this, there is, in the nature of sovereign power, an
impatience of control, that disposes those who are invested with the
exercise of it, to look with an evil eye upon all external attempts to
restrain or direct its operations. From this spirit it happens, that in
every political association which is formed upon the principle of uniting
in a common interest a number of lesser sovereignties, there will be found
a kind of eccentric tendency in the subordinate or inferior orbs, by the
operation of which there will be a perpetual effort in each to fly off
from the common centre. This tendency is not difficult to be accounted
for. It has its origin in the love of power. Power controlled or abridged
is almost always the rival and enemy of that power by which it is
controlled or abridged. This simple proposition will teach us how little
reason there is to expect, that the persons intrusted with the
administration of the affairs of the particular members of a confederacy
will at all times be ready, with perfect good-humor, and an unbiased
regard to the public weal, to execute the resolutions or decrees of the
general authority. The reverse of this results from the constitution of
human nature.
If, therefore, the measures of the Confederacy cannot be executed without
the intervention of the particular administrations, there will be little
prospect of their being executed at all. The rulers of the respective
members, whether they have a constitutional right to do it or not, will
undertake to judge of the propriety of the measures themselves. They will
consider the conformity of the thing proposed or required to their
immediate interests or aims; the momentary conveniences or inconveniences
that would attend its adoption. All this will be done; and in a spirit of
interested and suspicious scrutiny, without that knowledge of national
circumstances and reasons of state, which is essential to a right
judgment, and with that strong predilection in favor of local objects,
which can hardly fail to mislead the decision. The same process must be
repeated in every member of which the body is constituted; and the
execution of the plans, framed by the councils of the whole, will always
fluctuate on the discretion of the ill-informed and prejudiced opinion of
every part. Those who have been conversant in the proceedings of popular
assemblies; who have seen how difficult it often is, where there is no
exterior pressure of circumstances, to bring them to harmonious
resolutions on important points, will readily conceive how impossible it
must be to induce a number of such assemblies, deliberating at a distance
from each other, at different times, and under different impressions, long
to co-operate in the same views and pursuits.
In our case, the concurrence of thirteen distinct sovereign wills is
requisite, under the Confederation, to the complete execution of every
important measure that proceeds from the Union. It has happened as was to
have been foreseen. The measures of the Union have not been executed; the
delinquencies of the States have, step by step, matured themselves to an
extreme, which has, at length, arrested all the wheels of the national
government, and brought them to an awful stand. Congress at this time
scarcely possess the means of keeping up the forms of administration, till
the States can have time to agree upon a more substantial substitute for
the present shadow of a federal government. Things did not come to this
desperate extremity at once. The causes which have been specified produced
at first only unequal and disproportionate degrees of compliance with the
requisitions of the Union. The greater deficiencies of some States
furnished the pretext of example and the temptation of interest to the
complying, or to the least delinquent States. Why should we do more in
proportion than those who are embarked with us in the same political
voyage? Why should we consent to bear more than our proper share of the
common burden? These were suggestions which human selfishness could not
withstand, and which even speculative men, who looked forward to remote
consequences, could not, without hesitation, combat. Each State, yielding
to the persuasive voice of immediate interest or convenience, has
successively withdrawn its support, till the frail and tottering edifice
seems ready to fall upon our heads, and to crush us beneath its ruins.
PUBLIUS
1. "I mean for the Union."
FEDERALIST No. 16. The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the
Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 4, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE tendency of the principle of legislation for States, or communities,
in their political capacities, as it has been exemplified by the
experiment we have made of it, is equally attested by the events which
have befallen all other governments of the confederate kind, of which we
have any account, in exact proportion to its prevalence in those systems.
The confirmations of this fact will be worthy of a distinct and particular
examination. I shall content myself with barely observing here, that of
all the confederacies of antiquity, which history has handed down to us,
the Lycian and Achaean leagues, as far as there remain vestiges of them,
appear to have been most free from the fetters of that mistaken principle,
and were accordingly those which have best deserved, and have most
liberally received, the applauding suffrages of political writers.
This exceptionable principle may, as truly as emphatically, be styled the
parent of anarchy: It has been seen that delinquencies in the members of
the Union are its natural and necessary offspring; and that whenever they
happen, the only constitutional remedy is force, and the immediate effect
of the use of it, civil war.
It remains to inquire how far so odious an engine of government, in its
application to us, would even be capable of answering its end. If there
should not be a large army constantly at the disposal of the national
government it would either not be able to employ force at all, or, when
this could be done, it would amount to a war between parts of the
Confederacy concerning the infractions of a league, in which the strongest
combination would be most likely to prevail, whether it consisted of those
who supported or of those who resisted the general authority. It would
rarely happen that the delinquency to be redressed would be confined to a
single member, and if there were more than one who had neglected their
duty, similarity of situation would induce them to unite for common
defense. Independent of this motive of sympathy, if a large and
influential State should happen to be the aggressing member, it would
commonly have weight enough with its neighbors to win over some of them as
associates to its cause. Specious arguments of danger to the common
liberty could easily be contrived; plausible excuses for the deficiencies
of the party could, without difficulty, be invented to alarm the
apprehensions, inflame the passions, and conciliate the good-will, even of
those States which were not chargeable with any violation or omission of
duty. This would be the more likely to take place, as the delinquencies of
the larger members might be expected sometimes to proceed from an
ambitious premeditation in their rulers, with a view to getting rid of all
external control upon their designs of personal aggrandizement; the better
to effect which it is presumable they would tamper beforehand with leading
individuals in the adjacent States. If associates could not be found at
home, recourse would be had to the aid of foreign powers, who would seldom
be disinclined to encouraging the dissensions of a Confederacy, from the
firm union of which they had so much to fear. When the sword is once
drawn, the passions of men observe no bounds of moderation. The
suggestions of wounded pride, the instigations of irritated resentment,
would be apt to carry the States against which the arms of the Union were
exerted, to any extremes necessary to avenge the affront or to avoid the
disgrace of submission. The first war of this kind would probably
terminate in a dissolution of the Union.
This may be considered as the violent death of the Confederacy. Its more
natural death is what we now seem to be on the point of experiencing, if
the federal system be not speedily renovated in a more substantial form.
It is not probable, considering the genius of this country, that the
complying States would often be inclined to support the authority of the
Union by engaging in a war against the non-complying States. They would
always be more ready to pursue the milder course of putting themselves
upon an equal footing with the delinquent members by an imitation of their
example. And the guilt of all would thus become the security of all. Our
past experience has exhibited the operation of this spirit in its full
light. There would, in fact, be an insuperable difficulty in ascertaining
when force could with propriety be employed. In the article of pecuniary
contribution, which would be the most usual source of delinquency, it
would often be impossible to decide whether it had proceeded from
disinclination or inability. The pretense of the latter would always be at
hand. And the case must be very flagrant in which its fallacy could be
detected with sufficient certainty to justify the harsh expedient of
compulsion. It is easy to see that this problem alone, as often as it
should occur, would open a wide field for the exercise of factious views,
of partiality, and of oppression, in the majority that happened to prevail
in the national council.
It seems to require no pains to prove that the States ought not to prefer
a national Constitution which could only be kept in motion by the
instrumentality of a large army continually on foot to execute the
ordinary requisitions or decrees of the government. And yet this is the
plain alternative involved by those who wish to deny it the power of
extending its operations to individuals. Such a scheme, if practicable at
all, would instantly degenerate into a military despotism; but it will be
found in every light impracticable. The resources of the Union would not
be equal to the maintenance of an army considerable enough to confine the
larger States within the limits of their duty; nor would the means ever be
furnished of forming such an army in the first instance. Whoever considers
the populousness and strength of several of these States singly at the
present juncture, and looks forward to what they will become, even at the
distance of half a century, will at once dismiss as idle and visionary any
scheme which aims at regulating their movements by laws to operate upon
them in their collective capacities, and to be executed by a coercion
applicable to them in the same capacities. A project of this kind is
little less romantic than the monster-taming spirit which is attributed to
the fabulous heroes and demi-gods of antiquity.
Even in those confederacies which have been composed of members smaller
than many of our counties, the principle of legislation for sovereign
States, supported by military coercion, has never been found effectual. It
has rarely been attempted to be employed, but against the weaker members;
and in most instances attempts to coerce the refractory and disobedient
have been the signals of bloody wars, in which one half of the confederacy
has displayed its banners against the other half.
The result of these observations to an intelligent mind must be clearly
this, that if it be possible at any rate to construct a federal government
capable of regulating the common concerns and preserving the general
tranquillity, it must be founded, as to the objects committed to its care,
upon the reverse of the principle contended for by the opponents of the
proposed Constitution. It must carry its agency to the persons of the
citizens. It must stand in need of no intermediate legislations; but must
itself be empowered to employ the arm of the ordinary magistrate to
execute its own resolutions. The majesty of the national authority must be
manifested through the medium of the courts of justice. The government of
the Union, like that of each State, must be able to address itself
immediately to the hopes and fears of individuals; and to attract to its
support those passions which have the strongest influence upon the human
heart. It must, in short, possess all the means, and have aright to resort
to all the methods, of executing the powers with which it is intrusted,
that are possessed and exercised by the government of the particular
States.
To this reasoning it may perhaps be objected, that if any State should be
disaffected to the authority of the Union, it could at any time obstruct
the execution of its laws, and bring the matter to the same issue of
force, with the necessity of which the opposite scheme is reproached.
The plausibility of this objection will vanish the moment we advert to the
essential difference between a mere NON-COMPLIANCE and a DIRECT and ACTIVE
RESISTANCE. If the interposition of the State legislatures be necessary to
give effect to a measure of the Union, they have only NOT TO ACT, or TO
ACT EVASIVELY, and the measure is defeated. This neglect of duty may be
disguised under affected but unsubstantial provisions, so as not to
appear, and of course not to excite any alarm in the people for the safety
of the Constitution. The State leaders may even make a merit of their
surreptitious invasions of it on the ground of some temporary convenience,
exemption, or advantage.
But if the execution of the laws of the national government should not
require the intervention of the State legislatures, if they were to pass
into immediate operation upon the citizens themselves, the particular
governments could not interrupt their progress without an open and violent
exertion of an unconstitutional power. No omissions nor evasions would
answer the end. They would be obliged to act, and in such a manner as
would leave no doubt that they had encroached on the national rights. An
experiment of this nature would always be hazardous in the face of a
constitution in any degree competent to its own defense, and of a people
enlightened enough to distinguish between a legal exercise and an illegal
usurpation of authority. The success of it would require not merely a
factious majority in the legislature, but the concurrence of the courts of
justice and of the body of the people. If the judges were not embarked in
a conspiracy with the legislature, they would pronounce the resolutions of
such a majority to be contrary to the supreme law of the land,
unconstitutional, and void. If the people were not tainted with the spirit
of their State representatives, they, as the natural guardians of the
Constitution, would throw their weight into the national scale and give it
a decided preponderancy in the contest. Attempts of this kind would not
often be made with levity or rashness, because they could seldom be made
without danger to the authors, unless in cases of a tyrannical exercise of
the federal authority.
If opposition to the national government should arise from the disorderly
conduct of refractory or seditious individuals, it could be overcome by
the same means which are daily employed against the same evil under the
State governments. The magistracy, being equally the ministers of the law
of the land, from whatever source it might emanate, would doubtless be as
ready to guard the national as the local regulations from the inroads of
private licentiousness. As to those partial commotions and insurrections,
which sometimes disquiet society, from the intrigues of an inconsiderable
faction, or from sudden or occasional illhumors that do not infect the
great body of the community the general government could command more
extensive resources for the suppression of disturbances of that kind than
would be in the power of any single member. And as to those mortal feuds
which, in certain conjunctures, spread a conflagration through a whole
nation, or through a very large proportion of it, proceeding either from
weighty causes of discontent given by the government or from the contagion
of some violent popular paroxysm, they do not fall within any ordinary
rules of calculation. When they happen, they commonly amount to
revolutions and dismemberments of empire. No form of government can always
either avoid or control them. It is in vain to hope to guard against
events too mighty for human foresight or precaution, and it would be idle
to object to a government because it could not perform impossibilities.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 17. The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the
Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 5, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
AN OBJECTION, of a nature different from that which has been stated and
answered, in my last address, may perhaps be likewise urged against the
principle of legislation for the individual citizens of America. It may be
said that it would tend to render the government of the Union too
powerful, and to enable it to absorb those residuary authorities, which it
might be judged proper to leave with the States for local purposes.
Allowing the utmost latitude to the love of power which any reasonable man
can require, I confess I am at a loss to discover what temptation the
persons intrusted with the administration of the general government could
ever feel to divest the States of the authorities of that description. The
regulation of the mere domestic police of a State appears to me to hold
out slender allurements to ambition. Commerce, finance, negotiation, and
war seem to comprehend all the objects which have charms for minds
governed by that passion; and all the powers necessary to those objects
ought, in the first instance, to be lodged in the national depository. The
administration of private justice between the citizens of the same State,
the supervision of agriculture and of other concerns of a similar nature,
all those things, in short, which are proper to be provided for by local
legislation, can never be desirable cares of a general jurisdiction. It is
therefore improbable that there should exist a disposition in the federal
councils to usurp the powers with which they are connected; because the
attempt to exercise those powers would be as troublesome as it would be
nugatory; and the possession of them, for that reason, would contribute
nothing to the dignity, to the importance, or to the splendor of the
national government.
But let it be admitted, for argument's sake, that mere wantonness and lust
of domination would be sufficient to beget that disposition; still it may
be safely affirmed, that the sense of the constituent body of the national
representatives, or, in other words, the people of the several States,
would control the indulgence of so extravagant an appetite. It will always
be far more easy for the State governments to encroach upon the national
authorities than for the national government to encroach upon the State
authorities. The proof of this proposition turns upon the greater degree
of influence which the State governments if they administer their affairs
with uprightness and prudence, will generally possess over the people; a
circumstance which at the same time teaches us that there is an inherent
and intrinsic weakness in all federal constitutions; and that too much
pains cannot be taken in their organization, to give them all the force
which is compatible with the principles of liberty.
The superiority of influence in favor of the particular governments would
result partly from the diffusive construction of the national government,
but chiefly from the nature of the objects to which the attention of the
State administrations would be directed.
It is a known fact in human nature, that its affections are commonly weak
in proportion to the distance or diffusiveness of the object. Upon the
same principle that a man is more attached to his family than to his
neighborhood, to his neighborhood than to the community at large, the
people of each State would be apt to feel a stronger bias towards their
local governments than towards the government of the Union; unless the
force of that principle should be destroyed by a much better
administration of the latter.
This strong propensity of the human heart would find powerful auxiliaries
in the objects of State regulation.
The variety of more minute interests, which will necessarily fall under
the superintendence of the local administrations, and which will form so
many rivulets of influence, running through every part of the society,
cannot be particularized, without involving a detail too tedious and
uninteresting to compensate for the instruction it might afford.
There is one transcendant advantage belonging to the province of the State
governments, which alone suffices to place the matter in a clear and
satisfactory light,—I mean the ordinary administration of criminal
and civil justice. This, of all others, is the most powerful, most
universal, and most attractive source of popular obedience and attachment.
It is that which, being the immediate and visible guardian of life and
property, having its benefits and its terrors in constant activity before
the public eye, regulating all those personal interests and familiar
concerns to which the sensibility of individuals is more immediately
awake, contributes, more than any other circumstance, to impressing upon
the minds of the people, affection, esteem, and reverence towards the
government. This great cement of society, which will diffuse itself almost
wholly through the channels of the particular governments, independent of
all other causes of influence, would insure them so decided an empire over
their respective citizens as to render them at all times a complete
counterpoise, and, not unfrequently, dangerous rivals to the power of the
Union.
The operations of the national government, on the other hand, falling less
immediately under the observation of the mass of the citizens, the
benefits derived from it will chiefly be perceived and attended to by
speculative men. Relating to more general interests, they will be less apt
to come home to the feelings of the people; and, in proportion, less
likely to inspire an habitual sense of obligation, and an active sentiment
of attachment.
The reasoning on this head has been abundantly exemplified by the
experience of all federal constitutions with which we are acquainted, and
of all others which have borne the least analogy to them.
Though the ancient feudal systems were not, strictly speaking,
confederacies, yet they partook of the nature of that species of
association. There was a common head, chieftain, or sovereign, whose
authority extended over the whole nation; and a number of subordinate
vassals, or feudatories, who had large portions of land allotted to them,
and numerous trains of INFERIOR vassals or retainers, who occupied and
cultivated that land upon the tenure of fealty or obedience, to the
persons of whom they held it. Each principal vassal was a kind of
sovereign, within his particular demesnes. The consequences of this
situation were a continual opposition to authority of the sovereign, and
frequent wars between the great barons or chief feudatories themselves.
The power of the head of the nation was commonly too weak, either to
preserve the public peace, or to protect the people against the
oppressions of their immediate lords. This period of European affairs is
emphatically styled by historians, the times of feudal anarchy.
When the sovereign happened to be a man of vigorous and warlike temper and
of superior abilities, he would acquire a personal weight and influence,
which answered, for the time, the purpose of a more regular authority. But
in general, the power of the barons triumphed over that of the prince; and
in many instances his dominion was entirely thrown off, and the great
fiefs were erected into independent principalities or States. In those
instances in which the monarch finally prevailed over his vassals, his
success was chiefly owing to the tyranny of those vassals over their
dependents. The barons, or nobles, equally the enemies of the sovereign
and the oppressors of the common people, were dreaded and detested by
both; till mutual danger and mutual interest effected a union between them
fatal to the power of the aristocracy. Had the nobles, by a conduct of
clemency and justice, preserved the fidelity and devotion of their
retainers and followers, the contests between them and the prince must
almost always have ended in their favor, and in the abridgment or
subversion of the royal authority.
This is not an assertion founded merely in speculation or conjecture.
Among other illustrations of its truth which might be cited, Scotland will
furnish a cogent example. The spirit of clanship which was, at an early
day, introduced into that kingdom, uniting the nobles and their dependants
by ties equivalent to those of kindred, rendered the aristocracy a
constant overmatch for the power of the monarch, till the incorporation
with England subdued its fierce and ungovernable spirit, and reduced it
within those rules of subordination which a more rational and more
energetic system of civil polity had previously established in the latter
kingdom.
The separate governments in a confederacy may aptly be compared with the
feudal baronies; with this advantage in their favor, that from the reasons
already explained, they will generally possess the confidence and
good-will of the people, and with so important a support, will be able
effectually to oppose all encroachments of the national government. It
will be well if they are not able to counteract its legitimate and
necessary authority. The points of similitude consist in the rivalship of
power, applicable to both, and in the CONCENTRATION of large portions of
the strength of the community into particular DEPOSITORIES, in one case at
the disposal of individuals, in the other case at the disposal of
political bodies.
A concise review of the events that have attended confederate governments
will further illustrate this important doctrine; an inattention to which
has been the great source of our political mistakes, and has given our
jealousy a direction to the wrong side. This review shall form the subject
of some ensuing papers.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 18. The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the
Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
For the New York Packet. Friday, December 7, 1787
MADISON, with HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
AMONG the confederacies of antiquity, the most considerable was that of
the Grecian republics, associated under the Amphictyonic council. From the
best accounts transmitted of this celebrated institution, it bore a very
instructive analogy to the present Confederation of the American States.
The members retained the character of independent and sovereign states,
and had equal votes in the federal council. This council had a general
authority to propose and resolve whatever it judged necessary for the
common welfare of Greece; to declare and carry on war; to decide, in the
last resort, all controversies between the members; to fine the aggressing
party; to employ the whole force of the confederacy against the
disobedient; to admit new members. The Amphictyons were the guardians of
religion, and of the immense riches belonging to the temple of Delphos,
where they had the right of jurisdiction in controversies between the
inhabitants and those who came to consult the oracle. As a further
provision for the efficacy of the federal powers, they took an oath
mutually to defend and protect the united cities, to punish the violators
of this oath, and to inflict vengeance on sacrilegious despoilers of the
temple.
In theory, and upon paper, this apparatus of powers seems amply sufficient
for all general purposes. In several material instances, they exceed the
powers enumerated in the articles of confederation. The Amphictyons had in
their hands the superstition of the times, one of the principal engines by
which government was then maintained; they had a declared authority to use
coercion against refractory cities, and were bound by oath to exert this
authority on the necessary occasions.
Very different, nevertheless, was the experiment from the theory. The
powers, like those of the present Congress, were administered by deputies
appointed wholly by the cities in their political capacities; and
exercised over them in the same capacities. Hence the weakness, the
disorders, and finally the destruction of the confederacy. The more
powerful members, instead of being kept in awe and subordination,
tyrannized successively over all the rest. Athens, as we learn from
Demosthenes, was the arbiter of Greece seventy-three years. The
Lacedaemonians next governed it twenty-nine years; at a subsequent period,
after the battle of Leuctra, the Thebans had their turn of domination.
It happened but too often, according to Plutarch, that the deputies of the
strongest cities awed and corrupted those of the weaker; and that judgment
went in favor of the most powerful party.
Even in the midst of defensive and dangerous wars with Persia and Macedon,
the members never acted in concert, and were, more or fewer of them,
eternally the dupes or the hirelings of the common enemy. The intervals of
foreign war were filled up by domestic vicissitudes convulsions, and
carnage.
After the conclusion of the war with Xerxes, it appears that the
Lacedaemonians required that a number of the cities should be turned out
of the confederacy for the unfaithful part they had acted. The Athenians,
finding that the Lacedaemonians would lose fewer partisans by such a
measure than themselves, and would become masters of the public
deliberations, vigorously opposed and defeated the attempt. This piece of
history proves at once the inefficiency of the union, the ambition and
jealousy of its most powerful members, and the dependent and degraded
condition of the rest. The smaller members, though entitled by the theory
of their system to revolve in equal pride and majesty around the common
center, had become, in fact, satellites of the orbs of primary magnitude.
Had the Greeks, says the Abbe Milot, been as wise as they were courageous,
they would have been admonished by experience of the necessity of a closer
union, and would have availed themselves of the peace which followed their
success against the Persian arms, to establish such a reformation. Instead
of this obvious policy, Athens and Sparta, inflated with the victories and
the glory they had acquired, became first rivals and then enemies; and did
each other infinitely more mischief than they had suffered from Xerxes.
Their mutual jealousies, fears, hatreds, and injuries ended in the
celebrated Peloponnesian war; which itself ended in the ruin and slavery
of the Athenians who had begun it.
As a weak government, when not at war, is ever agitated by internal
dissentions, so these never fail to bring on fresh calamities from abroad.
The Phocians having ploughed up some consecrated ground belonging to the
temple of Apollo, the Amphictyonic council, according to the superstition
of the age, imposed a fine on the sacrilegious offenders. The Phocians,
being abetted by Athens and Sparta, refused to submit to the decree. The
Thebans, with others of the cities, undertook to maintain the authority of
the Amphictyons, and to avenge the violated god. The latter, being the
weaker party, invited the assistance of Philip of Macedon, who had
secretly fostered the contest. Philip gladly seized the opportunity of
executing the designs he had long planned against the liberties of Greece.
By his intrigues and bribes he won over to his interests the popular
leaders of several cities; by their influence and votes, gained admission
into the Amphictyonic council; and by his arts and his arms, made himself
master of the confederacy.
Such were the consequences of the fallacious principle on which this
interesting establishment was founded. Had Greece, says a judicious
observer on her fate, been united by a stricter confederation, and
persevered in her union, she would never have worn the chains of Macedon;
and might have proved a barrier to the vast projects of Rome.
The Achaean league, as it is called, was another society of Grecian
republics, which supplies us with valuable instruction.
The Union here was far more intimate, and its organization much wiser,
than in the preceding instance. It will accordingly appear, that though
not exempt from a similar catastrophe, it by no means equally deserved it.
The cities composing this league retained their municipal jurisdiction,
appointed their own officers, and enjoyed a perfect equality. The senate,
in which they were represented, had the sole and exclusive right of peace
and war; of sending and receiving ambassadors; of entering into treaties
and alliances; of appointing a chief magistrate or praetor, as he was
called, who commanded their armies, and who, with the advice and consent
of ten of the senators, not only administered the government in the recess
of the senate, but had a great share in its deliberations, when assembled.
According to the primitive constitution, there were two praetors
associated in the administration; but on trial a single one was preferred.
It appears that the cities had all the same laws and customs, the same
weights and measures, and the same money. But how far this effect
proceeded from the authority of the federal council is left in
uncertainty. It is said only that the cities were in a manner compelled to
receive the same laws and usages. When Lacedaemon was brought into the
league by Philopoemen, it was attended with an abolition of the
institutions and laws of Lycurgus, and an adoption of those of the
Achaeans. The Amphictyonic confederacy, of which she had been a member,
left her in the full exercise of her government and her legislation. This
circumstance alone proves a very material difference in the genius of the
two systems.
It is much to be regretted that such imperfect monuments remain of this
curious political fabric. Could its interior structure and regular
operation be ascertained, it is probable that more light would be thrown
by it on the science of federal government, than by any of the like
experiments with which we are acquainted.
One important fact seems to be witnessed by all the historians who take
notice of Achaean affairs. It is, that as well after the renovation of the
league by Aratus, as before its dissolution by the arts of Macedon, there
was infinitely more of moderation and justice in the administration of its
government, and less of violence and sedition in the people, than were to
be found in any of the cities exercising SINGLY all the prerogatives of
sovereignty. The Abbe Mably, in his observations on Greece, says that the
popular government, which was so tempestuous elsewhere, caused no
disorders in the members of the Achaean republic, BECAUSE IT WAS THERE
TEMPERED BY THE GENERAL AUTHORITY AND LAWS OF THE CONFEDERACY.
We are not to conclude too hastily, however, that faction did not, in a
certain degree, agitate the particular cities; much less that a due
subordination and harmony reigned in the general system. The contrary is
sufficiently displayed in the vicissitudes and fate of the republic.
Whilst the Amphictyonic confederacy remained, that of the Achaeans, which
comprehended the less important cities only, made little figure on the
theatre of Greece. When the former became a victim to Macedon, the latter
was spared by the policy of Philip and Alexander. Under the successors of
these princes, however, a different policy prevailed. The arts of division
were practiced among the Achaeans. Each city was seduced into a separate
interest; the union was dissolved. Some of the cities fell under the
tyranny of Macedonian garrisons; others under that of usurpers springing
out of their own confusions. Shame and oppression erelong awaken their
love of liberty. A few cities reunited. Their example was followed by
others, as opportunities were found of cutting off their tyrants. The
league soon embraced almost the whole Peloponnesus. Macedon saw its
progress; but was hindered by internal dissensions from stopping it. All
Greece caught the enthusiasm and seemed ready to unite in one confederacy,
when the jealousy and envy in Sparta and Athens, of the rising glory of
the Achaeans, threw a fatal damp on the enterprise. The dread of the
Macedonian power induced the league to court the alliance of the Kings of
Egypt and Syria, who, as successors of Alexander, were rivals of the king
of Macedon. This policy was defeated by Cleomenes, king of Sparta, who was
led by his ambition to make an unprovoked attack on his neighbors, the
Achaeans, and who, as an enemy to Macedon, had interest enough with the
Egyptian and Syrian princes to effect a breach of their engagements with
the league.
The Achaeans were now reduced to the dilemma of submitting to Cleomenes,
or of supplicating the aid of Macedon, its former oppressor. The latter
expedient was adopted. The contests of the Greeks always afforded a
pleasing opportunity to that powerful neighbor of intermeddling in their
affairs. A Macedonian army quickly appeared. Cleomenes was vanquished. The
Achaeans soon experienced, as often happens, that a victorious and
powerful ally is but another name for a master. All that their most abject
compliances could obtain from him was a toleration of the exercise of
their laws. Philip, who was now on the throne of Macedon, soon provoked by
his tyrannies, fresh combinations among the Greeks. The Achaeans, though
weakened by internal dissensions and by the revolt of Messene, one of its
members, being joined by the AEtolians and Athenians, erected the standard
of opposition. Finding themselves, though thus supported, unequal to the
undertaking, they once more had recourse to the dangerous expedient of
introducing the succor of foreign arms. The Romans, to whom the invitation
was made, eagerly embraced it. Philip was conquered; Macedon subdued. A
new crisis ensued to the league. Dissensions broke out among it members.
These the Romans fostered. Callicrates and other popular leaders became
mercenary instruments for inveigling their countrymen. The more
effectually to nourish discord and disorder the Romans had, to the
astonishment of those who confided in their sincerity, already proclaimed
universal liberty(1) throughout Greece. With the same insidious views,
they now seduced the members from the league, by representing to their
pride the violation it committed on their sovereignty. By these arts this
union, the last hope of Greece, the last hope of ancient liberty, was torn
into pieces; and such imbecility and distraction introduced, that the arms
of Rome found little difficulty in completing the ruin which their arts
had commenced. The Achaeans were cut to pieces, and Achaia loaded with
chains, under which it is groaning at this hour.
I have thought it not superfluous to give the outlines of this important
portion of history; both because it teaches more than one lesson, and
because, as a supplement to the outlines of the Achaean constitution, it
emphatically illustrates the tendency of federal bodies rather to anarchy
among the members, than to tyranny in the head.
PUBLIUS
1. This was but another name more specious for the independence of the
members on the federal head.
FEDERALIST No. 19. The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the
Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, December 8, 1787
MADISON, with HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE examples of ancient confederacies, cited in my last paper, have not
exhausted the source of experimental instruction on this subject. There
are existing institutions, founded on a similar principle, which merit
particular consideration. The first which presents itself is the Germanic
body.
In the early ages of Christianity, Germany was occupied by seven distinct
nations, who had no common chief. The Franks, one of the number, having
conquered the Gauls, established the kingdom which has taken its name from
them. In the ninth century Charlemagne, its warlike monarch, carried his
victorious arms in every direction; and Germany became a part of his vast
dominions. On the dismemberment, which took place under his sons, this
part was erected into a separate and independent empire. Charlemagne and
his immediate descendants possessed the reality, as well as the ensigns
and dignity of imperial power. But the principal vassals, whose fiefs had
become hereditary, and who composed the national diets which Charlemagne
had not abolished, gradually threw off the yoke and advanced to sovereign
jurisdiction and independence. The force of imperial sovereignty was
insufficient to restrain such powerful dependants; or to preserve the
unity and tranquillity of the empire. The most furious private wars,
accompanied with every species of calamity, were carried on between the
different princes and states. The imperial authority, unable to maintain
the public order, declined by degrees till it was almost extinct in the
anarchy, which agitated the long interval between the death of the last
emperor of the Suabian, and the accession of the first emperor of the
Austrian lines. In the eleventh century the emperors enjoyed full
sovereignty: In the fifteenth they had little more than the symbols and
decorations of power.
Out of this feudal system, which has itself many of the important features
of a confederacy, has grown the federal system which constitutes the
Germanic empire. Its powers are vested in a diet representing the
component members of the confederacy; in the emperor, who is the executive
magistrate, with a negative on the decrees of the diet; and in the
imperial chamber and the aulic council, two judiciary tribunals having
supreme jurisdiction in controversies which concern the empire, or which
happen among its members.
The diet possesses the general power of legislating for the empire; of
making war and peace; contracting alliances; assessing quotas of troops
and money; constructing fortresses; regulating coin; admitting new
members; and subjecting disobedient members to the ban of the empire, by
which the party is degraded from his sovereign rights and his possessions
forfeited. The members of the confederacy are expressly restricted from
entering into compacts prejudicial to the empire; from imposing tolls and
duties on their mutual intercourse, without the consent of the emperor and
diet; from altering the value of money; from doing injustice to one
another; or from affording assistance or retreat to disturbers of the
public peace. And the ban is denounced against such as shall violate any
of these restrictions. The members of the diet, as such, are subject in
all cases to be judged by the emperor and diet, and in their private
capacities by the aulic council and imperial chamber.
The prerogatives of the emperor are numerous. The most important of them
are: his exclusive right to make propositions to the diet; to negative its
resolutions; to name ambassadors; to confer dignities and titles; to fill
vacant electorates; to found universities; to grant privileges not
injurious to the states of the empire; to receive and apply the public
revenues; and generally to watch over the public safety. In certain cases,
the electors form a council to him. In quality of emperor, he possesses no
territory within the empire, nor receives any revenue for his support. But
his revenue and dominions, in other qualities, constitute him one of the
most powerful princes in Europe.
From such a parade of constitutional powers, in the representatives and
head of this confederacy, the natural supposition would be, that it must
form an exception to the general character which belongs to its kindred
systems. Nothing would be further from the reality. The fundamental
principle on which it rests, that the empire is a community of sovereigns,
that the diet is a representation of sovereigns and that the laws are
addressed to sovereigns, renders the empire a nerveless body, incapable of
regulating its own members, insecure against external dangers, and
agitated with unceasing fermentations in its own bowels.
The history of Germany is a history of wars between the emperor and the
princes and states; of wars among the princes and states themselves; of
the licentiousness of the strong, and the oppression of the weak; of
foreign intrusions, and foreign intrigues; of requisitions of men and
money disregarded, or partially complied with; of attempts to enforce
them, altogether abortive, or attended with slaughter and desolation,
involving the innocent with the guilty; of general imbecility, confusion,
and misery.
In the sixteenth century, the emperor, with one part of the empire on his
side, was seen engaged against the other princes and states. In one of the
conflicts, the emperor himself was put to flight, and very near being made
prisoner by the elector of Saxony. The late king of Prussia was more than
once pitted against his imperial sovereign; and commonly proved an
overmatch for him. Controversies and wars among the members themselves
have been so common, that the German annals are crowded with the bloody
pages which describe them. Previous to the peace of Westphalia, Germany
was desolated by a war of thirty years, in which the emperor, with one
half of the empire, was on one side, and Sweden, with the other half, on
the opposite side. Peace was at length negotiated, and dictated by foreign
powers; and the articles of it, to which foreign powers are parties, made
a fundamental part of the Germanic constitution.
If the nation happens, on any emergency, to be more united by the
necessity of self-defense, its situation is still deplorable. Military
preparations must be preceded by so many tedious discussions, arising from
the jealousies, pride, separate views, and clashing pretensions of
sovereign bodies, that before the diet can settle the arrangements, the
enemy are in the field; and before the federal troops are ready to take
it, are retiring into winter quarters.
The small body of national troops, which has been judged necessary in time
of peace, is defectively kept up, badly paid, infected with local
prejudices, and supported by irregular and disproportionate contributions
to the treasury.
The impossibility of maintaining order and dispensing justice among these
sovereign subjects, produced the experiment of dividing the empire into
nine or ten circles or districts; of giving them an interior organization,
and of charging them with the military execution of the laws against
delinquent and contumacious members. This experiment has only served to
demonstrate more fully the radical vice of the constitution. Each circle
is the miniature picture of the deformities of this political monster.
They either fail to execute their commissions, or they do it with all the
devastation and carnage of civil war. Sometimes whole circles are
defaulters; and then they increase the mischief which they were instituted
to remedy.
We may form some judgment of this scheme of military coercion from a
sample given by Thuanus. In Donawerth, a free and imperial city of the
circle of Suabia, the Abbe de St. Croix enjoyed certain immunities which
had been reserved to him. In the exercise of these, on some public
occasions, outrages were committed on him by the people of the city. The
consequence was that the city was put under the ban of the empire, and the
Duke of Bavaria, though director of another circle, obtained an
appointment to enforce it. He soon appeared before the city with a corps
of ten thousand troops, and finding it a fit occasion, as he had secretly
intended from the beginning, to revive an antiquated claim, on the pretext
that his ancestors had suffered the place to be dismembered from his
territory,(1) he took possession of it in his own name, disarmed, and
punished the inhabitants, and reannexed the city to his domains.
It may be asked, perhaps, what has so long kept this disjointed machine
from falling entirely to pieces? The answer is obvious: The weakness of
most of the members, who are unwilling to expose themselves to the mercy
of foreign powers; the weakness of most of the principal members, compared
with the formidable powers all around them; the vast weight and influence
which the emperor derives from his separate and hereditary dominions; and
the interest he feels in preserving a system with which his family pride
is connected, and which constitutes him the first prince in Europe;—these
causes support a feeble and precarious Union; whilst the repellant
quality, incident to the nature of sovereignty, and which time continually
strengthens, prevents any reform whatever, founded on a proper
consolidation. Nor is it to be imagined, if this obstacle could be
surmounted, that the neighboring powers would suffer a revolution to take
place which would give to the empire the force and preeminence to which it
is entitled. Foreign nations have long considered themselves as interested
in the changes made by events in this constitution; and have, on various
occasions, betrayed their policy of perpetuating its anarchy and weakness.
If more direct examples were wanting, Poland, as a government over local
sovereigns, might not improperly be taken notice of. Nor could any proof
more striking be given of the calamities flowing from such institutions.
Equally unfit for self-government and self-defense, it has long been at
the mercy of its powerful neighbors; who have lately had the mercy to
disburden it of one third of its people and territories.
The connection among the Swiss cantons scarcely amounts to a confederacy;
though it is sometimes cited as an instance of the stability of such
institutions.
They have no common treasury; no common troops even in war; no common
coin; no common judicatory; nor any other common mark of sovereignty.
They are kept together by the peculiarity of their topographical position;
by their individual weakness and insignificancy; by the fear of powerful
neighbors, to one of which they were formerly subject; by the few sources
of contention among a people of such simple and homogeneous manners; by
their joint interest in their dependent possessions; by the mutual aid
they stand in need of, for suppressing insurrections and rebellions, an
aid expressly stipulated and often required and afforded; and by the
necessity of some regular and permanent provision for accommodating
disputes among the cantons. The provision is, that the parties at variance
shall each choose four judges out of the neutral cantons, who, in case of
disagreement, choose an umpire. This tribunal, under an oath of
impartiality, pronounces definitive sentence, which all the cantons are
bound to enforce. The competency of this regulation may be estimated by a
clause in their treaty of 1683, with Victor Amadeus of Savoy; in which he
obliges himself to interpose as mediator in disputes between the cantons,
and to employ force, if necessary, against the contumacious party.
So far as the peculiarity of their case will admit of comparison with that
of the United States, it serves to confirm the principle intended to be
established. Whatever efficacy the union may have had in ordinary cases,
it appears that the moment a cause of difference sprang up, capable of
trying its strength, it failed. The controversies on the subject of
religion, which in three instances have kindled violent and bloody
contests, may be said, in fact, to have severed the league. The Protestant
and Catholic cantons have since had their separate diets, where all the
most important concerns are adjusted, and which have left the general diet
little other business than to take care of the common bailages.
That separation had another consequence, which merits attention. It
produced opposite alliances with foreign powers: of Berne, at the head of
the Protestant association, with the United Provinces; and of Luzerne, at
the head of the Catholic association, with France.
PUBLIUS
1. Pfeffel, "Nouvel Abrég. Chronol. de l'Hist., etc., d'Allemagne," says
the pretext was to indemnify himself for the expense of the expedition.
FEDERALIST No. 20. The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the
Present Confederation to Preserve the Union)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 11, 1787.
MADISON, with HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE United Netherlands are a confederacy of republics, or rather of
aristocracies of a very remarkable texture, yet confirming all the lessons
derived from those which we have already reviewed.
The union is composed of seven coequal and sovereign states, and each
state or province is a composition of equal and independent cities. In all
important cases, not only the provinces but the cities must be unanimous.
The sovereignty of the Union is represented by the States-General,
consisting usually of about fifty deputies appointed by the provinces.
They hold their seats, some for life, some for six, three, and one years;
from two provinces they continue in appointment during pleasure.
The States-General have authority to enter into treaties and alliances; to
make war and peace; to raise armies and equip fleets; to ascertain quotas
and demand contributions. In all these cases, however, unanimity and the
sanction of their constituents are requisite. They have authority to
appoint and receive ambassadors; to execute treaties and alliances already
formed; to provide for the collection of duties on imports and exports; to
regulate the mint, with a saving to the provincial rights; to govern as
sovereigns the dependent territories. The provinces are restrained, unless
with the general consent, from entering into foreign treaties; from
establishing imposts injurious to others, or charging their neighbors with
higher duties than their own subjects. A council of state, a chamber of
accounts, with five colleges of admiralty, aid and fortify the federal
administration.
The executive magistrate of the union is the stadtholder, who is now an
hereditary prince. His principal weight and influence in the republic are
derived from this independent title; from his great patrimonial estates;
from his family connections with some of the chief potentates of Europe;
and, more than all, perhaps, from his being stadtholder in the several
provinces, as well as for the union; in which provincial quality he has
the appointment of town magistrates under certain regulations, executes
provincial decrees, presides when he pleases in the provincial tribunals,
and has throughout the power of pardon.
As stadtholder of the union, he has, however, considerable prerogatives.
In his political capacity he has authority to settle disputes between the
provinces, when other methods fail; to assist at the deliberations of the
States-General, and at their particular conferences; to give audiences to
foreign ambassadors, and to keep agents for his particular affairs at
foreign courts.
In his military capacity he commands the federal troops, provides for
garrisons, and in general regulates military affairs; disposes of all
appointments, from colonels to ensigns, and of the governments and posts
of fortified towns.
In his marine capacity he is admiral-general, and superintends and directs
every thing relative to naval forces and other naval affairs; presides in
the admiralties in person or by proxy; appoints lieutenant-admirals and
other officers; and establishes councils of war, whose sentences are not
executed till he approves them.
His revenue, exclusive of his private income, amounts to three hundred
thousand florins. The standing army which he commands consists of about
forty thousand men.
Such is the nature of the celebrated Belgic confederacy, as delineated on
parchment. What are the characters which practice has stamped upon it?
Imbecility in the government; discord among the provinces; foreign
influence and indignities; a precarious existence in peace, and peculiar
calamities from war.
It was long ago remarked by Grotius, that nothing but the hatred of his
countrymen to the house of Austria kept them from being ruined by the
vices of their constitution.
The union of Utrecht, says another respectable writer, reposes an
authority in the States-General, seemingly sufficient to secure harmony,
but the jealousy in each province renders the practice very different from
the theory.
The same instrument, says another, obliges each province to levy certain
contributions; but this article never could, and probably never will, be
executed; because the inland provinces, who have little commerce, cannot
pay an equal quota.
In matters of contribution, it is the practice to waive the articles of
the constitution. The danger of delay obliges the consenting provinces to
furnish their quotas, without waiting for the others; and then to obtain
reimbursement from the others, by deputations, which are frequent, or
otherwise, as they can. The great wealth and influence of the province of
Holland enable her to effect both these purposes.
It has more than once happened, that the deficiencies had to be ultimately
collected at the point of the bayonet; a thing practicable, though
dreadful, in a confederacy where one of the members exceeds in force all
the rest, and where several of them are too small to meditate resistance;
but utterly impracticable in one composed of members, several of which are
equal to each other in strength and resources, and equal singly to a
vigorous and persevering defense.
Foreign ministers, says Sir William Temple, who was himself a foreign
minister, elude matters taken ad referendum, by tampering with the
provinces and cities. In 1726, the treaty of Hanover was delayed by these
means a whole year. Instances of a like nature are numerous and notorious.
In critical emergencies, the States-General are often compelled to
overleap their constitutional bounds. In 1688, they concluded a treaty of
themselves at the risk of their heads. The treaty of Westphalia, in 1648,
by which their independence was formerly and finally recognized, was
concluded without the consent of Zealand. Even as recently as the last
treaty of peace with Great Britain, the constitutional principle of
unanimity was departed from. A weak constitution must necessarily
terminate in dissolution, for want of proper powers, or the usurpation of
powers requisite for the public safety. Whether the usurpation, when once
begun, will stop at the salutary point, or go forward to the dangerous
extreme, must depend on the contingencies of the moment. Tyranny has
perhaps oftener grown out of the assumptions of power, called for, on
pressing exigencies, by a defective constitution, than out of the full
exercise of the largest constitutional authorities.
Notwithstanding the calamities produced by the stadtholdership, it has
been supposed that without his influence in the individual provinces, the
causes of anarchy manifest in the confederacy would long ago have
dissolved it. "Under such a government," says the Abbe Mably, "the Union
could never have subsisted, if the provinces had not a spring within
themselves, capable of quickening their tardiness, and compelling them to
the same way of thinking. This spring is the stadtholder." It is remarked
by Sir William Temple, "that in the intermissions of the stadtholdership,
Holland, by her riches and her authority, which drew the others into a
sort of dependence, supplied the place."
These are not the only circumstances which have controlled the tendency to
anarchy and dissolution. The surrounding powers impose an absolute
necessity of union to a certain degree, at the same time that they nourish
by their intrigues the constitutional vices which keep the republic in
some degree always at their mercy.
The true patriots have long bewailed the fatal tendency of these vices,
and have made no less than four regular experiments by EXTRAORDINARY
ASSEMBLIES, convened for the special purpose, to apply a remedy. As many
times has their laudable zeal found it impossible to UNITE THE PUBLIC
COUNCILS in reforming the known, the acknowledged, the fatal evils of the
existing constitution. Let us pause, my fellow-citizens, for one moment,
over this melancholy and monitory lesson of history; and with the tear
that drops for the calamities brought on mankind by their adverse opinions
and selfish passions, let our gratitude mingle an ejaculation to Heaven,
for the propitious concord which has distinguished the consultations for
our political happiness.
A design was also conceived of establishing a general tax to be
administered by the federal authority. This also had its adversaries and
failed.
This unhappy people seem to be now suffering from popular convulsions,
from dissensions among the states, and from the actual invasion of foreign
arms, the crisis of their destiny. All nations have their eyes fixed on
the awful spectacle. The first wish prompted by humanity is, that this
severe trial may issue in such a revolution of their government as will
establish their union, and render it the parent of tranquillity, freedom
and happiness: The next, that the asylum under which, we trust, the
enjoyment of these blessings will speedily be secured in this country, may
receive and console them for the catastrophe of their own.
I make no apology for having dwelt so long on the contemplation of these
federal precedents. Experience is the oracle of truth; and where its
responses are unequivocal, they ought to be conclusive and sacred. The
important truth, which it unequivocally pronounces in the present case, is
that a sovereignty over sovereigns, a government over governments, a
legislation for communities, as contradistinguished from individuals, as
it is a solecism in theory, so in practice it is subversive of the order
and ends of civil polity, by substituting VIOLENCE in place of LAW, or the
destructive COERCION of the SWORD in place of the mild and salutary
COERCION of the MAGISTRACY.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 21. Other Defects of the Present Confederation
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 12, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING in the three last numbers taken a summary review of the principal
circumstances and events which have depicted the genius and fate of other
confederate governments, I shall now proceed in the enumeration of the
most important of those defects which have hitherto disappointed our hopes
from the system established among ourselves. To form a safe and
satisfactory judgment of the proper remedy, it is absolutely necessary
that we should be well acquainted with the extent and malignity of the
disease.
The next most palpable defect of the subsisting Confederation, is the
total want of a SANCTION to its laws. The United States, as now composed,
have no powers to exact obedience, or punish disobedience to their
resolutions, either by pecuniary mulcts, by a suspension or divestiture of
privileges, or by any other constitutional mode. There is no express
delegation of authority to them to use force against delinquent members;
and if such a right should be ascribed to the federal head, as resulting
from the nature of the social compact between the States, it must be by
inference and construction, in the face of that part of the second
article, by which it is declared, "that each State shall retain every
power, jurisdiction, and right, not EXPRESSLY delegated to the United
States in Congress assembled." There is, doubtless, a striking absurdity
in supposing that a right of this kind does not exist, but we are reduced
to the dilemma either of embracing that supposition, preposterous as it
may seem, or of contravening or explaining away a provision, which has
been of late a repeated theme of the eulogies of those who oppose the new
Constitution; and the want of which, in that plan, has been the subject of
much plausible animadversion, and severe criticism. If we are unwilling to
impair the force of this applauded provision, we shall be obliged to
conclude, that the United States afford the extraordinary spectacle of a
government destitute even of the shadow of constitutional power to enforce
the execution of its own laws. It will appear, from the specimens which
have been cited, that the American Confederacy, in this particular, stands
discriminated from every other institution of a similar kind, and exhibits
a new and unexampled phenomenon in the political world.
The want of a mutual guaranty of the State governments is another capital
imperfection in the federal plan. There is nothing of this kind declared
in the articles that compose it; and to imply a tacit guaranty from
considerations of utility, would be a still more flagrant departure from
the clause which has been mentioned, than to imply a tacit power of
coercion from the like considerations. The want of a guaranty, though it
might in its consequences endanger the Union, does not so immediately
attack its existence as the want of a constitutional sanction to its laws.
Without a guaranty the assistance to be derived from the Union in
repelling those domestic dangers which may sometimes threaten the
existence of the State constitutions, must be renounced. Usurpation may
rear its crest in each State, and trample upon the liberties of the
people, while the national government could legally do nothing more than
behold its encroachments with indignation and regret. A successful faction
may erect a tyranny on the ruins of order and law, while no succor could
constitutionally be afforded by the Union to the friends and supporters of
the government. The tempestuous situation from which Massachusetts has
scarcely emerged, evinces that dangers of this kind are not merely
speculative. Who can determine what might have been the issue of her late
convulsions, if the malcontents had been headed by a Caesar or by a
Cromwell? Who can predict what effect a despotism, established in
Massachusetts, would have upon the liberties of New Hampshire or Rhode
Island, of Connecticut or New York?
The inordinate pride of State importance has suggested to some minds an
objection to the principle of a guaranty in the federal government, as
involving an officious interference in the domestic concerns of the
members. A scruple of this kind would deprive us of one of the principal
advantages to be expected from union, and can only flow from a
misapprehension of the nature of the provision itself. It could be no
impediment to reforms of the State constitution by a majority of the
people in a legal and peaceable mode. This right would remain
undiminished. The guaranty could only operate against changes to be
effected by violence. Towards the preventions of calamities of this kind,
too many checks cannot be provided. The peace of society and the stability
of government depend absolutely on the efficacy of the precautions adopted
on this head. Where the whole power of the government is in the hands of
the people, there is the less pretense for the use of violent remedies in
partial or occasional distempers of the State. The natural cure for an
ill-administration, in a popular or representative constitution, is a
change of men. A guaranty by the national authority would be as much
levelled against the usurpations of rulers as against the ferments and
outrages of faction and sedition in the community.
The principle of regulating the contributions of the States to the common
treasury by QUOTAS is another fundamental error in the Confederation. Its
repugnancy to an adequate supply of the national exigencies has been
already pointed out, and has sufficiently appeared from the trial which
has been made of it. I speak of it now solely with a view to equality
among the States. Those who have been accustomed to contemplate the
circumstances which produce and constitute national wealth, must be
satisfied that there is no common standard or barometer by which the
degrees of it can be ascertained. Neither the value of lands, nor the
numbers of the people, which have been successively proposed as the rule
of State contributions, has any pretension to being a just representative.
If we compare the wealth of the United Netherlands with that of Russia or
Germany, or even of France, and if we at the same time compare the total
value of the lands and the aggregate population of that contracted
district with the total value of the lands and the aggregate population of
the immense regions of either of the three last-mentioned countries, we
shall at once discover that there is no comparison between the proportion
of either of these two objects and that of the relative wealth of those
nations. If the like parallel were to be run between several of the
American States, it would furnish a like result. Let Virginia be
contrasted with North Carolina, Pennsylvania with Connecticut, or Maryland
with New Jersey, and we shall be convinced that the respective abilities
of those States, in relation to revenue, bear little or no analogy to
their comparative stock in lands or to their comparative population. The
position may be equally illustrated by a similar process between the
counties of the same State. No man who is acquainted with the State of New
York will doubt that the active wealth of King's County bears a much
greater proportion to that of Montgomery than it would appear to be if we
should take either the total value of the lands or the total number of the
people as a criterion!
The wealth of nations depends upon an infinite variety of causes.
Situation, soil, climate, the nature of the productions, the nature of the
government, the genius of the citizens, the degree of information they
possess, the state of commerce, of arts, of industry, these circumstances
and many more, too complex, minute, or adventitious to admit of a
particular specification, occasion differences hardly conceivable in the
relative opulence and riches of different countries. The consequence
clearly is that there can be no common measure of national wealth, and, of
course, no general or stationary rule by which the ability of a state to
pay taxes can be determined. The attempt, therefore, to regulate the
contributions of the members of a confederacy by any such rule, cannot
fail to be productive of glaring inequality and extreme oppression.
This inequality would of itself be sufficient in America to work the
eventual destruction of the Union, if any mode of enforcing a compliance
with its requisitions could be devised. The suffering States would not
long consent to remain associated upon a principle which distributes the
public burdens with so unequal a hand, and which was calculated to
impoverish and oppress the citizens of some States, while those of others
would scarcely be conscious of the small proportion of the weight they
were required to sustain. This, however, is an evil inseparable from the
principle of quotas and requisitions.
There is no method of steering clear of this inconvenience, but by
authorizing the national government to raise its own revenues in its own
way. Imposts, excises, and, in general, all duties upon articles of
consumption, may be compared to a fluid, which will, in time, find its
level with the means of paying them. The amount to be contributed by each
citizen will in a degree be at his own option, and can be regulated by an
attention to his resources. The rich may be extravagant, the poor can be
frugal; and private oppression may always be avoided by a judicious
selection of objects proper for such impositions. If inequalities should
arise in some States from duties on particular objects, these will, in all
probability, be counterbalanced by proportional inequalities in other
States, from the duties on other objects. In the course of time and
things, an equilibrium, as far as it is attainable in so complicated a
subject, will be established everywhere. Or, if inequalities should still
exist, they would neither be so great in their degree, so uniform in their
operation, nor so odious in their appearance, as those which would
necessarily spring from quotas, upon any scale that can possibly be
devised.
It is a signal advantage of taxes on articles of consumption, that they
contain in their own nature a security against excess. They prescribe
their own limit; which cannot be exceeded without defeating the end
proposed, that is, an extension of the revenue. When applied to this
object, the saying is as just as it is witty, that, "in political
arithmetic, two and two do not always make four." If duties are too high,
they lessen the consumption; the collection is eluded; and the product to
the treasury is not so great as when they are confined within proper and
moderate bounds. This forms a complete barrier against any material
oppression of the citizens by taxes of this class, and is itself a natural
limitation of the power of imposing them.
Impositions of this kind usually fall under the denomination of indirect
taxes, and must for a long time constitute the chief part of the revenue
raised in this country. Those of the direct kind, which principally relate
to land and buildings, may admit of a rule of apportionment. Either the
value of land, or the number of the people, may serve as a standard. The
state of agriculture and the populousness of a country have been
considered as nearly connected with each other. And, as a rule, for the
purpose intended, numbers, in the view of simplicity and certainty, are
entitled to a preference. In every country it is a herculean task to
obtain a valuation of the land; in a country imperfectly settled and
progressive in improvement, the difficulties are increased almost to
impracticability. The expense of an accurate valuation is, in all
situations, a formidable objection. In a branch of taxation where no
limits to the discretion of the government are to be found in the nature
of things, the establishment of a fixed rule, not incompatible with the
end, may be attended with fewer inconveniences than to leave that
discretion altogether at large.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 22. The Same Subject Continued (Other Defects of the
Present Confederation)
From the New York Packet. Friday, December 14, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN ADDITION to the defects already enumerated in the existing federal
system, there are others of not less importance, which concur in rendering
it altogether unfit for the administration of the affairs of the Union.
The want of a power to regulate commerce is by all parties allowed to be
of the number. The utility of such a power has been anticipated under the
first head of our inquiries; and for this reason, as well as from the
universal conviction entertained upon the subject, little need be added in
this place. It is indeed evident, on the most superficial view, that there
is no object, either as it respects the interests of trade or finance,
that more strongly demands a federal superintendence. The want of it has
already operated as a bar to the formation of beneficial treaties with
foreign powers, and has given occasions of dissatisfaction between the
States. No nation acquainted with the nature of our political association
would be unwise enough to enter into stipulations with the United States,
by which they conceded privileges of any importance to them, while they
were apprised that the engagements on the part of the Union might at any
moment be violated by its members, and while they found from experience
that they might enjoy every advantage they desired in our markets, without
granting us any return but such as their momentary convenience might
suggest. It is not, therefore, to be wondered at that Mr. Jenkinson, in
ushering into the House of Commons a bill for regulating the temporary
intercourse between the two countries, should preface its introduction by
a declaration that similar provisions in former bills had been found to
answer every purpose to the commerce of Great Britain, and that it would
be prudent to persist in the plan until it should appear whether the
American government was likely or not to acquire greater consistency.(1)
Several States have endeavored, by separate prohibitions, restrictions,
and exclusions, to influence the conduct of that kingdom in this
particular, but the want of concert, arising from the want of a general
authority and from clashing and dissimilar views in the State, has
hitherto frustrated every experiment of the kind, and will continue to do
so as long as the same obstacles to a uniformity of measures continue to
exist.
The interfering and unneighborly regulations of some States, contrary to
the true spirit of the Union, have, in different instances, given just
cause of umbrage and complaint to others, and it is to be feared that
examples of this nature, if not restrained by a national control, would be
multiplied and extended till they became not less serious sources of
animosity and discord than injurious impediments to the intercourse
between the different parts of the Confederacy. "The commerce of the
German empire(2) is in continual trammels from the multiplicity of the
duties which the several princes and states exact upon the merchandises
passing through their territories, by means of which the fine streams and
navigable rivers with which Germany is so happily watered are rendered
almost useless." Though the genius of the people of this country might
never permit this description to be strictly applicable to us, yet we may
reasonably expect, from the gradual conflicts of State regulations, that
the citizens of each would at length come to be considered and treated by
the others in no better light than that of foreigners and aliens.
The power of raising armies, by the most obvious construction of the
articles of the Confederation, is merely a power of making requisitions
upon the States for quotas of men. This practice in the course of the late
war, was found replete with obstructions to a vigorous and to an
economical system of defense. It gave birth to a competition between the
States which created a kind of auction for men. In order to furnish the
quotas required of them, they outbid each other till bounties grew to an
enormous and insupportable size. The hope of a still further increase
afforded an inducement to those who were disposed to serve to
procrastinate their enlistment, and disinclined them from engaging for any
considerable periods. Hence, slow and scanty levies of men, in the most
critical emergencies of our affairs; short enlistments at an unparalleled
expense; continual fluctuations in the troops, ruinous to their discipline
and subjecting the public safety frequently to the perilous crisis of a
disbanded army. Hence, also, those oppressive expedients for raising men
which were upon several occasions practiced, and which nothing but the
enthusiasm of liberty would have induced the people to endure.
This method of raising troops is not more unfriendly to economy and vigor
than it is to an equal distribution of the burden. The States near the
seat of war, influenced by motives of self-preservation, made efforts to
furnish their quotas, which even exceeded their abilities; while those at
a distance from danger were, for the most part, as remiss as the others
were diligent, in their exertions. The immediate pressure of this
inequality was not in this case, as in that of the contributions of money,
alleviated by the hope of a final liquidation. The States which did not
pay their proportions of money might at least be charged with their
deficiencies; but no account could be formed of the deficiencies in the
supplies of men. We shall not, however, see much reason to regret the want
of this hope, when we consider how little prospect there is, that the most
delinquent States will ever be able to make compensation for their
pecuniary failures. The system of quotas and requisitions, whether it be
applied to men or money, is, in every view, a system of imbecility in the
Union, and of inequality and injustice among the members.
The right of equal suffrage among the States is another exceptionable part
of the Confederation. Every idea of proportion and every rule of fair
representation conspire to condemn a principle, which gives to Rhode
Island an equal weight in the scale of power with Massachusetts, or
Connecticut, or New York; and to Delaware an equal voice in the national
deliberations with Pennsylvania, or Virginia, or North Carolina. Its
operation contradicts the fundamental maxim of republican government,
which requires that the sense of the majority should prevail. Sophistry
may reply, that sovereigns are equal, and that a majority of the votes of
the States will be a majority of confederated America. But this kind of
logical legerdemain will never counteract the plain suggestions of justice
and common-sense. It may happen that this majority of States is a small
minority of the people of America;(3) and two thirds of the people of
America could not long be persuaded, upon the credit of artificial
distinctions and syllogistic subtleties, to submit their interests to the
management and disposal of one third. The larger States would after a
while revolt from the idea of receiving the law from the smaller. To
acquiesce in such a privation of their due importance in the political
scale, would be not merely to be insensible to the love of power, but even
to sacrifice the desire of equality. It is neither rational to expect the
first, nor just to require the last. The smaller States, considering how
peculiarly their safety and welfare depend on union, ought readily to
renounce a pretension which, if not relinquished, would prove fatal to its
duration.
It may be objected to this, that not seven but nine States, or two thirds
of the whole number, must consent to the most important resolutions; and
it may be thence inferred that nine States would always comprehend a
majority of the Union. But this does not obviate the impropriety of an
equal vote between States of the most unequal dimensions and populousness;
nor is the inference accurate in point of fact; for we can enumerate nine
States which contain less than a majority of the people;(4) and it is
constitutionally possible that these nine may give the vote. Besides,
there are matters of considerable moment determinable by a bare majority;
and there are others, concerning which doubts have been entertained,
which, if interpreted in favor of the sufficiency of a vote of seven
States, would extend its operation to interests of the first magnitude. In
addition to this, it is to be observed that there is a probability of an
increase in the number of States, and no provision for a proportional
augmentation of the ratio of votes.
But this is not all: what at first sight may seem a remedy, is, in
reality, a poison. To give a minority a negative upon the majority (which
is always the case where more than a majority is requisite to a decision),
is, in its tendency, to subject the sense of the greater number to that of
the lesser. Congress, from the nonattendance of a few States, have been
frequently in the situation of a Polish diet, where a single VOTE has been
sufficient to put a stop to all their movements. A sixtieth part of the
Union, which is about the proportion of Delaware and Rhode Island, has
several times been able to oppose an entire bar to its operations. This is
one of those refinements which, in practice, has an effect the reverse of
what is expected from it in theory. The necessity of unanimity in public
bodies, or of something approaching towards it, has been founded upon a
supposition that it would contribute to security. But its real operation
is to embarrass the administration, to destroy the energy of the
government, and to substitute the pleasure, caprice, or artifices of an
insignificant, turbulent, or corrupt junto, to the regular deliberations
and decisions of a respectable majority. In those emergencies of a nation,
in which the goodness or badness, the weakness or strength of its
government, is of the greatest importance, there is commonly a necessity
for action. The public business must, in some way or other, go forward. If
a pertinacious minority can control the opinion of a majority, respecting
the best mode of conducting it, the majority, in order that something may
be done, must conform to the views of the minority; and thus the sense of
the smaller number will overrule that of the greater, and give a tone to
the national proceedings. Hence, tedious delays; continual negotiation and
intrigue; contemptible compromises of the public good. And yet, in such a
system, it is even happy when such compromises can take place: for upon
some occasions things will not admit of accommodation; and then the
measures of government must be injuriously suspended, or fatally defeated.
It is often, by the impracticability of obtaining the concurrence of the
necessary number of votes, kept in a state of inaction. Its situation must
always savor of weakness, sometimes border upon anarchy.
It is not difficult to discover, that a principle of this kind gives
greater scope to foreign corruption, as well as to domestic faction, than
that which permits the sense of the majority to decide; though the
contrary of this has been presumed. The mistake has proceeded from not
attending with due care to the mischiefs that may be occasioned by
obstructing the progress of government at certain critical seasons. When
the concurrence of a large number is required by the Constitution to the
doing of any national act, we are apt to rest satisfied that all is safe,
because nothing improper will be likely TO BE DONE, but we forget how much
good may be prevented, and how much ill may be produced, by the power of
hindering the doing what may be necessary, and of keeping affairs in the
same unfavorable posture in which they may happen to stand at particular
periods.
Suppose, for instance, we were engaged in a war, in conjunction with one
foreign nation, against another. Suppose the necessity of our situation
demanded peace, and the interest or ambition of our ally led him to seek
the prosecution of the war, with views that might justify us in making
separate terms. In such a state of things, this ally of ours would
evidently find it much easier, by his bribes and intrigues, to tie up the
hands of government from making peace, where two thirds of all the votes
were requisite to that object, than where a simple majority would suffice.
In the first case, he would have to corrupt a smaller number; in the last,
a greater number. Upon the same principle, it would be much easier for a
foreign power with which we were at war to perplex our councils and
embarrass our exertions. And, in a commercial view, we may be subjected to
similar inconveniences. A nation, with which we might have a treaty of
commerce, could with much greater facility prevent our forming a
connection with her competitor in trade, though such a connection should
be ever so beneficial to ourselves.
Evils of this description ought not to be regarded as imaginary. One of
the weak sides of republics, among their numerous advantages, is that they
afford too easy an inlet to foreign corruption. An hereditary monarch,
though often disposed to sacrifice his subjects to his ambition, has so
great a personal interest in the government and in the external glory of
the nation, that it is not easy for a foreign power to give him an
equivalent for what he would sacrifice by treachery to the state. The
world has accordingly been witness to few examples of this species of
royal prostitution, though there have been abundant specimens of every
other kind.
In republics, persons elevated from the mass of the community, by the
suffrages of their fellow-citizens, to stations of great pre-eminence and
power, may find compensations for betraying their trust, which, to any but
minds animated and guided by superior virtue, may appear to exceed the
proportion of interest they have in the common stock, and to overbalance
the obligations of duty. Hence it is that history furnishes us with so
many mortifying examples of the prevalency of foreign corruption in
republican governments. How much this contributed to the ruin of the
ancient commonwealths has been already delineated. It is well known that
the deputies of the United Provinces have, in various instances, been
purchased by the emissaries of the neighboring kingdoms. The Earl of
Chesterfield (if my memory serves me right), in a letter to his court,
intimates that his success in an important negotiation must depend on his
obtaining a major's commission for one of those deputies. And in Sweden
the parties were alternately bought by France and England in so barefaced
and notorious a manner that it excited universal disgust in the nation,
and was a principal cause that the most limited monarch in Europe, in a
single day, without tumult, violence, or opposition, became one of the
most absolute and uncontrolled.
A circumstance which crowns the defects of the Confederation remains yet
to be mentioned, the want of a judiciary power. Laws are a dead letter
without courts to expound and define their true meaning and operation. The
treaties of the United States, to have any force at all, must be
considered as part of the law of the land. Their true import, as far as
respects individuals, must, like all other laws, be ascertained by
judicial determinations. To produce uniformity in these determinations,
they ought to be submitted, in the last resort, to one SUPREME TRIBUNAL.
And this tribunal ought to be instituted under the same authority which
forms the treaties themselves. These ingredients are both indispensable.
If there is in each State a court of final jurisdiction, there may be as
many different final determinations on the same point as there are courts.
There are endless diversities in the opinions of men. We often see not
only different courts but the judges of the came court differing from each
other. To avoid the confusion which would unavoidably result from the
contradictory decisions of a number of independent judicatories, all
nations have found it necessary to establish one court paramount to the
rest, possessing a general superintendence, and authorized to settle and
declare in the last resort a uniform rule of civil justice.
This is the more necessary where the frame of the government is so
compounded that the laws of the whole are in danger of being contravened
by the laws of the parts. In this case, if the particular tribunals are
invested with a right of ultimate jurisdiction, besides the contradictions
to be expected from difference of opinion, there will be much to fear from
the bias of local views and prejudices, and from the interference of local
regulations. As often as such an interference was to happen, there would
be reason to apprehend that the provisions of the particular laws might be
preferred to those of the general laws; for nothing is more natural to men
in office than to look with peculiar deference towards that authority to
which they owe their official existence.
The treaties of the United States, under the present Constitution, are
liable to the infractions of thirteen different legislatures, and as many
different courts of final jurisdiction, acting under the authority of
those legislatures. The faith, the reputation, the peace of the whole
Union, are thus continually at the mercy of the prejudices, the passions,
and the interests of every member of which it is composed. Is it possible
that foreign nations can either respect or confide in such a government?
Is it possible that the people of America will longer consent to trust
their honor, their happiness, their safety, on so precarious a foundation?
In this review of the Confederation, I have confined myself to the
exhibition of its most material defects; passing over those imperfections
in its details by which even a great part of the power intended to be
conferred upon it has been in a great measure rendered abortive. It must
be by this time evident to all men of reflection, who can divest
themselves of the prepossessions of preconceived opinions, that it is a
system so radically vicious and unsound, as to admit not of amendment but
by an entire change in its leading features and characters.
The organization of Congress is itself utterly improper for the exercise
of those powers which are necessary to be deposited in the Union. A single
assembly may be a proper receptacle of those slender, or rather fettered,
authorities, which have been heretofore delegated to the federal head; but
it would be inconsistent with all the principles of good government, to
intrust it with those additional powers which, even the moderate and more
rational adversaries of the proposed Constitution admit, ought to reside
in the United States. If that plan should not be adopted, and if the
necessity of the Union should be able to withstand the ambitious aims of
those men who may indulge magnificent schemes of personal aggrandizement
from its dissolution, the probability would be, that we should run into
the project of conferring supplementary powers upon Congress, as they are
now constituted; and either the machine, from the intrinsic feebleness of
its structure, will moulder into pieces, in spite of our ill-judged
efforts to prop it; or, by successive augmentations of its force an
energy, as necessity might prompt, we shall finally accumulate, in a
single body, all the most important prerogatives of sovereignty, and thus
entail upon our posterity one of the most execrable forms of government
that human infatuation ever contrived. Thus, we should create in reality
that very tyranny which the adversaries of the new Constitution either
are, or affect to be, solicitous to avert.
It has not a little contributed to the infirmities of the existing federal
system, that it never had a ratification by the PEOPLE. Resting on no
better foundation than the consent of the several legislatures, it has
been exposed to frequent and intricate questions concerning the validity
of its powers, and has, in some instances, given birth to the enormous
doctrine of a right of legislative repeal. Owing its ratification to the
law of a State, it has been contended that the same authority might repeal
the law by which it was ratified. However gross a heresy it may be to
maintain that a PARTY to a COMPACT has a right to revoke that COMPACT, the
doctrine itself has had respectable advocates. The possibility of a
question of this nature proves the necessity of laying the foundations of
our national government deeper than in the mere sanction of delegated
authority. The fabric of American empire ought to rest on the solid basis
of THE CONSENT OF THE PEOPLE. The streams of national power ought to flow
immediately from that pure, original fountain of all legitimate authority.
PUBLIUS
1. This, as nearly as I can recollect, was the sense of his speech on
introducing the last bill.
2. Encyclopedia, article "Empire."
3. New Hampshire, Rhode Island, New Jersey, Delaware, Georgia, South
Carolina, and Maryland are a majority of the whole number of the States,
but they do not contain one third of the people.
4. Add New York and Connecticut to the foregoing seven, and they will be
less than a majority.
FEDERALIST No. 23. The Necessity of a Government as Energetic as the One
Proposed to the Preservation of the Union
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 18, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE necessity of a Constitution, at least equally energetic with the one
proposed, to the preservation of the Union, is the point at the
examination of which we are now arrived.
This inquiry will naturally divide itself into three branches—the
objects to be provided for by the federal government, the quantity of
power necessary to the accomplishment of those objects, the persons upon
whom that power ought to operate. Its distribution and organization will
more properly claim our attention under the succeeding head.
The principal purposes to be answered by union are these—the common
defense of the members; the preservation of the public peace as well
against internal convulsions as external attacks; the regulation of
commerce with other nations and between the States; the superintendence of
our intercourse, political and commercial, with foreign countries.
The authorities essential to the common defense are these: to raise
armies; to build and equip fleets; to prescribe rules for the government
of both; to direct their operations; to provide for their support. These
powers ought to exist without limitation, BECAUSE IT IS IMPOSSIBLE TO
FORESEE OR DEFINE THE EXTENT AND VARIETY OF NATIONAL EXIGENCIES, OR THE
CORRESPONDENT EXTENT AND VARIETY OF THE MEANS WHICH MAY BE NECESSARY TO
SATISFY THEM. The circumstances that endanger the safety of nations are
infinite, and for this reason no constitutional shackles can wisely be
imposed on the power to which the care of it is committed. This power
ought to be coextensive with all the possible combinations of such
circumstances; and ought to be under the direction of the same councils
which are appointed to preside over the common defense.
This is one of those truths which, to a correct and unprejudiced mind,
carries its own evidence along with it; and may be obscured, but cannot be
made plainer by argument or reasoning. It rests upon axioms as simple as
they are universal; the MEANS ought to be proportioned to the END; the
persons, from whose agency the attainment of any END is expected, ought to
possess the MEANS by which it is to be attained.
Whether there ought to be a federal government intrusted with the care of
the common defense, is a question in the first instance, open for
discussion; but the moment it is decided in the affirmative, it will
follow, that that government ought to be clothed with all the powers
requisite to complete execution of its trust. And unless it can be shown
that the circumstances which may affect the public safety are reducible
within certain determinate limits; unless the contrary of this position
can be fairly and rationally disputed, it must be admitted, as a necessary
consequence, that there can be no limitation of that authority which is to
provide for the defense and protection of the community, in any matter
essential to its efficacy that is, in any matter essential to the
FORMATION, DIRECTION, or SUPPORT of the NATIONAL FORCES.
Defective as the present Confederation has been proved to be, this
principle appears to have been fully recognized by the framers of it;
though they have not made proper or adequate provision for its exercise.
Congress have an unlimited discretion to make requisitions of men and
money; to govern the army and navy; to direct their operations. As their
requisitions are made constitutionally binding upon the States, who are in
fact under the most solemn obligations to furnish the supplies required of
them, the intention evidently was that the United States should command
whatever resources were by them judged requisite to the "common defense
and general welfare." It was presumed that a sense of their true
interests, and a regard to the dictates of good faith, would be found
sufficient pledges for the punctual performance of the duty of the members
to the federal head.
The experiment has, however, demonstrated that this expectation was
ill-founded and illusory; and the observations, made under the last head,
will, I imagine, have sufficed to convince the impartial and discerning,
that there is an absolute necessity for an entire change in the first
principles of the system; that if we are in earnest about giving the Union
energy and duration, we must abandon the vain project of legislating upon
the States in their collective capacities; we must extend the laws of the
federal government to the individual citizens of America; we must discard
the fallacious scheme of quotas and requisitions, as equally impracticable
and unjust. The result from all this is that the Union ought to be
invested with full power to levy troops; to build and equip fleets; and to
raise the revenues which will be required for the formation and support of
an army and navy, in the customary and ordinary modes practiced in other
governments.
If the circumstances of our country are such as to demand a compound
instead of a simple, a confederate instead of a sole, government, the
essential point which will remain to be adjusted will be to discriminate
the OBJECTS, as far as it can be done, which shall appertain to the
different provinces or departments of power; allowing to each the most
ample authority for fulfilling the objects committed to its charge. Shall
the Union be constituted the guardian of the common safety? Are fleets and
armies and revenues necessary to this purpose? The government of the Union
must be empowered to pass all laws, and to make all regulations which have
relation to them. The same must be the case in respect to commerce, and to
every other matter to which its jurisdiction is permitted to extend. Is
the administration of justice between the citizens of the same State the
proper department of the local governments? These must possess all the
authorities which are connected with this object, and with every other
that may be allotted to their particular cognizance and direction. Not to
confer in each case a degree of power commensurate to the end, would be to
violate the most obvious rules of prudence and propriety, and
improvidently to trust the great interests of the nation to hands which
are disabled from managing them with vigor and success.
Who is likely to make suitable provisions for the public defense, as that
body to which the guardianship of the public safety is confided; which, as
the centre of information, will best understand the extent and urgency of
the dangers that threaten; as the representative of the WHOLE, will feel
itself most deeply interested in the preservation of every part; which,
from the responsibility implied in the duty assigned to it, will be most
sensibly impressed with the necessity of proper exertions; and which, by
the extension of its authority throughout the States, can alone establish
uniformity and concert in the plans and measures by which the common
safety is to be secured? Is there not a manifest inconsistency in
devolving upon the federal government the care of the general defense, and
leaving in the State governments the EFFECTIVE powers by which it is to be
provided for? Is not a want of co-operation the infallible consequence of
such a system? And will not weakness, disorder, an undue distribution of
the burdens and calamities of war, an unnecessary and intolerable increase
of expense, be its natural and inevitable concomitants? Have we not had
unequivocal experience of its effects in the course of the revolution
which we have just accomplished?
Every view we may take of the subject, as candid inquirers after truth,
will serve to convince us, that it is both unwise and dangerous to deny
the federal government an unconfined authority, as to all those objects
which are intrusted to its management. It will indeed deserve the most
vigilant and careful attention of the people, to see that it be modeled in
such a manner as to admit of its being safely vested with the requisite
powers. If any plan which has been, or may be, offered to our
consideration, should not, upon a dispassionate inspection, be found to
answer this description, it ought to be rejected. A government, the
constitution of which renders it unfit to be trusted with all the powers
which a free people ought to delegate to any government, would be an
unsafe and improper depositary of the NATIONAL INTERESTS. Wherever THESE
can with propriety be confided, the coincident powers may safely accompany
them. This is the true result of all just reasoning upon the subject. And
the adversaries of the plan promulgated by the convention ought to have
confined themselves to showing, that the internal structure of the
proposed government was such as to render it unworthy of the confidence of
the people. They ought not to have wandered into inflammatory declamations
and unmeaning cavils about the extent of the powers. The POWERS are not
too extensive for the OBJECTS of federal administration, or, in other
words, for the management of our NATIONAL INTERESTS; nor can any
satisfactory argument be framed to show that they are chargeable with such
an excess. If it be true, as has been insinuated by some of the writers on
the other side, that the difficulty arises from the nature of the thing,
and that the extent of the country will not permit us to form a government
in which such ample powers can safely be reposed, it would prove that we
ought to contract our views, and resort to the expedient of separate
confederacies, which will move within more practicable spheres. For the
absurdity must continually stare us in the face of confiding to a
government the direction of the most essential national interests, without
daring to trust it to the authorities which are indispensable to their
proper and efficient management. Let us not attempt to reconcile
contradictions, but firmly embrace a rational alternative.
I trust, however, that the impracticability of one general system cannot
be shown. I am greatly mistaken, if any thing of weight has yet been
advanced of this tendency; and I flatter myself, that the observations
which have been made in the course of these papers have served to place
the reverse of that position in as clear a light as any matter still in
the womb of time and experience can be susceptible of. This, at all
events, must be evident, that the very difficulty itself, drawn from the
extent of the country, is the strongest argument in favor of an energetic
government; for any other can certainly never preserve the Union of so
large an empire. If we embrace the tenets of those who oppose the adoption
of the proposed Constitution, as the standard of our political creed, we
cannot fail to verify the gloomy doctrines which predict the
impracticability of a national system pervading entire limits of the
present Confederacy.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 24. The Powers Necessary to the Common Defense Further
Considered
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 19, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
TO THE powers proposed to be conferred upon the federal government, in
respect to the creation and direction of the national forces, I have met
with but one specific objection, which, if I understand it right, is this,
that proper provision has not been made against the existence of standing
armies in time of peace; an objection which, I shall now endeavor to show,
rests on weak and unsubstantial foundations.
It has indeed been brought forward in the most vague and general form,
supported only by bold assertions, without the appearance of argument;
without even the sanction of theoretical opinions; in contradiction to the
practice of other free nations, and to the general sense of America, as
expressed in most of the existing constitutions. The proprietary of this
remark will appear, the moment it is recollected that the objection under
consideration turns upon a supposed necessity of restraining the
LEGISLATIVE authority of the nation, in the article of military
establishments; a principle unheard of, except in one or two of our State
constitutions, and rejected in all the rest.
A stranger to our politics, who was to read our newspapers at the present
juncture, without having previously inspected the plan reported by the
convention, would be naturally led to one of two conclusions: either that
it contained a positive injunction, that standing armies should be kept up
in time of peace; or that it vested in the EXECUTIVE the whole power of
levying troops, without subjecting his discretion, in any shape, to the
control of the legislature.
If he came afterwards to peruse the plan itself, he would be surprised to
discover, that neither the one nor the other was the case; that the whole
power of raising armies was lodged in the LEGISLATURE, not in the
EXECUTIVE; that this legislature was to be a popular body, consisting of
the representatives of the people periodically elected; and that instead
of the provision he had supposed in favor of standing armies, there was to
be found, in respect to this object, an important qualification even of
the legislative discretion, in that clause which forbids the appropriation
of money for the support of an army for any longer period than two years a
precaution which, upon a nearer view of it, will appear to be a great and
real security against the keeping up of troops without evident necessity.
Disappointed in his first surmise, the person I have supposed would be apt
to pursue his conjectures a little further. He would naturally say to
himself, it is impossible that all this vehement and pathetic declamation
can be without some colorable pretext. It must needs be that this people,
so jealous of their liberties, have, in all the preceding models of the
constitutions which they have established, inserted the most precise and
rigid precautions on this point, the omission of which, in the new plan,
has given birth to all this apprehension and clamor.
If, under this impression, he proceeded to pass in review the several
State constitutions, how great would be his disappointment to find that
TWO ONLY of them(1) contained an interdiction of standing armies in time
of peace; that the other eleven had either observed a profound silence on
the subject, or had in express terms admitted the right of the Legislature
to authorize their existence.
Still, however he would be persuaded that there must be some plausible
foundation for the cry raised on this head. He would never be able to
imagine, while any source of information remained unexplored, that it was
nothing more than an experiment upon the public credulity, dictated either
by a deliberate intention to deceive, or by the overflowings of a zeal too
intemperate to be ingenuous. It would probably occur to him, that he would
be likely to find the precautions he was in search of in the primitive
compact between the States. Here, at length, he would expect to meet with
a solution of the enigma. No doubt, he would observe to himself, the
existing Confederation must contain the most explicit provisions against
military establishments in time of peace; and a departure from this model,
in a favorite point, has occasioned the discontent which appears to
influence these political champions.
If he should now apply himself to a careful and critical survey of the
articles of Confederation, his astonishment would not only be increased,
but would acquire a mixture of indignation, at the unexpected discovery,
that these articles, instead of containing the prohibition he looked for,
and though they had, with jealous circumspection, restricted the authority
of the State legislatures in this particular, had not imposed a single
restraint on that of the United States. If he happened to be a man of
quick sensibility, or ardent temper, he could now no longer refrain from
regarding these clamors as the dishonest artifices of a sinister and
unprincipled opposition to a plan which ought at least to receive a fair
and candid examination from all sincere lovers of their country! How else,
he would say, could the authors of them have been tempted to vent such
loud censures upon that plan, about a point in which it seems to have
conformed itself to the general sense of America as declared in its
different forms of government, and in which it has even superadded a new
and powerful guard unknown to any of them? If, on the contrary, he
happened to be a man of calm and dispassionate feelings, he would indulge
a sigh for the frailty of human nature, and would lament, that in a matter
so interesting to the happiness of millions, the true merits of the
question should be perplexed and entangled by expedients so unfriendly to
an impartial and right determination. Even such a man could hardly forbear
remarking, that a conduct of this kind has too much the appearance of an
intention to mislead the people by alarming their passions, rather than to
convince them by arguments addressed to their understandings.
But however little this objection may be countenanced, even by precedents
among ourselves, it may be satisfactory to take a nearer view of its
intrinsic merits. From a close examination it will appear that restraints
upon the discretion of the legislature in respect to military
establishments in time of peace, would be improper to be imposed, and if
imposed, from the necessities of society, would be unlikely to be
observed.
Though a wide ocean separates the United States from Europe, yet there are
various considerations that warn us against an excess of confidence or
security. On one side of us, and stretching far into our rear, are growing
settlements subject to the dominion of Britain. On the other side, and
extending to meet the British settlements, are colonies and establishments
subject to the dominion of Spain. This situation and the vicinity of the
West India Islands, belonging to these two powers create between them, in
respect to their American possessions and in relation to us, a common
interest. The savage tribes on our Western frontier ought to be regarded
as our natural enemies, their natural allies, because they have most to
fear from us, and most to hope from them. The improvements in the art of
navigation have, as to the facility of communication, rendered distant
nations, in a great measure, neighbors. Britain and Spain are among the
principal maritime powers of Europe. A future concert of views between
these nations ought not to be regarded as improbable. The increasing
remoteness of consanguinity is every day diminishing the force of the
family compact between France and Spain. And politicians have ever with
great reason considered the ties of blood as feeble and precarious links
of political connection. These circumstances combined, admonish us not to
be too sanguine in considering ourselves as entirely out of the reach of
danger.
Previous to the Revolution, and ever since the peace, there has been a
constant necessity for keeping small garrisons on our Western frontier. No
person can doubt that these will continue to be indispensable, if it
should only be against the ravages and depredations of the Indians. These
garrisons must either be furnished by occasional detachments from the
militia, or by permanent corps in the pay of the government. The first is
impracticable; and if practicable, would be pernicious. The militia would
not long, if at all, submit to be dragged from their occupations and
families to perform that most disagreeable duty in times of profound
peace. And if they could be prevailed upon or compelled to do it, the
increased expense of a frequent rotation of service, and the loss of labor
and disconcertion of the industrious pursuits of individuals, would form
conclusive objections to the scheme. It would be as burdensome and
injurious to the public as ruinous to private citizens. The latter
resource of permanent corps in the pay of the government amounts to a
standing army in time of peace; a small one, indeed, but not the less real
for being small. Here is a simple view of the subject, that shows us at
once the impropriety of a constitutional interdiction of such
establishments, and the necessity of leaving the matter to the discretion
and prudence of the legislature.
In proportion to our increase in strength, it is probable, nay, it may be
said certain, that Britain and Spain would augment their military
establishments in our neighborhood. If we should not be willing to be
exposed, in a naked and defenseless condition, to their insults and
encroachments, we should find it expedient to increase our frontier
garrisons in some ratio to the force by which our Western settlements
might be annoyed. There are, and will be, particular posts, the possession
of which will include the command of large districts of territory, and
facilitate future invasions of the remainder. It may be added that some of
those posts will be keys to the trade with the Indian nations. Can any man
think it would be wise to leave such posts in a situation to be at any
instant seized by one or the other of two neighboring and formidable
powers? To act this part would be to desert all the usual maxims of
prudence and policy.
If we mean to be a commercial people, or even to be secure on our Atlantic
side, we must endeavor, as soon as possible, to have a navy. To this
purpose there must be dock-yards and arsenals; and for the defense of
these, fortifications, and probably garrisons. When a nation has become so
powerful by sea that it can protect its dock-yards by its fleets, this
supersedes the necessity of garrisons for that purpose; but where naval
establishments are in their infancy, moderate garrisons will, in all
likelihood, be found an indispensable security against descents for the
destruction of the arsenals and dock-yards, and sometimes of the fleet
itself.
PUBLIUS
1 This statement of the matter is taken from the printed collection of
State constitutions. Pennsylvania and North Carolina are the two which
contain the interdiction in these words: "As standing armies in time of
peace are dangerous to liberty, THEY OUGHT NOT to be kept up." This is, in
truth, rather a CAUTION than a PROHIBITION. New Hampshire, Massachusetts,
Delaware, and Maryland have, in each of their bils of rights, a clause to
this effect: "Standing armies are dangerous to liberty, and ought not to
be raised or kept up WITHOUT THE CONSENT OF THE LEGISLATURE"; which is a
formal admission of the authority of the Legislature. New York has no
bills of rights, and her constitution says not a word about the matter. No
bills of rights appear annexed to the constitutions of the other States,
except the foregoing, and their constitutions are equally silent. I am
told, however that one or two States have bills of rights which do not
appear in this collection; but that those also recognize the right of the
legislative authority in this respect.
FEDERALIST No. 25. The Same Subject Continued (The Powers Necessary to the
Common Defense Further Considered)
From the New York Packet. Friday, December 21, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT MAY perhaps be urged that the objects enumerated in the preceding
number ought to be provided for by the State governments, under the
direction of the Union. But this would be, in reality, an inversion of the
primary principle of our political association, as it would in practice
transfer the care of the common defense from the federal head to the
individual members: a project oppressive to some States, dangerous to all,
and baneful to the Confederacy.
The territories of Britain, Spain, and of the Indian nations in our
neighborhood do not border on particular States, but encircle the Union
from Maine to Georgia. The danger, though in different degrees, is
therefore common. And the means of guarding against it ought, in like
manner, to be the objects of common councils and of a common treasury. It
happens that some States, from local situation, are more directly exposed.
New York is of this class. Upon the plan of separate provisions, New York
would have to sustain the whole weight of the establishments requisite to
her immediate safety, and to the mediate or ultimate protection of her
neighbors. This would neither be equitable as it respected New York nor
safe as it respected the other States. Various inconveniences would attend
such a system. The States, to whose lot it might fall to support the
necessary establishments, would be as little able as willing, for a
considerable time to come, to bear the burden of competent provisions. The
security of all would thus be subjected to the parsimony, improvidence, or
inability of a part. If the resources of such part becoming more abundant
and extensive, its provisions should be proportionally enlarged, the other
States would quickly take the alarm at seeing the whole military force of
the Union in the hands of two or three of its members, and those probably
amongst the most powerful. They would each choose to have some
counterpoise, and pretenses could easily be contrived. In this situation,
military establishments, nourished by mutual jealousy, would be apt to
swell beyond their natural or proper size; and being at the separate
disposal of the members, they would be engines for the abridgment or
demolition of the national authority.
Reasons have been already given to induce a supposition that the State
governments will too naturally be prone to a rivalship with that of the
Union, the foundation of which will be the love of power; and that in any
contest between the federal head and one of its members the people will be
most apt to unite with their local government. If, in addition to this
immense advantage, the ambition of the members should be stimulated by the
separate and independent possession of military forces, it would afford
too strong a temptation and too great a facility to them to make
enterprises upon, and finally to subvert, the constitutional authority of
the Union. On the other hand, the liberty of the people would be less safe
in this state of things than in that which left the national forces in the
hands of the national government. As far as an army may be considered as a
dangerous weapon of power, it had better be in those hands of which the
people are most likely to be jealous than in those of which they are least
likely to be jealous. For it is a truth, which the experience of ages has
attested, that the people are always most in danger when the means of
injuring their rights are in the possession of those of whom they
entertain the least suspicion.
The framers of the existing Confederation, fully aware of the danger to
the Union from the separate possession of military forces by the States,
have, in express terms, prohibited them from having either ships or
troops, unless with the consent of Congress. The truth is, that the
existence of a federal government and military establishments under State
authority are not less at variance with each other than a due supply of
the federal treasury and the system of quotas and requisitions.
There are other lights besides those already taken notice of, in which the
impropriety of restraints on the discretion of the national legislature
will be equally manifest. The design of the objection, which has been
mentioned, is to preclude standing armies in time of peace, though we have
never been informed how far it is designed the prohibition should extend;
whether to raising armies as well as to KEEPING THEM UP in a season of
tranquillity or not. If it be confined to the latter it will have no
precise signification, and it will be ineffectual for the purpose
intended. When armies are once raised what shall be denominated "keeping
them up," contrary to the sense of the Constitution? What time shall be
requisite to ascertain the violation? Shall it be a week, a month, a year?
Or shall we say they may be continued as long as the danger which
occasioned their being raised continues? This would be to admit that they
might be kept up IN TIME OF PEACE, against threatening or impending
danger, which would be at once to deviate from the literal meaning of the
prohibition, and to introduce an extensive latitude of construction. Who
shall judge of the continuance of the danger? This must undoubtedly be
submitted to the national government, and the matter would then be brought
to this issue, that the national government, to provide against
apprehended danger, might in the first instance raise troops, and might
afterwards keep them on foot as long as they supposed the peace or safety
of the community was in any degree of jeopardy. It is easy to perceive
that a discretion so latitudinary as this would afford ample room for
eluding the force of the provision.
The supposed utility of a provision of this kind can only be founded on
the supposed probability, or at least possibility, of a combination
between the executive and the legislative, in some scheme of usurpation.
Should this at any time happen, how easy would it be to fabricate
pretenses of approaching danger! Indian hostilities, instigated by Spain
or Britain, would always be at hand. Provocations to produce the desired
appearances might even be given to some foreign power, and appeased again
by timely concessions. If we can reasonably presume such a combination to
have been formed, and that the enterprise is warranted by a sufficient
prospect of success, the army, when once raised, from whatever cause, or
on whatever pretext, may be applied to the execution of the project.
If, to obviate this consequence, it should be resolved to extend the
prohibition to the RAISING of armies in time of peace, the United States
would then exhibit the most extraordinary spectacle which the world has
yet seen, that of a nation incapacitated by its Constitution to prepare
for defense, before it was actually invaded. As the ceremony of a formal
denunciation of war has of late fallen into disuse, the presence of an
enemy within our territories must be waited for, as the legal warrant to
the government to begin its levies of men for the protection of the State.
We must receive the blow, before we could even prepare to return it. All
that kind of policy by which nations anticipate distant danger, and meet
the gathering storm, must be abstained from, as contrary to the genuine
maxims of a free government. We must expose our property and liberty to
the mercy of foreign invaders, and invite them by our weakness to seize
the naked and defenseless prey, because we are afraid that rulers, created
by our choice, dependent on our will, might endanger that liberty, by an
abuse of the means necessary to its preservation.
Here I expect we shall be told that the militia of the country is its
natural bulwark, and would be at all times equal to the national defense.
This doctrine, in substance, had like to have lost us our independence. It
cost millions to the United States that might have been saved. The facts
which, from our own experience, forbid a reliance of this kind, are too
recent to permit us to be the dupes of such a suggestion. The steady
operations of war against a regular and disciplined army can only be
successfully conducted by a force of the same kind. Considerations of
economy, not less than of stability and vigor, confirm this position. The
American militia, in the course of the late war, have, by their valor on
numerous occasions, erected eternal monuments to their fame; but the
bravest of them feel and know that the liberty of their country could not
have been established by their efforts alone, however great and valuable
they were. War, like most other things, is a science to be acquired and
perfected by diligence, by perseverance, by time, and by practice.
All violent policy, as it is contrary to the natural and experienced
course of human affairs, defeats itself. Pennsylvania, at this instant,
affords an example of the truth of this remark. The Bill of Rights of that
State declares that standing armies are dangerous to liberty, and ought
not to be kept up in time of peace. Pennsylvania, nevertheless, in a time
of profound peace, from the existence of partial disorders in one or two
of her counties, has resolved to raise a body of troops; and in all
probability will keep them up as long as there is any appearance of danger
to the public peace. The conduct of Massachusetts affords a lesson on the
same subject, though on different ground. That State (without waiting for
the sanction of Congress, as the articles of the Confederation require)
was compelled to raise troops to quell a domestic insurrection, and still
keeps a corps in pay to prevent a revival of the spirit of revolt. The
particular constitution of Massachusetts opposed no obstacle to the
measure; but the instance is still of use to instruct us that cases are
likely to occur under our government, as well as under those of other
nations, which will sometimes render a military force in time of peace
essential to the security of the society, and that it is therefore
improper in this respect to control the legislative discretion. It also
teaches us, in its application to the United States, how little the rights
of a feeble government are likely to be respected, even by its own
constituents. And it teaches us, in addition to the rest, how unequal
parchment provisions are to a struggle with public necessity.
It was a fundamental maxim of the Lacedaemonian commonwealth, that the
post of admiral should not be conferred twice on the same person. The
Peloponnesian confederates, having suffered a severe defeat at sea from
the Athenians, demanded Lysander, who had before served with success in
that capacity, to command the combined fleets. The Lacedaemonians, to
gratify their allies, and yet preserve the semblance of an adherence to
their ancient institutions, had recourse to the flimsy subterfuge of
investing Lysander with the real power of admiral, under the nominal title
of vice-admiral. This instance is selected from among a multitude that
might be cited to confirm the truth already advanced and illustrated by
domestic examples; which is, that nations pay little regard to rules and
maxims calculated in their very nature to run counter to the necessities
of society. Wise politicians will be cautious about fettering the
government with restrictions that cannot be observed, because they know
that every breach of the fundamental laws, though dictated by necessity,
impairs that sacred reverence which ought to be maintained in the breast
of rulers towards the constitution of a country, and forms a precedent for
other breaches where the same plea of necessity does not exist at all, or
is less urgent and palpable.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 26. The Idea of Restraining the Legislative Authority in
Regard to the Common Defense Considered.
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, December 22, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT WAS a thing hardly to be expected that in a popular revolution the
minds of men should stop at that happy mean which marks the salutary
boundary between POWER and PRIVILEGE, and combines the energy of
government with the security of private rights. A failure in this delicate
and important point is the great source of the inconveniences we
experience, and if we are not cautious to avoid a repetition of the error,
in our future attempts to rectify and ameliorate our system, we may travel
from one chimerical project to another; we may try change after change;
but we shall never be likely to make any material change for the better.
The idea of restraining the legislative authority, in the means of
providing for the national defense, is one of those refinements which owe
their origin to a zeal for liberty more ardent than enlightened. We have
seen, however, that it has not had thus far an extensive prevalency; that
even in this country, where it made its first appearance, Pennsylvania and
North Carolina are the only two States by which it has been in any degree
patronized; and that all the others have refused to give it the least
countenance; wisely judging that confidence must be placed somewhere; that
the necessity of doing it, is implied in the very act of delegating power;
and that it is better to hazard the abuse of that confidence than to
embarrass the government and endanger the public safety by impolitic
restrictions on the legislative authority. The opponents of the proposed
Constitution combat, in this respect, the general decision of America; and
instead of being taught by experience the propriety of correcting any
extremes into which we may have heretofore run, they appear disposed to
conduct us into others still more dangerous, and more extravagant. As if
the tone of government had been found too high, or too rigid, the
doctrines they teach are calculated to induce us to depress or to relax
it, by expedients which, upon other occasions, have been condemned or
forborne. It may be affirmed without the imputation of invective, that if
the principles they inculcate, on various points, could so far obtain as
to become the popular creed, they would utterly unfit the people of this
country for any species of government whatever. But a danger of this kind
is not to be apprehended. The citizens of America have too much
discernment to be argued into anarchy. And I am much mistaken, if
experience has not wrought a deep and solemn conviction in the public
mind, that greater energy of government is essential to the welfare and
prosperity of the community.
It may not be amiss in this place concisely to remark the origin and
progress of the idea, which aims at the exclusion of military
establishments in time of peace. Though in speculative minds it may arise
from a contemplation of the nature and tendency of such institutions,
fortified by the events that have happened in other ages and countries,
yet as a national sentiment, it must be traced to those habits of thinking
which we derive from the nation from whom the inhabitants of these States
have in general sprung.
In England, for a long time after the Norman Conquest, the authority of
the monarch was almost unlimited. Inroads were gradually made upon the
prerogative, in favor of liberty, first by the barons, and afterwards by
the people, till the greatest part of its most formidable pretensions
became extinct. But it was not till the revolution in 1688, which elevated
the Prince of Orange to the throne of Great Britain, that English liberty
was completely triumphant. As incident to the undefined power of making
war, an acknowledged prerogative of the crown, Charles II. had, by his own
authority, kept on foot in time of peace a body of 5,000 regular troops.
And this number James II. increased to 30,000; who were paid out of his
civil list. At the revolution, to abolish the exercise of so dangerous an
authority, it became an article of the Bill of Rights then framed, that
"the raising or keeping a standing army within the kingdom in time of
peace, UNLESS WITH THE CONSENT OF PARLIAMENT, was against law."
In that kingdom, when the pulse of liberty was at its highest pitch, no
security against the danger of standing armies was thought requisite,
beyond a prohibition of their being raised or kept up by the mere
authority of the executive magistrate. The patriots, who effected that
memorable revolution, were too temperate, too wellinformed, to think of
any restraint on the legislative discretion. They were aware that a
certain number of troops for guards and garrisons were indispensable; that
no precise bounds could be set to the national exigencies; that a power
equal to every possible contingency must exist somewhere in the
government: and that when they referred the exercise of that power to the
judgment of the legislature, they had arrived at the ultimate point of
precaution which was reconcilable with the safety of the community.
From the same source, the people of America may be said to have derived an
hereditary impression of danger to liberty, from standing armies in time
of peace. The circumstances of a revolution quickened the public
sensibility on every point connected with the security of popular rights,
and in some instances raise the warmth of our zeal beyond the degree which
consisted with the due temperature of the body politic. The attempts of
two of the States to restrict the authority of the legislature in the
article of military establishments, are of the number of these instances.
The principles which had taught us to be jealous of the power of an
hereditary monarch were by an injudicious excess extended to the
representatives of the people in their popular assemblies. Even in some of
the States, where this error was not adopted, we find unnecessary
declarations that standing armies ought not to be kept up, in time of
peace, WITHOUT THE CONSENT OF THE LEGISLATURE. I call them unnecessary,
because the reason which had introduced a similar provision into the
English Bill of Rights is not applicable to any of the State
constitutions. The power of raising armies at all, under those
constitutions, can by no construction be deemed to reside anywhere else,
than in the legislatures themselves; and it was superfluous, if not
absurd, to declare that a matter should not be done without the consent of
a body, which alone had the power of doing it. Accordingly, in some of
these constitutions, and among others, in that of this State of New York,
which has been justly celebrated, both in Europe and America, as one of
the best of the forms of government established in this country, there is
a total silence upon the subject.
It is remarkable, that even in the two States which seem to have meditated
an interdiction of military establishments in time of peace, the mode of
expression made use of is rather cautionary than prohibitory. It is not
said, that standing armies SHALL NOT BE kept up, but that they OUGHT NOT
to be kept up, in time of peace. This ambiguity of terms appears to have
been the result of a conflict between jealousy and conviction; between the
desire of excluding such establishments at all events, and the persuasion
that an absolute exclusion would be unwise and unsafe.
Can it be doubted that such a provision, whenever the situation of public
affairs was understood to require a departure from it, would be
interpreted by the legislature into a mere admonition, and would be made
to yield to the necessities or supposed necessities of the State? Let the
fact already mentioned, with respect to Pennsylvania, decide. What then
(it may be asked) is the use of such a provision, if it cease to operate
the moment there is an inclination to disregard it?
Let us examine whether there be any comparison, in point of efficacy,
between the provision alluded to and that which is contained in the new
Constitution, for restraining the appropriations of money for military
purposes to the period of two years. The former, by aiming at too much, is
calculated to effect nothing; the latter, by steering clear of an
imprudent extreme, and by being perfectly compatible with a proper
provision for the exigencies of the nation, will have a salutary and
powerful operation.
The legislature of the United States will be OBLIGED, by this provision,
once at least in every two years, to deliberate upon the propriety of
keeping a military force on foot; to come to a new resolution on the
point; and to declare their sense of the matter, by a formal vote in the
face of their constituents. They are not AT LIBERTY to vest in the
executive department permanent funds for the support of an army, if they
were even incautious enough to be willing to repose in it so improper a
confidence. As the spirit of party, in different degrees, must be expected
to infect all political bodies, there will be, no doubt, persons in the
national legislature willing enough to arraign the measures and criminate
the views of the majority. The provision for the support of a military
force will always be a favorable topic for declamation. As often as the
question comes forward, the public attention will be roused and attracted
to the subject, by the party in opposition; and if the majority should be
really disposed to exceed the proper limits, the community will be warned
of the danger, and will have an opportunity of taking measures to guard
against it. Independent of parties in the national legislature itself, as
often as the period of discussion arrived, the State legislatures, who
will always be not only vigilant but suspicious and jealous guardians of
the rights of the citizens against encroachments from the federal
government, will constantly have their attention awake to the conduct of
the national rulers, and will be ready enough, if any thing improper
appears, to sound the alarm to the people, and not only to be the VOICE,
but, if necessary, the ARM of their discontent.
Schemes to subvert the liberties of a great community REQUIRE TIME to
mature them for execution. An army, so large as seriously to menace those
liberties, could only be formed by progressive augmentations; which would
suppose, not merely a temporary combination between the legislature and
executive, but a continued conspiracy for a series of time. Is it probable
that such a combination would exist at all? Is it probable that it would
be persevered in, and transmitted along through all the successive
variations in a representative body, which biennial elections would
naturally produce in both houses? Is it presumable, that every man, the
instant he took his seat in the national Senate or House of
Representatives, would commence a traitor to his constituents and to his
country? Can it be supposed that there would not be found one man,
discerning enough to detect so atrocious a conspiracy, or bold or honest
enough to apprise his constituents of their danger? If such presumptions
can fairly be made, there ought at once to be an end of all delegated
authority. The people should resolve to recall all the powers they have
heretofore parted with out of their own hands, and to divide themselves
into as many States as there are counties, in order that they may be able
to manage their own concerns in person.
If such suppositions could even be reasonably made, still the concealment
of the design, for any duration, would be impracticable. It would be
announced, by the very circumstance of augmenting the army to so great an
extent in time of profound peace. What colorable reason could be assigned,
in a country so situated, for such vast augmentations of the military
force? It is impossible that the people could be long deceived; and the
destruction of the project, and of the projectors, would quickly follow
the discovery.
It has been said that the provision which limits the appropriation of
money for the support of an army to the period of two years would be
unavailing, because the Executive, when once possessed of a force large
enough to awe the people into submission, would find resources in that
very force sufficient to enable him to dispense with supplies from the
acts of the legislature. But the question again recurs, upon what pretense
could he be put in possession of a force of that magnitude in time of
peace? If we suppose it to have been created in consequence of some
domestic insurrection or foreign war, then it becomes a case not within
the principles of the objection; for this is levelled against the power of
keeping up troops in time of peace. Few persons will be so visionary as
seriously to contend that military forces ought not to be raised to quell
a rebellion or resist an invasion; and if the defense of the community
under such circumstances should make it necessary to have an army so
numerous as to hazard its liberty, this is one of those calamities for
which there is neither preventative nor cure. It cannot be provided
against by any possible form of government; it might even result from a
simple league offensive and defensive, if it should ever be necessary for
the confederates or allies to form an army for common defense.
But it is an evil infinitely less likely to attend us in a united than in
a disunited state; nay, it may be safely asserted that it is an evil
altogether unlikely to attend us in the latter situation. It is not easy
to conceive a possibility that dangers so formidable can assail the whole
Union, as to demand a force considerable enough to place our liberties in
the least jeopardy, especially if we take into our view the aid to be
derived from the militia, which ought always to be counted upon as a
valuable and powerful auxiliary. But in a state of disunion (as has been
fully shown in another place), the contrary of this supposition would
become not only probable, but almost unavoidable.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 27. The Same Subject Continued (The Idea of Restraining the
Legislative Authority in Regard to the Common Defense Considered)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 25, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT HAS been urged, in different shapes, that a Constitution of the kind
proposed by the convention cannot operate without the aid of a military
force to execute its laws. This, however, like most other things that have
been alleged on that side, rests on mere general assertion, unsupported by
any precise or intelligible designation of the reasons upon which it is
founded. As far as I have been able to divine the latent meaning of the
objectors, it seems to originate in a presupposition that the people will
be disinclined to the exercise of federal authority in any matter of an
internal nature. Waiving any exception that might be taken to the
inaccuracy or inexplicitness of the distinction between internal and
external, let us inquire what ground there is to presuppose that
disinclination in the people. Unless we presume at the same time that the
powers of the general government will be worse administered than those of
the State government, there seems to be no room for the presumption of
ill-will, disaffection, or opposition in the people. I believe it may be
laid down as a general rule that their confidence in and obedience to a
government will commonly be proportioned to the goodness or badness of its
administration. It must be admitted that there are exceptions to this
rule; but these exceptions depend so entirely on accidental causes, that
they cannot be considered as having any relation to the intrinsic merits
or demerits of a constitution. These can only be judged of by general
principles and maxims.
Various reasons have been suggested, in the course of these papers, to
induce a probability that the general government will be better
administered than the particular governments; the principal of which
reasons are that the extension of the spheres of election will present a
greater option, or latitude of choice, to the people; that through the
medium of the State legislatures which are select bodies of men, and which
are to appoint the members of the national Senate there is reason to
expect that this branch will generally be composed with peculiar care and
judgment; that these circumstances promise greater knowledge and more
extensive information in the national councils, and that they will be less
apt to be tainted by the spirit of faction, and more out of the reach of
those occasional ill-humors, or temporary prejudices and propensities,
which, in smaller societies, frequently contaminate the public councils,
beget injustice and oppression of a part of the community, and engender
schemes which, though they gratify a momentary inclination or desire,
terminate in general distress, dissatisfaction, and disgust. Several
additional reasons of considerable force, to fortify that probability,
will occur when we come to survey, with a more critical eye, the interior
structure of the edifice which we are invited to erect. It will be
sufficient here to remark, that until satisfactory reasons can be assigned
to justify an opinion, that the federal government is likely to be
administered in such a manner as to render it odious or contemptible to
the people, there can be no reasonable foundation for the supposition that
the laws of the Union will meet with any greater obstruction from them, or
will stand in need of any other methods to enforce their execution, than
the laws of the particular members.
The hope of impunity is a strong incitement to sedition; the dread of
punishment, a proportionably strong discouragement to it. Will not the
government of the Union, which, if possessed of a due degree of power, can
call to its aid the collective resources of the whole Confederacy, be more
likely to repress the FORMER sentiment and to inspire the LATTER, than
that of a single State, which can only command the resources within
itself? A turbulent faction in a State may easily suppose itself able to
contend with the friends to the government in that State; but it can
hardly be so infatuated as to imagine itself a match for the combined
efforts of the Union. If this reflection be just, there is less danger of
resistance from irregular combinations of individuals to the authority of
the Confederacy than to that of a single member.
I will, in this place, hazard an observation, which will not be the less
just because to some it may appear new; which is, that the more the
operations of the national authority are intermingled in the ordinary
exercise of government, the more the citizens are accustomed to meet with
it in the common occurrences of their political life, the more it is
familiarized to their sight and to their feelings, the further it enters
into those objects which touch the most sensible chords and put in motion
the most active springs of the human heart, the greater will be the
probability that it will conciliate the respect and attachment of the
community. Man is very much a creature of habit. A thing that rarely
strikes his senses will generally have but little influence upon his mind.
A government continually at a distance and out of sight can hardly be
expected to interest the sensations of the people. The inference is, that
the authority of the Union, and the affections of the citizens towards it,
will be strengthened, rather than weakened, by its extension to what are
called matters of internal concern; and will have less occasion to recur
to force, in proportion to the familiarity and comprehensiveness of its
agency. The more it circulates through those channels and currents in
which the passions of mankind naturally flow, the less will it require the
aid of the violent and perilous expedients of compulsion.
One thing, at all events, must be evident, that a government like the one
proposed would bid much fairer to avoid the necessity of using force, than
that species of league contend for by most of its opponents; the authority
of which should only operate upon the States in their political or
collective capacities. It has been shown that in such a Confederacy there
can be no sanction for the laws but force; that frequent delinquencies in
the members are the natural offspring of the very frame of the government;
and that as often as these happen, they can only be redressed, if at all,
by war and violence.
The plan reported by the convention, by extending the authority of the
federal head to the individual citizens of the several States, will enable
the government to employ the ordinary magistracy of each, in the execution
of its laws. It is easy to perceive that this will tend to destroy, in the
common apprehension, all distinction between the sources from which they
might proceed; and will give the federal government the same advantage for
securing a due obedience to its authority which is enjoyed by the
government of each State, in addition to the influence on public opinion
which will result from the important consideration of its having power to
call to its assistance and support the resources of the whole Union. It
merits particular attention in this place, that the laws of the
Confederacy, as to the ENUMERATED and LEGITIMATE objects of its
jurisdiction, will become the SUPREME LAW of the land; to the observance
of which all officers, legislative, executive, and judicial, in each
State, will be bound by the sanctity of an oath. Thus the legislatures,
courts, and magistrates, of the respective members, will be incorporated
into the operations of the national government AS FAR AS ITS JUST AND
CONSTITUTIONAL AUTHORITY EXTENDS; and will be rendered auxiliary to the
enforcement of its laws.(1) Any man who will pursue, by his own
reflections, the consequences of this situation, will perceive that there
is good ground to calculate upon a regular and peaceable execution of the
laws of the Union, if its powers are administered with a common share of
prudence. If we will arbitrarily suppose the contrary, we may deduce any
inferences we please from the supposition; for it is certainly possible,
by an injudicious exercise of the authorities of the best government that
ever was, or ever can be instituted, to provoke and precipitate the people
into the wildest excesses. But though the adversaries of the proposed
Constitution should presume that the national rulers would be insensible
to the motives of public good, or to the obligations of duty, I would
still ask them how the interests of ambition, or the views of
encroachment, can be promoted by such a conduct?
PUBLIUS
1. The sophistry which has been employed to show that this will tend to
the destruction of the State governments, will, in its will, in its proper
place, be fully detected.
FEDERALIST No. 28. The Same Subject Continued (The Idea of Restraining the
Legislative Authority in Regard to the Common Defense Considered)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 26, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THAT there may happen cases in which the national government may be
necessitated to resort to force, cannot be denied. Our own experience has
corroborated the lessons taught by the examples of other nations; that
emergencies of this sort will sometimes arise in all societies, however
constituted; that seditions and insurrections are, unhappily, maladies as
inseparable from the body politic as tumors and eruptions from the natural
body; that the idea of governing at all times by the simple force of law
(which we have been told is the only admissible principle of republican
government), has no place but in the reveries of those political doctors
whose sagacity disdains the admonitions of experimental instruction.
Should such emergencies at any time happen under the national government,
there could be no remedy but force. The means to be employed must be
proportioned to the extent of the mischief. If it should be a slight
commotion in a small part of a State, the militia of the residue would be
adequate to its suppression; and the national presumption is that they
would be ready to do their duty. An insurrection, whatever may be its
immediate cause, eventually endangers all government. Regard to the public
peace, if not to the rights of the Union, would engage the citizens to
whom the contagion had not communicated itself to oppose the insurgents;
and if the general government should be found in practice conducive to the
prosperity and felicity of the people, it were irrational to believe that
they would be disinclined to its support.
If, on the contrary, the insurrection should pervade a whole State, or a
principal part of it, the employment of a different kind of force might
become unavoidable. It appears that Massachusetts found it necessary to
raise troops for repressing the disorders within that State; that
Pennsylvania, from the mere apprehension of commotions among a part of her
citizens, has thought proper to have recourse to the same measure. Suppose
the State of New York had been inclined to re-establish her lost
jurisdiction over the inhabitants of Vermont, could she have hoped for
success in such an enterprise from the efforts of the militia alone? Would
she not have been compelled to raise and to maintain a more regular force
for the execution of her design? If it must then be admitted that the
necessity of recurring to a force different from the militia, in cases of
this extraordinary nature, is applicable to the State governments
themselves, why should the possibility, that the national government might
be under a like necessity, in similar extremities, be made an objection to
its existence? Is it not surprising that men who declare an attachment to
the Union in the abstract, should urge as an objection to the proposed
Constitution what applies with tenfold weight to the plan for which they
contend; and what, as far as it has any foundation in truth, is an
inevitable consequence of civil society upon an enlarged scale? Who would
not prefer that possibility to the unceasing agitations and frequent
revolutions which are the continual scourges of petty republics?
Let us pursue this examination in another light. Suppose, in lieu of one
general system, two, or three, or even four Confederacies were to be
formed, would not the same difficulty oppose itself to the operations of
either of these Confederacies? Would not each of them be exposed to the
same casualties; and when these happened, be obliged to have recourse to
the same expedients for upholding its authority which are objected to in a
government for all the States? Would the militia, in this supposition, be
more ready or more able to support the federal authority than in the case
of a general union? All candid and intelligent men must, upon due
consideration, acknowledge that the principle of the objection is equally
applicable to either of the two cases; and that whether we have one
government for all the States, or different governments for different
parcels of them, or even if there should be an entire separation of the
States, there might sometimes be a necessity to make use of a force
constituted differently from the militia, to preserve the peace of the
community and to maintain the just authority of the laws against those
violent invasions of them which amount to insurrections and rebellions.
Independent of all other reasonings upon the subject, it is a full answer
to those who require a more peremptory provision against military
establishments in time of peace, to say that the whole power of the
proposed government is to be in the hands of the representatives of the
people. This is the essential, and, after all, only efficacious security
for the rights and privileges of the people, which is attainable in civil
society.(1)
If the representatives of the people betray their constituents, there is
then no resource left but in the exertion of that original right of
self-defense which is paramount to all positive forms of government, and
which against the usurpations of the national rulers, may be exerted with
infinitely better prospect of success than against those of the rulers of
an individual state. In a single state, if the persons intrusted with
supreme power become usurpers, the different parcels, subdivisions, or
districts of which it consists, having no distinct government in each, can
take no regular measures for defense. The citizens must rush tumultuously
to arms, without concert, without system, without resource; except in
their courage and despair. The usurpers, clothed with the forms of legal
authority, can too often crush the opposition in embryo. The smaller the
extent of the territory, the more difficult will it be for the people to
form a regular or systematic plan of opposition, and the more easy will it
be to defeat their early efforts. Intelligence can be more speedily
obtained of their preparations and movements, and the military force in
the possession of the usurpers can be more rapidly directed against the
part where the opposition has begun. In this situation there must be a
peculiar coincidence of circumstances to insure success to the popular
resistance.
The obstacles to usurpation and the facilities of resistance increase with
the increased extent of the state, provided the citizens understand their
rights and are disposed to defend them. The natural strength of the people
in a large community, in proportion to the artificial strength of the
government, is greater than in a small, and of course more competent to a
struggle with the attempts of the government to establish a tyranny. But
in a confederacy the people, without exaggeration, may be said to be
entirely the masters of their own fate. Power being almost always the
rival of power, the general government will at all times stand ready to
check the usurpations of the state governments, and these will have the
same disposition towards the general government. The people, by throwing
themselves into either scale, will infallibly make it preponderate. If
their rights are invaded by either, they can make use of the other as the
instrument of redress. How wise will it be in them by cherishing the union
to preserve to themselves an advantage which can never be too highly
prized!
It may safely be received as an axiom in our political system, that the
State governments will, in all possible contingencies, afford complete
security against invasions of the public liberty by the national
authority. Projects of usurpation cannot be masked under pretenses so
likely to escape the penetration of select bodies of men, as of the people
at large. The legislatures will have better means of information. They can
discover the danger at a distance; and possessing all the organs of civil
power, and the confidence of the people, they can at once adopt a regular
plan of opposition, in which they can combine all the resources of the
community. They can readily communicate with each other in the different
States, and unite their common forces for the protection of their common
liberty.
The great extent of the country is a further security. We have already
experienced its utility against the attacks of a foreign power. And it
would have precisely the same effect against the enterprises of ambitious
rulers in the national councils. If the federal army should be able to
quell the resistance of one State, the distant States would have it in
their power to make head with fresh forces. The advantages obtained in one
place must be abandoned to subdue the opposition in others; and the moment
the part which had been reduced to submission was left to itself, its
efforts would be renewed, and its resistance revive.
We should recollect that the extent of the military force must, at all
events, be regulated by the resources of the country. For a long time to
come, it will not be possible to maintain a large army; and as the means
of doing this increase, the population and natural strength of the
community will proportionably increase. When will the time arrive that the
federal government can raise and maintain an army capable of erecting a
despotism over the great body of the people of an immense empire, who are
in a situation, through the medium of their State governments, to take
measures for their own defense, with all the celerity, regularity, and
system of independent nations? The apprehension may be considered as a
disease, for which there can be found no cure in the resources of argument
and reasoning.
PUBLIUS
1. Its full efficacy will be examined hereafter.
FEDERALIST No. 29. Concerning the Militia
From the New York Packet. Wednesday, January 9, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE power of regulating the militia, and of commanding its services in
times of insurrection and invasion are natural incidents to the duties of
superintending the common defense, and of watching over the internal peace
of the Confederacy.
It requires no skill in the science of war to discern that uniformity in
the organization and discipline of the militia would be attended with the
most beneficial effects, whenever they were called into service for the
public defense. It would enable them to discharge the duties of the camp
and of the field with mutual intelligence and concert an advantage of
peculiar moment in the operations of an army; and it would fit them much
sooner to acquire the degree of proficiency in military functions which
would be essential to their usefulness. This desirable uniformity can only
be accomplished by confiding the regulation of the militia to the
direction of the national authority. It is, therefore, with the most
evident propriety, that the plan of the convention proposes to empower the
Union "to provide for organizing, arming, and disciplining the militia,
and for governing such part of them as may be employed in the service of
the United States, RESERVING TO THE STATES RESPECTIVELY THE APPOINTMENT OF
THE OFFICERS, AND THE AUTHORITY OF TRAINING THE MILITIA ACCORDING TO THE
DISCIPLINE PRESCRIBED BY CONGRESS."
Of the different grounds which have been taken in opposition to the plan
of the convention, there is none that was so little to have been expected,
or is so untenable in itself, as the one from which this particular
provision has been attacked. If a well-regulated militia be the most
natural defense of a free country, it ought certainly to be under the
regulation and at the disposal of that body which is constituted the
guardian of the national security. If standing armies are dangerous to
liberty, an efficacious power over the militia, in the body to whose care
the protection of the State is committed, ought, as far as possible, to
take away the inducement and the pretext to such unfriendly institutions.
If the federal government can command the aid of the militia in those
emergencies which call for the military arm in support of the civil
magistrate, it can the better dispense with the employment of a different
kind of force. If it cannot avail itself of the former, it will be obliged
to recur to the latter. To render an army unnecessary, will be a more
certain method of preventing its existence than a thousand prohibitions
upon paper.
In order to cast an odium upon the power of calling forth the militia to
execute the laws of the Union, it has been remarked that there is nowhere
any provision in the proposed Constitution for calling out the POSSE
COMITATUS, to assist the magistrate in the execution of his duty, whence
it has been inferred, that military force was intended to be his only
auxiliary. There is a striking incoherence in the objections which have
appeared, and sometimes even from the same quarter, not much calculated to
inspire a very favorable opinion of the sincerity or fair dealing of their
authors. The same persons who tell us in one breath, that the powers of
the federal government will be despotic and unlimited, inform us in the
next, that it has not authority sufficient even to call out the POSSE
COMITATUS. The latter, fortunately, is as much short of the truth as the
former exceeds it. It would be as absurd to doubt, that a right to pass
all laws NECESSARY AND PROPER to execute its declared powers, would
include that of requiring the assistance of the citizens to the officers
who may be intrusted with the execution of those laws, as it would be to
believe, that a right to enact laws necessary and proper for the
imposition and collection of taxes would involve that of varying the rules
of descent and of the alienation of landed property, or of abolishing the
trial by jury in cases relating to it. It being therefore evident that the
supposition of a want of power to require the aid of the POSSE COMITATUS
is entirely destitute of color, it will follow, that the conclusion which
has been drawn from it, in its application to the authority of the federal
government over the militia, is as uncandid as it is illogical. What
reason could there be to infer, that force was intended to be the sole
instrument of authority, merely because there is a power to make use of it
when necessary? What shall we think of the motives which could induce men
of sense to reason in this manner? How shall we prevent a conflict between
charity and conviction?
By a curious refinement upon the spirit of republican jealousy, we are
even taught to apprehend danger from the militia itself, in the hands of
the federal government. It is observed that select corps may be formed,
composed of the young and ardent, who may be rendered subservient to the
views of arbitrary power. What plan for the regulation of the militia may
be pursued by the national government, is impossible to be foreseen. But
so far from viewing the matter in the same light with those who object to
select corps as dangerous, were the Constitution ratified, and were I to
deliver my sentiments to a member of the federal legislature from this
State on the subject of a militia establishment, I should hold to him, in
substance, the following discourse:
"The project of disciplining all the militia of the United States is as
futile as it would be injurious, if it were capable of being carried into
execution. A tolerable expertness in military movements is a business that
requires time and practice. It is not a day, or even a week, that will
suffice for the attainment of it. To oblige the great body of the
yeomanry, and of the other classes of the citizens, to be under arms for
the purpose of going through military exercises and evolutions, as often
as might be necessary to acquire the degree of perfection which would
entitle them to the character of a well-regulated militia, would be a real
grievance to the people, and a serious public inconvenience and loss. It
would form an annual deduction from the productive labor of the country,
to an amount which, calculating upon the present numbers of the people,
would not fall far short of the whole expense of the civil establishments
of all the States. To attempt a thing which would abridge the mass of
labor and industry to so considerable an extent, would be unwise: and the
experiment, if made, could not succeed, because it would not long be
endured. Little more can reasonably be aimed at, with respect to the
people at large, than to have them properly armed and equipped; and in
order to see that this be not neglected, it will be necessary to assemble
them once or twice in the course of a year.
"But though the scheme of disciplining the whole nation must be abandoned
as mischievous or impracticable; yet it is a matter of the utmost
importance that a well-digested plan should, as soon as possible, be
adopted for the proper establishment of the militia. The attention of the
government ought particularly to be directed to the formation of a select
corps of moderate extent, upon such principles as will really fit them for
service in case of need. By thus circumscribing the plan, it will be
possible to have an excellent body of well-trained militia, ready to take
the field whenever the defense of the State shall require it. This will
not only lessen the call for military establishments, but if circumstances
should at any time oblige the government to form an army of any magnitude
that army can never be formidable to the liberties of the people while
there is a large body of citizens, little, if at all, inferior to them in
discipline and the use of arms, who stand ready to defend their own rights
and those of their fellow-citizens. This appears to me the only substitute
that can be devised for a standing army, and the best possible security
against it, if it should exist."
Thus differently from the adversaries of the proposed Constitution should
I reason on the same subject, deducing arguments of safety from the very
sources which they represent as fraught with danger and perdition. But how
the national legislature may reason on the point, is a thing which neither
they nor I can foresee.
There is something so far-fetched and so extravagant in the idea of danger
to liberty from the militia, that one is at a loss whether to treat it
with gravity or with raillery; whether to consider it as a mere trial of
skill, like the paradoxes of rhetoricians; as a disingenuous artifice to
instil prejudices at any price; or as the serious offspring of political
fanaticism. Where in the name of common-sense, are our fears to end if we
may not trust our sons, our brothers, our neighbors, our fellow-citizens?
What shadow of danger can there be from men who are daily mingling with
the rest of their countrymen and who participate with them in the same
feelings, sentiments, habits and interests? What reasonable cause of
apprehension can be inferred from a power in the Union to prescribe
regulations for the militia, and to command its services when necessary,
while the particular States are to have the SOLE AND EXCLUSIVE APPOINTMENT
OF THE OFFICERS? If it were possible seriously to indulge a jealousy of
the militia upon any conceivable establishment under the federal
government, the circumstance of the officers being in the appointment of
the States ought at once to extinguish it. There can be no doubt that this
circumstance will always secure to them a preponderating influence over
the militia.
In reading many of the publications against the Constitution, a man is apt
to imagine that he is perusing some ill-written tale or romance, which
instead of natural and agreeable images, exhibits to the mind nothing but
frightful and distorted shapes—
"Gorgons, hydras, and chimeras dire";
discoloring and disfiguring whatever it represents, and transforming
everything it touches into a monster.
A sample of this is to be observed in the exaggerated and improbable
suggestions which have taken place respecting the power of calling for the
services of the militia. That of New Hampshire is to be marched to
Georgia, of Georgia to New Hampshire, of New York to Kentucky, and of
Kentucky to Lake Champlain. Nay, the debts due to the French and Dutch are
to be paid in militiamen instead of louis d'ors and ducats. At one moment
there is to be a large army to lay prostrate the liberties of the people;
at another moment the militia of Virginia are to be dragged from their
homes five or six hundred miles, to tame the republican contumacy of
Massachusetts; and that of Massachusetts is to be transported an equal
distance to subdue the refractory haughtiness of the aristocratic
Virginians. Do the persons who rave at this rate imagine that their art or
their eloquence can impose any conceits or absurdities upon the people of
America for infallible truths?
If there should be an army to be made use of as the engine of despotism,
what need of the militia? If there should be no army, whither would the
militia, irritated by being called upon to undertake a distant and
hopeless expedition, for the purpose of riveting the chains of slavery
upon a part of their countrymen, direct their course, but to the seat of
the tyrants, who had meditated so foolish as well as so wicked a project,
to crush them in their imagined intrenchments of power, and to make them
an example of the just vengeance of an abused and incensed people? Is this
the way in which usurpers stride to dominion over a numerous and
enlightened nation? Do they begin by exciting the detestation of the very
instruments of their intended usurpations? Do they usually commence their
career by wanton and disgustful acts of power, calculated to answer no
end, but to draw upon themselves universal hatred and execration? Are
suppositions of this sort the sober admonitions of discerning patriots to
a discerning people? Or are they the inflammatory ravings of incendiaries
or distempered enthusiasts? If we were even to suppose the national rulers
actuated by the most ungovernable ambition, it is impossible to believe
that they would employ such preposterous means to accomplish their
designs.
In times of insurrection, or invasion, it would be natural and proper that
the militia of a neighboring State should be marched into another, to
resist a common enemy, or to guard the republic against the violence of
faction or sedition. This was frequently the case, in respect to the first
object, in the course of the late war; and this mutual succor is, indeed,
a principal end of our political association. If the power of affording it
be placed under the direction of the Union, there will be no danger of a
supine and listless inattention to the dangers of a neighbor, till its
near approach had superadded the incitements of self-preservation to the
too feeble impulses of duty and sympathy.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 30. Concerning the General Power of Taxation
From the New York Packet. Friday, December 28, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT HAS been already observed that the federal government ought to possess
the power of providing for the support of the national forces; in which
proposition was intended to be included the expense of raising troops, of
building and equipping fleets, and all other expenses in any wise
connected with military arrangements and operations. But these are not the
only objects to which the jurisdiction of the Union, in respect to
revenue, must necessarily be empowered to extend. It must embrace a
provision for the support of the national civil list; for the payment of
the national debts contracted, or that may be contracted; and, in general,
for all those matters which will call for disbursements out of the
national treasury. The conclusion is, that there must be interwoven, in
the frame of the government, a general power of taxation, in one shape or
another.
Money is, with propriety, considered as the vital principle of the body
politic; as that which sustains its life and motion, and enables it to
perform its most essential functions. A complete power, therefore, to
procure a regular and adequate supply of it, as far as the resources of
the community will permit, may be regarded as an indispensable ingredient
in every constitution. From a deficiency in this particular, one of two
evils must ensue; either the people must be subjected to continual
plunder, as a substitute for a more eligible mode of supplying the public
wants, or the government must sink into a fatal atrophy, and, in a short
course of time, perish.
In the Ottoman or Turkish empire, the sovereign, though in other respects
absolute master of the lives and fortunes of his subjects, has no right to
impose a new tax. The consequence is that he permits the bashaws or
governors of provinces to pillage the people without mercy; and, in turn,
squeezes out of them the sums of which he stands in need, to satisfy his
own exigencies and those of the state. In America, from a like cause, the
government of the Union has gradually dwindled into a state of decay,
approaching nearly to annihilation. Who can doubt, that the happiness of
the people in both countries would be promoted by competent authorities in
the proper hands, to provide the revenues which the necessities of the
public might require?
The present Confederation, feeble as it is intended to repose in the
United States, an unlimited power of providing for the pecuniary wants of
the Union. But proceeding upon an erroneous principle, it has been done in
such a manner as entirely to have frustrated the intention. Congress, by
the articles which compose that compact (as has already been stated), are
authorized to ascertain and call for any sums of money necessary, in their
judgment, to the service of the United States; and their requisitions, if
conformable to the rule of apportionment, are in every constitutional
sense obligatory upon the States. These have no right to question the
propriety of the demand; no discretion beyond that of devising the ways
and means of furnishing the sums demanded. But though this be strictly and
truly the case; though the assumption of such a right would be an
infringement of the articles of Union; though it may seldom or never have
been avowedly claimed, yet in practice it has been constantly exercised,
and would continue to be so, as long as the revenues of the Confederacy
should remain dependent on the intermediate agency of its members. What
the consequences of this system have been, is within the knowledge of
every man the least conversant in our public affairs, and has been amply
unfolded in different parts of these inquiries. It is this which has
chiefly contributed to reduce us to a situation, which affords ample cause
both of mortification to ourselves, and of triumph to our enemies.
What remedy can there be for this situation, but in a change of the system
which has produced it in a change of the fallacious and delusive system of
quotas and requisitions? What substitute can there be imagined for this
ignis fatuus in finance, but that of permitting the national government to
raise its own revenues by the ordinary methods of taxation authorized in
every well-ordered constitution of civil government? Ingenious men may
declaim with plausibility on any subject; but no human ingenuity can point
out any other expedient to rescue us from the inconveniences and
embarrassments naturally resulting from defective supplies of the public
treasury.
The more intelligent adversaries of the new Constitution admit the force
of this reasoning; but they qualify their admission by a distinction
between what they call INTERNAL and EXTERNAL taxation. The former they
would reserve to the State governments; the latter, which they explain
into commercial imposts, or rather duties on imported articles, they
declare themselves willing to concede to the federal head. This
distinction, however, would violate the maxim of good sense and sound
policy, which dictates that every POWER ought to be in proportion to its
OBJECT; and would still leave the general government in a kind of tutelage
to the State governments, inconsistent with every idea of vigor or
efficiency. Who can pretend that commercial imposts are, or would be,
alone equal to the present and future exigencies of the Union? Taking into
the account the existing debt, foreign and domestic, upon any plan of
extinguishment which a man moderately impressed with the importance of
public justice and public credit could approve, in addition to the
establishments which all parties will acknowledge to be necessary, we
could not reasonably flatter ourselves, that this resource alone, upon the
most improved scale, would even suffice for its present necessities. Its
future necessities admit not of calculation or limitation; and upon the
principle, more than once adverted to, the power of making provision for
them as they arise ought to be equally unconfined. I believe it may be
regarded as a position warranted by the history of mankind, that, IN THE
USUAL PROGRESS OF THINGS, THE NECESSITIES OF A NATION, IN EVERY STAGE OF
ITS EXISTENCE, WILL BE FOUND AT LEAST EQUAL TO ITS RESOURCES.
To say that deficiencies may be provided for by requisitions upon the
States, is on the one hand to acknowledge that this system cannot be
depended upon, and on the other hand to depend upon it for every thing
beyond a certain limit. Those who have carefully attended to its vices and
deformities as they have been exhibited by experience or delineated in the
course of these papers, must feel invincible repugnancy to trusting the
national interests in any degree to its operation. Its inevitable
tendency, whenever it is brought into activity, must be to enfeeble the
Union, and sow the seeds of discord and contention between the federal
head and its members, and between the members themselves. Can it be
expected that the deficiencies would be better supplied in this mode than
the total wants of the Union have heretofore been supplied in the same
mode? It ought to be recollected that if less will be required from the
States, they will have proportionably less means to answer the demand. If
the opinions of those who contend for the distinction which has been
mentioned were to be received as evidence of truth, one would be led to
conclude that there was some known point in the economy of national
affairs at which it would be safe to stop and to say: Thus far the ends of
public happiness will be promoted by supplying the wants of government,
and all beyond this is unworthy of our care or anxiety. How is it possible
that a government half supplied and always necessitous, can fulfill the
purposes of its institution, can provide for the security, advance the
prosperity, or support the reputation of the commonwealth? How can it ever
possess either energy or stability, dignity or credit, confidence at home
or respectability abroad? How can its administration be any thing else
than a succession of expedients temporizing, impotent, disgraceful? How
will it be able to avoid a frequent sacrifice of its engagements to
immediate necessity? How can it undertake or execute any liberal or
enlarged plans of public good?
Let us attend to what would be the effects of this situation in the very
first war in which we should happen to be engaged. We will presume, for
argument's sake, that the revenue arising from the impost duties answers
the purposes of a provision for the public debt and of a peace
establishment for the Union. Thus circumstanced, a war breaks out. What
would be the probable conduct of the government in such an emergency?
Taught by experience that proper dependence could not be placed on the
success of requisitions, unable by its own authority to lay hold of fresh
resources, and urged by considerations of national danger, would it not be
driven to the expedient of diverting the funds already appropriated from
their proper objects to the defense of the State? It is not easy to see
how a step of this kind could be avoided; and if it should be taken, it is
evident that it would prove the destruction of public credit at the very
moment that it was becoming essential to the public safety. To imagine
that at such a crisis credit might be dispensed with, would be the extreme
of infatuation. In the modern system of war, nations the most wealthy are
obliged to have recourse to large loans. A country so little opulent as
ours must feel this necessity in a much stronger degree. But who would
lend to a government that prefaced its overtures for borrowing by an act
which demonstrated that no reliance could be placed on the steadiness of
its measures for paying? The loans it might be able to procure would be as
limited in their extent as burdensome in their conditions. They would be
made upon the same principles that usurers commonly lend to bankrupt and
fraudulent debtors, with a sparing hand and at enormous premiums.
It may perhaps be imagined that, from the scantiness of the resources of
the country, the necessity of diverting the established funds in the case
supposed would exist, though the national government should possess an
unrestrained power of taxation. But two considerations will serve to quiet
all apprehension on this head: one is, that we are sure the resources of
the community, in their full extent, will be brought into activity for the
benefit of the Union; the other is, that whatever deficiences there may
be, can without difficulty be supplied by loans.
The power of creating new funds upon new objects of taxation, by its own
authority, would enable the national government to borrow as far as its
necessities might require. Foreigners, as well as the citizens of America,
could then reasonably repose confidence in its engagements; but to depend
upon a government that must itself depend upon thirteen other governments
for the means of fulfilling its contracts, when once its situation is
clearly understood, would require a degree of credulity not often to be
met with in the pecuniary transactions of mankind, and little reconcilable
with the usual sharp-sightedness of avarice.
Reflections of this kind may have trifling weight with men who hope to see
realized in America the halcyon scenes of the poetic or fabulous age; but
to those who believe we are likely to experience a common portion of the
vicissitudes and calamities which have fallen to the lot of other nations,
they must appear entitled to serious attention. Such men must behold the
actual situation of their country with painful solicitude, and deprecate
the evils which ambition or revenge might, with too much facility, inflict
upon it.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 31. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General
Power of Taxation)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 1, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN DISQUISITIONS of every kind, there are certain primary truths, or first
principles, upon which all subsequent reasonings must depend. These
contain an internal evidence which, antecedent to all reflection or
combination, commands the assent of the mind. Where it produces not this
effect, it must proceed either from some defect or disorder in the organs
of perception, or from the influence of some strong interest, or passion,
or prejudice. Of this nature are the maxims in geometry, that "the whole
is greater than its part; things equal to the same are equal to one
another; two straight lines cannot enclose a space; and all right angles
are equal to each other." Of the same nature are these other maxims in
ethics and politics, that there cannot be an effect without a cause; that
the means ought to be proportioned to the end; that every power ought to
be commensurate with its object; that there ought to be no limitation of a
power destined to effect a purpose which is itself incapable of
limitation. And there are other truths in the two latter sciences which,
if they cannot pretend to rank in the class of axioms, are yet such direct
inferences from them, and so obvious in themselves, and so agreeable to
the natural and unsophisticated dictates of common-sense, that they
challenge the assent of a sound and unbiased mind, with a degree of force
and conviction almost equally irresistible.
The objects of geometrical inquiry are so entirely abstracted from those
pursuits which stir up and put in motion the unruly passions of the human
heart, that mankind, without difficulty, adopt not only the more simple
theorems of the science, but even those abstruse paradoxes which, however
they may appear susceptible of demonstration, are at variance with the
natural conceptions which the mind, without the aid of philosophy, would
be led to entertain upon the subject. The INFINITE DIVISIBILITY of matter,
or, in other words, the INFINITE divisibility of a FINITE thing, extending
even to the minutest atom, is a point agreed among geometricians, though
not less incomprehensible to common-sense than any of those mysteries in
religion, against which the batteries of infidelity have been so
industriously leveled.
But in the sciences of morals and politics, men are found far less
tractable. To a certain degree, it is right and useful that this should be
the case. Caution and investigation are a necessary armor against error
and imposition. But this untractableness may be carried too far, and may
degenerate into obstinacy, perverseness, or disingenuity. Though it cannot
be pretended that the principles of moral and political knowledge have, in
general, the same degree of certainty with those of the mathematics, yet
they have much better claims in this respect than, to judge from the
conduct of men in particular situations, we should be disposed to allow
them. The obscurity is much oftener in the passions and prejudices of the
reasoner than in the subject. Men, upon too many occasions, do not give
their own understandings fair play; but, yielding to some untoward bias,
they entangle themselves in words and confound themselves in subtleties.
How else could it happen (if we admit the objectors to be sincere in their
opposition), that positions so clear as those which manifest the necessity
of a general power of taxation in the government of the Union, should have
to encounter any adversaries among men of discernment? Though these
positions have been elsewhere fully stated, they will perhaps not be
improperly recapitulated in this place, as introductory to an examination
of what may have been offered by way of objection to them. They are in
substance as follows:
A government ought to contain in itself every power requisite to the full
accomplishment of the objects committed to its care, and to the complete
execution of the trusts for which it is responsible, free from every other
control but a regard to the public good and to the sense of the people.
As the duties of superintending the national defense and of securing the
public peace against foreign or domestic violence involve a provision for
casualties and dangers to which no possible limits can be assigned, the
power of making that provision ought to know no other bounds than the
exigencies of the nation and the resources of the community.
As revenue is the essential engine by which the means of answering the
national exigencies must be procured, the power of procuring that article
in its full extent must necessarily be comprehended in that of providing
for those exigencies.
As theory and practice conspire to prove that the power of procuring
revenue is unavailing when exercised over the States in their collective
capacities, the federal government must of necessity be invested with an
unqualified power of taxation in the ordinary modes.
Did not experience evince the contrary, it would be natural to conclude
that the propriety of a general power of taxation in the national
government might safely be permitted to rest on the evidence of these
propositions, unassisted by any additional arguments or illustrations. But
we find, in fact, that the antagonists of the proposed Constitution, so
far from acquiescing in their justness or truth, seem to make their
principal and most zealous effort against this part of the plan. It may
therefore be satisfactory to analyze the arguments with which they combat
it.
Those of them which have been most labored with that view, seem in
substance to amount to this: "It is not true, because the exigencies of
the Union may not be susceptible of limitation, that its power of laying
taxes ought to be unconfined. Revenue is as requisite to the purposes of
the local administrations as to those of the Union; and the former are at
least of equal importance with the latter to the happiness of the people.
It is, therefore, as necessary that the State governments should be able
to command the means of supplying their wants, as that the national
government should possess the like faculty in respect to the wants of the
Union. But an indefinite power of taxation in the LATTER might, and
probably would in time, deprive the FORMER of the means of providing for
their own necessities; and would subject them entirely to the mercy of the
national legislature. As the laws of the Union are to become the supreme
law of the land, as it is to have power to pass all laws that may be
NECESSARY for carrying into execution the authorities with which it is
proposed to vest it, the national government might at any time abolish the
taxes imposed for State objects upon the pretense of an interference with
its own. It might allege a necessity of doing this in order to give
efficacy to the national revenues. And thus all the resources of taxation
might by degrees become the subjects of federal monopoly, to the entire
exclusion and destruction of the State governments."
This mode of reasoning appears sometimes to turn upon the supposition of
usurpation in the national government; at other times it seems to be
designed only as a deduction from the constitutional operation of its
intended powers. It is only in the latter light that it can be admitted to
have any pretensions to fairness. The moment we launch into conjectures
about the usurpations of the federal government, we get into an
unfathomable abyss, and fairly put ourselves out of the reach of all
reasoning. Imagination may range at pleasure till it gets bewildered
amidst the labyrinths of an enchanted castle, and knows not on which side
to turn to extricate itself from the perplexities into which it has so
rashly adventured. Whatever may be the limits or modifications of the
powers of the Union, it is easy to imagine an endless train of possible
dangers; and by indulging an excess of jealousy and timidity, we may bring
ourselves to a state of absolute scepticism and irresolution. I repeat
here what I have observed in substance in another place, that all
observations founded upon the danger of usurpation ought to be referred to
the composition and structure of the government, not to the nature or
extent of its powers. The State governments, by their original
constitutions, are invested with complete sovereignty. In what does our
security consist against usurpation from that quarter? Doubtless in the
manner of their formation, and in a due dependence of those who are to
administer them upon the people. If the proposed construction of the
federal government be found, upon an impartial examination of it, to be
such as to afford, to a proper extent, the same species of security, all
apprehensions on the score of usurpation ought to be discarded.
It should not be forgotten that a disposition in the State governments to
encroach upon the rights of the Union is quite as probable as a
disposition in the Union to encroach upon the rights of the State
governments. What side would be likely to prevail in such a conflict, must
depend on the means which the contending parties could employ toward
insuring success. As in republics strength is always on the side of the
people, and as there are weighty reasons to induce a belief that the State
governments will commonly possess most influence over them, the natural
conclusion is that such contests will be most apt to end to the
disadvantage of the Union; and that there is greater probability of
encroachments by the members upon the federal head, than by the federal
head upon the members. But it is evident that all conjectures of this kind
must be extremely vague and fallible: and that it is by far the safest
course to lay them altogether aside, and to confine our attention wholly
to the nature and extent of the powers as they are delineated in the
Constitution. Every thing beyond this must be left to the prudence and
firmness of the people; who, as they will hold the scales in their own
hands, it is to be hoped, will always take care to preserve the
constitutional equilibrium between the general and the State governments.
Upon this ground, which is evidently the true one, it will not be
difficult to obviate the objections which have been made to an indefinite
power of taxation in the United States.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 32. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General
Power of Taxation)
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 2, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
ALTHOUGH I am of opinion that there would be no real danger of the
consequences which seem to be apprehended to the State governments from a
power in the Union to control them in the levies of money, because I am
persuaded that the sense of the people, the extreme hazard of provoking
the resentments of the State governments, and a conviction of the utility
and necessity of local administrations for local purposes, would be a
complete barrier against the oppressive use of such a power; yet I am
willing here to allow, in its full extent, the justness of the reasoning
which requires that the individual States should possess an independent
and uncontrollable authority to raise their own revenues for the supply of
their own wants. And making this concession, I affirm that (with the sole
exception of duties on imports and exports) they would, under the plan of
the convention, retain that authority in the most absolute and unqualified
sense; and that an attempt on the part of the national government to
abridge them in the exercise of it, would be a violent assumption of
power, unwarranted by any article or clause of its Constitution.
An entire consolidation of the States into one complete national
sovereignty would imply an entire subordination of the parts; and whatever
powers might remain in them, would be altogether dependent on the general
will. But as the plan of the convention aims only at a partial union or
consolidation, the State governments would clearly retain all the rights
of sovereignty which they before had, and which were not, by that act,
EXCLUSIVELY delegated to the United States. This exclusive delegation, or
rather this alienation, of State sovereignty, would only exist in three
cases: where the Constitution in express terms granted an exclusive
authority to the Union; where it granted in one instance an authority to
the Union, and in another prohibited the States from exercising the like
authority; and where it granted an authority to the Union, to which a
similar authority in the States would be absolutely and totally
CONTRADICTORY and REPUGNANT. I use these terms to distinguish this last
case from another which might appear to resemble it, but which would, in
fact, be essentially different; I mean where the exercise of a concurrent
jurisdiction might be productive of occasional interferences in the POLICY
of any branch of administration, but would not imply any direct
contradiction or repugnancy in point of constitutional authority. These
three cases of exclusive jurisdiction in the federal government may be
exemplified by the following instances: The last clause but one in the
eighth section of the first article provides expressly that Congress shall
exercise "EXCLUSIVE LEGISLATION" over the district to be appropriated as
the seat of government. This answers to the first case. The first clause
of the same section empowers Congress "to lay and collect taxes, duties,
imposts and excises"; and the second clause of the tenth section of the
same article declares that, "NO STATE SHALL, without the consent of
Congress, lay any imposts or duties on imports or exports, except for the
purpose of executing its inspection laws." Hence would result an exclusive
power in the Union to lay duties on imports and exports, with the
particular exception mentioned; but this power is abridged by another
clause, which declares that no tax or duty shall be laid on articles
exported from any State; in consequence of which qualification, it now
only extends to the DUTIES ON IMPORTS. This answers to the second case.
The third will be found in that clause which declares that Congress shall
have power "to establish an UNIFORM RULE of naturalization throughout the
United States." This must necessarily be exclusive; because if each State
had power to prescribe a DISTINCT RULE, there could not be a UNIFORM RULE.
A case which may perhaps be thought to resemble the latter, but which is
in fact widely different, affects the question immediately under
consideration. I mean the power of imposing taxes on all articles other
than exports and imports. This, I contend, is manifestly a concurrent and
coequal authority in the United States and in the individual States. There
is plainly no expression in the granting clause which makes that power
EXCLUSIVE in the Union. There is no independent clause or sentence which
prohibits the States from exercising it. So far is this from being the
case, that a plain and conclusive argument to the contrary is to be
deduced from the restraint laid upon the States in relation to duties on
imports and exports. This restriction implies an admission that, if it
were not inserted, the States would possess the power it excludes; and it
implies a further admission, that as to all other taxes, the authority of
the States remains undiminished. In any other view it would be both
unnecessary and dangerous; it would be unnecessary, because if the grant
to the Union of the power of laying such duties implied the exclusion of
the States, or even their subordination in this particular, there could be
no need of such a restriction; it would be dangerous, because the
introduction of it leads directly to the conclusion which has been
mentioned, and which, if the reasoning of the objectors be just, could not
have been intended; I mean that the States, in all cases to which the
restriction did not apply, would have a concurrent power of taxation with
the Union. The restriction in question amounts to what lawyers call a
NEGATIVE PREGNANT that is, a NEGATION of one thing, and an AFFIRMANCE of
another; a negation of the authority of the States to impose taxes on
imports and exports, and an affirmance of their authority to impose them
on all other articles. It would be mere sophistry to argue that it was
meant to exclude them ABSOLUTELY from the imposition of taxes of the
former kind, and to leave them at liberty to lay others SUBJECT TO THE
CONTROL of the national legislature. The restraining or prohibitory clause
only says, that they shall not, WITHOUT THE CONSENT OF CONGRESS, lay such
duties; and if we are to understand this in the sense last mentioned, the
Constitution would then be made to introduce a formal provision for the
sake of a very absurd conclusion; which is, that the States, WITH THE
CONSENT of the national legislature, might tax imports and exports; and
that they might tax every other article, UNLESS CONTROLLED by the same
body. If this was the intention, why not leave it, in the first instance,
to what is alleged to be the natural operation of the original clause,
conferring a general power of taxation upon the Union? It is evident that
this could not have been the intention, and that it will not bear a
construction of the kind.
As to a supposition of repugnancy between the power of taxation in the
States and in the Union, it cannot be supported in that sense which would
be requisite to work an exclusion of the States. It is, indeed, possible
that a tax might be laid on a particular article by a State which might
render it INEXPEDIENT that thus a further tax should be laid on the same
article by the Union; but it would not imply a constitutional inability to
impose a further tax. The quantity of the imposition, the expediency or
inexpediency of an increase on either side, would be mutually questions of
prudence; but there would be involved no direct contradiction of power.
The particular policy of the national and of the State systems of finance
might now and then not exactly coincide, and might require reciprocal
forbearances. It is not, however a mere possibility of inconvenience in
the exercise of powers, but an immediate constitutional repugnancy that
can by implication alienate and extinguish a pre-existing right of
sovereignty.
The necessity of a concurrent jurisdiction in certain cases results from
the division of the sovereign power; and the rule that all authorities, of
which the States are not explicitly divested in favor of the Union, remain
with them in full vigor, is not a theoretical consequence of that
division, but is clearly admitted by the whole tenor of the instrument
which contains the articles of the proposed Constitution. We there find
that, notwithstanding the affirmative grants of general authorities, there
has been the most pointed care in those cases where it was deemed improper
that the like authorities should reside in the States, to insert negative
clauses prohibiting the exercise of them by the States. The tenth section
of the first article consists altogether of such provisions. This
circumstance is a clear indication of the sense of the convention, and
furnishes a rule of interpretation out of the body of the act, which
justifies the position I have advanced and refutes every hypothesis to the
contrary.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 33. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General
Power of Taxation)
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 2, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE residue of the argument against the provisions of the Constitution in
respect to taxation is ingrafted upon the following clause. The last
clause of the eighth section of the first article of the plan under
consideration authorizes the national legislature "to make all laws which
shall be NECESSARY and PROPER for carrying into execution THE POWERS by
that Constitution vested in the government of the United States, or in any
department or officer thereof"; and the second clause of the sixth article
declares, "that the Constitution and the laws of the United States made IN
PURSUANCE THEREOF, and the treaties made by their authority shall be the
SUPREME LAW of the land, any thing in the constitution or laws of any
State to the contrary notwithstanding."
These two clauses have been the source of much virulent invective and
petulant declamation against the proposed Constitution. They have been
held up to the people in all the exaggerated colors of misrepresentation
as the pernicious engines by which their local governments were to be
destroyed and their liberties exterminated; as the hideous monster whose
devouring jaws would spare neither sex nor age, nor high nor low, nor
sacred nor profane; and yet, strange as it may appear, after all this
clamor, to those who may not have happened to contemplate them in the same
light, it may be affirmed with perfect confidence that the constitutional
operation of the intended government would be precisely the same, if these
clauses were entirely obliterated, as if they were repeated in every
article. They are only declaratory of a truth which would have resulted by
necessary and unavoidable implication from the very act of constituting a
federal government, and vesting it with certain specified powers. This is
so clear a proposition, that moderation itself can scarcely listen to the
railings which have been so copiously vented against this part of the
plan, without emotions that disturb its equanimity.
What is a power, but the ability or faculty of doing a thing? What is the
ability to do a thing, but the power of employing the MEANS necessary to
its execution? What is a LEGISLATIVE power, but a power of making LAWS?
What are the MEANS to execute a LEGISLATIVE power but LAWS? What is the
power of laying and collecting taxes, but a LEGISLATIVE POWER, or a power
of MAKING LAWS, to lay and collect taxes? What are the proper means of
executing such a power, but NECESSARY and PROPER laws?
This simple train of inquiry furnishes us at once with a test by which to
judge of the true nature of the clause complained of. It conducts us to
this palpable truth, that a power to lay and collect taxes must be a power
to pass all laws NECESSARY and PROPER for the execution of that power; and
what does the unfortunate and calumniated provision in question do more
than declare the same truth, to wit, that the national legislature, to
whom the power of laying and collecting taxes had been previously given,
might, in the execution of that power, pass all laws NECESSARY and PROPER
to carry it into effect? I have applied these observations thus
particularly to the power of taxation, because it is the immediate subject
under consideration, and because it is the most important of the
authorities proposed to be conferred upon the Union. But the same process
will lead to the same result, in relation to all other powers declared in
the Constitution. And it is EXPRESSLY to execute these powers that the
sweeping clause, as it has been affectedly called, authorizes the national
legislature to pass all NECESSARY and PROPER laws. If there is any thing
exceptionable, it must be sought for in the specific powers upon which
this general declaration is predicated. The declaration itself, though it
may be chargeable with tautology or redundancy, is at least perfectly
harmless.
But SUSPICION may ask, Why then was it introduced? The answer is, that it
could only have been done for greater caution, and to guard against all
cavilling refinements in those who might hereafter feel a disposition to
curtail and evade the legitimate authorities of the Union. The Convention
probably foresaw, what it has been a principal aim of these papers to
inculcate, that the danger which most threatens our political welfare is
that the State governments will finally sap the foundations of the Union;
and might therefore think it necessary, in so cardinal a point, to leave
nothing to construction. Whatever may have been the inducement to it, the
wisdom of the precaution is evident from the cry which has been raised
against it; as that very cry betrays a disposition to question the great
and essential truth which it is manifestly the object of that provision to
declare.
But it may be again asked, Who is to judge of the NECESSITY and PROPRIETY
of the laws to be passed for executing the powers of the Union? I answer,
first, that this question arises as well and as fully upon the simple
grant of those powers as upon the declaratory clause; and I answer, in the
second place, that the national government, like every other, must judge,
in the first instance, of the proper exercise of its powers, and its
constituents in the last. If the federal government should overpass the
just bounds of its authority and make a tyrannical use of its powers, the
people, whose creature it is, must appeal to the standard they have
formed, and take such measures to redress the injury done to the
Constitution as the exigency may suggest and prudence justify. The
propriety of a law, in a constitutional light, must always be determined
by the nature of the powers upon which it is founded. Suppose, by some
forced constructions of its authority (which, indeed, cannot easily be
imagined), the Federal legislature should attempt to vary the law of
descent in any State, would it not be evident that, in making such an
attempt, it had exceeded its jurisdiction, and infringed upon that of the
State? Suppose, again, that upon the pretense of an interference with its
revenues, it should undertake to abrogate a landtax imposed by the
authority of a State; would it not be equally evident that this was an
invasion of that concurrent jurisdiction in respect to this species of
tax, which its Constitution plainly supposes to exist in the State
governments? If there ever should be a doubt on this head, the credit of
it will be entirely due to those reasoners who, in the imprudent zeal of
their animosity to the plan of the convention, have labored to envelop it
in a cloud calculated to obscure the plainest and simplest truths.
But it is said that the laws of the Union are to be the SUPREME LAW of the
land. But what inference can be drawn from this, or what would they amount
to, if they were not to be supreme? It is evident they would amount to
nothing. A LAW, by the very meaning of the term, includes supremacy. It is
a rule which those to whom it is prescribed are bound to observe. This
results from every political association. If individuals enter into a
state of society, the laws of that society must be the supreme regulator
of their conduct. If a number of political societies enter into a larger
political society, the laws which the latter may enact, pursuant to the
powers intrusted to it by its constitution, must necessarily be supreme
over those societies, and the individuals of whom they are composed. It
would otherwise be a mere treaty, dependent on the good faith of the
parties, and not a government, which is only another word for POLITICAL
POWER AND SUPREMACY. But it will not follow from this doctrine that acts
of the large society which are NOT PURSUANT to its constitutional powers,
but which are invasions of the residuary authorities of the smaller
societies, will become the supreme law of the land. These will be merely
acts of usurpation, and will deserve to be treated as such. Hence we
perceive that the clause which declares the supremacy of the laws of the
Union, like the one we have just before considered, only declares a truth,
which flows immediately and necessarily from the institution of a federal
government. It will not, I presume, have escaped observation, that it
EXPRESSLY confines this supremacy to laws made PURSUANT TO THE
CONSTITUTION; which I mention merely as an instance of caution in the
convention; since that limitation would have been to be understood, though
it had not been expressed.
Though a law, therefore, laying a tax for the use of the United States
would be supreme in its nature, and could not legally be opposed or
controlled, yet a law for abrogating or preventing the collection of a tax
laid by the authority of the State, (unless upon imports and exports),
would not be the supreme law of the land, but a usurpation of power not
granted by the Constitution. As far as an improper accumulation of taxes
on the same object might tend to render the collection difficult or
precarious, this would be a mutual inconvenience, not arising from a
superiority or defect of power on either side, but from an injudicious
exercise of power by one or the other, in a manner equally disadvantageous
to both. It is to be hoped and presumed, however, that mutual interest
would dictate a concert in this respect which would avoid any material
inconvenience. The inference from the whole is, that the individual States
would, under the proposed Constitution, retain an independent and
uncontrollable authority to raise revenue to any extent of which they may
stand in need, by every kind of taxation, except duties on imports and
exports. It will be shown in the next paper that this CONCURRENT
JURISDICTION in the article of taxation was the only admissible substitute
for an entire subordination, in respect to this branch of power, of the
State authority to that of the Union.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 34. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General
Power of Taxation)
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, January 5, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
I FLATTER myself it has been clearly shown in my last number that the
particular States, under the proposed Constitution, would have COEQUAL
authority with the Union in the article of revenue, except as to duties on
imports. As this leaves open to the States far the greatest part of the
resources of the community, there can be no color for the assertion that
they would not possess means as abundant as could be desired for the
supply of their own wants, independent of all external control. That the
field is sufficiently wide will more fully appear when we come to advert
to the inconsiderable share of the public expenses for which it will fall
to the lot of the State governments to provide.
To argue upon abstract principles that this co-ordinate authority cannot
exist, is to set up supposition and theory against fact and reality.
However proper such reasonings might be to show that a thing OUGHT NOT TO
EXIST, they are wholly to be rejected when they are made use of to prove
that it does not exist contrary to the evidence of the fact itself. It is
well known that in the Roman republic the legislative authority, in the
last resort, resided for ages in two different political bodies not as
branches of the same legislature, but as distinct and independent
legislatures, in each of which an opposite interest prevailed: in one the
patrician; in the other, the plebian. Many arguments might have been
adduced to prove the unfitness of two such seemingly contradictory
authorities, each having power to ANNUL or REPEAL the acts of the other.
But a man would have been regarded as frantic who should have attempted at
Rome to disprove their existence. It will be readily understood that I
allude to the COMITIA CENTURIATA and the COMITIA TRIBUTA. The former, in
which the people voted by centuries, was so arranged as to give a
superiority to the patrician interest; in the latter, in which numbers
prevailed, the plebian interest had an entire predominancy. And yet these
two legislatures coexisted for ages, and the Roman republic attained to
the utmost height of human greatness.
In the case particularly under consideration, there is no such
contradiction as appears in the example cited; there is no power on either
side to annul the acts of the other. And in practice there is little
reason to apprehend any inconvenience; because, in a short course of time,
the wants of the States will naturally reduce themselves within A VERY
NARROW COMPASS; and in the interim, the United States will, in all
probability, find it convenient to abstain wholly from those objects to
which the particular States would be inclined to resort.
To form a more precise judgment of the true merits of this question, it
will be well to advert to the proportion between the objects that will
require a federal provision in respect to revenue, and those which will
require a State provision. We shall discover that the former are
altogether unlimited, and that the latter are circumscribed within very
moderate bounds. In pursuing this inquiry, we must bear in mind that we
are not to confine our view to the present period, but to look forward to
remote futurity. Constitutions of civil government are not to be framed
upon a calculation of existing exigencies, but upon a combination of these
with the probable exigencies of ages, according to the natural and tried
course of human affairs. Nothing, therefore, can be more fallacious than
to infer the extent of any power, proper to be lodged in the national
government, from an estimate of its immediate necessities. There ought to
be a CAPACITY to provide for future contingencies as they may happen; and
as these are illimitable in their nature, it is impossible safely to limit
that capacity. It is true, perhaps, that a computation might be made with
sufficient accuracy to answer the purpose of the quantity of revenue
requisite to discharge the subsisting engagements of the Union, and to
maintain those establishments which, for some time to come, would suffice
in time of peace. But would it be wise, or would it not rather be the
extreme of folly, to stop at this point, and to leave the government
intrusted with the care of the national defense in a state of absolute
incapacity to provide for the protection of the community against future
invasions of the public peace, by foreign war or domestic convulsions? If,
on the contrary, we ought to exceed this point, where can we stop, short
of an indefinite power of providing for emergencies as they may arise?
Though it is easy to assert, in general terms, the possibility of forming
a rational judgment of a due provision against probable dangers, yet we
may safely challenge those who make the assertion to bring forward their
data, and may affirm that they would be found as vague and uncertain as
any that could be produced to establish the probable duration of the
world. Observations confined to the mere prospects of internal attacks can
deserve no weight; though even these will admit of no satisfactory
calculation: but if we mean to be a commercial people, it must form a part
of our policy to be able one day to defend that commerce. The support of a
navy and of naval wars would involve contingencies that must baffle all
the efforts of political arithmetic.
Admitting that we ought to try the novel and absurd experiment in politics
of tying up the hands of government from offensive war founded upon
reasons of state, yet certainly we ought not to disable it from guarding
the community against the ambition or enmity of other nations. A cloud has
been for some time hanging over the European world. If it should break
forth into a storm, who can insure us that in its progress a part of its
fury would not be spent upon us? No reasonable man would hastily pronounce
that we are entirely out of its reach. Or if the combustible materials
that now seem to be collecting should be dissipated without coming to
maturity, or if a flame should be kindled without extending to us, what
security can we have that our tranquillity will long remain undisturbed
from some other cause or from some other quarter? Let us recollect that
peace or war will not always be left to our option; that however moderate
or unambitious we may be, we cannot count upon the moderation, or hope to
extinguish the ambition of others. Who could have imagined at the
conclusion of the last war that France and Britain, wearied and exhausted
as they both were, would so soon have looked with so hostile an aspect
upon each other? To judge from the history of mankind, we shall be
compelled to conclude that the fiery and destructive passions of war reign
in the human breast with much more powerful sway than the mild and
beneficent sentiments of peace; and that to model our political systems
upon speculations of lasting tranquillity, is to calculate on the weaker
springs of the human character.
What are the chief sources of expense in every government? What has
occasioned that enormous accumulation of debts with which several of the
European nations are oppressed? The answers plainly is, wars and
rebellions; the support of those institutions which are necessary to guard
the body politic against these two most mortal diseases of society. The
expenses arising from those institutions which are relative to the mere
domestic police of a state, to the support of its legislative, executive,
and judicial departments, with their different appendages, and to the
encouragement of agriculture and manufactures (which will comprehend
almost all the objects of state expenditure), are insignificant in
comparison with those which relate to the national defense.
In the kingdom of Great Britain, where all the ostentatious apparatus of
monarchy is to be provided for, not above a fifteenth part of the annual
income of the nation is appropriated to the class of expenses last
mentioned; the other fourteen fifteenths are absorbed in the payment of
the interest of debts contracted for carrying on the wars in which that
country has been engaged, and in the maintenance of fleets and armies. If,
on the one hand, it should be observed that the expenses incurred in the
prosecution of the ambitious enterprises and vainglorious pursuits of a
monarchy are not a proper standard by which to judge of those which might
be necessary in a republic, it ought, on the other hand, to be remarked
that there should be as great a disproportion between the profusion and
extravagance of a wealthy kingdom in its domestic administration, and the
frugality and economy which in that particular become the modest
simplicity of republican government. If we balance a proper deduction from
one side against that which it is supposed ought to be made from the
other, the proportion may still be considered as holding good.
But let us advert to the large debt which we have ourselves contracted in
a single war, and let us only calculate on a common share of the events
which disturb the peace of nations, and we shall instantly perceive,
without the aid of any elaborate illustration, that there must always be
an immense disproportion between the objects of federal and state
expenditures. It is true that several of the States, separately, are
encumbered with considerable debts, which are an excrescence of the late
war. But this cannot happen again, if the proposed system be adopted; and
when these debts are discharged, the only call for revenue of any
consequence, which the State governments will continue to experience, will
be for the mere support of their respective civil list; to which, if we
add all contingencies, the total amount in every State ought to fall
considerably short of two hundred thousand pounds.
In framing a government for posterity as well as ourselves, we ought, in
those provisions which are designed to be permanent, to calculate, not on
temporary, but on permanent causes of expense. If this principle be a just
one our attention would be directed to a provision in favor of the State
governments for an annual sum of about two hundred thousand pounds; while
the exigencies of the Union could be susceptible of no limits, even in
imagination. In this view of the subject, by what logic can it be
maintained that the local governments ought to command, in perpetuity, an
EXCLUSIVE source of revenue for any sum beyond the extent of two hundred
thousand pounds? To extend its power further, in EXCLUSION of the
authority of the Union, would be to take the resources of the community
out of those hands which stood in need of them for the public welfare, in
order to put them into other hands which could have no just or proper
occasion for them.
Suppose, then, the convention had been inclined to proceed upon the
principle of a repartition of the objects of revenue, between the Union
and its members, in PROPORTION to their comparative necessities; what
particular fund could have been selected for the use of the States, that
would not either have been too much or too little too little for their
present, too much for their future wants? As to the line of separation
between external and internal taxes, this would leave to the States, at a
rough computation, the command of two thirds of the resources of the
community to defray from a tenth to a twentieth part of its expenses; and
to the Union, one third of the resources of the community, to defray from
nine tenths to nineteen twentieths of its expenses. If we desert this
boundary and content ourselves with leaving to the States an exclusive
power of taxing houses and lands, there would still be a great
disproportion between the MEANS and the END; the possession of one third
of the resources of the community to supply, at most, one tenth of its
wants. If any fund could have been selected and appropriated, equal to and
not greater than the object, it would have been inadequate to the
discharge of the existing debts of the particular States, and would have
left them dependent on the Union for a provision for this purpose.
The preceding train of observation will justify the position which has
been elsewhere laid down, that "A CONCURRENT JURISDICTION in the article
of taxation was the only admissible substitute for an entire
subordination, in respect to this branch of power, of State authority to
that of the Union." Any separation of the objects of revenue that could
have been fallen upon, would have amounted to a sacrifice of the great
INTERESTS of the Union to the POWER of the individual States. The
convention thought the concurrent jurisdiction preferable to that
subordination; and it is evident that it has at least the merit of
reconciling an indefinite constitutional power of taxation in the Federal
government with an adequate and independent power in the States to provide
for their own necessities. There remain a few other lights, in which this
important subject of taxation will claim a further consideration.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 35. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General
Power of Taxation)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, January 5, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
BEFORE we proceed to examine any other objections to an indefinite power
of taxation in the Union, I shall make one general remark; which is, that
if the jurisdiction of the national government, in the article of revenue,
should be restricted to particular objects, it would naturally occasion an
undue proportion of the public burdens to fall upon those objects. Two
evils would spring from this source: the oppression of particular branches
of industry; and an unequal distribution of the taxes, as well among the
several States as among the citizens of the same State.
Suppose, as has been contended for, the federal power of taxation were to
be confined to duties on imports, it is evident that the government, for
want of being able to command other resources, would frequently be tempted
to extend these duties to an injurious excess. There are persons who
imagine that they can never be carried to too great a length; since the
higher they are, the more it is alleged they will tend to discourage an
extravagant consumption, to produce a favorable balance of trade, and to
promote domestic manufactures. But all extremes are pernicious in various
ways. Exorbitant duties on imported articles would beget a general spirit
of smuggling; which is always prejudicial to the fair trader, and
eventually to the revenue itself: they tend to render other classes of the
community tributary, in an improper degree, to the manufacturing classes,
to whom they give a premature monopoly of the markets; they sometimes
force industry out of its more natural channels into others in which it
flows with less advantage; and in the last place, they oppress the
merchant, who is often obliged to pay them himself without any retribution
from the consumer. When the demand is equal to the quantity of goods at
market, the consumer generally pays the duty; but when the markets happen
to be overstocked, a great proportion falls upon the merchant, and
sometimes not only exhausts his profits, but breaks in upon his capital. I
am apt to think that a division of the duty, between the seller and the
buyer, more often happens than is commonly imagined. It is not always
possible to raise the price of a commodity in exact proportion to every
additional imposition laid upon it. The merchant, especially in a country
of small commercial capital, is often under a necessity of keeping prices
down in order to a more expeditious sale.
The maxim that the consumer is the payer, is so much oftener true than the
reverse of the proposition, that it is far more equitable that the duties
on imports should go into a common stock, than that they should redound to
the exclusive benefit of the importing States. But it is not so generally
true as to render it equitable, that those duties should form the only
national fund. When they are paid by the merchant they operate as an
additional tax upon the importing State, whose citizens pay their
proportion of them in the character of consumers. In this view they are
productive of inequality among the States; which inequality would be
increased with the increased extent of the duties. The confinement of the
national revenues to this species of imposts would be attended with
inequality, from a different cause, between the manufacturing and the
non-manufacturing States. The States which can go farthest towards the
supply of their own wants, by their own manufactures, will not, according
to their numbers or wealth, consume so great a proportion of imported
articles as those States which are not in the same favorable situation.
They would not, therefore, in this mode alone contribute to the public
treasury in a ratio to their abilities. To make them do this it is
necessary that recourse be had to excises, the proper objects of which are
particular kinds of manufactures. New York is more deeply interested in
these considerations than such of her citizens as contend for limiting the
power of the Union to external taxation may be aware of. New York is an
importing State, and is not likely speedily to be, to any great extent, a
manufacturing State. She would, of course, suffer in a double light from
restraining the jurisdiction of the Union to commercial imposts.
So far as these observations tend to inculcate a danger of the import
duties being extended to an injurious extreme it may be observed,
conformably to a remark made in another part of these papers, that the
interest of the revenue itself would be a sufficient guard against such an
extreme. I readily admit that this would be the case, as long as other
resources were open; but if the avenues to them were closed, HOPE,
stimulated by necessity, would beget experiments, fortified by rigorous
precautions and additional penalties, which, for a time, would have the
intended effect, till there had been leisure to contrive expedients to
elude these new precautions. The first success would be apt to inspire
false opinions, which it might require a long course of subsequent
experience to correct. Necessity, especially in politics, often occasions
false hopes, false reasonings, and a system of measures correspondingly
erroneous. But even if this supposed excess should not be a consequence of
the limitation of the federal power of taxation, the inequalities spoken
of would still ensue, though not in the same degree, from the other causes
that have been noticed. Let us now return to the examination of
objections.
One which, if we may judge from the frequency of its repetition, seems
most to be relied on, is, that the House of Representatives is not
sufficiently numerous for the reception of all the different classes of
citizens, in order to combine the interests and feelings of every part of
the community, and to produce a due sympathy between the representative
body and its constituents. This argument presents itself under a very
specious and seducing form; and is well calculated to lay hold of the
prejudices of those to whom it is addressed. But when we come to dissect
it with attention, it will appear to be made up of nothing but
fair-sounding words. The object it seems to aim at is, in the first place,
impracticable, and in the sense in which it is contended for, is
unnecessary. I reserve for another place the discussion of the question
which relates to the sufficiency of the representative body in respect to
numbers, and shall content myself with examining here the particular use
which has been made of a contrary supposition, in reference to the
immediate subject of our inquiries.
The idea of an actual representation of all classes of the people, by
persons of each class, is altogether visionary. Unless it were expressly
provided in the Constitution, that each different occupation should send
one or more members, the thing would never take place in practice.
Mechanics and manufacturers will always be inclined, with few exceptions,
to give their votes to merchants, in preference to persons of their own
professions or trades. Those discerning citizens are well aware that the
mechanic and manufacturing arts furnish the materials of mercantile
enterprise and industry. Many of them, indeed, are immediately connected
with the operations of commerce. They know that the merchant is their
natural patron and friend; and they are aware, that however great the
confidence they may justly feel in their own good sense, their interests
can be more effectually promoted by the merchant than by themselves. They
are sensible that their habits in life have not been such as to give them
those acquired endowments, without which, in a deliberative assembly, the
greatest natural abilities are for the most part useless; and that the
influence and weight, and superior acquirements of the merchants render
them more equal to a contest with any spirit which might happen to infuse
itself into the public councils, unfriendly to the manufacturing and
trading interests. These considerations, and many others that might be
mentioned prove, and experience confirms it, that artisans and
manufacturers will commonly be disposed to bestow their votes upon
merchants and those whom they recommend. We must therefore consider
merchants as the natural representatives of all these classes of the
community.
With regard to the learned professions, little need be observed; they
truly form no distinct interest in society, and according to their
situation and talents, will be indiscriminately the objects of the
confidence and choice of each other, and of other parts of the community.
Nothing remains but the landed interest; and this, in a political view,
and particularly in relation to taxes, I take to be perfectly united, from
the wealthiest landlord down to the poorest tenant. No tax can be laid on
land which will not affect the proprietor of millions of acres as well as
the proprietor of a single acre. Every landholder will therefore have a
common interest to keep the taxes on land as low as possible; and common
interest may always be reckoned upon as the surest bond of sympathy. But
if we even could suppose a distinction of interest between the opulent
landholder and the middling farmer, what reason is there to conclude, that
the first would stand a better chance of being deputed to the national
legislature than the last? If we take fact as our guide, and look into our
own senate and assembly, we shall find that moderate proprietors of land
prevail in both; nor is this less the case in the senate, which consists
of a smaller number, than in the assembly, which is composed of a greater
number. Where the qualifications of the electors are the same, whether
they have to choose a small or a large number, their votes will fall upon
those in whom they have most confidence; whether these happen to be men of
large fortunes, or of moderate property, or of no property at all.
It is said to be necessary, that all classes of citizens should have some
of their own number in the representative body, in order that their
feelings and interests may be the better understood and attended to. But
we have seen that this will never happen under any arrangement that leaves
the votes of the people free. Where this is the case, the representative
body, with too few exceptions to have any influence on the spirit of the
government, will be composed of landholders, merchants, and men of the
learned professions. But where is the danger that the interests and
feelings of the different classes of citizens will not be understood or
attended to by these three descriptions of men? Will not the landholder
know and feel whatever will promote or insure the interest of landed
property? And will he not, from his own interest in that species of
property, be sufficiently prone to resist every attempt to prejudice or
encumber it? Will not the merchant understand and be disposed to
cultivate, as far as may be proper, the interests of the mechanic and
manufacturing arts, to which his commerce is so nearly allied? Will not
the man of the learned profession, who will feel a neutrality to the
rivalships between the different branches of industry, be likely to prove
an impartial arbiter between them, ready to promote either, so far as it
shall appear to him conducive to the general interests of the society?
If we take into the account the momentary humors or dispositions which may
happen to prevail in particular parts of the society, and to which a wise
administration will never be inattentive, is the man whose situation leads
to extensive inquiry and information less likely to be a competent judge
of their nature, extent, and foundation than one whose observation does
not travel beyond the circle of his neighbors and acquaintances? Is it not
natural that a man who is a candidate for the favor of the people, and who
is dependent on the suffrages of his fellow-citizens for the continuance
of his public honors, should take care to inform himself of their
dispositions and inclinations, and should be willing to allow them their
proper degree of influence upon his conduct? This dependence, and the
necessity of being bound himself, and his posterity, by the laws to which
he gives his assent, are the true, and they are the strong chords of
sympathy between the representative and the constituent.
There is no part of the administration of government that requires
extensive information and a thorough knowledge of the principles of
political economy, so much as the business of taxation. The man who
understands those principles best will be least likely to resort to
oppressive expedients, or sacrifice any particular class of citizens to
the procurement of revenue. It might be demonstrated that the most
productive system of finance will always be the least burdensome. There
can be no doubt that in order to a judicious exercise of the power of
taxation, it is necessary that the person in whose hands it should be
acquainted with the general genius, habits, and modes of thinking of the
people at large, and with the resources of the country. And this is all
that can be reasonably meant by a knowledge of the interests and feelings
of the people. In any other sense the proposition has either no meaning,
or an absurd one. And in that sense let every considerate citizen judge
for himself where the requisite qualification is most likely to be found.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 36. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General
Power of Taxation)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 8, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE HAVE seen that the result of the observations, to which the foregoing
number has been principally devoted, is, that from the natural operation
of the different interests and views of the various classes of the
community, whether the representation of the people be more or less
numerous, it will consist almost entirely of proprietors of land, of
merchants, and of members of the learned professions, who will truly
represent all those different interests and views. If it should be
objected that we have seen other descriptions of men in the local
legislatures, I answer that it is admitted there are exceptions to the
rule, but not in sufficient number to influence the general complexion or
character of the government. There are strong minds in every walk of life
that will rise superior to the disadvantages of situation, and will
command the tribute due to their merit, not only from the classes to which
they particularly belong, but from the society in general. The door ought
to be equally open to all; and I trust, for the credit of human nature,
that we shall see examples of such vigorous plants flourishing in the soil
of federal as well as of State legislation; but occasional instances of
this sort will not render the reasoning founded upon the general course of
things, less conclusive.
The subject might be placed in several other lights that would all lead to
the same result; and in particular it might be asked, What greater
affinity or relation of interest can be conceived between the carpenter
and blacksmith, and the linen manufacturer or stocking weaver, than
between the merchant and either of them? It is notorious that there are
often as great rivalships between different branches of the mechanic or
manufacturing arts as there are between any of the departments of labor
and industry; so that, unless the representative body were to be far more
numerous than would be consistent with any idea of regularity or wisdom in
its deliberations, it is impossible that what seems to be the spirit of
the objection we have been considering should ever be realized in
practice. But I forbear to dwell any longer on a matter which has hitherto
worn too loose a garb to admit even of an accurate inspection of its real
shape or tendency.
There is another objection of a somewhat more precise nature that claims
our attention. It has been asserted that a power of internal taxation in
the national legislature could never be exercised with advantage, as well
from the want of a sufficient knowledge of local circumstances, as from an
interference between the revenue laws of the Union and of the particular
States. The supposition of a want of proper knowledge seems to be entirely
destitute of foundation. If any question is depending in a State
legislature respecting one of the counties, which demands a knowledge of
local details, how is it acquired? No doubt from the information of the
members of the county. Cannot the like knowledge be obtained in the
national legislature from the representatives of each State? And is it not
to be presumed that the men who will generally be sent there will be
possessed of the necessary degree of intelligence to be able to
communicate that information? Is the knowledge of local circumstances, as
applied to taxation, a minute topographical acquaintance with all the
mountains, rivers, streams, highways, and bypaths in each State; or is it
a general acquaintance with its situation and resources, with the state of
its agriculture, commerce, manufactures, with the nature of its products
and consumptions, with the different degrees and kinds of its wealth,
property, and industry?
Nations in general, even under governments of the more popular kind,
usually commit the administration of their finances to single men or to
boards composed of a few individuals, who digest and prepare, in the first
instance, the plans of taxation, which are afterwards passed into laws by
the authority of the sovereign or legislature.
Inquisitive and enlightened statesmen are deemed everywhere best qualified
to make a judicious selection of the objects proper for revenue; which is
a clear indication, as far as the sense of mankind can have weight in the
question, of the species of knowledge of local circumstances requisite to
the purposes of taxation.
The taxes intended to be comprised under the general denomination of
internal taxes may be subdivided into those of the DIRECT and those of the
INDIRECT kind. Though the objection be made to both, yet the reasoning
upon it seems to be confined to the former branch. And indeed, as to the
latter, by which must be understood duties and excises on articles of
consumption, one is at a loss to conceive what can be the nature of the
difficulties apprehended. The knowledge relating to them must evidently be
of a kind that will either be suggested by the nature of the article
itself, or can easily be procured from any well-informed man, especially
of the mercantile class. The circumstances that may distinguish its
situation in one State from its situation in another must be few, simple,
and easy to be comprehended. The principal thing to be attended to, would
be to avoid those articles which had been previously appropriated to the
use of a particular State; and there could be no difficulty in
ascertaining the revenue system of each. This could always be known from
the respective codes of laws, as well as from the information of the
members from the several States.
The objection, when applied to real property or to houses and lands,
appears to have, at first sight, more foundation, but even in this view it
will not bear a close examination. Land taxes are commonly laid in one of
two modes, either by ACTUAL valuations, permanent or periodical, or by
OCCASIONAL assessments, at the discretion, or according to the best
judgment, of certain officers whose duty it is to make them. In either
case, the EXECUTION of the business, which alone requires the knowledge of
local details, must be devolved upon discreet persons in the character of
commissioners or assessors, elected by the people or appointed by the
government for the purpose. All that the law can do must be to name the
persons or to prescribe the manner of their election or appointment, to
fix their numbers and qualifications and to draw the general outlines of
their powers and duties. And what is there in all this that cannot as well
be performed by the national legislature as by a State legislature? The
attention of either can only reach to general principles; local details,
as already observed, must be referred to those who are to execute the
plan.
But there is a simple point of view in which this matter may be placed
that must be altogether satisfactory. The national legislature can make
use of the SYSTEM OF EACH STATE WITHIN THAT STATE. The method of laying
and collecting this species of taxes in each State can, in all its parts,
be adopted and employed by the federal government.
Let it be recollected that the proportion of these taxes is not to be left
to the discretion of the national legislature, but is to be determined by
the numbers of each State, as described in the second section of the first
article. An actual census or enumeration of the people must furnish the
rule, a circumstance which effectually shuts the door to partiality or
oppression. The abuse of this power of taxation seems to have been
provided against with guarded circumspection. In addition to the
precaution just mentioned, there is a provision that "all duties, imposts,
and excises shall be UNIFORM throughout the United States."
It has been very properly observed by different speakers and writers on
the side of the Constitution, that if the exercise of the power of
internal taxation by the Union should be discovered on experiment to be
really inconvenient, the federal government may then forbear the use of
it, and have recourse to requisitions in its stead. By way of answer to
this, it has been triumphantly asked, Why not in the first instance omit
that ambiguous power, and rely upon the latter resource? Two solid answers
may be given. The first is, that the exercise of that power, if
convenient, will be preferable, because it will be more effectual; and it
is impossible to prove in theory, or otherwise than by the experiment,
that it cannot be advantageously exercised. The contrary, indeed, appears
most probable. The second answer is, that the existence of such a power in
the Constitution will have a strong influence in giving efficacy to
requisitions. When the States know that the Union can apply itself without
their agency, it will be a powerful motive for exertion on their part.
As to the interference of the revenue laws of the Union, and of its
members, we have already seen that there can be no clashing or repugnancy
of authority. The laws cannot, therefore, in a legal sense, interfere with
each other; and it is far from impossible to avoid an interference even in
the policy of their different systems. An effectual expedient for this
purpose will be, mutually, to abstain from those objects which either side
may have first had recourse to. As neither can CONTROL the other, each
will have an obvious and sensible interest in this reciprocal forbearance.
And where there is an IMMEDIATE common interest, we may safely count upon
its operation. When the particular debts of the States are done away, and
their expenses come to be limited within their natural compass, the
possibility almost of interference will vanish. A small land tax will
answer the purpose of the States, and will be their most simple and most
fit resource.
Many spectres have been raised out of this power of internal taxation, to
excite the apprehensions of the people: double sets of revenue officers, a
duplication of their burdens by double taxations, and the frightful forms
of odious and oppressive poll-taxes, have been played off with all the
ingenious dexterity of political legerdemain.
As to the first point, there are two cases in which there can be no room
for double sets of officers: one, where the right of imposing the tax is
exclusively vested in the Union, which applies to the duties on imports;
the other, where the object has not fallen under any State regulation or
provision, which may be applicable to a variety of objects. In other
cases, the probability is that the United States will either wholly
abstain from the objects preoccupied for local purposes, or will make use
of the State officers and State regulations for collecting the additional
imposition. This will best answer the views of revenue, because it will
save expense in the collection, and will best avoid any occasion of
disgust to the State governments and to the people. At all events, here is
a practicable expedient for avoiding such an inconvenience; and nothing
more can be required than to show that evils predicted to not necessarily
result from the plan.
As to any argument derived from a supposed system of influence, it is a
sufficient answer to say that it ought not to be presumed; but the
supposition is susceptible of a more precise answer. If such a spirit
should infest the councils of the Union, the most certain road to the
accomplishment of its aim would be to employ the State officers as much as
possible, and to attach them to the Union by an accumulation of their
emoluments. This would serve to turn the tide of State influence into the
channels of the national government, instead of making federal influence
flow in an opposite and adverse current. But all suppositions of this kind
are invidious, and ought to be banished from the consideration of the
great question before the people. They can answer no other end than to
cast a mist over the truth.
As to the suggestion of double taxation, the answer is plain. The wants of
the Union are to be supplied in one way or another; if to be done by the
authority of the federal government, it will not be to be done by that of
the State government. The quantity of taxes to be paid by the community
must be the same in either case; with this advantage, if the provision is
to be made by the Union that the capital resource of commercial imposts,
which is the most convenient branch of revenue, can be prudently improved
to a much greater extent under federal than under State regulation, and of
course will render it less necessary to recur to more inconvenient
methods; and with this further advantage, that as far as there may be any
real difficulty in the exercise of the power of internal taxation, it will
impose a disposition to greater care in the choice and arrangement of the
means; and must naturally tend to make it a fixed point of policy in the
national administration to go as far as may be practicable in making the
luxury of the rich tributary to the public treasury, in order to diminish
the necessity of those impositions which might create dissatisfaction in
the poorer and most numerous classes of the society. Happy it is when the
interest which the government has in the preservation of its own power,
coincides with a proper distribution of the public burdens, and tends to
guard the least wealthy part of the community from oppression!
As to poll taxes, I, without scruple, confess my disapprobation of them;
and though they have prevailed from an early period in those States(1)
which have uniformly been the most tenacious of their rights, I should
lament to see them introduced into practice under the national government.
But does it follow because there is a power to lay them that they will
actually be laid? Every State in the Union has power to impose taxes of
this kind; and yet in several of them they are unknown in practice. Are
the State governments to be stigmatized as tyrannies, because they possess
this power? If they are not, with what propriety can the like power
justify such a charge against the national government, or even be urged as
an obstacle to its adoption? As little friendly as I am to the species of
imposition, I still feel a thorough conviction that the power of having
recourse to it ought to exist in the federal government. There are certain
emergencies of nations, in which expedients, that in the ordinary state of
things ought to be forborne, become essential to the public weal. And the
government, from the possibility of such emergencies, ought ever to have
the option of making use of them. The real scarcity of objects in this
country, which may be considered as productive sources of revenue, is a
reason peculiar to itself, for not abridging the discretion of the
national councils in this respect. There may exist certain critical and
tempestuous conjunctures of the State, in which a poll tax may become an
inestimable resource. And as I know nothing to exempt this portion of the
globe from the common calamities that have befallen other parts of it, I
acknowledge my aversion to every project that is calculated to disarm the
government of a single weapon, which in any possible contingency might be
usefully employed for the general defense and security.
(I have now gone through the examination of such of the powers proposed to
be vested in the United States, which may be considered as having an
immediate relation to the energy of the government; and have endeavored to
answer the principal objections which have been made to them. I have
passed over in silence those minor authorities, which are either too
inconsiderable to have been thought worthy of the hostilities of the
opponents of the Constitution, or of too manifest propriety to admit of
controversy. The mass of judiciary power, however, might have claimed an
investigation under this head, had it not been for the consideration that
its organization and its extent may be more advantageously considered in
connection. This has determined me to refer it to the branch of our
inquiries upon which we shall next enter.)(E1)
(I have now gone through the examination of those powers proposed to be
conferred upon the federal government which relate more peculiarly to its
energy, and to its efficiency for answering the great and primary objects
of union. There are others which, though omitted here, will, in order to
render the view of the subject more complete, be taken notice of under the
next head of our inquiries. I flatter myself the progress already made
will have sufficed to satisfy the candid and judicious part of the
community that some of the objections which have been most strenuously
urged against the Constitution, and which were most formidable in their
first appearance, are not only destitute of substance, but if they had
operated in the formation of the plan, would have rendered it incompetent
to the great ends of public happiness and national prosperity. I equally
flatter myself that a further and more critical investigation of the
system will serve to recommend it still more to every sincere and
disinterested advocate for good government and will leave no doubt with
men of this character of the propriety and expediency of adopting it.
Happy will it be for ourselves, and more honorable for human nature, if we
have wisdom and virtue enough to set so glorious an example to
mankind!)(E1)
PUBLIUS
1. The New England States.
E1. Two versions of this paragraph appear in different editions.
FEDERALIST No. 37. Concerning the Difficulties of the Convention in
Devising a Proper Form of Government.
From the Daily Advertiser. Friday, January 11, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN REVIEWING the defects of the existing Confederation, and showing that
they cannot be supplied by a government of less energy than that before
the public, several of the most important principles of the latter fell of
course under consideration. But as the ultimate object of these papers is
to determine clearly and fully the merits of this Constitution, and the
expediency of adopting it, our plan cannot be complete without taking a
more critical and thorough survey of the work of the convention, without
examining it on all its sides, comparing it in all its parts, and
calculating its probable effects. That this remaining task may be executed
under impressions conducive to a just and fair result, some reflections
must in this place be indulged, which candor previously suggests.
It is a misfortune, inseparable from human affairs, that public measures
are rarely investigated with that spirit of moderation which is essential
to a just estimate of their real tendency to advance or obstruct the
public good; and that this spirit is more apt to be diminished than
promoted, by those occasions which require an unusual exercise of it. To
those who have been led by experience to attend to this consideration, it
could not appear surprising, that the act of the convention, which
recommends so many important changes and innovations, which may be viewed
in so many lights and relations, and which touches the springs of so many
passions and interests, should find or excite dispositions unfriendly,
both on one side and on the other, to a fair discussion and accurate
judgment of its merits. In some, it has been too evident from their own
publications, that they have scanned the proposed Constitution, not only
with a predisposition to censure, but with a predetermination to condemn;
as the language held by others betrays an opposite predetermination or
bias, which must render their opinions also of little moment in the
question. In placing, however, these different characters on a level, with
respect to the weight of their opinions, I wish not to insinuate that
there may not be a material difference in the purity of their intentions.
It is but just to remark in favor of the latter description, that as our
situation is universally admitted to be peculiarly critical, and to
require indispensably that something should be done for our relief, the
predetermined patron of what has been actually done may have taken his
bias from the weight of these considerations, as well as from
considerations of a sinister nature. The predetermined adversary, on the
other hand, can have been governed by no venial motive whatever. The
intentions of the first may be upright, as they may on the contrary be
culpable. The views of the last cannot be upright, and must be culpable.
But the truth is, that these papers are not addressed to persons falling
under either of these characters. They solicit the attention of those
only, who add to a sincere zeal for the happiness of their country, a
temper favorable to a just estimate of the means of promoting it.
Persons of this character will proceed to an examination of the plan
submitted by the convention, not only without a disposition to find or to
magnify faults; but will see the propriety of reflecting, that a faultless
plan was not to be expected. Nor will they barely make allowances for the
errors which may be chargeable on the fallibility to which the convention,
as a body of men, were liable; but will keep in mind, that they themselves
also are but men, and ought not to assume an infallibility in rejudging
the fallible opinions of others.
With equal readiness will it be perceived, that besides these inducements
to candor, many allowances ought to be made for the difficulties inherent
in the very nature of the undertaking referred to the convention.
The novelty of the undertaking immediately strikes us. It has been shown
in the course of these papers, that the existing Confederation is founded
on principles which are fallacious; that we must consequently change this
first foundation, and with it the superstructure resting upon it. It has
been shown, that the other confederacies which could be consulted as
precedents have been vitiated by the same erroneous principles, and can
therefore furnish no other light than that of beacons, which give warning
of the course to be shunned, without pointing out that which ought to be
pursued. The most that the convention could do in such a situation, was to
avoid the errors suggested by the past experience of other countries, as
well as of our own; and to provide a convenient mode of rectifying their
own errors, as future experiences may unfold them.
Among the difficulties encountered by the convention, a very important one
must have lain in combining the requisite stability and energy in
government, with the inviolable attention due to liberty and to the
republican form. Without substantially accomplishing this part of their
undertaking, they would have very imperfectly fulfilled the object of
their appointment, or the expectation of the public; yet that it could not
be easily accomplished, will be denied by no one who is unwilling to
betray his ignorance of the subject. Energy in government is essential to
that security against external and internal danger, and to that prompt and
salutary execution of the laws which enter into the very definition of
good government. Stability in government is essential to national
character and to the advantages annexed to it, as well as to that repose
and confidence in the minds of the people, which are among the chief
blessings of civil society. An irregular and mutable legislation is not
more an evil in itself than it is odious to the people; and it may be
pronounced with assurance that the people of this country, enlightened as
they are with regard to the nature, and interested, as the great body of
them are, in the effects of good government, will never be satisfied till
some remedy be applied to the vicissitudes and uncertainties which
characterize the State administrations. On comparing, however, these
valuable ingredients with the vital principles of liberty, we must
perceive at once the difficulty of mingling them together in their due
proportions. The genius of republican liberty seems to demand on one side,
not only that all power should be derived from the people, but that those
intrusted with it should be kept in independence on the people, by a short
duration of their appointments; and that even during this short period the
trust should be placed not in a few, but a number of hands. Stability, on
the contrary, requires that the hands in which power is lodged should
continue for a length of time the same. A frequent change of men will
result from a frequent return of elections; and a frequent change of
measures from a frequent change of men: whilst energy in government
requires not only a certain duration of power, but the execution of it by
a single hand.
How far the convention may have succeeded in this part of their work, will
better appear on a more accurate view of it. From the cursory view here
taken, it must clearly appear to have been an arduous part.
Not less arduous must have been the task of marking the proper line of
partition between the authority of the general and that of the State
governments. Every man will be sensible of this difficulty, in proportion
as he has been accustomed to contemplate and discriminate objects
extensive and complicated in their nature. The faculties of the mind
itself have never yet been distinguished and defined, with satisfactory
precision, by all the efforts of the most acute and metaphysical
philosophers. Sense, perception, judgment, desire, volition, memory,
imagination, are found to be separated by such delicate shades and minute
gradations that their boundaries have eluded the most subtle
investigations, and remain a pregnant source of ingenious disquisition and
controversy. The boundaries between the great kingdom of nature, and,
still more, between the various provinces, and lesser portions, into which
they are subdivided, afford another illustration of the same important
truth. The most sagacious and laborious naturalists have never yet
succeeded in tracing with certainty the line which separates the district
of vegetable life from the neighboring region of unorganized matter, or
which marks the termination of the former and the commencement of the
animal empire. A still greater obscurity lies in the distinctive
characters by which the objects in each of these great departments of
nature have been arranged and assorted.
When we pass from the works of nature, in which all the delineations are
perfectly accurate, and appear to be otherwise only from the imperfection
of the eye which surveys them, to the institutions of man, in which the
obscurity arises as well from the object itself as from the organ by which
it is contemplated, we must perceive the necessity of moderating still
further our expectations and hopes from the efforts of human sagacity.
Experience has instructed us that no skill in the science of government
has yet been able to discriminate and define, with sufficient certainty,
its three great provinces the legislative, executive, and judiciary; or
even the privileges and powers of the different legislative branches.
Questions daily occur in the course of practice, which prove the obscurity
which reins in these subjects, and which puzzle the greatest adepts in
political science.
The experience of ages, with the continued and combined labors of the most
enlightened legislatures and jurists, has been equally unsuccessful in
delineating the several objects and limits of different codes of laws and
different tribunals of justice. The precise extent of the common law, and
the statute law, the maritime law, the ecclesiastical law, the law of
corporations, and other local laws and customs, remains still to be
clearly and finally established in Great Britain, where accuracy in such
subjects has been more industriously pursued than in any other part of the
world. The jurisdiction of her several courts, general and local, of law,
of equity, of admiralty, etc., is not less a source of frequent and
intricate discussions, sufficiently denoting the indeterminate limits by
which they are respectively circumscribed. All new laws, though penned
with the greatest technical skill, and passed on the fullest and most
mature deliberation, are considered as more or less obscure and equivocal,
until their meaning be liquidated and ascertained by a series of
particular discussions and adjudications. Besides the obscurity arising
from the complexity of objects, and the imperfection of the human
faculties, the medium through which the conceptions of men are conveyed to
each other adds a fresh embarrassment. The use of words is to express
ideas. Perspicuity, therefore, requires not only that the ideas should be
distinctly formed, but that they should be expressed by words distinctly
and exclusively appropriate to them. But no language is so copious as to
supply words and phrases for every complex idea, or so correct as not to
include many equivocally denoting different ideas. Hence it must happen
that however accurately objects may be discriminated in themselves, and
however accurately the discrimination may be considered, the definition of
them may be rendered inaccurate by the inaccuracy of the terms in which it
is delivered. And this unavoidable inaccuracy must be greater or less,
according to the complexity and novelty of the objects defined. When the
Almighty himself condescends to address mankind in their own language, his
meaning, luminous as it must be, is rendered dim and doubtful by the
cloudy medium through which it is communicated.
Here, then, are three sources of vague and incorrect definitions:
indistinctness of the object, imperfection of the organ of conception,
inadequateness of the vehicle of ideas. Any one of these must produce a
certain degree of obscurity. The convention, in delineating the boundary
between the federal and State jurisdictions, must have experienced the
full effect of them all.
To the difficulties already mentioned may be added the interfering
pretensions of the larger and smaller States. We cannot err in supposing
that the former would contend for a participation in the government, fully
proportioned to their superior wealth and importance; and that the latter
would not be less tenacious of the equality at present enjoyed by them. We
may well suppose that neither side would entirely yield to the other, and
consequently that the struggle could be terminated only by compromise. It
is extremely probable, also, that after the ratio of representation had
been adjusted, this very compromise must have produced a fresh struggle
between the same parties, to give such a turn to the organization of the
government, and to the distribution of its powers, as would increase the
importance of the branches, in forming which they had respectively
obtained the greatest share of influence. There are features in the
Constitution which warrant each of these suppositions; and as far as
either of them is well founded, it shows that the convention must have
been compelled to sacrifice theoretical propriety to the force of
extraneous considerations.
Nor could it have been the large and small States only, which would
marshal themselves in opposition to each other on various points. Other
combinations, resulting from a difference of local position and policy,
must have created additional difficulties. As every State may be divided
into different districts, and its citizens into different classes, which
give birth to contending interests and local jealousies, so the different
parts of the United States are distinguished from each other by a variety
of circumstances, which produce a like effect on a larger scale. And
although this variety of interests, for reasons sufficiently explained in
a former paper, may have a salutary influence on the administration of the
government when formed, yet every one must be sensible of the contrary
influence, which must have been experienced in the task of forming it.
Would it be wonderful if, under the pressure of all these difficulties,
the convention should have been forced into some deviations from that
artificial structure and regular symmetry which an abstract view of the
subject might lead an ingenious theorist to bestow on a Constitution
planned in his closet or in his imagination? The real wonder is that so
many difficulties should have been surmounted, and surmounted with a
unanimity almost as unprecedented as it must have been unexpected. It is
impossible for any man of candor to reflect on this circumstance without
partaking of the astonishment. It is impossible for the man of pious
reflection not to perceive in it a finger of that Almighty hand which has
been so frequently and signally extended to our relief in the critical
stages of the revolution.
We had occasion, in a former paper, to take notice of the repeated trials
which have been unsuccessfully made in the United Netherlands for
reforming the baneful and notorious vices of their constitution. The
history of almost all the great councils and consultations held among
mankind for reconciling their discordant opinions, assuaging their mutual
jealousies, and adjusting their respective interests, is a history of
factions, contentions, and disappointments, and may be classed among the
most dark and degraded pictures which display the infirmities and
depravities of the human character. If, in a few scattered instances, a
brighter aspect is presented, they serve only as exceptions to admonish us
of the general truth; and by their lustre to darken the gloom of the
adverse prospect to which they are contrasted. In revolving the causes
from which these exceptions result, and applying them to the particular
instances before us, we are necessarily led to two important conclusions.
The first is, that the convention must have enjoyed, in a very singular
degree, an exemption from the pestilential influence of party animosities
the disease most incident to deliberative bodies, and most apt to
contaminate their proceedings. The second conclusion is that all the
deputations composing the convention were satisfactorily accommodated by
the final act, or were induced to accede to it by a deep conviction of the
necessity of sacrificing private opinions and partial interests to the
public good, and by a despair of seeing this necessity diminished by
delays or by new experiments.
FEDERALIST No. 38. The Same Subject Continued, and the Incoherence of the
Objections to the New Plan Exposed.
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, January 12, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS not a little remarkable that in every case reported by ancient
history, in which government has been established with deliberation and
consent, the task of framing it has not been committed to an assembly of
men, but has been performed by some individual citizen of preeminent
wisdom and approved integrity.
Minos, we learn, was the primitive founder of the government of Crete, as
Zaleucus was of that of the Locrians. Theseus first, and after him Draco
and Solon, instituted the government of Athens. Lycurgus was the lawgiver
of Sparta. The foundation of the original government of Rome was laid by
Romulus, and the work completed by two of his elective successors, Numa
and Tullius Hostilius. On the abolition of royalty the consular
administration was substituted by Brutus, who stepped forward with a
project for such a reform, which, he alleged, had been prepared by Tullius
Hostilius, and to which his address obtained the assent and ratification
of the senate and people. This remark is applicable to confederate
governments also. Amphictyon, we are told, was the author of that which
bore his name. The Achaean league received its first birth from Achaeus,
and its second from Aratus.
What degree of agency these reputed lawgivers might have in their
respective establishments, or how far they might be clothed with the
legitimate authority of the people, cannot in every instance be
ascertained. In some, however, the proceeding was strictly regular. Draco
appears to have been intrusted by the people of Athens with indefinite
powers to reform its government and laws. And Solon, according to
Plutarch, was in a manner compelled, by the universal suffrage of his
fellow-citizens, to take upon him the sole and absolute power of
new-modeling the constitution. The proceedings under Lycurgus were less
regular; but as far as the advocates for a regular reform could prevail,
they all turned their eyes towards the single efforts of that celebrated
patriot and sage, instead of seeking to bring about a revolution by the
intervention of a deliberative body of citizens.
Whence could it have proceeded, that a people, jealous as the Greeks were
of their liberty, should so far abandon the rules of caution as to place
their destiny in the hands of a single citizen? Whence could it have
proceeded, that the Athenians, a people who would not suffer an army to be
commanded by fewer than ten generals, and who required no other proof of
danger to their liberties than the illustrious merit of a fellow-citizen,
should consider one illustrious citizen as a more eligible depositary of
the fortunes of themselves and their posterity, than a select body of
citizens, from whose common deliberations more wisdom, as well as more
safety, might have been expected? These questions cannot be fully
answered, without supposing that the fears of discord and disunion among a
number of counsellors exceeded the apprehension of treachery or incapacity
in a single individual. History informs us, likewise, of the difficulties
with which these celebrated reformers had to contend, as well as the
expedients which they were obliged to employ in order to carry their
reforms into effect. Solon, who seems to have indulged a more temporizing
policy, confessed that he had not given to his countrymen the government
best suited to their happiness, but most tolerable to their prejudices.
And Lycurgus, more true to his object, was under the necessity of mixing a
portion of violence with the authority of superstition, and of securing
his final success by a voluntary renunciation, first of his country, and
then of his life. If these lessons teach us, on one hand, to admire the
improvement made by America on the ancient mode of preparing and
establishing regular plans of government, they serve not less, on the
other, to admonish us of the hazards and difficulties incident to such
experiments, and of the great imprudence of unnecessarily multiplying
them.
Is it an unreasonable conjecture, that the errors which may be contained
in the plan of the convention are such as have resulted rather from the
defect of antecedent experience on this complicated and difficult subject,
than from a want of accuracy or care in the investigation of it; and,
consequently such as will not be ascertained until an actual trial shall
have pointed them out? This conjecture is rendered probable, not only by
many considerations of a general nature, but by the particular case of the
Articles of Confederation. It is observable that among the numerous
objections and amendments suggested by the several States, when these
articles were submitted for their ratification, not one is found which
alludes to the great and radical error which on actual trial has
discovered itself. And if we except the observations which New Jersey was
led to make, rather by her local situation, than by her peculiar
foresight, it may be questioned whether a single suggestion was of
sufficient moment to justify a revision of the system. There is abundant
reason, nevertheless, to suppose that immaterial as these objections were,
they would have been adhered to with a very dangerous inflexibility, in
some States, had not a zeal for their opinions and supposed interests been
stifled by the more powerful sentiment of self-preservation. One State, we
may remember, persisted for several years in refusing her concurrence,
although the enemy remained the whole period at our gates, or rather in
the very bowels of our country. Nor was her pliancy in the end effected by
a less motive, than the fear of being chargeable with protracting the
public calamities, and endangering the event of the contest. Every candid
reader will make the proper reflections on these important facts.
A patient who finds his disorder daily growing worse, and that an
efficacious remedy can no longer be delayed without extreme danger, after
coolly revolving his situation, and the characters of different
physicians, selects and calls in such of them as he judges most capable of
administering relief, and best entitled to his confidence. The physicians
attend; the case of the patient is carefully examined; a consultation is
held; they are unanimously agreed that the symptoms are critical, but that
the case, with proper and timely relief, is so far from being desperate,
that it may be made to issue in an improvement of his constitution. They
are equally unanimous in prescribing the remedy, by which this happy
effect is to be produced. The prescription is no sooner made known,
however, than a number of persons interpose, and, without denying the
reality or danger of the disorder, assure the patient that the
prescription will be poison to his constitution, and forbid him, under
pain of certain death, to make use of it. Might not the patient reasonably
demand, before he ventured to follow this advice, that the authors of it
should at least agree among themselves on some other remedy to be
substituted? And if he found them differing as much from one another as
from his first counsellors, would he not act prudently in trying the
experiment unanimously recommended by the latter, rather than be
hearkening to those who could neither deny the necessity of a speedy
remedy, nor agree in proposing one?
Such a patient and in such a situation is America at this moment. She has
been sensible of her malady. She has obtained a regular and unanimous
advice from men of her own deliberate choice. And she is warned by others
against following this advice under pain of the most fatal consequences.
Do the monitors deny the reality of her danger? No. Do they deny the
necessity of some speedy and powerful remedy? No. Are they agreed, are any
two of them agreed, in their objections to the remedy proposed, or in the
proper one to be substituted? Let them speak for themselves. This one
tells us that the proposed Constitution ought to be rejected, because it
is not a confederation of the States, but a government over individuals.
Another admits that it ought to be a government over individuals to a
certain extent, but by no means to the extent proposed. A third does not
object to the government over individuals, or to the extent proposed, but
to the want of a bill of rights. A fourth concurs in the absolute
necessity of a bill of rights, but contends that it ought to be
declaratory, not of the personal rights of individuals, but of the rights
reserved to the States in their political capacity. A fifth is of opinion
that a bill of rights of any sort would be superfluous and misplaced, and
that the plan would be unexceptionable but for the fatal power of
regulating the times and places of election. An objector in a large State
exclaims loudly against the unreasonable equality of representation in the
Senate. An objector in a small State is equally loud against the dangerous
inequality in the House of Representatives. From this quarter, we are
alarmed with the amazing expense, from the number of persons who are to
administer the new government. From another quarter, and sometimes from
the same quarter, on another occasion, the cry is that the Congress will
be but a shadow of a representation, and that the government would be far
less objectionable if the number and the expense were doubled. A patriot
in a State that does not import or export, discerns insuperable objections
against the power of direct taxation. The patriotic adversary in a State
of great exports and imports, is not less dissatisfied that the whole
burden of taxes may be thrown on consumption. This politician discovers in
the Constitution a direct and irresistible tendency to monarchy; that is
equally sure it will end in aristocracy. Another is puzzled to say which
of these shapes it will ultimately assume, but sees clearly it must be one
or other of them; whilst a fourth is not wanting, who with no less
confidence affirms that the Constitution is so far from having a bias
towards either of these dangers, that the weight on that side will not be
sufficient to keep it upright and firm against its opposite propensities.
With another class of adversaries to the Constitution the language is that
the legislative, executive, and judiciary departments are intermixed in
such a manner as to contradict all the ideas of regular government and all
the requisite precautions in favor of liberty. Whilst this objection
circulates in vague and general expressions, there are but a few who lend
their sanction to it. Let each one come forward with his particular
explanation, and scarce any two are exactly agreed upon the subject. In
the eyes of one the junction of the Senate with the President in the
responsible function of appointing to offices, instead of vesting this
executive power in the Executive alone, is the vicious part of the
organization. To another, the exclusion of the House of Representatives,
whose numbers alone could be a due security against corruption and
partiality in the exercise of such a power, is equally obnoxious. With
another, the admission of the President into any share of a power which
ever must be a dangerous engine in the hands of the executive magistrate,
is an unpardonable violation of the maxims of republican jealousy. No part
of the arrangement, according to some, is more inadmissible than the trial
of impeachments by the Senate, which is alternately a member both of the
legislative and executive departments, when this power so evidently
belonged to the judiciary department. "We concur fully," reply others, "in
the objection to this part of the plan, but we can never agree that a
reference of impeachments to the judiciary authority would be an amendment
of the error. Our principal dislike to the organization arises from the
extensive powers already lodged in that department." Even among the
zealous patrons of a council of state the most irreconcilable variance is
discovered concerning the mode in which it ought to be constituted. The
demand of one gentleman is, that the council should consist of a small
number to be appointed by the most numerous branch of the legislature.
Another would prefer a larger number, and considers it as a fundamental
condition that the appointment should be made by the President himself.
As it can give no umbrage to the writers against the plan of the federal
Constitution, let us suppose, that as they are the most zealous, so they
are also the most sagacious, of those who think the late convention were
unequal to the task assigned them, and that a wiser and better plan might
and ought to be substituted. Let us further suppose that their country
should concur, both in this favorable opinion of their merits, and in
their unfavorable opinion of the convention; and should accordingly
proceed to form them into a second convention, with full powers, and for
the express purpose of revising and remoulding the work of the first. Were
the experiment to be seriously made, though it required some effort to
view it seriously even in fiction, I leave it to be decided by the sample
of opinions just exhibited, whether, with all their enmity to their
predecessors, they would, in any one point, depart so widely from their
example, as in the discord and ferment that would mark their own
deliberations; and whether the Constitution, now before the public, would
not stand as fair a chance for immortality, as Lycurgus gave to that of
Sparta, by making its change to depend on his own return from exile and
death, if it were to be immediately adopted, and were to continue in
force, not until a BETTER, but until ANOTHER should be agreed upon by this
new assembly of lawgivers.
It is a matter both of wonder and regret, that those who raise so many
objections against the new Constitution should never call to mind the
defects of that which is to be exchanged for it. It is not necessary that
the former should be perfect; it is sufficient that the latter is more
imperfect. No man would refuse to give brass for silver or gold, because
the latter had some alloy in it. No man would refuse to quit a shattered
and tottering habitation for a firm and commodious building, because the
latter had not a porch to it, or because some of the rooms might be a
little larger or smaller, or the ceilings a little higher or lower than
his fancy would have planned them. But waiving illustrations of this sort,
is it not manifest that most of the capital objections urged against the
new system lie with tenfold weight against the existing Confederation? Is
an indefinite power to raise money dangerous in the hands of the federal
government? The present Congress can make requisitions to any amount they
please, and the States are constitutionally bound to furnish them; they
can emit bills of credit as long as they will pay for the paper; they can
borrow, both abroad and at home, as long as a shilling will be lent. Is an
indefinite power to raise troops dangerous? The Confederation gives to
Congress that power also; and they have already begun to make use of it.
Is it improper and unsafe to intermix the different powers of government
in the same body of men? Congress, a single body of men, are the sole
depositary of all the federal powers. Is it particularly dangerous to give
the keys of the treasury, and the command of the army, into the same
hands? The Confederation places them both in the hands of Congress. Is a
bill of rights essential to liberty? The Confederation has no bill of
rights. Is it an objection against the new Constitution, that it empowers
the Senate, with the concurrence of the Executive, to make treaties which
are to be the laws of the land? The existing Congress, without any such
control, can make treaties which they themselves have declared, and most
of the States have recognized, to be the supreme law of the land. Is the
importation of slaves permitted by the new Constitution for twenty years?
By the old it is permitted forever.
I shall be told, that however dangerous this mixture of powers may be in
theory, it is rendered harmless by the dependence of Congress on the State
for the means of carrying them into practice; that however large the mass
of powers may be, it is in fact a lifeless mass. Then, say I, in the first
place, that the Confederation is chargeable with the still greater folly
of declaring certain powers in the federal government to be absolutely
necessary, and at the same time rendering them absolutely nugatory; and,
in the next place, that if the Union is to continue, and no better
government be substituted, effective powers must either be granted to, or
assumed by, the existing Congress; in either of which events, the contrast
just stated will hold good. But this is not all. Out of this lifeless mass
has already grown an excrescent power, which tends to realize all the
dangers that can be apprehended from a defective construction of the
supreme government of the Union. It is now no longer a point of
speculation and hope, that the Western territory is a mine of vast wealth
to the United States; and although it is not of such a nature as to
extricate them from their present distresses, or for some time to come, to
yield any regular supplies for the public expenses, yet must it hereafter
be able, under proper management, both to effect a gradual discharge of
the domestic debt, and to furnish, for a certain period, liberal tributes
to the federal treasury. A very large proportion of this fund has been
already surrendered by individual States; and it may with reason be
expected that the remaining States will not persist in withholding similar
proofs of their equity and generosity. We may calculate, therefore, that a
rich and fertile country, of an area equal to the inhabited extent of the
United States, will soon become a national stock. Congress have assumed
the administration of this stock. They have begun to render it productive.
Congress have undertaken to do more: they have proceeded to form new
States, to erect temporary governments, to appoint officers for them, and
to prescribe the conditions on which such States shall be admitted into
the Confederacy. All this has been done; and done without the least color
of constitutional authority. Yet no blame has been whispered; no alarm has
been sounded. A GREAT and INDEPENDENT fund of revenue is passing into the
hands of a SINGLE BODY of men, who can RAISE TROOPS to an INDEFINITE
NUMBER, and appropriate money to their support for an INDEFINITE PERIOD OF
TIME. And yet there are men, who have not only been silent spectators of
this prospect, but who are advocates for the system which exhibits it;
and, at the same time, urge against the new system the objections which we
have heard. Would they not act with more consistency, in urging the
establishment of the latter, as no less necessary to guard the Union
against the future powers and resources of a body constructed like the
existing Congress, than to save it from the dangers threatened by the
present impotency of that Assembly?
I mean not, by any thing here said, to throw censure on the measures which
have been pursued by Congress. I am sensible they could not have done
otherwise. The public interest, the necessity of the case, imposed upon
them the task of overleaping their constitutional limits. But is not the
fact an alarming proof of the danger resulting from a government which
does not possess regular powers commensurate to its objects? A dissolution
or usurpation is the dreadful dilemma to which it is continually exposed.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 39. The Conformity of the Plan to Republican Principles
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 16, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE last paper having concluded the observations which were meant to
introduce a candid survey of the plan of government reported by the
convention, we now proceed to the execution of that part of our
undertaking.
The first question that offers itself is, whether the general form and
aspect of the government be strictly republican. It is evident that no
other form would be reconcilable with the genius of the people of America;
with the fundamental principles of the Revolution; or with that honorable
determination which animates every votary of freedom, to rest all our
political experiments on the capacity of mankind for self-government. If
the plan of the convention, therefore, be found to depart from the
republican character, its advocates must abandon it as no longer
defensible.
What, then, are the distinctive characters of the republican form? Were an
answer to this question to be sought, not by recurring to principles, but
in the application of the term by political writers, to the constitution
of different States, no satisfactory one would ever be found. Holland, in
which no particle of the supreme authority is derived from the people, has
passed almost universally under the denomination of a republic. The same
title has been bestowed on Venice, where absolute power over the great
body of the people is exercised, in the most absolute manner, by a small
body of hereditary nobles. Poland, which is a mixture of aristocracy and
of monarchy in their worst forms, has been dignified with the same
appellation. The government of England, which has one republican branch
only, combined with an hereditary aristocracy and monarchy, has, with
equal impropriety, been frequently placed on the list of republics. These
examples, which are nearly as dissimilar to each other as to a genuine
republic, show the extreme inaccuracy with which the term has been used in
political disquisitions.
If we resort for a criterion to the different principles on which
different forms of government are established, we may define a republic to
be, or at least may bestow that name on, a government which derives all
its powers directly or indirectly from the great body of the people, and
is administered by persons holding their offices during pleasure, for a
limited period, or during good behavior. It is ESSENTIAL to such a
government that it be derived from the great body of the society, not from
an inconsiderable proportion, or a favored class of it; otherwise a
handful of tyrannical nobles, exercising their oppressions by a delegation
of their powers, might aspire to the rank of republicans, and claim for
their government the honorable title of republic. It is SUFFICIENT for
such a government that the persons administering it be appointed, either
directly or indirectly, by the people; and that they hold their
appointments by either of the tenures just specified; otherwise every
government in the United States, as well as every other popular government
that has been or can be well organized or well executed, would be degraded
from the republican character. According to the constitution of every
State in the Union, some or other of the officers of government are
appointed indirectly only by the people. According to most of them, the
chief magistrate himself is so appointed. And according to one, this mode
of appointment is extended to one of the co-ordinate branches of the
legislature. According to all the constitutions, also, the tenure of the
highest offices is extended to a definite period, and in many instances,
both within the legislative and executive departments, to a period of
years. According to the provisions of most of the constitutions, again, as
well as according to the most respectable and received opinions on the
subject, the members of the judiciary department are to retain their
offices by the firm tenure of good behavior.
On comparing the Constitution planned by the convention with the standard
here fixed, we perceive at once that it is, in the most rigid sense,
conformable to it. The House of Representatives, like that of one branch
at least of all the State legislatures, is elected immediately by the
great body of the people. The Senate, like the present Congress, and the
Senate of Maryland, derives its appointment indirectly from the people.
The President is indirectly derived from the choice of the people,
according to the example in most of the States. Even the judges, with all
other officers of the Union, will, as in the several States, be the
choice, though a remote choice, of the people themselves, the duration of
the appointments is equally conformable to the republican standard, and to
the model of State constitutions The House of Representatives is
periodically elective, as in all the States; and for the period of two
years, as in the State of South Carolina. The Senate is elective, for the
period of six years; which is but one year more than the period of the
Senate of Maryland, and but two more than that of the Senates of New York
and Virginia. The President is to continue in office for the period of
four years; as in New York and Delaware, the chief magistrate is elected
for three years, and in South Carolina for two years. In the other States
the election is annual. In several of the States, however, no
constitutional provision is made for the impeachment of the chief
magistrate. And in Delaware and Virginia he is not impeachable till out of
office. The President of the United States is impeachable at any time
during his continuance in office. The tenure by which the judges are to
hold their places, is, as it unquestionably ought to be, that of good
behavior. The tenure of the ministerial offices generally, will be a
subject of legal regulation, conformably to the reason of the case and the
example of the State constitutions.
Could any further proof be required of the republican complexion of this
system, the most decisive one might be found in its absolute prohibition
of titles of nobility, both under the federal and the State governments;
and in its express guaranty of the republican form to each of the latter.
"But it was not sufficient," say the adversaries of the proposed
Constitution, "for the convention to adhere to the republican form. They
ought, with equal care, to have preserved the FEDERAL form, which regards
the Union as a CONFEDERACY of sovereign states; instead of which, they
have framed a NATIONAL government, which regards the Union as a
CONSOLIDATION of the States." And it is asked by what authority this bold
and radical innovation was undertaken? The handle which has been made of
this objection requires that it should be examined with some precision.
Without inquiring into the accuracy of the distinction on which the
objection is founded, it will be necessary to a just estimate of its
force, first, to ascertain the real character of the government in
question; secondly, to inquire how far the convention were authorized to
propose such a government; and thirdly, how far the duty they owed to
their country could supply any defect of regular authority.
First. In order to ascertain the real character of the government, it may
be considered in relation to the foundation on which it is to be
established; to the sources from which its ordinary powers are to be
drawn; to the operation of those powers; to the extent of them; and to the
authority by which future changes in the government are to be introduced.
On examining the first relation, it appears, on one hand, that the
Constitution is to be founded on the assent and ratification of the people
of America, given by deputies elected for the special purpose; but, on the
other, that this assent and ratification is to be given by the people, not
as individuals composing one entire nation, but as composing the distinct
and independent States to which they respectively belong. It is to be the
assent and ratification of the several States, derived from the supreme
authority in each State, the authority of the people themselves. The act,
therefore, establishing the Constitution, will not be a NATIONAL, but a
FEDERAL act.
That it will be a federal and not a national act, as these terms are
understood by the objectors; the act of the people, as forming so many
independent States, not as forming one aggregate nation, is obvious from
this single consideration, that it is to result neither from the decision
of a MAJORITY of the people of the Union, nor from that of a MAJORITY of
the States. It must result from the UNANIMOUS assent of the several States
that are parties to it, differing no otherwise from their ordinary assent
than in its being expressed, not by the legislative authority, but by that
of the people themselves. Were the people regarded in this transaction as
forming one nation, the will of the majority of the whole people of the
United States would bind the minority, in the same manner as the majority
in each State must bind the minority; and the will of the majority must be
determined either by a comparison of the individual votes, or by
considering the will of the majority of the States as evidence of the will
of a majority of the people of the United States. Neither of these rules
have been adopted. Each State, in ratifying the Constitution, is
considered as a sovereign body, independent of all others, and only to be
bound by its own voluntary act. In this relation, then, the new
Constitution will, if established, be a FEDERAL, and not a NATIONAL
constitution.
The next relation is, to the sources from which the ordinary powers of
government are to be derived. The House of Representatives will derive its
powers from the people of America; and the people will be represented in
the same proportion, and on the same principle, as they are in the
legislature of a particular State. So far the government is NATIONAL, not
FEDERAL. The Senate, on the other hand, will derive its powers from the
States, as political and coequal societies; and these will be represented
on the principle of equality in the Senate, as they now are in the
existing Congress. So far the government is FEDERAL, not NATIONAL. The
executive power will be derived from a very compound source. The immediate
election of the President is to be made by the States in their political
characters. The votes allotted to them are in a compound ratio, which
considers them partly as distinct and coequal societies, partly as unequal
members of the same society. The eventual election, again, is to be made
by that branch of the legislature which consists of the national
representatives; but in this particular act they are to be thrown into the
form of individual delegations, from so many distinct and coequal bodies
politic. From this aspect of the government it appears to be of a mixed
character, presenting at least as many FEDERAL as NATIONAL features.
The difference between a federal and national government, as it relates to
the OPERATION OF THE GOVERNMENT, is supposed to consist in this, that in
the former the powers operate on the political bodies composing the
Confederacy, in their political capacities; in the latter, on the
individual citizens composing the nation, in their individual capacities.
On trying the Constitution by this criterion, it falls under the NATIONAL,
not the FEDERAL character; though perhaps not so completely as has been
understood. In several cases, and particularly in the trial of
controversies to which States may be parties, they must be viewed and
proceeded against in their collective and political capacities only. So
far the national countenance of the government on this side seems to be
disfigured by a few federal features. But this blemish is perhaps
unavoidable in any plan; and the operation of the government on the
people, in their individual capacities, in its ordinary and most essential
proceedings, may, on the whole, designate it, in this relation, a NATIONAL
government.
But if the government be national with regard to the OPERATION of its
powers, it changes its aspect again when we contemplate it in relation to
the EXTENT of its powers. The idea of a national government involves in
it, not only an authority over the individual citizens, but an indefinite
supremacy over all persons and things, so far as they are objects of
lawful government. Among a people consolidated into one nation, this
supremacy is completely vested in the national legislature. Among
communities united for particular purposes, it is vested partly in the
general and partly in the municipal legislatures. In the former case, all
local authorities are subordinate to the supreme; and may be controlled,
directed, or abolished by it at pleasure. In the latter, the local or
municipal authorities form distinct and independent portions of the
supremacy, no more subject, within their respective spheres, to the
general authority, than the general authority is subject to them, within
its own sphere. In this relation, then, the proposed government cannot be
deemed a NATIONAL one; since its jurisdiction extends to certain
enumerated objects only, and leaves to the several States a residuary and
inviolable sovereignty over all other objects. It is true that in
controversies relating to the boundary between the two jurisdictions, the
tribunal which is ultimately to decide, is to be established under the
general government. But this does not change the principle of the case.
The decision is to be impartially made, according to the rules of the
Constitution; and all the usual and most effectual precautions are taken
to secure this impartiality. Some such tribunal is clearly essential to
prevent an appeal to the sword and a dissolution of the compact; and that
it ought to be established under the general rather than under the local
governments, or, to speak more properly, that it could be safely
established under the first alone, is a position not likely to be
combated.
If we try the Constitution by its last relation to the authority by which
amendments are to be made, we find it neither wholly NATIONAL nor wholly
FEDERAL. Were it wholly national, the supreme and ultimate authority would
reside in the MAJORITY of the people of the Union; and this authority
would be competent at all times, like that of a majority of every national
society, to alter or abolish its established government. Were it wholly
federal, on the other hand, the concurrence of each State in the Union
would be essential to every alteration that would be binding on all. The
mode provided by the plan of the convention is not founded on either of
these principles. In requiring more than a majority, and principles. In
requiring more than a majority, and particularly in computing the
proportion by STATES, not by CITIZENS, it departs from the NATIONAL and
advances towards the FEDERAL character; in rendering the concurrence of
less than the whole number of States sufficient, it loses again the
FEDERAL and partakes of the NATIONAL character.
The proposed Constitution, therefore, is, in strictness, neither a
national nor a federal Constitution, but a composition of both. In its
foundation it is federal, not national; in the sources from which the
ordinary powers of the government are drawn, it is partly federal and
partly national; in the operation of these powers, it is national, not
federal; in the extent of them, again, it is federal, not national; and,
finally, in the authoritative mode of introducing amendments, it is
neither wholly federal nor wholly national.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 40. On the Powers of the Convention to Form a Mixed
Government Examined and Sustained.
For the New York Packet. Friday, January 18, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE SECOND point to be examined is, whether the convention were authorized
to frame and propose this mixed Constitution.
The powers of the convention ought, in strictness, to be determined by an
inspection of the commissions given to the members by their respective
constituents. As all of these, however, had reference, either to the
recommendation from the meeting at Annapolis, in September, 1786, or to
that from Congress, in February, 1787, it will be sufficient to recur to
these particular acts.
The act from Annapolis recommends the "appointment of commissioners to
take into consideration the situation of the United States; to devise SUCH
FURTHER PROVISIONS as shall appear to them necessary to render the
Constitution of the federal government ADEQUATE TO THE EXIGENCIES OF THE
UNION; and to report such an act for that purpose, to the United States in
Congress assembled, as when agreed to by them, and afterwards confirmed by
the legislature of every State, will effectually provide for the same."
The recommendatory act of Congress is in the words following: "WHEREAS,
There is provision in the articles of Confederation and perpetual Union,
for making alterations therein, by the assent of a Congress of the United
States, and of the legislatures of the several States; and whereas
experience hath evinced, that there are defects in the present
Confederation; as a mean to remedy which, several of the States, and
PARTICULARLY THE STATE OF NEW YORK, by express instructions to their
delegates in Congress, have suggested a convention for the purposes
expressed in the following resolution; and such convention appearing to be
the most probable mean of establishing in these States A FIRM NATIONAL
GOVERNMENT:
"Resolved, That in the opinion of Congress it is expedient, that on the
second Monday of May next a convention of delegates, who shall have been
appointed by the several States, be held at Philadelphia, for the sole and
express purpose OF REVISING THE ARTICLES OF CONFEDERATION, and reporting
to Congress and the several legislatures such ALTERATIONS AND PROVISIONS
THEREIN, as shall, when agreed to in Congress, and confirmed by the
States, render the federal Constitution ADEQUATE TO THE EXIGENCIES OF
GOVERNMENT AND THE PRESERVATION OF THE UNION."
From these two acts, it appears, 1st, that the object of the convention
was to establish, in these States, A FIRM NATIONAL GOVERNMENT; 2d, that
this government was to be such as would be ADEQUATE TO THE EXIGENCIES OF
GOVERNMENT and THE PRESERVATION OF THE UNION; 3d, that these purposes were
to be effected by ALTERATIONS AND PROVISIONS IN THE ARTICLES OF
CONFEDERATION, as it is expressed in the act of Congress, or by SUCH
FURTHER PROVISIONS AS SHOULD APPEAR NECESSARY, as it stands in the
recommendatory act from Annapolis; 4th, that the alterations and
provisions were to be reported to Congress, and to the States, in order to
be agreed to by the former and confirmed by the latter.
From a comparison and fair construction of these several modes of
expression, is to be deduced the authority under which the convention
acted. They were to frame a NATIONAL GOVERNMENT, adequate to the
EXIGENCIES OF GOVERNMENT, and OF THE UNION; and to reduce the articles of
Confederation into such form as to accomplish these purposes.
There are two rules of construction, dictated by plain reason, as well as
founded on legal axioms. The one is, that every part of the expression
ought, if possible, to be allowed some meaning, and be made to conspire to
some common end. The other is, that where the several parts cannot be made
to coincide, the less important should give way to the more important
part; the means should be sacrificed to the end, rather than the end to
the means.
Suppose, then, that the expressions defining the authority of the
convention were irreconcilably at variance with each other; that a
NATIONAL and ADEQUATE GOVERNMENT could not possibly, in the judgment of
the convention, be affected by ALTERATIONS and PROVISIONS in the ARTICLES
OF CONFEDERATION; which part of the definition ought to have been
embraced, and which rejected? Which was the more important, which the less
important part? Which the end; which the means? Let the most scrupulous
expositors of delegated powers; let the most inveterate objectors against
those exercised by the convention, answer these questions. Let them
declare, whether it was of most importance to the happiness of the people
of America, that the articles of Confederation should be disregarded, and
an adequate government be provided, and the Union preserved; or that an
adequate government should be omitted, and the articles of Confederation
preserved. Let them declare, whether the preservation of these articles
was the end, for securing which a reform of the government was to be
introduced as the means; or whether the establishment of a government,
adequate to the national happiness, was the end at which these articles
themselves originally aimed, and to which they ought, as insufficient
means, to have been sacrificed.
But is it necessary to suppose that these expressions are absolutely
irreconcilable to each other; that no ALTERATIONS or PROVISIONS in the
articles of the confederation could possibly mould them into a national
and adequate government; into such a government as has been proposed by
the convention?
No stress, it is presumed, will, in this case, be laid on the TITLE; a
change of that could never be deemed an exercise of ungranted power.
ALTERATIONS in the body of the instrument are expressly authorized. NEW
PROVISIONS therein are also expressly authorized. Here then is a power to
change the title; to insert new articles; to alter old ones. Must it of
necessity be admitted that this power is infringed, so long as a part of
the old articles remain? Those who maintain the affirmative ought at least
to mark the boundary between authorized and usurped innovations; between
that degree of change which lies within the compass of ALTERATIONS AND
FURTHER PROVISIONS, and that which amounts to a TRANSMUTATION of the
government. Will it be said that the alterations ought not to have touched
the substance of the Confederation? The States would never have appointed
a convention with so much solemnity, nor described its objects with so
much latitude, if some SUBSTANTIAL reform had not been in contemplation.
Will it be said that the FUNDAMENTAL PRINCIPLES of the Confederation were
not within the purview of the convention, and ought not to have been
varied? I ask, What are these principles? Do they require that, in the
establishment of the Constitution, the States should be regarded as
distinct and independent sovereigns? They are so regarded by the
Constitution proposed. Do they require that the members of the government
should derive their appointment from the legislatures, not from the people
of the States? One branch of the new government is to be appointed by
these legislatures; and under the Confederation, the delegates to Congress
MAY ALL be appointed immediately by the people, and in two States(1) are
actually so appointed. Do they require that the powers of the government
should act on the States, and not immediately on individuals? In some
instances, as has been shown, the powers of the new government will act on
the States in their collective characters. In some instances, also, those
of the existing government act immediately on individuals. In cases of
capture; of piracy; of the post office; of coins, weights, and measures;
of trade with the Indians; of claims under grants of land by different
States; and, above all, in the case of trials by courts-marshal in the
army and navy, by which death may be inflicted without the intervention of
a jury, or even of a civil magistrate; in all these cases the powers of
the Confederation operate immediately on the persons and interests of
individual citizens. Do these fundamental principles require,
particularly, that no tax should be levied without the intermediate agency
of the States? The Confederation itself authorizes a direct tax, to a
certain extent, on the post office. The power of coinage has been so
construed by Congress as to levy a tribute immediately from that source
also. But pretermitting these instances, was it not an acknowledged object
of the convention and the universal expectation of the people, that the
regulation of trade should be submitted to the general government in such
a form as would render it an immediate source of general revenue? Had not
Congress repeatedly recommended this measure as not inconsistent with the
fundamental principles of the Confederation? Had not every State but one;
had not New York herself, so far complied with the plan of Congress as to
recognize the PRINCIPLE of the innovation? Do these principles, in fine,
require that the powers of the general government should be limited, and
that, beyond this limit, the States should be left in possession of their
sovereignty and independence? We have seen that in the new government, as
in the old, the general powers are limited; and that the States, in all
unenumerated cases, are left in the enjoyment of their sovereign and
independent jurisdiction.
The truth is, that the great principles of the Constitution proposed by
the convention may be considered less as absolutely new, than as the
expansion of principles which are found in the articles of Confederation.
The misfortune under the latter system has been, that these principles are
so feeble and confined as to justify all the charges of inefficiency which
have been urged against it, and to require a degree of enlargement which
gives to the new system the aspect of an entire transformation of the old.
In one particular it is admitted that the convention have departed from
the tenor of their commission. Instead of reporting a plan requiring the
confirmation OF THE LEGISLATURES OF ALL THE STATES, they have reported a
plan which is to be confirmed by the PEOPLE, and may be carried into
effect by NINE STATES ONLY. It is worthy of remark that this objection,
though the most plausible, has been the least urged in the publications
which have swarmed against the convention. The forbearance can only have
proceeded from an irresistible conviction of the absurdity of subjecting
the fate of twelve States to the perverseness or corruption of a
thirteenth; from the example of inflexible opposition given by a MAJORITY
of one sixtieth of the people of America to a measure approved and called
for by the voice of twelve States, comprising fifty-nine sixtieths of the
people an example still fresh in the memory and indignation of every
citizen who has felt for the wounded honor and prosperity of his country.
As this objection, therefore, has been in a manner waived by those who
have criticised the powers of the convention, I dismiss it without further
observation.
The THIRD point to be inquired into is, how far considerations of duty
arising out of the case itself could have supplied any defect of regular
authority.
In the preceding inquiries the powers of the convention have been analyzed
and tried with the same rigor, and by the same rules, as if they had been
real and final powers for the establishment of a Constitution for the
United States. We have seen in what manner they have borne the trial even
on that supposition. It is time now to recollect that the powers were
merely advisory and recommendatory; that they were so meant by the States,
and so understood by the convention; and that the latter have accordingly
planned and proposed a Constitution which is to be of no more consequence
than the paper on which it is written, unless it be stamped with the
approbation of those to whom it is addressed. This reflection places the
subject in a point of view altogether different, and will enable us to
judge with propriety of the course taken by the convention.
Let us view the ground on which the convention stood. It may be collected
from their proceedings, that they were deeply and unanimously impressed
with the crisis, which had led their country almost with one voice to make
so singular and solemn an experiment for correcting the errors of a system
by which this crisis had been produced; that they were no less deeply and
unanimously convinced that such a reform as they have proposed was
absolutely necessary to effect the purposes of their appointment. It could
not be unknown to them that the hopes and expectations of the great body
of citizens, throughout this great empire, were turned with the keenest
anxiety to the event of their deliberations. They had every reason to
believe that the contrary sentiments agitated the minds and bosoms of
every external and internal foe to the liberty and prosperity of the
United States. They had seen in the origin and progress of the experiment,
the alacrity with which the PROPOSITION, made by a single State
(Virginia), towards a partial amendment of the Confederation, had been
attended to and promoted. They had seen the LIBERTY ASSUMED by a VERY FEW
deputies from a VERY FEW States, convened at Annapolis, of recommending a
great and critical object, wholly foreign to their commission, not only
justified by the public opinion, but actually carried into effect by
twelve out of the thirteen States. They had seen, in a variety of
instances, assumptions by Congress, not only of recommendatory, but of
operative, powers, warranted, in the public estimation, by occasions and
objects infinitely less urgent than those by which their conduct was to be
governed. They must have reflected, that in all great changes of
established governments, forms ought to give way to substance; that a
rigid adherence in such cases to the former, would render nominal and
nugatory the transcendent and precious right of the people to "abolish or
alter their governments as to them shall seem most likely to effect their
safety and happiness,"(2) since it is impossible for the people
spontaneously and universally to move in concert towards their object; and
it is therefore essential that such changes be instituted by some INFORMAL
AND UNAUTHORIZED PROPOSITIONS, made by some patriotic and respectable
citizen or number of citizens. They must have recollected that it was by
this irregular and assumed privilege of proposing to the people plans for
their safety and happiness, that the States were first united against the
danger with which they were threatened by their ancient government; that
committees and congresses were formed for concentrating their efforts and
defending their rights; and that CONVENTIONS were ELECTED in THE SEVERAL
STATES for establishing the constitutions under which they are now
governed; nor could it have been forgotten that no little ill-timed
scruples, no zeal for adhering to ordinary forms, were anywhere seen,
except in those who wished to indulge, under these masks, their secret
enmity to the substance contended for. They must have borne in mind, that
as the plan to be framed and proposed was to be submitted TO THE PEOPLE
THEMSELVES, the disapprobation of this supreme authority would destroy it
forever; its approbation blot out antecedent errors and irregularities. It
might even have occurred to them, that where a disposition to cavil
prevailed, their neglect to execute the degree of power vested in them,
and still more their recommendation of any measure whatever, not warranted
by their commission, would not less excite animadversion, than a
recommendation at once of a measure fully commensurate to the national
exigencies.
Had the convention, under all these impressions, and in the midst of all
these considerations, instead of exercising a manly confidence in their
country, by whose confidence they had been so peculiarly distinguished,
and of pointing out a system capable, in their judgment, of securing its
happiness, taken the cold and sullen resolution of disappointing its
ardent hopes, of sacrificing substance to forms, of committing the dearest
interests of their country to the uncertainties of delay and the hazard of
events, let me ask the man who can raise his mind to one elevated
conception, who can awaken in his bosom one patriotic emotion, what
judgment ought to have been pronounced by the impartial world, by the
friends of mankind, by every virtuous citizen, on the conduct and
character of this assembly? Or if there be a man whose propensity to
condemn is susceptible of no control, let me then ask what sentence he has
in reserve for the twelve States who USURPED THE POWER of sending deputies
to the convention, a body utterly unknown to their constitutions; for
Congress, who recommended the appointment of this body, equally unknown to
the Confederation; and for the State of New York, in particular, which
first urged and then complied with this unauthorized interposition?
But that the objectors may be disarmed of every pretext, it shall be
granted for a moment that the convention were neither authorized by their
commission, nor justified by circumstances in proposing a Constitution for
their country: does it follow that the Constitution ought, for that reason
alone, to be rejected? If, according to the noble precept, it be lawful to
accept good advice even from an enemy, shall we set the ignoble example of
refusing such advice even when it is offered by our friends? The prudent
inquiry, in all cases, ought surely to be, not so much FROM WHOM the
advice comes, as whether the advice be GOOD.
The sum of what has been here advanced and proved is, that the charge
against the convention of exceeding their powers, except in one instance
little urged by the objectors, has no foundation to support it; that if
they had exceeded their powers, they were not only warranted, but
required, as the confidential servants of their country, by the
circumstances in which they were placed, to exercise the liberty which
they assume; and that finally, if they had violated both their powers and
their obligations, in proposing a Constitution, this ought nevertheless to
be embraced, if it be calculated to accomplish the views and happiness of
the people of America. How far this character is due to the Constitution,
is the subject under investigation.
PUBLIUS
1. Connecticut and Rhode Island.
2. Declaration of Independence.
FEDERALIST No. 41. General View of the Powers Conferred by The
Constitution
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, January 19, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE Constitution proposed by the convention may be considered under two
general points of view. The FIRST relates to the sum or quantity of power
which it vests in the government, including the restraints imposed on the
States. The SECOND, to the particular structure of the government, and the
distribution of this power among its several branches.
Under the FIRST view of the subject, two important questions arise: 1.
Whether any part of the powers transferred to the general government be
unnecessary or improper? 2. Whether the entire mass of them be dangerous
to the portion of jurisdiction left in the several States?
Is the aggregate power of the general government greater than ought to
have been vested in it? This is the FIRST question.
It cannot have escaped those who have attended with candor to the
arguments employed against the extensive powers of the government, that
the authors of them have very little considered how far these powers were
necessary means of attaining a necessary end. They have chosen rather to
dwell on the inconveniences which must be unavoidably blended with all
political advantages; and on the possible abuses which must be incident to
every power or trust, of which a beneficial use can be made. This method
of handling the subject cannot impose on the good sense of the people of
America. It may display the subtlety of the writer; it may open a
boundless field for rhetoric and declamation; it may inflame the passions
of the unthinking, and may confirm the prejudices of the misthinking: but
cool and candid people will at once reflect, that the purest of human
blessings must have a portion of alloy in them; that the choice must
always be made, if not of the lesser evil, at least of the GREATER, not
the PERFECT, good; and that in every political institution, a power to
advance the public happiness involves a discretion which may be misapplied
and abused. They will see, therefore, that in all cases where power is to
be conferred, the point first to be decided is, whether such a power be
necessary to the public good; as the next will be, in case of an
affirmative decision, to guard as effectually as possible against a
perversion of the power to the public detriment.
That we may form a correct judgment on this subject, it will be proper to
review the several powers conferred on the government of the Union; and
that this may be the more conveniently done they may be reduced into
different classes as they relate to the following different objects: 1.
Security against foreign danger; 2. Regulation of the intercourse with
foreign nations; 3. Maintenance of harmony and proper intercourse among
the States; 4. Certain miscellaneous objects of general utility; 5.
Restraint of the States from certain injurious acts; 6. Provisions for
giving due efficacy to all these powers.
The powers falling within the FIRST class are those of declaring war and
granting letters of marque; of providing armies and fleets; of regulating
and calling forth the militia; of levying and borrowing money.
Security against foreign danger is one of the primitive objects of civil
society. It is an avowed and essential object of the American Union. The
powers requisite for attaining it must be effectually confided to the
federal councils.
Is the power of declaring war necessary? No man will answer this question
in the negative. It would be superfluous, therefore, to enter into a proof
of the affirmative. The existing Confederation establishes this power in
the most ample form.
Is the power of raising armies and equipping fleets necessary? This is
involved in the foregoing power. It is involved in the power of
self-defense.
But was it necessary to give an INDEFINITE POWER of raising TROOPS, as
well as providing fleets; and of maintaining both in PEACE, as well as in
WAR?
The answer to these questions has been too far anticipated in another
place to admit an extensive discussion of them in this place. The answer
indeed seems to be so obvious and conclusive as scarcely to justify such a
discussion in any place. With what color of propriety could the force
necessary for defense be limited by those who cannot limit the force of
offense? If a federal Constitution could chain the ambition or set bounds
to the exertions of all other nations, then indeed might it prudently
chain the discretion of its own government, and set bounds to the
exertions for its own safety.
How could a readiness for war in time of peace be safely prohibited,
unless we could prohibit, in like manner, the preparations and
establishments of every hostile nation? The means of security can only be
regulated by the means and the danger of attack. They will, in fact, be
ever determined by these rules, and by no others. It is in vain to oppose
constitutional barriers to the impulse of self-preservation. It is worse
than in vain; because it plants in the Constitution itself necessary
usurpations of power, every precedent of which is a germ of unnecessary
and multiplied repetitions. If one nation maintains constantly a
disciplined army, ready for the service of ambition or revenge, it obliges
the most pacific nations who may be within the reach of its enterprises to
take corresponding precautions. The fifteenth century was the unhappy
epoch of military establishments in the time of peace. They were
introduced by Charles VII. of France. All Europe has followed, or been
forced into, the example. Had the example not been followed by other
nations, all Europe must long ago have worn the chains of a universal
monarch. Were every nation except France now to disband its peace
establishments, the same event might follow. The veteran legions of Rome
were an overmatch for the undisciplined valor of all other nations and
rendered her the mistress of the world.
Not the less true is it, that the liberties of Rome proved the final
victim to her military triumphs; and that the liberties of Europe, as far
as they ever existed, have, with few exceptions, been the price of her
military establishments. A standing force, therefore, is a dangerous, at
the same time that it may be a necessary, provision. On the smallest scale
it has its inconveniences. On an extensive scale its consequences may be
fatal. On any scale it is an object of laudable circumspection and
precaution. A wise nation will combine all these considerations; and,
whilst it does not rashly preclude itself from any resource which may
become essential to its safety, will exert all its prudence in diminishing
both the necessity and the danger of resorting to one which may be
inauspicious to its liberties.
The clearest marks of this prudence are stamped on the proposed
Constitution. The Union itself, which it cements and secures, destroys
every pretext for a military establishment which could be dangerous.
America united, with a handful of troops, or without a single soldier,
exhibits a more forbidding posture to foreign ambition than America
disunited, with a hundred thousand veterans ready for combat. It was
remarked, on a former occasion, that the want of this pretext had saved
the liberties of one nation in Europe. Being rendered by her insular
situation and her maritime resources impregnable to the armies of her
neighbors, the rulers of Great Britain have never been able, by real or
artificial dangers, to cheat the public into an extensive peace
establishment. The distance of the United States from the powerful nations
of the world gives them the same happy security. A dangerous establishment
can never be necessary or plausible, so long as they continue a united
people. But let it never, for a moment, be forgotten that they are
indebted for this advantage to the Union alone. The moment of its
dissolution will be the date of a new order of things. The fears of the
weaker, or the ambition of the stronger States, or Confederacies, will set
the same example in the New, as Charles VII. did in the Old World. The
example will be followed here from the same motives which produced
universal imitation there. Instead of deriving from our situation the
precious advantage which Great Britain has derived from hers, the face of
America will be but a copy of that of the continent of Europe. It will
present liberty everywhere crushed between standing armies and perpetual
taxes. The fortunes of disunited America will be even more disastrous than
those of Europe. The sources of evil in the latter are confined to her own
limits. No superior powers of another quarter of the globe intrigue among
her rival nations, inflame their mutual animosities, and render them the
instruments of foreign ambition, jealousy, and revenge. In America the
miseries springing from her internal jealousies, contentions, and wars,
would form a part only of her lot. A plentiful addition of evils would
have their source in that relation in which Europe stands to this quarter
of the earth, and which no other quarter of the earth bears to Europe.
This picture of the consequences of disunion cannot be too highly colored,
or too often exhibited. Every man who loves peace, every man who loves his
country, every man who loves liberty, ought to have it ever before his
eyes, that he may cherish in his heart a due attachment to the Union of
America, and be able to set a due value on the means of preserving it.
Next to the effectual establishment of the Union, the best possible
precaution against danger from standing armies is a limitation of the term
for which revenue may be appropriated to their support. This precaution
the Constitution has prudently added. I will not repeat here the
observations which I flatter myself have placed this subject in a just and
satisfactory light. But it may not be improper to take notice of an
argument against this part of the Constitution, which has been drawn from
the policy and practice of Great Britain. It is said that the continuance
of an army in that kingdom requires an annual vote of the legislature;
whereas the American Constitution has lengthened this critical period to
two years. This is the form in which the comparison is usually stated to
the public: but is it a just form? Is it a fair comparison? Does the
British Constitution restrain the parliamentary discretion to one year?
Does the American impose on the Congress appropriations for two years? On
the contrary, it cannot be unknown to the authors of the fallacy
themselves, that the British Constitution fixes no limit whatever to the
discretion of the legislature, and that the American ties down the
legislature to two years, as the longest admissible term.
Had the argument from the British example been truly stated, it would have
stood thus: The term for which supplies may be appropriated to the army
establishment, though unlimited by the British Constitution, has
nevertheless, in practice, been limited by parliamentary discretion to a
single year. Now, if in Great Britain, where the House of Commons is
elected for seven years; where so great a proportion of the members are
elected by so small a proportion of the people; where the electors are so
corrupted by the representatives, and the representatives so corrupted by
the Crown, the representative body can possess a power to make
appropriations to the army for an indefinite term, without desiring, or
without daring, to extend the term beyond a single year, ought not
suspicion herself to blush, in pretending that the representatives of the
United States, elected FREELY by the WHOLE BODY of the people, every
SECOND YEAR, cannot be safely intrusted with the discretion over such
appropriations, expressly limited to the short period of TWO YEARS?
A bad cause seldom fails to betray itself. Of this truth, the management
of the opposition to the federal government is an unvaried
exemplification. But among all the blunders which have been committed,
none is more striking than the attempt to enlist on that side the prudent
jealousy entertained by the people, of standing armies. The attempt has
awakened fully the public attention to that important subject; and has led
to investigations which must terminate in a thorough and universal
conviction, not only that the constitution has provided the most effectual
guards against danger from that quarter, but that nothing short of a
Constitution fully adequate to the national defense and the preservation
of the Union, can save America from as many standing armies as it may be
split into States or Confederacies, and from such a progressive
augmentation, of these establishments in each, as will render them as
burdensome to the properties and ominous to the liberties of the people,
as any establishment that can become necessary, under a united and
efficient government, must be tolerable to the former and safe to the
latter.
The palpable necessity of the power to provide and maintain a navy has
protected that part of the Constitution against a spirit of censure, which
has spared few other parts. It must, indeed, be numbered among the
greatest blessings of America, that as her Union will be the only source
of her maritime strength, so this will be a principal source of her
security against danger from abroad. In this respect our situation bears
another likeness to the insular advantage of Great Britain. The batteries
most capable of repelling foreign enterprises on our safety, are happily
such as can never be turned by a perfidious government against our
liberties.
The inhabitants of the Atlantic frontier are all of them deeply interested
in this provision for naval protection, and if they have hitherto been
suffered to sleep quietly in their beds; if their property has remained
safe against the predatory spirit of licentious adventurers; if their
maritime towns have not yet been compelled to ransom themselves from the
terrors of a conflagration, by yielding to the exactions of daring and
sudden invaders, these instances of good fortune are not to be ascribed to
the capacity of the existing government for the protection of those from
whom it claims allegiance, but to causes that are fugitive and fallacious.
If we except perhaps Virginia and Maryland, which are peculiarly
vulnerable on their eastern frontiers, no part of the Union ought to feel
more anxiety on this subject than New York. Her seacoast is extensive. A
very important district of the State is an island. The State itself is
penetrated by a large navigable river for more than fifty leagues. The
great emporium of its commerce, the great reservoir of its wealth, lies
every moment at the mercy of events, and may almost be regarded as a
hostage for ignominious compliances with the dictates of a foreign enemy,
or even with the rapacious demands of pirates and barbarians. Should a war
be the result of the precarious situation of European affairs, and all the
unruly passions attending it be let loose on the ocean, our escape from
insults and depredations, not only on that element, but every part of the
other bordering on it, will be truly miraculous. In the present condition
of America, the States more immediately exposed to these calamities have
nothing to hope from the phantom of a general government which now exists;
and if their single resources were equal to the task of fortifying
themselves against the danger, the object to be protected would be almost
consumed by the means of protecting them.
The power of regulating and calling forth the militia has been already
sufficiently vindicated and explained.
The power of levying and borrowing money, being the sinew of that which is
to be exerted in the national defense, is properly thrown into the same
class with it. This power, also, has been examined already with much
attention, and has, I trust, been clearly shown to be necessary, both in
the extent and form given to it by the Constitution. I will address one
additional reflection only to those who contend that the power ought to
have been restrained to external—taxation by which they mean, taxes
on articles imported from other countries. It cannot be doubted that this
will always be a valuable source of revenue; that for a considerable time
it must be a principal source; that at this moment it is an essential one.
But we may form very mistaken ideas on this subject, if we do not call to
mind in our calculations, that the extent of revenue drawn from foreign
commerce must vary with the variations, both in the extent and the kind of
imports; and that these variations do not correspond with the progress of
population, which must be the general measure of the public wants. As long
as agriculture continues the sole field of labor, the importation of
manufactures must increase as the consumers multiply. As soon as domestic
manufactures are begun by the hands not called for by agriculture, the
imported manufactures will decrease as the numbers of people increase. In
a more remote stage, the imports may consist in a considerable part of raw
materials, which will be wrought into articles for exportation, and will,
therefore, require rather the encouragement of bounties, than to be loaded
with discouraging duties. A system of government, meant for duration,
ought to contemplate these revolutions, and be able to accommodate itself
to them.
Some, who have not denied the necessity of the power of taxation, have
grounded a very fierce attack against the Constitution, on the language in
which it is defined. It has been urged and echoed, that the power "to lay
and collect taxes, duties, imposts, and excises, to pay the debts, and
provide for the common defense and general welfare of the United States,"
amounts to an unlimited commission to exercise every power which may be
alleged to be necessary for the common defense or general welfare. No
stronger proof could be given of the distress under which these writers
labor for objections, than their stooping to such a misconstruction.
Had no other enumeration or definition of the powers of the Congress been
found in the Constitution, than the general expressions just cited, the
authors of the objection might have had some color for it; though it would
have been difficult to find a reason for so awkward a form of describing
an authority to legislate in all possible cases. A power to destroy the
freedom of the press, the trial by jury, or even to regulate the course of
descents, or the forms of conveyances, must be very singularly expressed
by the terms "to raise money for the general welfare."
But what color can the objection have, when a specification of the objects
alluded to by these general terms immediately follows, and is not even
separated by a longer pause than a semicolon? If the different parts of
the same instrument ought to be so expounded, as to give meaning to every
part which will bear it, shall one part of the same sentence be excluded
altogether from a share in the meaning; and shall the more doubtful and
indefinite terms be retained in their full extent, and the clear and
precise expressions be denied any signification whatsoever? For what
purpose could the enumeration of particular powers be inserted, if these
and all others were meant to be included in the preceding general power?
Nothing is more natural nor common than first to use a general phrase, and
then to explain and qualify it by a recital of particulars. But the idea
of an enumeration of particulars which neither explain nor qualify the
general meaning, and can have no other effect than to confound and
mislead, is an absurdity, which, as we are reduced to the dilemma of
charging either on the authors of the objection or on the authors of the
Constitution, we must take the liberty of supposing, had not its origin
with the latter.
The objection here is the more extraordinary, as it appears that the
language used by the convention is a copy from the articles of
Confederation. The objects of the Union among the States, as described in
article third, are "their common defense, security of their liberties, and
mutual and general welfare." The terms of article eighth are still more
identical: "All charges of war and all other expenses that shall be
incurred for the common defense or general welfare, and allowed by the
United States in Congress, shall be defrayed out of a common treasury,"
etc. A similar language again occurs in article ninth. Construe either of
these articles by the rules which would justify the construction put on
the new Constitution, and they vest in the existing Congress a power to
legislate in all cases whatsoever. But what would have been thought of
that assembly, if, attaching themselves to these general expressions, and
disregarding the specifications which ascertain and limit their import,
they had exercised an unlimited power of providing for the common defense
and general welfare? I appeal to the objectors themselves, whether they
would in that case have employed the same reasoning in justification of
Congress as they now make use of against the convention. How difficult it
is for error to escape its own condemnation!
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 42. The Powers Conferred by the Constitution Further
Considered
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 22, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE SECOND class of powers, lodged in the general government, consists of
those which regulate the intercourse with foreign nations, to wit: to make
treaties; to send and receive ambassadors, other public ministers, and
consuls; to define and punish piracies and felonies committed on the high
seas, and offenses against the law of nations; to regulate foreign
commerce, including a power to prohibit, after the year 1808, the
importation of slaves, and to lay an intermediate duty of ten dollars per
head, as a discouragement to such importations.
This class of powers forms an obvious and essential branch of the federal
administration. If we are to be one nation in any respect, it clearly
ought to be in respect to other nations.
The powers to make treaties and to send and receive ambassadors, speak
their own propriety. Both of them are comprised in the articles of
Confederation, with this difference only, that the former is
disembarrassed, by the plan of the convention, of an exception, under
which treaties might be substantially frustrated by regulations of the
States; and that a power of appointing and receiving "other public
ministers and consuls," is expressly and very properly added to the former
provision concerning ambassadors. The term ambassador, if taken strictly,
as seems to be required by the second of the articles of Confederation,
comprehends the highest grade only of public ministers, and excludes the
grades which the United States will be most likely to prefer, where
foreign embassies may be necessary. And under no latitude of construction
will the term comprehend consuls. Yet it has been found expedient, and has
been the practice of Congress, to employ the inferior grades of public
ministers, and to send and receive consuls.
It is true, that where treaties of commerce stipulate for the mutual
appointment of consuls, whose functions are connected with commerce, the
admission of foreign consuls may fall within the power of making
commercial treaties; and that where no such treaties exist, the mission of
American consuls into foreign countries may PERHAPS be covered under the
authority, given by the ninth article of the Confederation, to appoint all
such civil officers as may be necessary for managing the general affairs
of the United States. But the admission of consuls into the United States,
where no previous treaty has stipulated it, seems to have been nowhere
provided for. A supply of the omission is one of the lesser instances in
which the convention have improved on the model before them. But the most
minute provisions become important when they tend to obviate the necessity
or the pretext for gradual and unobserved usurpations of power. A list of
the cases in which Congress have been betrayed, or forced by the defects
of the Confederation, into violations of their chartered authorities,
would not a little surprise those who have paid no attention to the
subject; and would be no inconsiderable argument in favor of the new
Constitution, which seems to have provided no less studiously for the
lesser, than the more obvious and striking defects of the old.
The power to define and punish piracies and felonies committed on the high
seas, and offenses against the law of nations, belongs with equal
propriety to the general government, and is a still greater improvement on
the articles of Confederation. These articles contain no provision for the
case of offenses against the law of nations; and consequently leave it in
the power of any indiscreet member to embroil the Confederacy with foreign
nations. The provision of the federal articles on the subject of piracies
and felonies extends no further than to the establishment of courts for
the trial of these offenses. The definition of piracies might, perhaps,
without inconveniency, be left to the law of nations; though a legislative
definition of them is found in most municipal codes. A definition of
felonies on the high seas is evidently requisite. Felony is a term of
loose signification, even in the common law of England; and of various
import in the statute law of that kingdom. But neither the common nor the
statute law of that, or of any other nation, ought to be a standard for
the proceedings of this, unless previously made its own by legislative
adoption. The meaning of the term, as defined in the codes of the several
States, would be as impracticable as the former would be a dishonorable
and illegitimate guide. It is not precisely the same in any two of the
States; and varies in each with every revision of its criminal laws. For
the sake of certainty and uniformity, therefore, the power of defining
felonies in this case was in every respect necessary and proper.
The regulation of foreign commerce, having fallen within several views
which have been taken of this subject, has been too fully discussed to
need additional proofs here of its being properly submitted to the federal
administration.
It were doubtless to be wished, that the power of prohibiting the
importation of slaves had not been postponed until the year 1808, or
rather that it had been suffered to have immediate operation. But it is
not difficult to account, either for this restriction on the general
government, or for the manner in which the whole clause is expressed. It
ought to be considered as a great point gained in favor of humanity, that
a period of twenty years may terminate forever, within these States, a
traffic which has so long and so loudly upbraided the barbarism of modern
policy; that within that period, it will receive a considerable
discouragement from the federal government, and may be totally abolished,
by a concurrence of the few States which continue the unnatural traffic,
in the prohibitory example which has been given by so great a majority of
the Union. Happy would it be for the unfortunate Africans, if an equal
prospect lay before them of being redeemed from the oppressions of their
European brethren!
Attempts have been made to pervert this clause into an objection against
the Constitution, by representing it on one side as a criminal toleration
of an illicit practice, and on another as calculated to prevent voluntary
and beneficial emigrations from Europe to America. I mention these
misconstructions, not with a view to give them an answer, for they deserve
none, but as specimens of the manner and spirit in which some have thought
fit to conduct their opposition to the proposed government.
The powers included in the THIRD class are those which provide for the
harmony and proper intercourse among the States.
Under this head might be included the particular restraints imposed on the
authority of the States, and certain powers of the judicial department;
but the former are reserved for a distinct class, and the latter will be
particularly examined when we arrive at the structure and organization of
the government. I shall confine myself to a cursory review of the
remaining powers comprehended under this third description, to wit: to
regulate commerce among the several States and the Indian tribes; to coin
money, regulate the value thereof, and of foreign coin; to provide for the
punishment of counterfeiting the current coin and securities of the United
States; to fix the standard of weights and measures; to establish a
uniform rule of naturalization, and uniform laws of bankruptcy, to
prescribe the manner in which the public acts, records, and judicial
proceedings of each State shall be proved, and the effect they shall have
in other States; and to establish post offices and post roads.
The defect of power in the existing Confederacy to regulate the commerce
between its several members, is in the number of those which have been
clearly pointed out by experience. To the proofs and remarks which former
papers have brought into view on this subject, it may be added that
without this supplemental provision, the great and essential power of
regulating foreign commerce would have been incomplete and ineffectual. A
very material object of this power was the relief of the States which
import and export through other States, from the improper contributions
levied on them by the latter. Were these at liberty to regulate the trade
between State and State, it must be foreseen that ways would be found out
to load the articles of import and export, during the passage through
their jurisdiction, with duties which would fall on the makers of the
latter and the consumers of the former. We may be assured by past
experience, that such a practice would be introduced by future
contrivances; and both by that and a common knowledge of human affairs,
that it would nourish unceasing animosities, and not improbably terminate
in serious interruptions of the public tranquillity. To those who do not
view the question through the medium of passion or of interest, the desire
of the commercial States to collect, in any form, an indirect revenue from
their uncommercial neighbors, must appear not less impolitic than it is
unfair; since it would stimulate the injured party, by resentment as well
as interest, to resort to less convenient channels for their foreign
trade. But the mild voice of reason, pleading the cause of an enlarged and
permanent interest, is but too often drowned, before public bodies as well
as individuals, by the clamors of an impatient avidity for immediate and
immoderate gain.
The necessity of a superintending authority over the reciprocal trade of
confederated States, has been illustrated by other examples as well as our
own. In Switzerland, where the Union is so very slight, each canton is
obliged to allow to merchandises a passage through its jurisdiction into
other cantons, without an augmentation of the tolls. In Germany it is a
law of the empire, that the princes and states shall not lay tolls or
customs on bridges, rivers, or passages, without the consent of the
emperor and the diet; though it appears from a quotation in an antecedent
paper, that the practice in this, as in many other instances in that
confederacy, has not followed the law, and has produced there the
mischiefs which have been foreseen here. Among the restraints imposed by
the Union of the Netherlands on its members, one is, that they shall not
establish imposts disadvantageous to their neighbors, without the general
permission.
The regulation of commerce with the Indian tribes is very properly
unfettered from two limitations in the articles of Confederation, which
render the provision obscure and contradictory. The power is there
restrained to Indians, not members of any of the States, and is not to
violate or infringe the legislative right of any State within its own
limits. What description of Indians are to be deemed members of a State,
is not yet settled, and has been a question of frequent perplexity and
contention in the federal councils. And how the trade with Indians, though
not members of a State, yet residing within its legislative jurisdiction,
can be regulated by an external authority, without so far intruding on the
internal rights of legislation, is absolutely incomprehensible. This is
not the only case in which the articles of Confederation have
inconsiderately endeavored to accomplish impossibilities; to reconcile a
partial sovereignty in the Union, with complete sovereignty in the States;
to subvert a mathematical axiom, by taking away a part, and letting the
whole remain.
All that need be remarked on the power to coin money, regulate the value
thereof, and of foreign coin, is, that by providing for this last case,
the Constitution has supplied a material omission in the articles of
Confederation. The authority of the existing Congress is restrained to the
regulation of coin STRUCK by their own authority, or that of the
respective States. It must be seen at once that the proposed uniformity in
the VALUE of the current coin might be destroyed by subjecting that of
foreign coin to the different regulations of the different States.
The punishment of counterfeiting the public securities, as well as the
current coin, is submitted of course to that authority which is to secure
the value of both.
The regulation of weights and measures is transferred from the articles of
Confederation, and is founded on like considerations with the preceding
power of regulating coin.
The dissimilarity in the rules of naturalization has long been remarked as
a fault in our system, and as laying a foundation for intricate and
delicate questions. In the fourth article of the Confederation, it is
declared "that the FREE INHABITANTS of each of these States, paupers,
vagabonds, and fugitives from justice, excepted, shall be entitled to all
privileges and immunities of FREE CITIZENS in the several States; and THE
PEOPLE of each State shall, in every other, enjoy all the privileges of
trade and commerce," etc. There is a confusion of language here, which is
remarkable. Why the terms FREE INHABITANTS are used in one part of the
article, FREE CITIZENS in another, and PEOPLE in another; or what was
meant by superadding to "all privileges and immunities of free citizens,"
"all the privileges of trade and commerce," cannot easily be determined.
It seems to be a construction scarcely avoidable, however, that those who
come under the denomination of FREE INHABITANTS of a State, although not
citizens of such State, are entitled, in every other State, to all the
privileges of FREE CITIZENS of the latter; that is, to greater privileges
than they may be entitled to in their own State: so that it may be in the
power of a particular State, or rather every State is laid under a
necessity, not only to confer the rights of citizenship in other States
upon any whom it may admit to such rights within itself, but upon any whom
it may allow to become inhabitants within its jurisdiction. But were an
exposition of the term "inhabitants" to be admitted which would confine
the stipulated privileges to citizens alone, the difficulty is diminished
only, not removed. The very improper power would still be retained by each
State, of naturalizing aliens in every other State. In one State,
residence for a short term confirms all the rights of citizenship: in
another, qualifications of greater importance are required. An alien,
therefore, legally incapacitated for certain rights in the latter, may, by
previous residence only in the former, elude his incapacity; and thus the
law of one State be preposterously rendered paramount to the law of
another, within the jurisdiction of the other. We owe it to mere casualty,
that very serious embarrassments on this subject have been hitherto
escaped. By the laws of several States, certain descriptions of aliens,
who had rendered themselves obnoxious, were laid under interdicts
inconsistent not only with the rights of citizenship but with the
privilege of residence. What would have been the consequence, if such
persons, by residence or otherwise, had acquired the character of citizens
under the laws of another State, and then asserted their rights as such,
both to residence and citizenship, within the State proscribing them?
Whatever the legal consequences might have been, other consequences would
probably have resulted, of too serious a nature not to be provided
against. The new Constitution has accordingly, with great propriety, made
provision against them, and all others proceeding from the defect of the
Confederation on this head, by authorizing the general government to
establish a uniform rule of naturalization throughout the United States.
The power of establishing uniform laws of bankruptcy is so intimately
connected with the regulation of commerce, and will prevent so many frauds
where the parties or their property may lie or be removed into different
States, that the expediency of it seems not likely to be drawn into
question.
The power of prescribing by general laws, the manner in which the public
acts, records and judicial proceedings of each State shall be proved, and
the effect they shall have in other States, is an evident and valuable
improvement on the clause relating to this subject in the articles of
Confederation. The meaning of the latter is extremely indeterminate, and
can be of little importance under any interpretation which it will bear.
The power here established may be rendered a very convenient instrument of
justice, and be particularly beneficial on the borders of contiguous
States, where the effects liable to justice may be suddenly and secretly
translated, in any stage of the process, within a foreign jurisdiction.
The power of establishing post roads must, in every view, be a harmless
power, and may, perhaps, by judicious management, become productive of
great public conveniency. Nothing which tends to facilitate the
intercourse between the States can be deemed unworthy of the public care.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 43. The Same Subject Continued (The Powers Conferred by the
Constitution Further Considered)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 23, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE FOURTH class comprises the following miscellaneous powers:
1. A power "to promote the progress of science and useful arts, by
securing, for a limited time, to authors and inventors, the exclusive
right to their respective writings and discoveries."
The utility of this power will scarcely be questioned. The copyright of
authors has been solemnly adjudged, in Great Britain, to be a right of
common law. The right to useful inventions seems with equal reason to
belong to the inventors. The public good fully coincides in both cases
with the claims of individuals. The States cannot separately make
effectual provisions for either of the cases, and most of them have
anticipated the decision of this point, by laws passed at the instance of
Congress.
2. "To exercise exclusive legislation, in all cases whatsoever, over such
district (not exceeding ten miles square) as may, by cession of particular
States and the acceptance of Congress, become the seat of the government
of the United States; and to exercise like authority over all places
purchased by the consent of the legislatures of the States in which the
same shall be, for the erection of forts, magazines, arsenals, dockyards,
and other needful buildings."
The indispensable necessity of complete authority at the seat of
government, carries its own evidence with it. It is a power exercised by
every legislature of the Union, I might say of the world, by virtue of its
general supremacy. Without it, not only the public authority might be
insulted and its proceedings interrupted with impunity; but a dependence
of the members of the general government on the State comprehending the
seat of the government, for protection in the exercise of their duty,
might bring on the national councils an imputation of awe or influence,
equally dishonorable to the government and dissatisfactory to the other
members of the Confederacy. This consideration has the more weight, as the
gradual accumulation of public improvements at the stationary residence of
the government would be both too great a public pledge to be left in the
hands of a single State, and would create so many obstacles to a removal
of the government, as still further to abridge its necessary independence.
The extent of this federal district is sufficiently circumscribed to
satisfy every jealousy of an opposite nature. And as it is to be
appropriated to this use with the consent of the State ceding it; as the
State will no doubt provide in the compact for the rights and the consent
of the citizens inhabiting it; as the inhabitants will find sufficient
inducements of interest to become willing parties to the cession; as they
will have had their voice in the election of the government which is to
exercise authority over them; as a municipal legislature for local
purposes, derived from their own suffrages, will of course be allowed
them; and as the authority of the legislature of the State, and of the
inhabitants of the ceded part of it, to concur in the cession, will be
derived from the whole people of the State in their adoption of the
Constitution, every imaginable objection seems to be obviated.
The necessity of a like authority over forts, magazines, etc., established
by the general government, is not less evident. The public money expended
on such places, and the public property deposited in them, requires that
they should be exempt from the authority of the particular State. Nor
would it be proper for the places on which the security of the entire
Union may depend, to be in any degree dependent on a particular member of
it. All objections and scruples are here also obviated, by requiring the
concurrence of the States concerned, in every such establishment.
3. "To declare the punishment of treason, but no attainder of treason
shall work corruption of blood, or forfeiture, except during the life of
the person attained."
As treason may be committed against the United States, the authority of
the United States ought to be enabled to punish it. But as new-fangled and
artificial treasons have been the great engines by which violent factions,
the natural offspring of free government, have usually wreaked their
alternate malignity on each other, the convention have, with great
judgment, opposed a barrier to this peculiar danger, by inserting a
constitutional definition of the crime, fixing the proof necessary for
conviction of it, and restraining the Congress, even in punishing it, from
extending the consequences of guilt beyond the person of its author.
4. "To admit new States into the Union; but no new State shall be formed
or erected within the jurisdiction of any other State; nor any State be
formed by the junction of two or more States, or parts of States, without
the consent of the legislatures of the States concerned, as well as of the
Congress."
In the articles of Confederation, no provision is found on this important
subject. Canada was to be admitted of right, on her joining in the
measures of the United States; and the other COLONIES, by which were
evidently meant the other British colonies, at the discretion of nine
States. The eventual establishment of NEW STATES seems to have been
overlooked by the compilers of that instrument. We have seen the
inconvenience of this omission, and the assumption of power into which
Congress have been led by it. With great propriety, therefore, has the new
system supplied the defect. The general precaution, that no new States
shall be formed, without the concurrence of the federal authority, and
that of the States concerned, is consonant to the principles which ought
to govern such transactions. The particular precaution against the
erection of new States, by the partition of a State without its consent,
quiets the jealousy of the larger States; as that of the smaller is
quieted by a like precaution, against a junction of States without their
consent.
5. "To dispose of and make all needful rules and regulations respecting
the territory or other property belonging to the United States," with a
proviso, that "nothing in the Constitution shall be so construed as to
prejudice any claims of the United States, or of any particular State."
This is a power of very great importance, and required by considerations
similar to those which show the propriety of the former. The proviso
annexed is proper in itself, and was probably rendered absolutely
necessary by jealousies and questions concerning the Western territory
sufficiently known to the public.
6. "To guarantee to every State in the Union a republican form of
government; to protect each of them against invasion; and on application
of the legislature, or of the executive (when the legislature cannot be
convened), against domestic violence."
In a confederacy founded on republican principles, and composed of
republican members, the superintending government ought clearly to possess
authority to defend the system against aristocratic or monarchial
innovations. The more intimate the nature of such a union may be, the
greater interest have the members in the political institutions of each
other; and the greater right to insist that the forms of government under
which the compact was entered into should be SUBSTANTIALLY maintained. But
a right implies a remedy; and where else could the remedy be deposited,
than where it is deposited by the Constitution? Governments of dissimilar
principles and forms have been found less adapted to a federal coalition
of any sort, than those of a kindred nature. "As the confederate republic
of Germany," says Montesquieu, "consists of free cities and petty states,
subject to different princes, experience shows us that it is more
imperfect than that of Holland and Switzerland." "Greece was undone," he
adds, "as soon as the king of Macedon obtained a seat among the
Amphictyons." In the latter case, no doubt, the disproportionate force, as
well as the monarchical form, of the new confederate, had its share of
influence on the events. It may possibly be asked, what need there could
be of such a precaution, and whether it may not become a pretext for
alterations in the State governments, without the concurrence of the
States themselves. These questions admit of ready answers. If the
interposition of the general government should not be needed, the
provision for such an event will be a harmless superfluity only in the
Constitution. But who can say what experiments may be produced by the
caprice of particular States, by the ambition of enterprising leaders, or
by the intrigues and influence of foreign powers? To the second question
it may be answered, that if the general government should interpose by
virtue of this constitutional authority, it will be, of course, bound to
pursue the authority. But the authority extends no further than to a
GUARANTY of a republican form of government, which supposes a pre-existing
government of the form which is to be guaranteed. As long, therefore, as
the existing republican forms are continued by the States, they are
guaranteed by the federal Constitution. Whenever the States may choose to
substitute other republican forms, they have a right to do so, and to
claim the federal guaranty for the latter. The only restriction imposed on
them is, that they shall not exchange republican for antirepublican
Constitutions; a restriction which, it is presumed, will hardly be
considered as a grievance.
A protection against invasion is due from every society to the parts
composing it. The latitude of the expression here used seems to secure
each State, not only against foreign hostility, but against ambitious or
vindictive enterprises of its more powerful neighbors. The history, both
of ancient and modern confederacies, proves that the weaker members of the
union ought not to be insensible to the policy of this article.
Protection against domestic violence is added with equal propriety. It has
been remarked, that even among the Swiss cantons, which, properly
speaking, are not under one government, provision is made for this object;
and the history of that league informs us that mutual aid is frequently
claimed and afforded; and as well by the most democratic, as the other
cantons. A recent and well-known event among ourselves has warned us to be
prepared for emergencies of a like nature.
At first view, it might seem not to square with the republican theory, to
suppose, either that a majority have not the right, or that a minority
will have the force, to subvert a government; and consequently, that the
federal interposition can never be required, but when it would be
improper. But theoretic reasoning, in this as in most other cases, must be
qualified by the lessons of practice. Why may not illicit combinations,
for purposes of violence, be formed as well by a majority of a State,
especially a small State as by a majority of a county, or a district of
the same State; and if the authority of the State ought, in the latter
case, to protect the local magistracy, ought not the federal authority, in
the former, to support the State authority? Besides, there are certain
parts of the State constitutions which are so interwoven with the federal
Constitution, that a violent blow cannot be given to the one without
communicating the wound to the other. Insurrections in a State will rarely
induce a federal interposition, unless the number concerned in them bear
some proportion to the friends of government. It will be much better that
the violence in such cases should be repressed by the superintending
power, than that the majority should be left to maintain their cause by a
bloody and obstinate contest. The existence of a right to interpose, will
generally prevent the necessity of exerting it.
Is it true that force and right are necessarily on the same side in
republican governments? May not the minor party possess such a superiority
of pecuniary resources, of military talents and experience, or of secret
succors from foreign powers, as will render it superior also in an appeal
to the sword? May not a more compact and advantageous position turn the
scale on the same side, against a superior number so situated as to be
less capable of a prompt and collected exertion of its strength? Nothing
can be more chimerical than to imagine that in a trial of actual force,
victory may be calculated by the rules which prevail in a census of the
inhabitants, or which determine the event of an election! May it not
happen, in fine, that the minority of CITIZENS may become a majority of
PERSONS, by the accession of alien residents, of a casual concourse of
adventurers, or of those whom the constitution of the State has not
admitted to the rights of suffrage? I take no notice of an unhappy species
of population abounding in some of the States, who, during the calm of
regular government, are sunk below the level of men; but who, in the
tempestuous scenes of civil violence, may emerge into the human character,
and give a superiority of strength to any party with which they may
associate themselves.
In cases where it may be doubtful on which side justice lies, what better
umpires could be desired by two violent factions, flying to arms, and
tearing a State to pieces, than the representatives of confederate States,
not heated by the local flame? To the impartiality of judges, they would
unite the affection of friends. Happy would it be if such a remedy for its
infirmities could be enjoyed by all free governments; if a project equally
effectual could be established for the universal peace of mankind!
Should it be asked, what is to be the redress for an insurrection
pervading all the States, and comprising a superiority of the entire
force, though not a constitutional right? the answer must be, that such a
case, as it would be without the compass of human remedies, so it is
fortunately not within the compass of human probability; and that it is a
sufficient recommendation of the federal Constitution, that it diminishes
the risk of a calamity for which no possible constitution can provide a
cure.
Among the advantages of a confederate republic enumerated by Montesquieu,
an important one is, "that should a popular insurrection happen in one of
the States, the others are able to quell it. Should abuses creep into one
part, they are reformed by those that remain sound."
7. "To consider all debts contracted, and engagements entered into, before
the adoption of this Constitution, as being no less valid against the
United States, under this Constitution, than under the Confederation."
This can only be considered as a declaratory proposition; and may have
been inserted, among other reasons, for the satisfaction of the foreign
creditors of the United States, who cannot be strangers to the pretended
doctrine, that a change in the political form of civil society has the
magical effect of dissolving its moral obligations.
Among the lesser criticisms which have been exercised on the Constitution,
it has been remarked that the validity of engagements ought to have been
asserted in favor of the United States, as well as against them; and in
the spirit which usually characterizes little critics, the omission has
been transformed and magnified into a plot against the national rights.
The authors of this discovery may be told, what few others need to be
informed of, that as engagements are in their nature reciprocal, an
assertion of their validity on one side, necessarily involves a validity
on the other side; and that as the article is merely declaratory, the
establishment of the principle in one case is sufficient for every case.
They may be further told, that every constitution must limit its
precautions to dangers that are not altogether imaginary; and that no real
danger can exist that the government would DARE, with, or even without,
this constitutional declaration before it, to remit the debts justly due
to the public, on the pretext here condemned.
8. "To provide for amendments to be ratified by three fourths of the
States under two exceptions only."
That useful alterations will be suggested by experience, could not but be
foreseen. It was requisite, therefore, that a mode for introducing them
should be provided. The mode preferred by the convention seems to be
stamped with every mark of propriety. It guards equally against that
extreme facility, which would render the Constitution too mutable; and
that extreme difficulty, which might perpetuate its discovered faults. It,
moreover, equally enables the general and the State governments to
originate the amendment of errors, as they may be pointed out by the
experience on one side, or on the other. The exception in favor of the
equality of suffrage in the Senate, was probably meant as a palladium to
the residuary sovereignty of the States, implied and secured by that
principle of representation in one branch of the legislature; and was
probably insisted on by the States particularly attached to that equality.
The other exception must have been admitted on the same considerations
which produced the privilege defended by it.
9. "The ratification of the conventions of nine States shall be sufficient
for the establishment of this Constitution between the States, ratifying
the same."
This article speaks for itself. The express authority of the people alone
could give due validity to the Constitution. To have required the
unanimous ratification of the thirteen States, would have subjected the
essential interests of the whole to the caprice or corruption of a single
member. It would have marked a want of foresight in the convention, which
our own experience would have rendered inexcusable.
Two questions of a very delicate nature present themselves on this
occasion: 1. On what principle the Confederation, which stands in the
solemn form of a compact among the States, can be superseded without the
unanimous consent of the parties to it? 2. What relation is to subsist
between the nine or more States ratifying the Constitution, and the
remaining few who do not become parties to it?
The first question is answered at once by recurring to the absolute
necessity of the case; to the great principle of self-preservation; to the
transcendent law of nature and of nature's God, which declares that the
safety and happiness of society are the objects at which all political
institutions aim, and to which all such institutions must be sacrificed.
PERHAPS, also, an answer may be found without searching beyond the
principles of the compact itself. It has been heretofore noted among the
defects of the Confederation, that in many of the States it had received
no higher sanction than a mere legislative ratification. The principle of
reciprocality seems to require that its obligation on the other States
should be reduced to the same standard. A compact between independent
sovereigns, founded on ordinary acts of legislative authority, can pretend
to no higher validity than a league or treaty between the parties. It is
an established doctrine on the subject of treaties, that all the articles
are mutually conditions of each other; that a breach of any one article is
a breach of the whole treaty; and that a breach, committed by either of
the parties, absolves the others, and authorizes them, if they please, to
pronounce the compact violated and void. Should it unhappily be necessary
to appeal to these delicate truths for a justification for dispensing with
the consent of particular States to a dissolution of the federal pact,
will not the complaining parties find it a difficult task to answer the
MULTIPLIED and IMPORTANT infractions with which they may be confronted?
The time has been when it was incumbent on us all to veil the ideas which
this paragraph exhibits. The scene is now changed, and with it the part
which the same motives dictate.
The second question is not less delicate; and the flattering prospect of
its being merely hypothetical forbids an overcurious discussion of it. It
is one of those cases which must be left to provide for itself. In
general, it may be observed, that although no political relation can
subsist between the assenting and dissenting States, yet the moral
relations will remain uncancelled. The claims of justice, both on one side
and on the other, will be in force, and must be fulfilled; the rights of
humanity must in all cases be duly and mutually respected; whilst
considerations of a common interest, and, above all, the remembrance of
the endearing scenes which are past, and the anticipation of a speedy
triumph over the obstacles to reunion, will, it is hoped, not urge in vain
MODERATION on one side, and PRUDENCE on the other.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 44. Restrictions on the Authority of the Several States
From the New York Packet. Friday, January 25, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
A FIFTH class of provisions in favor of the federal authority consists of
the following restrictions on the authority of the several States:
1. "No State shall enter into any treaty, alliance, or confederation;
grant letters of marque and reprisal; coin money; emit bills of credit;
make any thing but gold and silver a legal tender in payment of debts;
pass any bill of attainder, ex post facto law, or law impairing the
obligation of contracts; or grant any title of nobility."
The prohibition against treaties, alliances, and confederations makes a
part of the existing articles of Union; and for reasons which need no
explanation, is copied into the new Constitution. The prohibition of
letters of marque is another part of the old system, but is somewhat
extended in the new. According to the former, letters of marque could be
granted by the States after a declaration of war; according to the latter,
these licenses must be obtained, as well during war as previous to its
declaration, from the government of the United States. This alteration is
fully justified by the advantage of uniformity in all points which relate
to foreign powers; and of immediate responsibility to the nation in all
those for whose conduct the nation itself is to be responsible.
The right of coining money, which is here taken from the States, was left
in their hands by the Confederation, as a concurrent right with that of
Congress, under an exception in favor of the exclusive right of Congress
to regulate the alloy and value. In this instance, also, the new provision
is an improvement on the old. Whilst the alloy and value depended on the
general authority, a right of coinage in the particular States could have
no other effect than to multiply expensive mints and diversify the forms
and weights of the circulating pieces. The latter inconveniency defeats
one purpose for which the power was originally submitted to the federal
head; and as far as the former might prevent an inconvenient remittance of
gold and silver to the central mint for recoinage, the end can be as well
attained by local mints established under the general authority.
The extension of the prohibition to bills of credit must give pleasure to
every citizen, in proportion to his love of justice and his knowledge of
the true springs of public prosperity. The loss which America has
sustained since the peace, from the pestilent effects of paper money on
the necessary confidence between man and man, on the necessary confidence
in the public councils, on the industry and morals of the people, and on
the character of republican government, constitutes an enormous debt
against the States chargeable with this unadvised measure, which must long
remain unsatisfied; or rather an accumulation of guilt, which can be
expiated no otherwise than by a voluntary sacrifice on the altar of
justice, of the power which has been the instrument of it. In addition to
these persuasive considerations, it may be observed, that the same reasons
which show the necessity of denying to the States the power of regulating
coin, prove with equal force that they ought not to be at liberty to
substitute a paper medium in the place of coin. Had every State a right to
regulate the value of its coin, there might be as many different
currencies as States, and thus the intercourse among them would be
impeded; retrospective alterations in its value might be made, and thus
the citizens of other States be injured, and animosities be kindled among
the States themselves. The subjects of foreign powers might suffer from
the same cause, and hence the Union be discredited and embroiled by the
indiscretion of a single member. No one of these mischiefs is less
incident to a power in the States to emit paper money, than to coin gold
or silver. The power to make any thing but gold and silver a tender in
payment of debts, is withdrawn from the States, on the same principle with
that of issuing a paper currency.
Bills of attainder, ex post facto laws, and laws impairing the obligation
of contracts, are contrary to the first principles of the social compact,
and to every principle of sound legislation. The two former are expressly
prohibited by the declarations prefixed to some of the State
constitutions, and all of them are prohibited by the spirit and scope of
these fundamental charters. Our own experience has taught us,
nevertheless, that additional fences against these dangers ought not to be
omitted. Very properly, therefore, have the convention added this
constitutional bulwark in favor of personal security and private rights;
and I am much deceived if they have not, in so doing, as faithfully
consulted the genuine sentiments as the undoubted interests of their
constituents. The sober people of America are weary of the fluctuating
policy which has directed the public councils. They have seen with regret
and indignation that sudden changes and legislative interferences, in
cases affecting personal rights, become jobs in the hands of enterprising
and influential speculators, and snares to the more-industrious and
less-informed part of the community. They have seen, too, that one
legislative interference is but the first link of a long chain of
repetitions, every subsequent interference being naturally produced by the
effects of the preceding. They very rightly infer, therefore, that some
thorough reform is wanting, which will banish speculations on public
measures, inspire a general prudence and industry, and give a regular
course to the business of society. The prohibition with respect to titles
of nobility is copied from the articles of Confederation and needs no
comment.
2. "No State shall, without the consent of the Congress, lay any imposts
or duties on imports or exports, except what may be absolutely necessary
for executing its inspection laws, and the net produce of all duties and
imposts laid by any State on imports or exports, shall be for the use of
the treasury of the United States; and all such laws shall be subject to
the revision and control of the Congress. No State shall, without the
consent of Congress, lay any duty on tonnage, keep troops or ships of war
in time of peace, enter into any agreement or compact with another State,
or with a foreign power, or engage in war unless actually invaded, or in
such imminent danger as will not admit of delay."
The restraint on the power of the States over imports and exports is
enforced by all the arguments which prove the necessity of submitting the
regulation of trade to the federal councils. It is needless, therefore, to
remark further on this head, than that the manner in which the restraint
is qualified seems well calculated at once to secure to the States a
reasonable discretion in providing for the conveniency of their imports
and exports, and to the United States a reasonable check against the abuse
of this discretion. The remaining particulars of this clause fall within
reasonings which are either so obvious, or have been so fully developed,
that they may be passed over without remark.
The SIXTH and last class consists of the several powers and provisions by
which efficacy is given to all the rest.
1. Of these the first is, the "power to make all laws which shall be
necessary and proper for carrying into execution the foregoing powers, and
all other powers vested by this Constitution in the government of the
United States, or in any department or officer thereof."
Few parts of the Constitution have been assailed with more intemperance
than this; yet on a fair investigation of it, no part can appear more
completely invulnerable. Without the SUBSTANCE of this power, the whole
Constitution would be a dead letter. Those who object to the article,
therefore, as a part of the Constitution, can only mean that the FORM of
the provision is improper. But have they considered whether a better form
could have been substituted?
There are four other possible methods which the Constitution might have
taken on this subject. They might have copied the second article of the
existing Confederation, which would have prohibited the exercise of any
power not EXPRESSLY delegated; they might have attempted a positive
enumeration of the powers comprehended under the general terms "necessary
and proper"; they might have attempted a negative enumeration of them, by
specifying the powers excepted from the general definition; they might
have been altogether silent on the subject, leaving these necessary and
proper powers to construction and inference.
Had the convention taken the first method of adopting the second article
of Confederation, it is evident that the new Congress would be continually
exposed, as their predecessors have been, to the alternative of construing
the term "EXPRESSLY" with so much rigor, as to disarm the government of
all real authority whatever, or with so much latitude as to destroy
altogether the force of the restriction. It would be easy to show, if it
were necessary, that no important power, delegated by the articles of
Confederation, has been or can be executed by Congress, without recurring
more or less to the doctrine of CONSTRUCTION or IMPLICATION. As the powers
delegated under the new system are more extensive, the government which is
to administer it would find itself still more distressed with the
alternative of betraying the public interests by doing nothing, or of
violating the Constitution by exercising powers indispensably necessary
and proper, but, at the same time, not EXPRESSLY granted.
Had the convention attempted a positive enumeration of the powers
necessary and proper for carrying their other powers into effect, the
attempt would have involved a complete digest of laws on every subject to
which the Constitution relates; accommodated too, not only to the existing
state of things, but to all the possible changes which futurity may
produce; for in every new application of a general power, the PARTICULAR
POWERS, which are the means of attaining the OBJECT of the general power,
must always necessarily vary with that object, and be often properly
varied whilst the object remains the same.
Had they attempted to enumerate the particular powers or means not
necessary or proper for carrying the general powers into execution, the
task would have been no less chimerical; and would have been liable to
this further objection, that every defect in the enumeration would have
been equivalent to a positive grant of authority. If, to avoid this
consequence, they had attempted a partial enumeration of the exceptions,
and described the residue by the general terms, NOT NECESSARY OR PROPER,
it must have happened that the enumeration would comprehend a few of the
excepted powers only; that these would be such as would be least likely to
be assumed or tolerated, because the enumeration would of course select
such as would be least necessary or proper; and that the unnecessary and
improper powers included in the residuum, would be less forcibly excepted,
than if no partial enumeration had been made.
Had the Constitution been silent on this head, there can be no doubt that
all the particular powers requisite as means of executing the general
powers would have resulted to the government, by unavoidable implication.
No axiom is more clearly established in law, or in reason, than that
wherever the end is required, the means are authorized; wherever a general
power to do a thing is given, every particular power necessary for doing
it is included. Had this last method, therefore, been pursued by the
convention, every objection now urged against their plan would remain in
all its plausibility; and the real inconveniency would be incurred of not
removing a pretext which may be seized on critical occasions for drawing
into question the essential powers of the Union.
If it be asked what is to be the consequence, in case the Congress shall
misconstrue this part of the Constitution, and exercise powers not
warranted by its true meaning, I answer, the same as if they should
misconstrue or enlarge any other power vested in them; as if the general
power had been reduced to particulars, and any one of these were to be
violated; the same, in short, as if the State legislatures should violate
the irrespective constitutional authorities. In the first instance, the
success of the usurpation will depend on the executive and judiciary
departments, which are to expound and give effect to the legislative acts;
and in the last resort a remedy must be obtained from the people who can,
by the election of more faithful representatives, annul the acts of the
usurpers. The truth is, that this ultimate redress may be more confided in
against unconstitutional acts of the federal than of the State
legislatures, for this plain reason, that as every such act of the former
will be an invasion of the rights of the latter, these will be ever ready
to mark the innovation, to sound the alarm to the people, and to exert
their local influence in effecting a change of federal representatives.
There being no such intermediate body between the State legislatures and
the people interested in watching the conduct of the former, violations of
the State constitutions are more likely to remain unnoticed and
unredressed.
2. "This Constitution and the laws of the United States which shall be
made in pursuance thereof, and all treaties made, or which shall be made,
under the authority of the United States, shall be the supreme law of the
land, and the judges in every State shall be bound thereby, any thing in
the constitution or laws of any State to the contrary notwithstanding."
The indiscreet zeal of the adversaries to the Constitution has betrayed
them into an attack on this part of it also, without which it would have
been evidently and radically defective. To be fully sensible of this, we
need only suppose for a moment that the supremacy of the State
constitutions had been left complete by a saving clause in their favor.
In the first place, as these constitutions invest the State legislatures
with absolute sovereignty, in all cases not excepted by the existing
articles of Confederation, all the authorities contained in the proposed
Constitution, so far as they exceed those enumerated in the Confederation,
would have been annulled, and the new Congress would have been reduced to
the same impotent condition with their predecessors.
In the next place, as the constitutions of some of the States do not even
expressly and fully recognize the existing powers of the Confederacy, an
express saving of the supremacy of the former would, in such States, have
brought into question every power contained in the proposed Constitution.
In the third place, as the constitutions of the States differ much from
each other, it might happen that a treaty or national law, of great and
equal importance to the States, would interfere with some and not with
other constitutions, and would consequently be valid in some of the
States, at the same time that it would have no effect in others.
In fine, the world would have seen, for the first time, a system of
government founded on an inversion of the fundamental principles of all
government; it would have seen the authority of the whole society every
where subordinate to the authority of the parts; it would have seen a
monster, in which the head was under the direction of the members.
3. "The Senators and Representatives, and the members of the several State
legislatures, and all executive and judicial officers, both of the United
States and the several States, shall be bound by oath or affirmation to
support this Constitution."
It has been asked why it was thought necessary, that the State magistracy
should be bound to support the federal Constitution, and unnecessary that
a like oath should be imposed on the officers of the United States, in
favor of the State constitutions.
Several reasons might be assigned for the distinction. I content myself
with one, which is obvious and conclusive. The members of the federal
government will have no agency in carrying the State constitutions into
effect. The members and officers of the State governments, on the
contrary, will have an essential agency in giving effect to the federal
Constitution. The election of the President and Senate will depend, in all
cases, on the legislatures of the several States. And the election of the
House of Representatives will equally depend on the same authority in the
first instance; and will, probably, forever be conducted by the officers,
and according to the laws, of the States.
4. Among the provisions for giving efficacy to the federal powers might be
added those which belong to the executive and judiciary departments: but
as these are reserved for particular examination in another place, I pass
them over in this.
We have now reviewed, in detail, all the articles composing the sum or
quantity of power delegated by the proposed Constitution to the federal
government, and are brought to this undeniable conclusion, that no part of
the power is unnecessary or improper for accomplishing the necessary
objects of the Union. The question, therefore, whether this amount of
power shall be granted or not, resolves itself into another question,
whether or not a government commensurate to the exigencies of the Union
shall be established; or, in other words, whether the Union itself shall
be preserved.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 45. The Alleged Danger From the Powers of the Union to the
State Governments.
Considered For the Independent Journal. Saturday, January 26, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING shown that no one of the powers transferred to the federal
government is unnecessary or improper, the next question to be considered
is, whether the whole mass of them will be dangerous to the portion of
authority left in the several States.
The adversaries to the plan of the convention, instead of considering in
the first place what degree of power was absolutely necessary for the
purposes of the federal government, have exhausted themselves in a
secondary inquiry into the possible consequences of the proposed degree of
power to the governments of the particular States. But if the Union, as
has been shown, be essential to the security of the people of America
against foreign danger; if it be essential to their security against
contentions and wars among the different States; if it be essential to
guard them against those violent and oppressive factions which embitter
the blessings of liberty, and against those military establishments which
must gradually poison its very fountain; if, in a word, the Union be
essential to the happiness of the people of America, is it not
preposterous, to urge as an objection to a government, without which the
objects of the Union cannot be attained, that such a government may
derogate from the importance of the governments of the individual States?
Was, then, the American Revolution effected, was the American Confederacy
formed, was the precious blood of thousands spilt, and the hard-earned
substance of millions lavished, not that the people of America should
enjoy peace, liberty, and safety, but that the government of the
individual States, that particular municipal establishments, might enjoy a
certain extent of power, and be arrayed with certain dignities and
attributes of sovereignty? We have heard of the impious doctrine in the
Old World, that the people were made for kings, not kings for the people.
Is the same doctrine to be revived in the New, in another shape that the
solid happiness of the people is to be sacrificed to the views of
political institutions of a different form? It is too early for
politicians to presume on our forgetting that the public good, the real
welfare of the great body of the people, is the supreme object to be
pursued; and that no form of government whatever has any other value than
as it may be fitted for the attainment of this object. Were the plan of
the convention adverse to the public happiness, my voice would be, Reject
the plan. Were the Union itself inconsistent with the public happiness, it
would be, Abolish the Union. In like manner, as far as the sovereignty of
the States cannot be reconciled to the happiness of the people, the voice
of every good citizen must be, Let the former be sacrificed to the latter.
How far the sacrifice is necessary, has been shown. How far the
unsacrificed residue will be endangered, is the question before us.
Several important considerations have been touched in the course of these
papers, which discountenance the supposition that the operation of the
federal government will by degrees prove fatal to the State governments.
The more I revolve the subject, the more fully I am persuaded that the
balance is much more likely to be disturbed by the preponderancy of the
last than of the first scale.
We have seen, in all the examples of ancient and modern confederacies, the
strongest tendency continually betraying itself in the members, to despoil
the general government of its authorities, with a very ineffectual
capacity in the latter to defend itself against the encroachments.
Although, in most of these examples, the system has been so dissimilar
from that under consideration as greatly to weaken any inference
concerning the latter from the fate of the former, yet, as the States will
retain, under the proposed Constitution, a very extensive portion of
active sovereignty, the inference ought not to be wholly disregarded. In
the Achaean league it is probable that the federal head had a degree and
species of power, which gave it a considerable likeness to the government
framed by the convention. The Lycian Confederacy, as far as its principles
and form are transmitted, must have borne a still greater analogy to it.
Yet history does not inform us that either of them ever degenerated, or
tended to degenerate, into one consolidated government. On the contrary,
we know that the ruin of one of them proceeded from the incapacity of the
federal authority to prevent the dissensions, and finally the disunion, of
the subordinate authorities. These cases are the more worthy of our
attention, as the external causes by which the component parts were
pressed together were much more numerous and powerful than in our case;
and consequently less powerful ligaments within would be sufficient to
bind the members to the head, and to each other.
In the feudal system, we have seen a similar propensity exemplified.
Notwithstanding the want of proper sympathy in every instance between the
local sovereigns and the people, and the sympathy in some instances
between the general sovereign and the latter, it usually happened that the
local sovereigns prevailed in the rivalship for encroachments. Had no
external dangers enforced internal harmony and subordination, and
particularly, had the local sovereigns possessed the affections of the
people, the great kingdoms in Europe would at this time consist of as many
independent princes as there were formerly feudatory barons.
The State governments will have the advantage of the Federal government,
whether we compare them in respect to the immediate dependence of the one
on the other; to the weight of personal influence which each side will
possess; to the powers respectively vested in them; to the predilection
and probable support of the people; to the disposition and faculty of
resisting and frustrating the measures of each other.
The State governments may be regarded as constituent and essential parts
of the federal government; whilst the latter is nowise essential to the
operation or organization of the former. Without the intervention of the
State legislatures, the President of the United States cannot be elected
at all. They must in all cases have a great share in his appointment, and
will, perhaps, in most cases, of themselves determine it. The Senate will
be elected absolutely and exclusively by the State legislatures. Even the
House of Representatives, though drawn immediately from the people, will
be chosen very much under the influence of that class of men, whose
influence over the people obtains for themselves an election into the
State legislatures. Thus, each of the principal branches of the federal
government will owe its existence more or less to the favor of the State
governments, and must consequently feel a dependence, which is much more
likely to beget a disposition too obsequious than too overbearing towards
them. On the other side, the component parts of the State governments will
in no instance be indebted for their appointment to the direct agency of
the federal government, and very little, if at all, to the local influence
of its members.
The number of individuals employed under the Constitution of the United
States will be much smaller than the number employed under the particular
States. There will consequently be less of personal influence on the side
of the former than of the latter. The members of the legislative,
executive, and judiciary departments of thirteen and more States, the
justices of peace, officers of militia, ministerial officers of justice,
with all the county, corporation, and town officers, for three millions
and more of people, intermixed, and having particular acquaintance with
every class and circle of people, must exceed, beyond all proportion, both
in number and influence, those of every description who will be employed
in the administration of the federal system. Compare the members of the
three great departments of the thirteen States, excluding from the
judiciary department the justices of peace, with the members of the
corresponding departments of the single government of the Union; compare
the militia officers of three millions of people with the military and
marine officers of any establishment which is within the compass of
probability, or, I may add, of possibility, and in this view alone, we may
pronounce the advantage of the States to be decisive. If the federal
government is to have collectors of revenue, the State governments will
have theirs also. And as those of the former will be principally on the
seacoast, and not very numerous, whilst those of the latter will be spread
over the face of the country, and will be very numerous, the advantage in
this view also lies on the same side. It is true, that the Confederacy is
to possess, and may exercise, the power of collecting internal as well as
external taxes throughout the States; but it is probable that this power
will not be resorted to, except for supplemental purposes of revenue; that
an option will then be given to the States to supply their quotas by
previous collections of their own; and that the eventual collection, under
the immediate authority of the Union, will generally be made by the
officers, and according to the rules, appointed by the several States.
Indeed it is extremely probable, that in other instances, particularly in
the organization of the judicial power, the officers of the States will be
clothed with the correspondent authority of the Union. Should it happen,
however, that separate collectors of internal revenue should be appointed
under the federal government, the influence of the whole number would not
bear a comparison with that of the multitude of State officers in the
opposite scale. Within every district to which a federal collector would
be allotted, there would not be less than thirty or forty, or even more,
officers of different descriptions, and many of them persons of character
and weight, whose influence would lie on the side of the State.
The powers delegated by the proposed Constitution to the federal
government, are few and defined. Those which are to remain in the State
governments are numerous and indefinite. The former will be exercised
principally on external objects, as war, peace, negotiation, and foreign
commerce; with which last the power of taxation will, for the most part,
be connected. The powers reserved to the several States will extend to all
the objects which, in the ordinary course of affairs, concern the lives,
liberties, and properties of the people, and the internal order,
improvement, and prosperity of the State.
The operations of the federal government will be most extensive and
important in times of war and danger; those of the State governments, in
times of peace and security. As the former periods will probably bear a
small proportion to the latter, the State governments will here enjoy
another advantage over the federal government. The more adequate, indeed,
the federal powers may be rendered to the national defense, the less
frequent will be those scenes of danger which might favor their ascendancy
over the governments of the particular States.
If the new Constitution be examined with accuracy and candor, it will be
found that the change which it proposes consists much less in the addition
of NEW POWERS to the Union, than in the invigoration of its ORIGINAL
POWERS. The regulation of commerce, it is true, is a new power; but that
seems to be an addition which few oppose, and from which no apprehensions
are entertained. The powers relating to war and peace, armies and fleets,
treaties and finance, with the other more considerable powers, are all
vested in the existing Congress by the articles of Confederation. The
proposed change does not enlarge these powers; it only substitutes a more
effectual mode of administering them. The change relating to taxation may
be regarded as the most important; and yet the present Congress have as
complete authority to REQUIRE of the States indefinite supplies of money
for the common defense and general welfare, as the future Congress will
have to require them of individual citizens; and the latter will be no
more bound than the States themselves have been, to pay the quotas
respectively taxed on them. Had the States complied punctually with the
articles of Confederation, or could their compliance have been enforced by
as peaceable means as may be used with success towards single persons, our
past experience is very far from countenancing an opinion, that the State
governments would have lost their constitutional powers, and have
gradually undergone an entire consolidation. To maintain that such an
event would have ensued, would be to say at once, that the existence of
the State governments is incompatible with any system whatever that
accomplishes the essential purposes of the Union.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 46. The Influence of the State and Federal Governments
Compared
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 29, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
RESUMING the subject of the last paper, I proceed to inquire whether the
federal government or the State governments will have the advantage with
regard to the predilection and support of the people. Notwithstanding the
different modes in which they are appointed, we must consider both of them
as substantially dependent on the great body of the citizens of the United
States. I assume this position here as it respects the first, reserving
the proofs for another place. The federal and State governments are in
fact but different agents and trustees of the people, constituted with
different powers, and designed for different purposes. The adversaries of
the Constitution seem to have lost sight of the people altogether in their
reasonings on this subject; and to have viewed these different
establishments, not only as mutual rivals and enemies, but as uncontrolled
by any common superior in their efforts to usurp the authorities of each
other. These gentlemen must here be reminded of their error. They must be
told that the ultimate authority, wherever the derivative may be found,
resides in the people alone, and that it will not depend merely on the
comparative ambition or address of the different governments, whether
either, or which of them, will be able to enlarge its sphere of
jurisdiction at the expense of the other. Truth, no less than decency,
requires that the event in every case should be supposed to depend on the
sentiments and sanction of their common constituents.
Many considerations, besides those suggested on a former occasion, seem to
place it beyond doubt that the first and most natural attachment of the
people will be to the governments of their respective States. Into the
administration of these a greater number of individuals will expect to
rise. From the gift of these a greater number of offices and emoluments
will flow. By the superintending care of these, all the more domestic and
personal interests of the people will be regulated and provided for. With
the affairs of these, the people will be more familiarly and minutely
conversant. And with the members of these, will a greater proportion of
the people have the ties of personal acquaintance and friendship, and of
family and party attachments; on the side of these, therefore, the popular
bias may well be expected most strongly to incline.
Experience speaks the same language in this case. The federal
administration, though hitherto very defective in comparison with what may
be hoped under a better system, had, during the war, and particularly
whilst the independent fund of paper emissions was in credit, an activity
and importance as great as it can well have in any future circumstances
whatever. It was engaged, too, in a course of measures which had for their
object the protection of everything that was dear, and the acquisition of
everything that could be desirable to the people at large. It was,
nevertheless, invariably found, after the transient enthusiasm for the
early Congresses was over, that the attention and attachment of the people
were turned anew to their own particular governments; that the federal
council was at no time the idol of popular favor; and that opposition to
proposed enlargements of its powers and importance was the side usually
taken by the men who wished to build their political consequence on the
prepossessions of their fellow-citizens.
If, therefore, as has been elsewhere remarked, the people should in future
become more partial to the federal than to the State governments, the
change can only result from such manifest and irresistible proofs of a
better administration, as will overcome all their antecedent propensities.
And in that case, the people ought not surely to be precluded from giving
most of their confidence where they may discover it to be most due; but
even in that case the State governments could have little to apprehend,
because it is only within a certain sphere that the federal power can, in
the nature of things, be advantageously administered.
The remaining points on which I propose to compare the federal and State
governments, are the disposition and the faculty they may respectively
possess, to resist and frustrate the measures of each other.
It has been already proved that the members of the federal will be more
dependent on the members of the State governments, than the latter will be
on the former. It has appeared also, that the prepossessions of the
people, on whom both will depend, will be more on the side of the State
governments, than of the federal government. So far as the disposition of
each towards the other may be influenced by these causes, the State
governments must clearly have the advantage. But in a distinct and very
important point of view, the advantage will lie on the same side. The
prepossessions, which the members themselves will carry into the federal
government, will generally be favorable to the States; whilst it will
rarely happen, that the members of the State governments will carry into
the public councils a bias in favor of the general government. A local
spirit will infallibly prevail much more in the members of Congress, than
a national spirit will prevail in the legislatures of the particular
States. Every one knows that a great proportion of the errors committed by
the State legislatures proceeds from the disposition of the members to
sacrifice the comprehensive and permanent interest of the State, to the
particular and separate views of the counties or districts in which they
reside. And if they do not sufficiently enlarge their policy to embrace
the collective welfare of their particular State, how can it be imagined
that they will make the aggregate prosperity of the Union, and the dignity
and respectability of its government, the objects of their affections and
consultations? For the same reason that the members of the State
legislatures will be unlikely to attach themselves sufficiently to
national objects, the members of the federal legislature will be likely to
attach themselves too much to local objects. The States will be to the
latter what counties and towns are to the former. Measures will too often
be decided according to their probable effect, not on the national
prosperity and happiness, but on the prejudices, interests, and pursuits
of the governments and people of the individual States. What is the spirit
that has in general characterized the proceedings of Congress? A perusal
of their journals, as well as the candid acknowledgments of such as have
had a seat in that assembly, will inform us, that the members have but too
frequently displayed the character, rather of partisans of their
respective States, than of impartial guardians of a common interest; that
where on one occasion improper sacrifices have been made of local
considerations, to the aggrandizement of the federal government, the great
interests of the nation have suffered on a hundred, from an undue
attention to the local prejudices, interests, and views of the particular
States. I mean not by these reflections to insinuate, that the new federal
government will not embrace a more enlarged plan of policy than the
existing government may have pursued; much less, that its views will be as
confined as those of the State legislatures; but only that it will partake
sufficiently of the spirit of both, to be disinclined to invade the rights
of the individual States, or the prerogatives of their governments. The
motives on the part of the State governments, to augment their
prerogatives by defalcations from the federal government, will be
overruled by no reciprocal predispositions in the members.
Were it admitted, however, that the Federal government may feel an equal
disposition with the State governments to extend its power beyond the due
limits, the latter would still have the advantage in the means of
defeating such encroachments. If an act of a particular State, though
unfriendly to the national government, be generally popular in that State
and should not too grossly violate the oaths of the State officers, it is
executed immediately and, of course, by means on the spot and depending on
the State alone. The opposition of the federal government, or the
interposition of federal officers, would but inflame the zeal of all
parties on the side of the State, and the evil could not be prevented or
repaired, if at all, without the employment of means which must always be
resorted to with reluctance and difficulty. On the other hand, should an
unwarrantable measure of the federal government be unpopular in particular
States, which would seldom fail to be the case, or even a warrantable
measure be so, which may sometimes be the case, the means of opposition to
it are powerful and at hand. The disquietude of the people; their
repugnance and, perhaps, refusal to co-operate with the officers of the
Union; the frowns of the executive magistracy of the State; the
embarrassments created by legislative devices, which would often be added
on such occasions, would oppose, in any State, difficulties not to be
despised; would form, in a large State, very serious impediments; and
where the sentiments of several adjoining States happened to be in unison,
would present obstructions which the federal government would hardly be
willing to encounter.
But ambitious encroachments of the federal government, on the authority of
the State governments, would not excite the opposition of a single State,
or of a few States only. They would be signals of general alarm. Every
government would espouse the common cause. A correspondence would be
opened. Plans of resistance would be concerted. One spirit would animate
and conduct the whole. The same combinations, in short, would result from
an apprehension of the federal, as was produced by the dread of a foreign,
yoke; and unless the projected innovations should be voluntarily
renounced, the same appeal to a trial of force would be made in the one
case as was made in the other. But what degree of madness could ever drive
the federal government to such an extremity. In the contest with Great
Britain, one part of the empire was employed against the other. The more
numerous part invaded the rights of the less numerous part. The attempt
was unjust and unwise; but it was not in speculation absolutely
chimerical. But what would be the contest in the case we are supposing?
Who would be the parties? A few representatives of the people would be
opposed to the people themselves; or rather one set of representatives
would be contending against thirteen sets of representatives, with the
whole body of their common constituents on the side of the latter.
The only refuge left for those who prophesy the downfall of the State
governments is the visionary supposition that the federal government may
previously accumulate a military force for the projects of ambition. The
reasonings contained in these papers must have been employed to little
purpose indeed, if it could be necessary now to disprove the reality of
this danger. That the people and the States should, for a sufficient
period of time, elect an uninterrupted succession of men ready to betray
both; that the traitors should, throughout this period, uniformly and
systematically pursue some fixed plan for the extension of the military
establishment; that the governments and the people of the States should
silently and patiently behold the gathering storm, and continue to supply
the materials, until it should be prepared to burst on their own heads,
must appear to every one more like the incoherent dreams of a delirious
jealousy, or the misjudged exaggerations of a counterfeit zeal, than like
the sober apprehensions of genuine patriotism. Extravagant as the
supposition is, let it however be made. Let a regular army, fully equal to
the resources of the country, be formed; and let it be entirely at the
devotion of the federal government; still it would not be going too far to
say, that the State governments, with the people on their side, would be
able to repel the danger. The highest number to which, according to the
best computation, a standing army can be carried in any country, does not
exceed one hundredth part of the whole number of souls; or one
twenty-fifth part of the number able to bear arms. This proportion would
not yield, in the United States, an army of more than twenty-five or
thirty thousand men. To these would be opposed a militia amounting to near
half a million of citizens with arms in their hands, officered by men
chosen from among themselves, fighting for their common liberties, and
united and conducted by governments possessing their affections and
confidence. It may well be doubted, whether a militia thus circumstanced
could ever be conquered by such a proportion of regular troops. Those who
are best acquainted with the last successful resistance of this country
against the British arms, will be most inclined to deny the possibility of
it. Besides the advantage of being armed, which the Americans possess over
the people of almost every other nation, the existence of subordinate
governments, to which the people are attached, and by which the militia
officers are appointed, forms a barrier against the enterprises of
ambition, more insurmountable than any which a simple government of any
form can admit of. Notwithstanding the military establishments in the
several kingdoms of Europe, which are carried as far as the public
resources will bear, the governments are afraid to trust the people with
arms. And it is not certain, that with this aid alone they would not be
able to shake off their yokes. But were the people to possess the
additional advantages of local governments chosen by themselves, who could
collect the national will and direct the national force, and of officers
appointed out of the militia, by these governments, and attached both to
them and to the militia, it may be affirmed with the greatest assurance,
that the throne of every tyranny in Europe would be speedily overturned in
spite of the legions which surround it. Let us not insult the free and
gallant citizens of America with the suspicion, that they would be less
able to defend the rights of which they would be in actual possession,
than the debased subjects of arbitrary power would be to rescue theirs
from the hands of their oppressors. Let us rather no longer insult them
with the supposition that they can ever reduce themselves to the necessity
of making the experiment, by a blind and tame submission to the long train
of insidious measures which must precede and produce it.
The argument under the present head may be put into a very concise form,
which appears altogether conclusive. Either the mode in which the federal
government is to be constructed will render it sufficiently dependent on
the people, or it will not. On the first supposition, it will be
restrained by that dependence from forming schemes obnoxious to their
constituents. On the other supposition, it will not possess the confidence
of the people, and its schemes of usurpation will be easily defeated by
the State governments, who will be supported by the people.
On summing up the considerations stated in this and the last paper, they
seem to amount to the most convincing evidence, that the powers proposed
to be lodged in the federal government are as little formidable to those
reserved to the individual States, as they are indispensably necessary to
accomplish the purposes of the Union; and that all those alarms which have
been sounded, of a meditated and consequential annihilation of the State
governments, must, on the most favorable interpretation, be ascribed to
the chimerical fears of the authors of them.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 47. The Particular Structure of the New Government and the
Distribution of Power Among Its Different Parts.
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 30, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING reviewed the general form of the proposed government and the
general mass of power allotted to it, I proceed to examine the particular
structure of this government, and the distribution of this mass of power
among its constituent parts.
One of the principal objections inculcated by the more respectable
adversaries to the Constitution, is its supposed violation of the
political maxim, that the legislative, executive, and judiciary
departments ought to be separate and distinct. In the structure of the
federal government, no regard, it is said, seems to have been paid to this
essential precaution in favor of liberty. The several departments of power
are distributed and blended in such a manner as at once to destroy all
symmetry and beauty of form, and to expose some of the essential parts of
the edifice to the danger of being crushed by the disproportionate weight
of other parts.
No political truth is certainly of greater intrinsic value, or is stamped
with the authority of more enlightened patrons of liberty, than that on
which the objection is founded. The accumulation of all powers,
legislative, executive, and judiciary, in the same hands, whether of one,
a few, or many, and whether hereditary, self-appointed, or elective, may
justly be pronounced the very definition of tyranny. Were the federal
Constitution, therefore, really chargeable with the accumulation of power,
or with a mixture of powers, having a dangerous tendency to such an
accumulation, no further arguments would be necessary to inspire a
universal reprobation of the system. I persuade myself, however, that it
will be made apparent to every one, that the charge cannot be supported,
and that the maxim on which it relies has been totally misconceived and
misapplied. In order to form correct ideas on this important subject, it
will be proper to investigate the sense in which the preservation of
liberty requires that the three great departments of power should be
separate and distinct.
The oracle who is always consulted and cited on this subject is the
celebrated Montesquieu. If he be not the author of this invaluable precept
in the science of politics, he has the merit at least of displaying and
recommending it most effectually to the attention of mankind. Let us
endeavor, in the first place, to ascertain his meaning on this point.
The British Constitution was to Montesquieu what Homer has been to the
didactic writers on epic poetry. As the latter have considered the work of
the immortal bard as the perfect model from which the principles and rules
of the epic art were to be drawn, and by which all similar works were to
be judged, so this great political critic appears to have viewed the
Constitution of England as the standard, or to use his own expression, as
the mirror of political liberty; and to have delivered, in the form of
elementary truths, the several characteristic principles of that
particular system. That we may be sure, then, not to mistake his meaning
in this case, let us recur to the source from which the maxim was drawn.
On the slightest view of the British Constitution, we must perceive that
the legislative, executive, and judiciary departments are by no means
totally separate and distinct from each other. The executive magistrate
forms an integral part of the legislative authority. He alone has the
prerogative of making treaties with foreign sovereigns, which, when made,
have, under certain limitations, the force of legislative acts. All the
members of the judiciary department are appointed by him, can be removed
by him on the address of the two Houses of Parliament, and form, when he
pleases to consult them, one of his constitutional councils. One branch of
the legislative department forms also a great constitutional council to
the executive chief, as, on another hand, it is the sole depositary of
judicial power in cases of impeachment, and is invested with the supreme
appellate jurisdiction in all other cases. The judges, again, are so far
connected with the legislative department as often to attend and
participate in its deliberations, though not admitted to a legislative
vote.
From these facts, by which Montesquieu was guided, it may clearly be
inferred that, in saying "There can be no liberty where the legislative
and executive powers are united in the same person, or body of
magistrates," or, "if the power of judging be not separated from the
legislative and executive powers," he did not mean that these departments
ought to have no PARTIAL AGENCY in, or no CONTROL over, the acts of each
other. His meaning, as his own words import, and still more conclusively
as illustrated by the example in his eye, can amount to no more than this,
that where the WHOLE power of one department is exercised by the same
hands which possess the WHOLE power of another department, the fundamental
principles of a free constitution are subverted. This would have been the
case in the constitution examined by him, if the king, who is the sole
executive magistrate, had possessed also the complete legislative power,
or the supreme administration of justice; or if the entire legislative
body had possessed the supreme judiciary, or the supreme executive
authority. This, however, is not among the vices of that constitution. The
magistrate in whom the whole executive power resides cannot of himself
make a law, though he can put a negative on every law; nor administer
justice in person, though he has the appointment of those who do
administer it. The judges can exercise no executive prerogative, though
they are shoots from the executive stock; nor any legislative function,
though they may be advised with by the legislative councils. The entire
legislature can perform no judiciary act, though by the joint act of two
of its branches the judges may be removed from their offices, and though
one of its branches is possessed of the judicial power in the last resort.
The entire legislature, again, can exercise no executive prerogative,
though one of its branches constitutes the supreme executive magistracy,
and another, on the impeachment of a third, can try and condemn all the
subordinate officers in the executive department.
The reasons on which Montesquieu grounds his maxim are a further
demonstration of his meaning. "When the legislative and executive powers
are united in the same person or body," says he, "there can be no liberty,
because apprehensions may arise lest THE SAME monarch or senate should
ENACT tyrannical laws to EXECUTE them in a tyrannical manner." Again:
"Were the power of judging joined with the legislative, the life and
liberty of the subject would be exposed to arbitrary control, for THE
JUDGE would then be THE LEGISLATOR. Were it joined to the executive power,
THE JUDGE might behave with all the violence of AN OPPRESSOR." Some of
these reasons are more fully explained in other passages; but briefly
stated as they are here, they sufficiently establish the meaning which we
have put on this celebrated maxim of this celebrated author.
If we look into the constitutions of the several States, we find that,
notwithstanding the emphatical and, in some instances, the unqualified
terms in which this axiom has been laid down, there is not a single
instance in which the several departments of power have been kept
absolutely separate and distinct. New Hampshire, whose constitution was
the last formed, seems to have been fully aware of the impossibility and
inexpediency of avoiding any mixture whatever of these departments, and
has qualified the doctrine by declaring "that the legislative, executive,
and judiciary powers ought to be kept as separate from, and independent
of, each other AS THE NATURE OF A FREE GOVERNMENT WILL ADMIT; OR AS IS
CONSISTENT WITH THAT CHAIN OF CONNECTION THAT BINDS THE WHOLE FABRIC OF
THE CONSTITUTION IN ONE INDISSOLUBLE BOND OF UNITY AND AMITY." Her
constitution accordingly mixes these departments in several respects. The
Senate, which is a branch of the legislative department, is also a
judicial tribunal for the trial of impeachments. The President, who is the
head of the executive department, is the presiding member also of the
Senate; and, besides an equal vote in all cases, has a casting vote in
case of a tie. The executive head is himself eventually elective every
year by the legislative department, and his council is every year chosen
by and from the members of the same department. Several of the officers of
state are also appointed by the legislature. And the members of the
judiciary department are appointed by the executive department.
The constitution of Massachusetts has observed a sufficient though less
pointed caution, in expressing this fundamental article of liberty. It
declares "that the legislative department shall never exercise the
executive and judicial powers, or either of them; the executive shall
never exercise the legislative and judicial powers, or either of them; the
judicial shall never exercise the legislative and executive powers, or
either of them." This declaration corresponds precisely with the doctrine
of Montesquieu, as it has been explained, and is not in a single point
violated by the plan of the convention. It goes no farther than to
prohibit any one of the entire departments from exercising the powers of
another department. In the very Constitution to which it is prefixed, a
partial mixture of powers has been admitted. The executive magistrate has
a qualified negative on the legislative body, and the Senate, which is a
part of the legislature, is a court of impeachment for members both of the
executive and judiciary departments. The members of the judiciary
department, again, are appointable by the executive department, and
removable by the same authority on the address of the two legislative
branches. Lastly, a number of the officers of government are annually
appointed by the legislative department. As the appointment to offices,
particularly executive offices, is in its nature an executive function,
the compilers of the Constitution have, in this last point at least,
violated the rule established by themselves.
I pass over the constitutions of Rhode Island and Connecticut, because
they were formed prior to the Revolution, and even before the principle
under examination had become an object of political attention.
The constitution of New York contains no declaration on this subject; but
appears very clearly to have been framed with an eye to the danger of
improperly blending the different departments. It gives, nevertheless, to
the executive magistrate, a partial control over the legislative
department; and, what is more, gives a like control to the judiciary
department; and even blends the executive and judiciary departments in the
exercise of this control. In its council of appointment members of the
legislative are associated with the executive authority, in the
appointment of officers, both executive and judiciary. And its court for
the trial of impeachments and correction of errors is to consist of one
branch of the legislature and the principal members of the judiciary
department.
The constitution of New Jersey has blended the different powers of
government more than any of the preceding. The governor, who is the
executive magistrate, is appointed by the legislature; is chancellor and
ordinary, or surrogate of the State; is a member of the Supreme Court of
Appeals, and president, with a casting vote, of one of the legislative
branches. The same legislative branch acts again as executive council of
the governor, and with him constitutes the Court of Appeals. The members
of the judiciary department are appointed by the legislative department
and removable by one branch of it, on the impeachment of the other.
According to the constitution of Pennsylvania, the president, who is the
head of the executive department, is annually elected by a vote in which
the legislative department predominates. In conjunction with an executive
council, he appoints the members of the judiciary department, and forms a
court of impeachment for trial of all officers, judiciary as well as
executive. The judges of the Supreme Court and justices of the peace seem
also to be removable by the legislature; and the executive power of
pardoning in certain cases, to be referred to the same department. The
members of the executive council are made EX-OFFICIO justices of peace
throughout the State.
In Delaware, the chief executive magistrate is annually elected by the
legislative department. The speakers of the two legislative branches are
vice-presidents in the executive department. The executive chief, with six
others, appointed, three by each of the legislative branches constitutes
the Supreme Court of Appeals; he is joined with the legislative department
in the appointment of the other judges. Throughout the States, it appears
that the members of the legislature may at the same time be justices of
the peace; in this State, the members of one branch of it are EX-OFFICIO
justices of the peace; as are also the members of the executive council.
The principal officers of the executive department are appointed by the
legislative; and one branch of the latter forms a court of impeachments.
All officers may be removed on address of the legislature.
Maryland has adopted the maxim in the most unqualified terms; declaring
that the legislative, executive, and judicial powers of government ought
to be forever separate and distinct from each other. Her constitution,
notwithstanding, makes the executive magistrate appointable by the
legislative department; and the members of the judiciary by the executive
department.
The language of Virginia is still more pointed on this subject. Her
constitution declares, "that the legislative, executive, and judiciary
departments shall be separate and distinct; so that neither exercise the
powers properly belonging to the other; nor shall any person exercise the
powers of more than one of them at the same time, except that the justices
of county courts shall be eligible to either House of Assembly." Yet we
find not only this express exception, with respect to the members of the
inferior courts, but that the chief magistrate, with his executive
council, are appointable by the legislature; that two members of the
latter are triennially displaced at the pleasure of the legislature; and
that all the principal offices, both executive and judiciary, are filled
by the same department. The executive prerogative of pardon, also, is in
one case vested in the legislative department.
The constitution of North Carolina, which declares "that the legislative,
executive, and supreme judicial powers of government ought to be forever
separate and distinct from each other," refers, at the same time, to the
legislative department, the appointment not only of the executive chief,
but all the principal officers within both that and the judiciary
department.
In South Carolina, the constitution makes the executive magistracy
eligible by the legislative department. It gives to the latter, also, the
appointment of the members of the judiciary department, including even
justices of the peace and sheriffs; and the appointment of officers in the
executive department, down to captains in the army and navy of the State.
In the constitution of Georgia, where it is declared "that the
legislative, executive, and judiciary departments shall be separate and
distinct, so that neither exercise the powers properly belonging to the
other," we find that the executive department is to be filled by
appointments of the legislature; and the executive prerogative of pardon
to be finally exercised by the same authority. Even justices of the peace
are to be appointed by the legislature.
In citing these cases, in which the legislative, executive, and judiciary
departments have not been kept totally separate and distinct, I wish not
to be regarded as an advocate for the particular organizations of the
several State governments. I am fully aware that among the many excellent
principles which they exemplify, they carry strong marks of the haste, and
still stronger of the inexperience, under which they were framed. It is
but too obvious that in some instances the fundamental principle under
consideration has been violated by too great a mixture, and even an actual
consolidation, of the different powers; and that in no instance has a
competent provision been made for maintaining in practice the separation
delineated on paper. What I have wished to evince is, that the charge
brought against the proposed Constitution, of violating the sacred maxim
of free government, is warranted neither by the real meaning annexed to
that maxim by its author, nor by the sense in which it has hitherto been
understood in America. This interesting subject will be resumed in the
ensuing paper.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 48. These Departments Should Not Be So Far Separated as to
Have No Constitutional Control Over Each Other.
From the New York Packet. Friday, February 1, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT WAS shown in the last paper that the political apothegm there examined
does not require that the legislative, executive, and judiciary
departments should be wholly unconnected with each other. I shall
undertake, in the next place, to show that unless these departments be so
far connected and blended as to give to each a constitutional control over
the others, the degree of separation which the maxim requires, as
essential to a free government, can never in practice be duly maintained.
It is agreed on all sides, that the powers properly belonging to one of
the departments ought not to be directly and completely administered by
either of the other departments. It is equally evident, that none of them
ought to possess, directly or indirectly, an overruling influence over the
others, in the administration of their respective powers. It will not be
denied, that power is of an encroaching nature, and that it ought to be
effectually restrained from passing the limits assigned to it. After
discriminating, therefore, in theory, the several classes of power, as
they may in their nature be legislative, executive, or judiciary, the next
and most difficult task is to provide some practical security for each,
against the invasion of the others. What this security ought to be, is the
great problem to be solved.
Will it be sufficient to mark, with precision, the boundaries of these
departments, in the constitution of the government, and to trust to these
parchment barriers against the encroaching spirit of power? This is the
security which appears to have been principally relied on by the compilers
of most of the American constitutions. But experience assures us, that the
efficacy of the provision has been greatly overrated; and that some more
adequate defense is indispensably necessary for the more feeble, against
the more powerful, members of the government. The legislative department
is everywhere extending the sphere of its activity, and drawing all power
into its impetuous vortex.
The founders of our republics have so much merit for the wisdom which they
have displayed, that no task can be less pleasing than that of pointing
out the errors into which they have fallen. A respect for truth, however,
obliges us to remark, that they seem never for a moment to have turned
their eyes from the danger to liberty from the overgrown and all-grasping
prerogative of an hereditary magistrate, supported and fortified by an
hereditary branch of the legislative authority. They seem never to have
recollected the danger from legislative usurpations, which, by assembling
all power in the same hands, must lead to the same tyranny as is
threatened by executive usurpations.
In a government where numerous and extensive prerogatives are placed in
the hands of an hereditary monarch, the executive department is very
justly regarded as the source of danger, and watched with all the jealousy
which a zeal for liberty ought to inspire. In a democracy, where a
multitude of people exercise in person the legislative functions, and are
continually exposed, by their incapacity for regular deliberation and
concerted measures, to the ambitious intrigues of their executive
magistrates, tyranny may well be apprehended, on some favorable emergency,
to start up in the same quarter. But in a representative republic, where
the executive magistracy is carefully limited; both in the extent and the
duration of its power; and where the legislative power is exercised by an
assembly, which is inspired, by a supposed influence over the people, with
an intrepid confidence in its own strength; which is sufficiently numerous
to feel all the passions which actuate a multitude, yet not so numerous as
to be incapable of pursuing the objects of its passions, by means which
reason prescribes; it is against the enterprising ambition of this
department that the people ought to indulge all their jealousy and exhaust
all their precautions.
The legislative department derives a superiority in our governments from
other circumstances. Its constitutional powers being at once more
extensive, and less susceptible of precise limits, it can, with the
greater facility, mask, under complicated and indirect measures, the
encroachments which it makes on the co-ordinate departments. It is not
unfrequently a question of real nicety in legislative bodies, whether the
operation of a particular measure will, or will not, extend beyond the
legislative sphere. On the other side, the executive power being
restrained within a narrower compass, and being more simple in its nature,
and the judiciary being described by landmarks still less uncertain,
projects of usurpation by either of these departments would immediately
betray and defeat themselves. Nor is this all: as the legislative
department alone has access to the pockets of the people, and has in some
constitutions full discretion, and in all a prevailing influence, over the
pecuniary rewards of those who fill the other departments, a dependence is
thus created in the latter, which gives still greater facility to
encroachments of the former.
I have appealed to our own experience for the truth of what I advance on
this subject. Were it necessary to verify this experience by particular
proofs, they might be multiplied without end. I might find a witness in
every citizen who has shared in, or been attentive to, the course of
public administrations. I might collect vouchers in abundance from the
records and archives of every State in the Union. But as a more concise,
and at the same time equally satisfactory, evidence, I will refer to the
example of two States, attested by two unexceptionable authorities.
The first example is that of Virginia, a State which, as we have seen, has
expressly declared in its constitution, that the three great departments
ought not to be intermixed. The authority in support of it is Mr.
Jefferson, who, besides his other advantages for remarking the operation
of the government, was himself the chief magistrate of it. In order to
convey fully the ideas with which his experience had impressed him on this
subject, it will be necessary to quote a passage of some length from his
very interesting Notes on the State of Virginia, p. 195. "All the powers
of government, legislative, executive, and judiciary, result to the
legislative body. The concentrating these in the same hands, is precisely
the definition of despotic government. It will be no alleviation, that
these powers will be exercised by a plurality of hands, and not by a
single one. One hundred and seventy-three despots would surely be as
oppressive as one. Let those who doubt it, turn their eyes on the republic
of Venice. As little will it avail us, that they are chosen by ourselves.
An ELECTIVE DESPOTISM was not the government we fought for; but one which
should not only be founded on free principles, but in which the powers of
government should be so divided and balanced among several bodies of
magistracy, as that no one could transcend their legal limits, without
being effectually checked and restrained by the others. For this reason,
that convention which passed the ordinance of government, laid its
foundation on this basis, that the legislative, executive, and judiciary
departments should be separate and distinct, so that no person should
exercise the powers of more than one of them at the same time. BUT NO
BARRIER WAS PROVIDED BETWEEN THESE SEVERAL POWERS. The judiciary and the
executive members were left dependent on the legislative for their
subsistence in office, and some of them for their continuance in it. If,
therefore, the legislature assumes executive and judiciary powers, no
opposition is likely to be made; nor, if made, can be effectual; because
in that case they may put their proceedings into the form of acts of
Assembly, which will render them obligatory on the other branches. They
have accordingly, IN MANY instances, DECIDED RIGHTS which should have been
left to JUDICIARY CONTROVERSY, and THE DIRECTION OF THE EXECUTIVE, DURING
THE WHOLE TIME OF THEIR SESSION, IS BECOMING HABITUAL AND FAMILIAR."
The other State which I shall take for an example is Pennsylvania; and the
other authority, the Council of Censors, which assembled in the years 1783
and 1784. A part of the duty of this body, as marked out by the
constitution, was "to inquire whether the constitution had been preserved
inviolate in every part; and whether the legislative and executive
branches of government had performed their duty as guardians of the
people, or assumed to themselves, or exercised, other or greater powers
than they are entitled to by the constitution." In the execution of this
trust, the council were necessarily led to a comparison of both the
legislative and executive proceedings, with the constitutional powers of
these departments; and from the facts enumerated, and to the truth of most
of which both sides in the council subscribed, it appears that the
constitution had been flagrantly violated by the legislature in a variety
of important instances.
A great number of laws had been passed, violating, without any apparent
necessity, the rule requiring that all bills of a public nature shall be
previously printed for the consideration of the people; although this is
one of the precautions chiefly relied on by the constitution against
improper acts of legislature.
The constitutional trial by jury had been violated, and powers assumed
which had not been delegated by the constitution.
Executive powers had been usurped.
The salaries of the judges, which the constitution expressly requires to
be fixed, had been occasionally varied; and cases belonging to the
judiciary department frequently drawn within legislative cognizance and
determination.
Those who wish to see the several particulars falling under each of these
heads, may consult the journals of the council, which are in print. Some
of them, it will be found, may be imputable to peculiar circumstances
connected with the war; but the greater part of them may be considered as
the spontaneous shoots of an ill-constituted government.
It appears, also, that the executive department had not been innocent of
frequent breaches of the constitution. There are three observations,
however, which ought to be made on this head: FIRST, a great proportion of
the instances were either immediately produced by the necessities of the
war, or recommended by Congress or the commander-in-chief; SECOND, in most
of the other instances, they conformed either to the declared or the known
sentiments of the legislative department; THIRD, the executive department
of Pennsylvania is distinguished from that of the other States by the
number of members composing it. In this respect, it has as much affinity
to a legislative assembly as to an executive council. And being at once
exempt from the restraint of an individual responsibility for the acts of
the body, and deriving confidence from mutual example and joint influence,
unauthorized measures would, of course, be more freely hazarded, than
where the executive department is administered by a single hand, or by a
few hands.
The conclusion which I am warranted in drawing from these observations is,
that a mere demarcation on parchment of the constitutional limits of the
several departments, is not a sufficient guard against those encroachments
which lead to a tyrannical concentration of all the powers of government
in the same hands.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 49. Method of Guarding Against the Encroachments of Any One
Department of Government by Appealing to the People Through a Convention.
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, February 2, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE author of the "Notes on the State of Virginia," quoted in the last
paper, has subjoined to that valuable work the draught of a constitution,
which had been prepared in order to be laid before a convention, expected
to be called in 1783, by the legislature, for the establishment of a
constitution for that commonwealth. The plan, like every thing from the
same pen, marks a turn of thinking, original, comprehensive, and accurate;
and is the more worthy of attention as it equally displays a fervent
attachment to republican government and an enlightened view of the
dangerous propensities against which it ought to be guarded. One of the
precautions which he proposes, and on which he appears ultimately to rely
as a palladium to the weaker departments of power against the invasions of
the stronger, is perhaps altogether his own, and as it immediately relates
to the subject of our present inquiry, ought not to be overlooked.
His proposition is, "that whenever any two of the three branches of
government shall concur in opinion, each by the voices of two thirds of
their whole number, that a convention is necessary for altering the
constitution, or CORRECTING BREACHES OF IT, a convention shall be called
for the purpose."
As the people are the only legitimate fountain of power, and it is from
them that the constitutional charter, under which the several branches of
government hold their power, is derived, it seems strictly consonant to
the republican theory, to recur to the same original authority, not only
whenever it may be necessary to enlarge, diminish, or new-model the powers
of the government, but also whenever any one of the departments may commit
encroachments on the chartered authorities of the others. The several
departments being perfectly co-ordinate by the terms of their common
commission, none of them, it is evident, can pretend to an exclusive or
superior right of settling the boundaries between their respective powers;
and how are the encroachments of the stronger to be prevented, or the
wrongs of the weaker to be redressed, without an appeal to the people
themselves, who, as the grantors of the commissions, can alone declare its
true meaning, and enforce its observance?
There is certainly great force in this reasoning, and it must be allowed
to prove that a constitutional road to the decision of the people ought to
be marked out and kept open, for certain great and extraordinary
occasions. But there appear to be insuperable objections against the
proposed recurrence to the people, as a provision in all cases for keeping
the several departments of power within their constitutional limits.
In the first place, the provision does not reach the case of a combination
of two of the departments against the third. If the legislative authority,
which possesses so many means of operating on the motives of the other
departments, should be able to gain to its interest either of the others,
or even one third of its members, the remaining department could derive no
advantage from its remedial provision. I do not dwell, however, on this
objection, because it may be thought to be rather against the modification
of the principle, than against the principle itself.
In the next place, it may be considered as an objection inherent in the
principle, that as every appeal to the people would carry an implication
of some defect in the government, frequent appeals would, in a great
measure, deprive the government of that veneration which time bestows on
every thing, and without which perhaps the wisest and freest governments
would not possess the requisite stability. If it be true that all
governments rest on opinion, it is no less true that the strength of
opinion in each individual, and its practical influence on his conduct,
depend much on the number which he supposes to have entertained the same
opinion. The reason of man, like man himself, is timid and cautious when
left alone, and acquires firmness and confidence in proportion to the
number with which it is associated. When the examples which fortify
opinion are ANCIENT as well as NUMEROUS, they are known to have a double
effect. In a nation of philosophers, this consideration ought to be
disregarded. A reverence for the laws would be sufficiently inculcated by
the voice of an enlightened reason. But a nation of philosophers is as
little to be expected as the philosophical race of kings wished for by
Plato. And in every other nation, the most rational government will not
find it a superfluous advantage to have the prejudices of the community on
its side.
The danger of disturbing the public tranquillity by interesting too
strongly the public passions, is a still more serious objection against a
frequent reference of constitutional questions to the decision of the
whole society. Notwithstanding the success which has attended the
revisions of our established forms of government, and which does so much
honor to the virtue and intelligence of the people of America, it must be
confessed that the experiments are of too ticklish a nature to be
unnecessarily multiplied. We are to recollect that all the existing
constitutions were formed in the midst of a danger which repressed the
passions most unfriendly to order and concord; of an enthusiastic
confidence of the people in their patriotic leaders, which stifled the
ordinary diversity of opinions on great national questions; of a universal
ardor for new and opposite forms, produced by a universal resentment and
indignation against the ancient government; and whilst no spirit of party
connected with the changes to be made, or the abuses to be reformed, could
mingle its leaven in the operation. The future situations in which we must
expect to be usually placed, do not present any equivalent security
against the danger which is apprehended.
But the greatest objection of all is, that the decisions which would
probably result from such appeals would not answer the purpose of
maintaining the constitutional equilibrium of the government. We have seen
that the tendency of republican governments is to an aggrandizement of the
legislative at the expense of the other departments. The appeals to the
people, therefore, would usually be made by the executive and judiciary
departments. But whether made by one side or the other, would each side
enjoy equal advantages on the trial? Let us view their different
situations. The members of the executive and judiciary departments are few
in number, and can be personally known to a small part only of the people.
The latter, by the mode of their appointment, as well as by the nature and
permanency of it, are too far removed from the people to share much in
their prepossessions. The former are generally the objects of jealousy,
and their administration is always liable to be discolored and rendered
unpopular. The members of the legislative department, on the other hand,
are numerous. They are distributed and dwell among the people at large.
Their connections of blood, of friendship, and of acquaintance embrace a
great proportion of the most influential part of the society. The nature
of their public trust implies a personal influence among the people, and
that they are more immediately the confidential guardians of the rights
and liberties of the people. With these advantages, it can hardly be
supposed that the adverse party would have an equal chance for a favorable
issue.
But the legislative party would not only be able to plead their cause most
successfully with the people. They would probably be constituted
themselves the judges. The same influence which had gained them an
election into the legislature, would gain them a seat in the convention.
If this should not be the case with all, it would probably be the case
with many, and pretty certainly with those leading characters, on whom
every thing depends in such bodies. The convention, in short, would be
composed chiefly of men who had been, who actually were, or who expected
to be, members of the department whose conduct was arraigned. They would
consequently be parties to the very question to be decided by them.
It might, however, sometimes happen, that appeals would be made under
circumstances less adverse to the executive and judiciary departments. The
usurpations of the legislature might be so flagrant and so sudden, as to
admit of no specious coloring. A strong party among themselves might take
side with the other branches. The executive power might be in the hands of
a peculiar favorite of the people. In such a posture of things, the public
decision might be less swayed by prepossessions in favor of the
legislative party. But still it could never be expected to turn on the
true merits of the question. It would inevitably be connected with the
spirit of pre-existing parties, or of parties springing out of the
question itself. It would be connected with persons of distinguished
character and extensive influence in the community. It would be pronounced
by the very men who had been agents in, or opponents of, the measures to
which the decision would relate. The PASSIONS, therefore, not the REASON,
of the public would sit in judgment. But it is the reason, alone, of the
public, that ought to control and regulate the government. The passions
ought to be controlled and regulated by the government.
We found in the last paper, that mere declarations in the written
constitution are not sufficient to restrain the several departments within
their legal rights. It appears in this, that occasional appeals to the
people would be neither a proper nor an effectual provision for that
purpose. How far the provisions of a different nature contained in the
plan above quoted might be adequate, I do not examine. Some of them are
unquestionably founded on sound political principles, and all of them are
framed with singular ingenuity and precision.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 50. Periodical Appeals to the People Considered
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 5, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT MAY be contended, perhaps, that instead of OCCASIONAL appeals to the
people, which are liable to the objections urged against them, PERIODICAL
appeals are the proper and adequate means of PREVENTING AND CORRECTING
INFRACTIONS OF THE CONSTITUTION.
It will be attended to, that in the examination of these expedients, I
confine myself to their aptitude for ENFORCING the Constitution, by
keeping the several departments of power within their due bounds, without
particularly considering them as provisions for ALTERING the Constitution
itself. In the first view, appeals to the people at fixed periods appear
to be nearly as ineligible as appeals on particular occasions as they
emerge. If the periods be separated by short intervals, the measures to be
reviewed and rectified will have been of recent date, and will be
connected with all the circumstances which tend to vitiate and pervert the
result of occasional revisions. If the periods be distant from each other,
the same remark will be applicable to all recent measures; and in
proportion as the remoteness of the others may favor a dispassionate
review of them, this advantage is inseparable from inconveniences which
seem to counterbalance it. In the first place, a distant prospect of
public censure would be a very feeble restraint on power from those
excesses to which it might be urged by the force of present motives. Is it
to be imagined that a legislative assembly, consisting of a hundred or two
hundred members, eagerly bent on some favorite object, and breaking
through the restraints of the Constitution in pursuit of it, would be
arrested in their career, by considerations drawn from a censorial
revision of their conduct at the future distance of ten, fifteen, or
twenty years? In the next place, the abuses would often have completed
their mischievous effects before the remedial provision would be applied.
And in the last place, where this might not be the case, they would be of
long standing, would have taken deep root, and would not easily be
extirpated.
The scheme of revising the constitution, in order to correct recent
breaches of it, as well as for other purposes, has been actually tried in
one of the States. One of the objects of the Council of Censors which met
in Pennsylvania in 1783 and 1784, was, as we have seen, to inquire,
"whether the constitution had been violated, and whether the legislative
and executive departments had encroached upon each other." This important
and novel experiment in politics merits, in several points of view, very
particular attention. In some of them it may, perhaps, as a single
experiment, made under circumstances somewhat peculiar, be thought to be
not absolutely conclusive. But as applied to the case under consideration,
it involves some facts, which I venture to remark, as a complete and
satisfactory illustration of the reasoning which I have employed.
First. It appears, from the names of the gentlemen who composed the
council, that some, at least, of its most active members had also been
active and leading characters in the parties which pre-existed in the
State.
Second. It appears that the same active and leading members of the council
had been active and influential members of the legislative and executive
branches, within the period to be reviewed; and even patrons or opponents
of the very measures to be thus brought to the test of the constitution.
Two of the members had been vice-presidents of the State, and several
other members of the executive council, within the seven preceding years.
One of them had been speaker, and a number of others distinguished
members, of the legislative assembly within the same period.
Third. Every page of their proceedings witnesses the effect of all these
circumstances on the temper of their deliberations. Throughout the
continuance of the council, it was split into two fixed and violent
parties. The fact is acknowledged and lamented by themselves. Had this not
been the case, the face of their proceedings exhibits a proof equally
satisfactory. In all questions, however unimportant in themselves, or
unconnected with each other, the same names stand invariably contrasted on
the opposite columns. Every unbiased observer may infer, without danger of
mistake, and at the same time without meaning to reflect on either party,
or any individuals of either party, that, unfortunately, PASSION, not
REASON, must have presided over their decisions. When men exercise their
reason coolly and freely on a variety of distinct questions, they
inevitably fall into different opinions on some of them. When they are
governed by a common passion, their opinions, if they are so to be called,
will be the same.
Fourth. It is at least problematical, whether the decisions of this body
do not, in several instances, misconstrue the limits prescribed for the
legislative and executive departments, instead of reducing and limiting
them within their constitutional places.
Fifth. I have never understood that the decisions of the council on
constitutional questions, whether rightly or erroneously formed, have had
any effect in varying the practice founded on legislative constructions.
It even appears, if I mistake not, that in one instance the contemporary
legislature denied the constructions of the council, and actually
prevailed in the contest.
This censorial body, therefore, proves at the same time, by its
researches, the existence of the disease, and by its example, the
inefficacy of the remedy.
This conclusion cannot be invalidated by alleging that the State in which
the experiment was made was at that crisis, and had been for a long time
before, violently heated and distracted by the rage of party. Is it to be
presumed, that at any future septennial epoch the same State will be free
from parties? Is it to be presumed that any other State, at the same or
any other given period, will be exempt from them? Such an event ought to
be neither presumed nor desired; because an extinction of parties
necessarily implies either a universal alarm for the public safety, or an
absolute extinction of liberty.
Were the precaution taken of excluding from the assemblies elected by the
people, to revise the preceding administration of the government, all
persons who should have been concerned with the government within the
given period, the difficulties would not be obviated. The important task
would probably devolve on men, who, with inferior capacities, would in
other respects be little better qualified. Although they might not have
been personally concerned in the administration, and therefore not
immediately agents in the measures to be examined, they would probably
have been involved in the parties connected with these measures, and have
been elected under their auspices.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 51. The Structure of the Government Must Furnish the Proper
Checks and Balances Between the Different Departments.
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, February 6, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
TO WHAT expedient, then, shall we finally resort, for maintaining in
practice the necessary partition of power among the several departments,
as laid down in the Constitution? The only answer that can be given is,
that as all these exterior provisions are found to be inadequate, the
defect must be supplied, by so contriving the interior structure of the
government as that its several constituent parts may, by their mutual
relations, be the means of keeping each other in their proper places.
Without presuming to undertake a full development of this important idea,
I will hazard a few general observations, which may perhaps place it in a
clearer light, and enable us to form a more correct judgment of the
principles and structure of the government planned by the convention.
In order to lay a due foundation for that separate and distinct exercise
of the different powers of government, which to a certain extent is
admitted on all hands to be essential to the preservation of liberty, it
is evident that each department should have a will of its own; and
consequently should be so constituted that the members of each should have
as little agency as possible in the appointment of the members of the
others. Were this principle rigorously adhered to, it would require that
all the appointments for the supreme executive, legislative, and judiciary
magistracies should be drawn from the same fountain of authority, the
people, through channels having no communication whatever with one
another. Perhaps such a plan of constructing the several departments would
be less difficult in practice than it may in contemplation appear. Some
difficulties, however, and some additional expense would attend the
execution of it. Some deviations, therefore, from the principle must be
admitted. In the constitution of the judiciary department in particular,
it might be inexpedient to insist rigorously on the principle: first,
because peculiar qualifications being essential in the members, the
primary consideration ought to be to select that mode of choice which best
secures these qualifications; secondly, because the permanent tenure by
which the appointments are held in that department, must soon destroy all
sense of dependence on the authority conferring them.
It is equally evident, that the members of each department should be as
little dependent as possible on those of the others, for the emoluments
annexed to their offices. Were the executive magistrate, or the judges,
not independent of the legislature in this particular, their independence
in every other would be merely nominal.
But the great security against a gradual concentration of the several
powers in the same department, consists in giving to those who administer
each department the necessary constitutional means and personal motives to
resist encroachments of the others. The provision for defense must in
this, as in all other cases, be made commensurate to the danger of attack.
Ambition must be made to counteract ambition. The interest of the man must
be connected with the constitutional rights of the place. It may be a
reflection on human nature, that such devices should be necessary to
control the abuses of government. But what is government itself, but the
greatest of all reflections on human nature? If men were angels, no
government would be necessary. If angels were to govern men, neither
external nor internal controls on government would be necessary. In
framing a government which is to be administered by men over men, the
great difficulty lies in this: you must first enable the government to
control the governed; and in the next place oblige it to control itself. A
dependence on the people is, no doubt, the primary control on the
government; but experience has taught mankind the necessity of auxiliary
precautions.
This policy of supplying, by opposite and rival interests, the defect of
better motives, might be traced through the whole system of human affairs,
private as well as public. We see it particularly displayed in all the
subordinate distributions of power, where the constant aim is to divide
and arrange the several offices in such a manner as that each may be a
check on the other—that the private interest of every individual may
be a sentinel over the public rights. These inventions of prudence cannot
be less requisite in the distribution of the supreme powers of the State.
But it is not possible to give to each department an equal power of
self-defense. In republican government, the legislative authority
necessarily predominates. The remedy for this inconveniency is to divide
the legislature into different branches; and to render them, by different
modes of election and different principles of action, as little connected
with each other as the nature of their common functions and their common
dependence on the society will admit. It may even be necessary to guard
against dangerous encroachments by still further precautions. As the
weight of the legislative authority requires that it should be thus
divided, the weakness of the executive may require, on the other hand,
that it should be fortified. An absolute negative on the legislature
appears, at first view, to be the natural defense with which the executive
magistrate should be armed. But perhaps it would be neither altogether
safe nor alone sufficient. On ordinary occasions it might not be exerted
with the requisite firmness, and on extraordinary occasions it might be
perfidiously abused. May not this defect of an absolute negative be
supplied by some qualified connection between this weaker department and
the weaker branch of the stronger department, by which the latter may be
led to support the constitutional rights of the former, without being too
much detached from the rights of its own department?
If the principles on which these observations are founded be just, as I
persuade myself they are, and they be applied as a criterion to the
several State constitutions, and to the federal Constitution it will be
found that if the latter does not perfectly correspond with them, the
former are infinitely less able to bear such a test.
There are, moreover, two considerations particularly applicable to the
federal system of America, which place that system in a very interesting
point of view.
First. In a single republic, all the power surrendered by the people is
submitted to the administration of a single government; and the
usurpations are guarded against by a division of the government into
distinct and separate departments. In the compound republic of America,
the power surrendered by the people is first divided between two distinct
governments, and then the portion allotted to each subdivided among
distinct and separate departments. Hence a double security arises to the
rights of the people. The different governments will control each other,
at the same time that each will be controlled by itself.
Second. It is of great importance in a republic not only to guard the
society against the oppression of its rulers, but to guard one part of the
society against the injustice of the other part. Different interests
necessarily exist in different classes of citizens. If a majority be
united by a common interest, the rights of the minority will be insecure.
There are but two methods of providing against this evil: the one by
creating a will in the community independent of the majority—that
is, of the society itself; the other, by comprehending in the society so
many separate descriptions of citizens as will render an unjust
combination of a majority of the whole very improbable, if not
impracticable. The first method prevails in all governments possessing an
hereditary or self-appointed authority. This, at best, is but a precarious
security; because a power independent of the society may as well espouse
the unjust views of the major, as the rightful interests of the minor
party, and may possibly be turned against both parties. The second method
will be exemplified in the federal republic of the United States. Whilst
all authority in it will be derived from and dependent on the society, the
society itself will be broken into so many parts, interests, and classes
of citizens, that the rights of individuals, or of the minority, will be
in little danger from interested combinations of the majority. In a free
government the security for civil rights must be the same as that for
religious rights. It consists in the one case in the multiplicity of
interests, and in the other in the multiplicity of sects. The degree of
security in both cases will depend on the number of interests and sects;
and this may be presumed to depend on the extent of country and number of
people comprehended under the same government. This view of the subject
must particularly recommend a proper federal system to all the sincere and
considerate friends of republican government, since it shows that in exact
proportion as the territory of the Union may be formed into more
circumscribed Confederacies, or States oppressive combinations of a
majority will be facilitated: the best security, under the republican
forms, for the rights of every class of citizens, will be diminished: and
consequently the stability and independence of some member of the
government, the only other security, must be proportionately increased.
Justice is the end of government. It is the end of civil society. It ever
has been and ever will be pursued until it be obtained, or until liberty
be lost in the pursuit. In a society under the forms of which the stronger
faction can readily unite and oppress the weaker, anarchy may as truly be
said to reign as in a state of nature, where the weaker individual is not
secured against the violence of the stronger; and as, in the latter state,
even the stronger individuals are prompted, by the uncertainty of their
condition, to submit to a government which may protect the weak as well as
themselves; so, in the former state, will the more powerful factions or
parties be gradually induced, by a like motive, to wish for a government
which will protect all parties, the weaker as well as the more powerful.
It can be little doubted that if the State of Rhode Island was separated
from the Confederacy and left to itself, the insecurity of rights under
the popular form of government within such narrow limits would be
displayed by such reiterated oppressions of factious majorities that some
power altogether independent of the people would soon be called for by the
voice of the very factions whose misrule had proved the necessity of it.
In the extended republic of the United States, and among the great variety
of interests, parties, and sects which it embraces, a coalition of a
majority of the whole society could seldom take place on any other
principles than those of justice and the general good; whilst there being
thus less danger to a minor from the will of a major party, there must be
less pretext, also, to provide for the security of the former, by
introducing into the government a will not dependent on the latter, or, in
other words, a will independent of the society itself. It is no less
certain than it is important, notwithstanding the contrary opinions which
have been entertained, that the larger the society, provided it lie within
a practical sphere, the more duly capable it will be of self-government.
And happily for the REPUBLICAN CAUSE, the practicable sphere may be
carried to a very great extent, by a judicious modification and mixture of
the FEDERAL PRINCIPLE.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 52. The House of Representatives
From the New York Packet. Friday, February 8, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
FROM the more general inquiries pursued in the four last papers, I pass on
to a more particular examination of the several parts of the government. I
shall begin with the House of Representatives.
The first view to be taken of this part of the government relates to the
qualifications of the electors and the elected. Those of the former are to
be the same with those of the electors of the most numerous branch of the
State legislatures. The definition of the right of suffrage is very justly
regarded as a fundamental article of republican government. It was
incumbent on the convention, therefore, to define and establish this right
in the Constitution. To have left it open for the occasional regulation of
the Congress, would have been improper for the reason just mentioned. To
have submitted it to the legislative discretion of the States, would have
been improper for the same reason; and for the additional reason that it
would have rendered too dependent on the State governments that branch of
the federal government which ought to be dependent on the people alone. To
have reduced the different qualifications in the different States to one
uniform rule, would probably have been as dissatisfactory to some of the
States as it would have been difficult to the convention. The provision
made by the convention appears, therefore, to be the best that lay within
their option. It must be satisfactory to every State, because it is
conformable to the standard already established, or which may be
established, by the State itself. It will be safe to the United States,
because, being fixed by the State constitutions, it is not alterable by
the State governments, and it cannot be feared that the people of the
States will alter this part of their constitutions in such a manner as to
abridge the rights secured to them by the federal Constitution.
The qualifications of the elected, being less carefully and properly
defined by the State constitutions, and being at the same time more
susceptible of uniformity, have been very properly considered and
regulated by the convention. A representative of the United States must be
of the age of twenty-five years; must have been seven years a citizen of
the United States; must, at the time of his election, be an inhabitant of
the State he is to represent; and, during the time of his service, must be
in no office under the United States. Under these reasonable limitations,
the door of this part of the federal government is open to merit of every
description, whether native or adoptive, whether young or old, and without
regard to poverty or wealth, or to any particular profession of religious
faith.
The term for which the representatives are to be elected falls under a
second view which may be taken of this branch. In order to decide on the
propriety of this article, two questions must be considered: first,
whether biennial elections will, in this case, be safe; secondly, whether
they be necessary or useful.
First. As it is essential to liberty that the government in general should
have a common interest with the people, so it is particularly essential
that the branch of it under consideration should have an immediate
dependence on, and an intimate sympathy with, the people. Frequent
elections are unquestionably the only policy by which this dependence and
sympathy can be effectually secured. But what particular degree of
frequency may be absolutely necessary for the purpose, does not appear to
be susceptible of any precise calculation, and must depend on a variety of
circumstances with which it may be connected. Let us consult experience,
the guide that ought always to be followed whenever it can be found.
The scheme of representation, as a substitute for a meeting of the
citizens in person, being at most but very imperfectly known to ancient
polity, it is in more modern times only that we are to expect instructive
examples. And even here, in order to avoid a research too vague and
diffusive, it will be proper to confine ourselves to the few examples
which are best known, and which bear the greatest analogy to our
particular case. The first to which this character ought to be applied, is
the House of Commons in Great Britain. The history of this branch of the
English Constitution, anterior to the date of Magna Charta, is too obscure
to yield instruction. The very existence of it has been made a question
among political antiquaries. The earliest records of subsequent date prove
that parliaments were to SIT only every year; not that they were to be
ELECTED every year. And even these annual sessions were left so much at
the discretion of the monarch, that, under various pretexts, very long and
dangerous intermissions were often contrived by royal ambition. To remedy
this grievance, it was provided by a statute in the reign of Charles II,
that the intermissions should not be protracted beyond a period of three
years. On the accession of William III, when a revolution took place in
the government, the subject was still more seriously resumed, and it was
declared to be among the fundamental rights of the people that parliaments
ought to be held FREQUENTLY. By another statute, which passed a few years
later in the same reign, the term "frequently," which had alluded to the
triennial period settled in the time of Charles II, is reduced to a
precise meaning, it being expressly enacted that a new parliament shall be
called within three years after the termination of the former. The last
change, from three to seven years, is well known to have been introduced
pretty early in the present century, under on alarm for the Hanoverian
succession. From these facts it appears that the greatest frequency of
elections which has been deemed necessary in that kingdom, for binding the
representatives to their constituents, does not exceed a triennial return
of them. And if we may argue from the degree of liberty retained even
under septennial elections, and all the other vicious ingredients in the
parliamentary constitution, we cannot doubt that a reduction of the period
from seven to three years, with the other necessary reforms, would so far
extend the influence of the people over their representatives as to
satisfy us that biennial elections, under the federal system, cannot
possibly be dangerous to the requisite dependence of the House of
Representatives on their constituents.
Elections in Ireland, till of late, were regulated entirely by the
discretion of the crown, and were seldom repeated, except on the accession
of a new prince, or some other contingent event. The parliament which
commenced with George II. was continued throughout his whole reign, a
period of about thirty-five years. The only dependence of the
representatives on the people consisted in the right of the latter to
supply occasional vacancies by the election of new members, and in the
chance of some event which might produce a general new election. The
ability also of the Irish parliament to maintain the rights of their
constituents, so far as the disposition might exist, was extremely
shackled by the control of the crown over the subjects of their
deliberation. Of late these shackles, if I mistake not, have been broken;
and octennial parliaments have besides been established. What effect may
be produced by this partial reform, must be left to further experience.
The example of Ireland, from this view of it, can throw but little light
on the subject. As far as we can draw any conclusion from it, it must be
that if the people of that country have been able under all these
disadvantages to retain any liberty whatever, the advantage of biennial
elections would secure to them every degree of liberty, which might depend
on a due connection between their representatives and themselves.
Let us bring our inquiries nearer home. The example of these States, when
British colonies, claims particular attention, at the same time that it is
so well known as to require little to be said on it. The principle of
representation, in one branch of the legislature at least, was established
in all of them. But the periods of election were different. They varied
from one to seven years. Have we any reason to infer, from the spirit and
conduct of the representatives of the people, prior to the Revolution,
that biennial elections would have been dangerous to the public liberties?
The spirit which everywhere displayed itself at the commencement of the
struggle, and which vanquished the obstacles to independence, is the best
of proofs that a sufficient portion of liberty had been everywhere enjoyed
to inspire both a sense of its worth and a zeal for its proper enlargement
This remark holds good, as well with regard to the then colonies whose
elections were least frequent, as to those whose elections were most
frequent Virginia was the colony which stood first in resisting the
parliamentary usurpations of Great Britain; it was the first also in
espousing, by public act, the resolution of independence. In Virginia,
nevertheless, if I have not been misinformed, elections under the former
government were septennial. This particular example is brought into view,
not as a proof of any peculiar merit, for the priority in those instances
was probably accidental; and still less of any advantage in SEPTENNIAL
elections, for when compared with a greater frequency they are
inadmissible; but merely as a proof, and I conceive it to be a very
substantial proof, that the liberties of the people can be in no danger
from BIENNIAL elections.
The conclusion resulting from these examples will be not a little
strengthened by recollecting three circumstances. The first is, that the
federal legislature will possess a part only of that supreme legislative
authority which is vested completely in the British Parliament; and which,
with a few exceptions, was exercised by the colonial assemblies and the
Irish legislature. It is a received and well-founded maxim, that where no
other circumstances affect the case, the greater the power is, the shorter
ought to be its duration; and, conversely, the smaller the power, the more
safely may its duration be protracted. In the second place, it has, on
another occasion, been shown that the federal legislature will not only be
restrained by its dependence on its people, as other legislative bodies
are, but that it will be, moreover, watched and controlled by the several
collateral legislatures, which other legislative bodies are not. And in
the third place, no comparison can be made between the means that will be
possessed by the more permanent branches of the federal government for
seducing, if they should be disposed to seduce, the House of
Representatives from their duty to the people, and the means of influence
over the popular branch possessed by the other branches of the government
above cited. With less power, therefore, to abuse, the federal
representatives can be less tempted on one side, and will be doubly
watched on the other.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 53. The Same Subject Continued (The House of
Representatives)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, February 9, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
I SHALL here, perhaps, be reminded of a current observation, "that where
annual elections end, tyranny begins." If it be true, as has often been
remarked, that sayings which become proverbial are generally founded in
reason, it is not less true, that when once established, they are often
applied to cases to which the reason of them does not extend. I need not
look for a proof beyond the case before us. What is the reason on which
this proverbial observation is founded? No man will subject himself to the
ridicule of pretending that any natural connection subsists between the
sun or the seasons, and the period within which human virtue can bear the
temptations of power. Happily for mankind, liberty is not, in this
respect, confined to any single point of time; but lies within extremes,
which afford sufficient latitude for all the variations which may be
required by the various situations and circumstances of civil society. The
election of magistrates might be, if it were found expedient, as in some
instances it actually has been, daily, weekly, or monthly, as well as
annual; and if circumstances may require a deviation from the rule on one
side, why not also on the other side? Turning our attention to the periods
established among ourselves, for the election of the most numerous
branches of the State legislatures, we find them by no means coinciding
any more in this instance, than in the elections of other civil
magistrates. In Connecticut and Rhode Island, the periods are half-yearly.
In the other States, South Carolina excepted, they are annual. In South
Carolina they are biennial—as is proposed in the federal government.
Here is a difference, as four to one, between the longest and shortest
periods; and yet it would be not easy to show, that Connecticut or Rhode
Island is better governed, or enjoys a greater share of rational liberty,
than South Carolina; or that either the one or the other of these States
is distinguished in these respects, and by these causes, from the States
whose elections are different from both.
In searching for the grounds of this doctrine, I can discover but one, and
that is wholly inapplicable to our case. The important distinction so well
understood in America, between a Constitution established by the people
and unalterable by the government, and a law established by the government
and alterable by the government, seems to have been little understood and
less observed in any other country. Wherever the supreme power of
legislation has resided, has been supposed to reside also a full power to
change the form of the government. Even in Great Britain, where the
principles of political and civil liberty have been most discussed, and
where we hear most of the rights of the Constitution, it is maintained
that the authority of the Parliament is transcendent and uncontrollable,
as well with regard to the Constitution, as the ordinary objects of
legislative provision. They have accordingly, in several instances,
actually changed, by legislative acts, some of the most fundamental
articles of the government. They have in particular, on several occasions,
changed the period of election; and, on the last occasion, not only
introduced septennial in place of triennial elections, but by the same
act, continued themselves in place four years beyond the term for which
they were elected by the people. An attention to these dangerous practices
has produced a very natural alarm in the votaries of free government, of
which frequency of elections is the corner-stone; and has led them to seek
for some security to liberty, against the danger to which it is exposed.
Where no Constitution, paramount to the government, either existed or
could be obtained, no constitutional security, similar to that established
in the United States, was to be attempted. Some other security, therefore,
was to be sought for; and what better security would the case admit, than
that of selecting and appealing to some simple and familiar portion of
time, as a standard for measuring the danger of innovations, for fixing
the national sentiment, and for uniting the patriotic exertions? The most
simple and familiar portion of time, applicable to the subject was that of
a year; and hence the doctrine has been inculcated by a laudable zeal, to
erect some barrier against the gradual innovations of an unlimited
government, that the advance towards tyranny was to be calculated by the
distance of departure from the fixed point of annual elections. But what
necessity can there be of applying this expedient to a government limited,
as the federal government will be, by the authority of a paramount
Constitution? Or who will pretend that the liberties of the people of
America will not be more secure under biennial elections, unalterably
fixed by such a Constitution, than those of any other nation would be,
where elections were annual, or even more frequent, but subject to
alterations by the ordinary power of the government?
The second question stated is, whether biennial elections be necessary or
useful. The propriety of answering this question in the affirmative will
appear from several very obvious considerations.
No man can be a competent legislator who does not add to an upright
intention and a sound judgment a certain degree of knowledge of the
subjects on which he is to legislate. A part of this knowledge may be
acquired by means of information which lie within the compass of men in
private as well as public stations. Another part can only be attained, or
at least thoroughly attained, by actual experience in the station which
requires the use of it. The period of service, ought, therefore, in all
such cases, to bear some proportion to the extent of practical knowledge
requisite to the due performance of the service. The period of legislative
service established in most of the States for the more numerous branch is,
as we have seen, one year. The question then may be put into this simple
form: does the period of two years bear no greater proportion to the
knowledge requisite for federal legislation than one year does to the
knowledge requisite for State legislation? The very statement of the
question, in this form, suggests the answer that ought to be given to it.
In a single State, the requisite knowledge relates to the existing laws
which are uniform throughout the State, and with which all the citizens
are more or less conversant; and to the general affairs of the State,
which lie within a small compass, are not very diversified, and occupy
much of the attention and conversation of every class of people. The great
theatre of the United States presents a very different scene. The laws are
so far from being uniform, that they vary in every State; whilst the
public affairs of the Union are spread throughout a very extensive region,
and are extremely diversified by the local affairs connected with them,
and can with difficulty be correctly learnt in any other place than in the
central councils to which a knowledge of them will be brought by the
representatives of every part of the empire. Yet some knowledge of the
affairs, and even of the laws, of all the States, ought to be possessed by
the members from each of the States. How can foreign trade be properly
regulated by uniform laws, without some acquaintance with the commerce,
the ports, the usages, and the regulations of the different States? How
can the trade between the different States be duly regulated, without some
knowledge of their relative situations in these and other respects? How
can taxes be judiciously imposed and effectually collected, if they be not
accommodated to the different laws and local circumstances relating to
these objects in the different States? How can uniform regulations for the
militia be duly provided, without a similar knowledge of many internal
circumstances by which the States are distinguished from each other? These
are the principal objects of federal legislation, and suggest most
forcibly the extensive information which the representatives ought to
acquire. The other interior objects will require a proportional degree of
information with regard to them.
It is true that all these difficulties will, by degrees, be very much
diminished. The most laborious task will be the proper inauguration of the
government and the primeval formation of a federal code. Improvements on
the first draughts will every year become both easier and fewer. Past
transactions of the government will be a ready and accurate source of
information to new members. The affairs of the Union will become more and
more objects of curiosity and conversation among the citizens at large.
And the increased intercourse among those of different States will
contribute not a little to diffuse a mutual knowledge of their affairs, as
this again will contribute to a general assimilation of their manners and
laws. But with all these abatements, the business of federal legislation
must continue so far to exceed, both in novelty and difficulty, the
legislative business of a single State, as to justify the longer period of
service assigned to those who are to transact it.
A branch of knowledge which belongs to the acquirements of a federal
representative, and which has not been mentioned is that of foreign
affairs. In regulating our own commerce he ought to be not only acquainted
with the treaties between the United States and other nations, but also
with the commercial policy and laws of other nations. He ought not to be
altogether ignorant of the law of nations; for that, as far as it is a
proper object of municipal legislation, is submitted to the federal
government. And although the House of Representatives is not immediately
to participate in foreign negotiations and arrangements, yet from the
necessary connection between the several branches of public affairs, those
particular branches will frequently deserve attention in the ordinary
course of legislation, and will sometimes demand particular legislative
sanction and co-operation. Some portion of this knowledge may, no doubt,
be acquired in a man's closet; but some of it also can only be derived
from the public sources of information; and all of it will be acquired to
best effect by a practical attention to the subject during the period of
actual service in the legislature.
There are other considerations, of less importance, perhaps, but which are
not unworthy of notice. The distance which many of the representatives
will be obliged to travel, and the arrangements rendered necessary by that
circumstance, might be much more serious objections with fit men to this
service, if limited to a single year, than if extended to two years. No
argument can be drawn on this subject, from the case of the delegates to
the existing Congress. They are elected annually, it is true; but their
re-election is considered by the legislative assemblies almost as a matter
of course. The election of the representatives by the people would not be
governed by the same principle.
A few of the members, as happens in all such assemblies, will possess
superior talents; will, by frequent reelections, become members of long
standing; will be thoroughly masters of the public business, and perhaps
not unwilling to avail themselves of those advantages. The greater the
proportion of new members, and the less the information of the bulk of the
members the more apt will they be to fall into the snares that may be laid
for them. This remark is no less applicable to the relation which will
subsist between the House of Representatives and the Senate.
It is an inconvenience mingled with the advantages of our frequent
elections even in single States, where they are large, and hold but one
legislative session in a year, that spurious elections cannot be
investigated and annulled in time for the decision to have its due effect.
If a return can be obtained, no matter by what unlawful means, the
irregular member, who takes his seat of course, is sure of holding it a
sufficient time to answer his purposes. Hence, a very pernicious
encouragement is given to the use of unlawful means, for obtaining
irregular returns. Were elections for the federal legislature to be
annual, this practice might become a very serious abuse, particularly in
the more distant States. Each house is, as it necessarily must be, the
judge of the elections, qualifications, and returns of its members; and
whatever improvements may be suggested by experience, for simplifying and
accelerating the process in disputed cases, so great a portion of a year
would unavoidably elapse, before an illegitimate member could be
dispossessed of his seat, that the prospect of such an event would be
little check to unfair and illicit means of obtaining a seat.
All these considerations taken together warrant us in affirming, that
biennial elections will be as useful to the affairs of the public as we
have seen that they will be safe to the liberty of the people.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 54. The Apportionment of Members Among the States
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 12, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE next view which I shall take of the House of Representatives relates
to the appointment of its members to the several States which is to be
determined by the same rule with that of direct taxes.
It is not contended that the number of people in each State ought not to
be the standard for regulating the proportion of those who are to
represent the people of each State. The establishment of the same rule for
the appointment of taxes, will probably be as little contested; though the
rule itself in this case, is by no means founded on the same principle. In
the former case, the rule is understood to refer to the personal rights of
the people, with which it has a natural and universal connection. In the
latter, it has reference to the proportion of wealth, of which it is in no
case a precise measure, and in ordinary cases a very unfit one. But
notwithstanding the imperfection of the rule as applied to the relative
wealth and contributions of the States, it is evidently the least
objectionable among the practicable rules, and had too recently obtained
the general sanction of America, not to have found a ready preference with
the convention.
All this is admitted, it will perhaps be said; but does it follow, from an
admission of numbers for the measure of representation, or of slaves
combined with free citizens as a ratio of taxation, that slaves ought to
be included in the numerical rule of representation? Slaves are considered
as property, not as persons. They ought therefore to be comprehended in
estimates of taxation which are founded on property, and to be excluded
from representation which is regulated by a census of persons. This is the
objection, as I understand it, stated in its full force. I shall be
equally candid in stating the reasoning which may be offered on the
opposite side.
"We subscribe to the doctrine," might one of our Southern brethren
observe, "that representation relates more immediately to persons, and
taxation more immediately to property, and we join in the application of
this distinction to the case of our slaves. But we must deny the fact,
that slaves are considered merely as property, and in no respect whatever
as persons. The true state of the case is, that they partake of both these
qualities: being considered by our laws, in some respects, as persons, and
in other respects as property. In being compelled to labor, not for
himself, but for a master; in being vendible by one master to another
master; and in being subject at all times to be restrained in his liberty
and chastised in his body, by the capricious will of another—the
slave may appear to be degraded from the human rank, and classed with
those irrational animals which fall under the legal denomination of
property. In being protected, on the other hand, in his life and in his
limbs, against the violence of all others, even the master of his labor
and his liberty; and in being punishable himself for all violence
committed against others—the slave is no less evidently regarded by
the law as a member of the society, not as a part of the irrational
creation; as a moral person, not as a mere article of property. The
federal Constitution, therefore, decides with great propriety on the case
of our slaves, when it views them in the mixed character of persons and of
property. This is in fact their true character. It is the character
bestowed on them by the laws under which they live; and it will not be
denied, that these are the proper criterion; because it is only under the
pretext that the laws have transformed the negroes into subjects of
property, that a place is disputed them in the computation of numbers; and
it is admitted, that if the laws were to restore the rights which have
been taken away, the negroes could no longer be refused an equal share of
representation with the other inhabitants.
"This question may be placed in another light. It is agreed on all sides,
that numbers are the best scale of wealth and taxation, as they are the
only proper scale of representation. Would the convention have been
impartial or consistent, if they had rejected the slaves from the list of
inhabitants, when the shares of representation were to be calculated, and
inserted them on the lists when the tariff of contributions was to be
adjusted? Could it be reasonably expected, that the Southern States would
concur in a system, which considered their slaves in some degree as men,
when burdens were to be imposed, but refused to consider them in the same
light, when advantages were to be conferred? Might not some surprise also
be expressed, that those who reproach the Southern States with the
barbarous policy of considering as property a part of their human
brethren, should themselves contend, that the government to which all the
States are to be parties, ought to consider this unfortunate race more
completely in the unnatural light of property, than the very laws of which
they complain?
"It may be replied, perhaps, that slaves are not included in the estimate
of representatives in any of the States possessing them. They neither vote
themselves nor increase the votes of their masters. Upon what principle,
then, ought they to be taken into the federal estimate of representation?
In rejecting them altogether, the Constitution would, in this respect,
have followed the very laws which have been appealed to as the proper
guide.
"This objection is repelled by a single observation. It is a fundamental
principle of the proposed Constitution, that as the aggregate number of
representatives allotted to the several States is to be determined by a
federal rule, founded on the aggregate number of inhabitants, so the right
of choosing this allotted number in each State is to be exercised by such
part of the inhabitants as the State itself may designate. The
qualifications on which the right of suffrage depend are not, perhaps, the
same in any two States. In some of the States the difference is very
material. In every State, a certain proportion of inhabitants are deprived
of this right by the constitution of the State, who will be included in
the census by which the federal Constitution apportions the
representatives. In this point of view the Southern States might retort
the complaint, by insisting that the principle laid down by the convention
required that no regard should be had to the policy of particular States
towards their own inhabitants; and consequently, that the slaves, as
inhabitants, should have been admitted into the census according to their
full number, in like manner with other inhabitants, who, by the policy of
other States, are not admitted to all the rights of citizens. A rigorous
adherence, however, to this principle, is waived by those who would be
gainers by it. All that they ask is that equal moderation be shown on the
other side. Let the case of the slaves be considered, as it is in truth, a
peculiar one. Let the compromising expedient of the Constitution be
mutually adopted, which regards them as inhabitants, but as debased by
servitude below the equal level of free inhabitants, which regards the
SLAVE as divested of two fifths of the MAN.
"After all, may not another ground be taken on which this article of the
Constitution will admit of a still more ready defense? We have hitherto
proceeded on the idea that representation related to persons only, and not
at all to property. But is it a just idea? Government is instituted no
less for protection of the property, than of the persons, of individuals.
The one as well as the other, therefore, may be considered as represented
by those who are charged with the government. Upon this principle it is,
that in several of the States, and particularly in the State of New York,
one branch of the government is intended more especially to be the
guardian of property, and is accordingly elected by that part of the
society which is most interested in this object of government. In the
federal Constitution, this policy does not prevail. The rights of property
are committed into the same hands with the personal rights. Some attention
ought, therefore, to be paid to property in the choice of those hands.
"For another reason, the votes allowed in the federal legislature to the
people of each State, ought to bear some proportion to the comparative
wealth of the States. States have not, like individuals, an influence over
each other, arising from superior advantages of fortune. If the law allows
an opulent citizen but a single vote in the choice of his representative,
the respect and consequence which he derives from his fortunate situation
very frequently guide the votes of others to the objects of his choice;
and through this imperceptible channel the rights of property are conveyed
into the public representation. A State possesses no such influence over
other States. It is not probable that the richest State in the Confederacy
will ever influence the choice of a single representative in any other
State. Nor will the representatives of the larger and richer States
possess any other advantage in the federal legislature, over the
representatives of other States, than what may result from their superior
number alone. As far, therefore, as their superior wealth and weight may
justly entitle them to any advantage, it ought to be secured to them by a
superior share of representation. The new Constitution is, in this
respect, materially different from the existing Confederation, as well as
from that of the United Netherlands, and other similar confederacies. In
each of the latter, the efficacy of the federal resolutions depends on the
subsequent and voluntary resolutions of the states composing the union.
Hence the states, though possessing an equal vote in the public councils,
have an unequal influence, corresponding with the unequal importance of
these subsequent and voluntary resolutions. Under the proposed
Constitution, the federal acts will take effect without the necessary
intervention of the individual States. They will depend merely on the
majority of votes in the federal legislature, and consequently each vote,
whether proceeding from a larger or smaller State, or a State more or less
wealthy or powerful, will have an equal weight and efficacy: in the same
manner as the votes individually given in a State legislature, by the
representatives of unequal counties or other districts, have each a
precise equality of value and effect; or if there be any difference in the
case, it proceeds from the difference in the personal character of the
individual representative, rather than from any regard to the extent of
the district from which he comes."
Such is the reasoning which an advocate for the Southern interests might
employ on this subject; and although it may appear to be a little strained
in some points, yet, on the whole, I must confess that it fully reconciles
me to the scale of representation which the convention have established.
In one respect, the establishment of a common measure for representation
and taxation will have a very salutary effect. As the accuracy of the
census to be obtained by the Congress will necessarily depend, in a
considerable degree on the disposition, if not on the co-operation, of the
States, it is of great importance that the States should feel as little
bias as possible, to swell or to reduce the amount of their numbers. Were
their share of representation alone to be governed by this rule, they
would have an interest in exaggerating their inhabitants. Were the rule to
decide their share of taxation alone, a contrary temptation would prevail.
By extending the rule to both objects, the States will have opposite
interests, which will control and balance each other, and produce the
requisite impartiality.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 55. The Total Number of the House of Representatives
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, February 13, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE number of which the House of Representatives is to consist, forms
another and a very interesting point of view, under which this branch of
the federal legislature may be contemplated. Scarce any article, indeed,
in the whole Constitution seems to be rendered more worthy of attention,
by the weight of character and the apparent force of argument with which
it has been assailed. The charges exhibited against it are, first, that so
small a number of representatives will be an unsafe depositary of the
public interests; secondly, that they will not possess a proper knowledge
of the local circumstances of their numerous constituents; thirdly, that
they will be taken from that class of citizens which will sympathize least
with the feelings of the mass of the people, and be most likely to aim at
a permanent elevation of the few on the depression of the many; fourthly,
that defective as the number will be in the first instance, it will be
more and more disproportionate, by the increase of the people, and the
obstacles which will prevent a correspondent increase of the
representatives.
In general it may be remarked on this subject, that no political problem
is less susceptible of a precise solution than that which relates to the
number most convenient for a representative legislature; nor is there any
point on which the policy of the several States is more at variance,
whether we compare their legislative assemblies directly with each other,
or consider the proportions which they respectively bear to the number of
their constituents. Passing over the difference between the smallest and
largest States, as Delaware, whose most numerous branch consists of
twenty-one representatives, and Massachusetts, where it amounts to between
three and four hundred, a very considerable difference is observable among
States nearly equal in population. The number of representatives in
Pennsylvania is not more than one fifth of that in the State last
mentioned. New York, whose population is to that of South Carolina as six
to five, has little more than one third of the number of representatives.
As great a disparity prevails between the States of Georgia and Delaware
or Rhode Island. In Pennsylvania, the representatives do not bear a
greater proportion to their constituents than of one for every four or
five thousand. In Rhode Island, they bear a proportion of at least one for
every thousand. And according to the constitution of Georgia, the
proportion may be carried to one to every ten electors; and must
unavoidably far exceed the proportion in any of the other States.
Another general remark to be made is, that the ratio between the
representatives and the people ought not to be the same where the latter
are very numerous as where they are very few. Were the representatives in
Virginia to be regulated by the standard in Rhode Island, they would, at
this time, amount to between four and five hundred; and twenty or thirty
years hence, to a thousand. On the other hand, the ratio of Pennsylvania,
if applied to the State of Delaware, would reduce the representative
assembly of the latter to seven or eight members. Nothing can be more
fallacious than to found our political calculations on arithmetical
principles. Sixty or seventy men may be more properly trusted with a given
degree of power than six or seven. But it does not follow that six or
seven hundred would be proportionably a better depositary. And if we carry
on the supposition to six or seven thousand, the whole reasoning ought to
be reversed. The truth is, that in all cases a certain number at least
seems to be necessary to secure the benefits of free consultation and
discussion, and to guard against too easy a combination for improper
purposes; as, on the other hand, the number ought at most to be kept
within a certain limit, in order to avoid the confusion and intemperance
of a multitude. In all very numerous assemblies, of whatever character
composed, passion never fails to wrest the sceptre from reason. Had every
Athenian citizen been a Socrates, every Athenian assembly would still have
been a mob.
It is necessary also to recollect here the observations which were applied
to the case of biennial elections. For the same reason that the limited
powers of the Congress, and the control of the State legislatures, justify
less frequent elections than the public safely might otherwise require,
the members of the Congress need be less numerous than if they possessed
the whole power of legislation, and were under no other than the ordinary
restraints of other legislative bodies.
With these general ideas in our mind, let us weigh the objections which
have been stated against the number of members proposed for the House of
Representatives. It is said, in the first place, that so small a number
cannot be safely trusted with so much power.
The number of which this branch of the legislature is to consist, at the
outset of the government, will be sixty-five. Within three years a census
is to be taken, when the number may be augmented to one for every thirty
thousand inhabitants; and within every successive period of ten years the
census is to be renewed, and augmentations may continue to be made under
the above limitation. It will not be thought an extravagant conjecture
that the first census will, at the rate of one for every thirty thousand,
raise the number of representatives to at least one hundred. Estimating
the negroes in the proportion of three fifths, it can scarcely be doubted
that the population of the United States will by that time, if it does not
already, amount to three millions. At the expiration of twenty-five years,
according to the computed rate of increase, the number of representatives
will amount to two hundred, and of fifty years, to four hundred. This is a
number which, I presume, will put an end to all fears arising from the
smallness of the body. I take for granted here what I shall, in answering
the fourth objection, hereafter show, that the number of representatives
will be augmented from time to time in the manner provided by the
Constitution. On a contrary supposition, I should admit the objection to
have very great weight indeed.
The true question to be decided then is, whether the smallness of the
number, as a temporary regulation, be dangerous to the public liberty?
Whether sixty-five members for a few years, and a hundred or two hundred
for a few more, be a safe depositary for a limited and well-guarded power
of legislating for the United States? I must own that I could not give a
negative answer to this question, without first obliterating every
impression which I have received with regard to the present genius of the
people of America, the spirit which actuates the State legislatures, and
the principles which are incorporated with the political character of
every class of citizens I am unable to conceive that the people of
America, in their present temper, or under any circumstances which can
speedily happen, will choose, and every second year repeat the choice of,
sixty-five or a hundred men who would be disposed to form and pursue a
scheme of tyranny or treachery. I am unable to conceive that the State
legislatures, which must feel so many motives to watch, and which possess
so many means of counteracting, the federal legislature, would fail either
to detect or to defeat a conspiracy of the latter against the liberties of
their common constituents. I am equally unable to conceive that there are
at this time, or can be in any short time, in the United States, any
sixty-five or a hundred men capable of recommending themselves to the
choice of the people at large, who would either desire or dare, within the
short space of two years, to betray the solemn trust committed to them.
What change of circumstances, time, and a fuller population of our country
may produce, requires a prophetic spirit to declare, which makes no part
of my pretensions. But judging from the circumstances now before us, and
from the probable state of them within a moderate period of time, I must
pronounce that the liberties of America cannot be unsafe in the number of
hands proposed by the federal Constitution.
From what quarter can the danger proceed? Are we afraid of foreign gold?
If foreign gold could so easily corrupt our federal rulers and enable them
to ensnare and betray their constituents, how has it happened that we are
at this time a free and independent nation? The Congress which conducted
us through the Revolution was a less numerous body than their successors
will be; they were not chosen by, nor responsible to, their fellowcitizens
at large; though appointed from year to year, and recallable at pleasure,
they were generally continued for three years, and prior to the
ratification of the federal articles, for a still longer term. They held
their consultations always under the veil of secrecy; they had the sole
transaction of our affairs with foreign nations; through the whole course
of the war they had the fate of their country more in their hands than it
is to be hoped will ever be the case with our future representatives; and
from the greatness of the prize at stake, and the eagerness of the party
which lost it, it may well be supposed that the use of other means than
force would not have been scrupled. Yet we know by happy experience that
the public trust was not betrayed; nor has the purity of our public
councils in this particular ever suffered, even from the whispers of
calumny.
Is the danger apprehended from the other branches of the federal
government? But where are the means to be found by the President, or the
Senate, or both? Their emoluments of office, it is to be presumed, will
not, and without a previous corruption of the House of Representatives
cannot, more than suffice for very different purposes; their private
fortunes, as they must all be American citizens, cannot possibly be
sources of danger. The only means, then, which they can possess, will be
in the dispensation of appointments. Is it here that suspicion rests her
charge? Sometimes we are told that this fund of corruption is to be
exhausted by the President in subduing the virtue of the Senate. Now, the
fidelity of the other House is to be the victim. The improbability of such
a mercenary and perfidious combination of the several members of
government, standing on as different foundations as republican principles
will well admit, and at the same time accountable to the society over
which they are placed, ought alone to quiet this apprehension. But,
fortunately, the Constitution has provided a still further safeguard. The
members of the Congress are rendered ineligible to any civil offices that
may be created, or of which the emoluments may be increased, during the
term of their election. No offices therefore can be dealt out to the
existing members but such as may become vacant by ordinary casualties: and
to suppose that these would be sufficient to purchase the guardians of the
people, selected by the people themselves, is to renounce every rule by
which events ought to be calculated, and to substitute an indiscriminate
and unbounded jealousy, with which all reasoning must be vain. The sincere
friends of liberty, who give themselves up to the extravagancies of this
passion, are not aware of the injury they do their own cause. As there is
a degree of depravity in mankind which requires a certain degree of
circumspection and distrust, so there are other qualities in human nature
which justify a certain portion of esteem and confidence. Republican
government presupposes the existence of these qualities in a higher degree
than any other form. Were the pictures which have been drawn by the
political jealousy of some among us faithful likenesses of the human
character, the inference would be, that there is not sufficient virtue
among men for self-government; and that nothing less than the chains of
despotism can restrain them from destroying and devouring one another.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 56. The Same Subject Continued (The Total Number of the
House of Representatives)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, February 16, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE SECOND charge against the House of Representatives is, that it will be
too small to possess a due knowledge of the interests of its constituents.
As this objection evidently proceeds from a comparison of the proposed
number of representatives with the great extent of the United States, the
number of their inhabitants, and the diversity of their interests, without
taking into view at the same time the circumstances which will distinguish
the Congress from other legislative bodies, the best answer that can be
given to it will be a brief explanation of these peculiarities.
It is a sound and important principle that the representative ought to be
acquainted with the interests and circumstances of his constituents. But
this principle can extend no further than to those circumstances and
interests to which the authority and care of the representative relate. An
ignorance of a variety of minute and particular objects, which do not lie
within the compass of legislation, is consistent with every attribute
necessary to a due performance of the legislative trust. In determining
the extent of information required in the exercise of a particular
authority, recourse then must be had to the objects within the purview of
that authority.
What are to be the objects of federal legislation? Those which are of most
importance, and which seem most to require local knowledge, are commerce,
taxation, and the militia.
A proper regulation of commerce requires much information, as has been
elsewhere remarked; but as far as this information relates to the laws and
local situation of each individual State, a very few representatives would
be very sufficient vehicles of it to the federal councils.
Taxation will consist, in a great measure, of duties which will be
involved in the regulation of commerce. So far the preceding remark is
applicable to this object. As far as it may consist of internal
collections, a more diffusive knowledge of the circumstances of the State
may be necessary. But will not this also be possessed in sufficient degree
by a very few intelligent men, diffusively elected within the State?
Divide the largest State into ten or twelve districts, and it will be
found that there will be no peculiar local interests in either, which will
not be within the knowledge of the representative of the district. Besides
this source of information, the laws of the State, framed by
representatives from every part of it, will be almost of themselves a
sufficient guide. In every State there have been made, and must continue
to be made, regulations on this subject which will, in many cases, leave
little more to be done by the federal legislature, than to review the
different laws, and reduce them in one general act. A skillful individual
in his closet with all the local codes before him, might compile a law on
some subjects of taxation for the whole union, without any aid from oral
information, and it may be expected that whenever internal taxes may be
necessary, and particularly in cases requiring uniformity throughout the
States, the more simple objects will be preferred. To be fully sensible of
the facility which will be given to this branch of federal legislation by
the assistance of the State codes, we need only suppose for a moment that
this or any other State were divided into a number of parts, each having
and exercising within itself a power of local legislation. Is it not
evident that a degree of local information and preparatory labor would be
found in the several volumes of their proceedings, which would very much
shorten the labors of the general legislature, and render a much smaller
number of members sufficient for it? The federal councils will derive
great advantage from another circumstance. The representatives of each
State will not only bring with them a considerable knowledge of its laws,
and a local knowledge of their respective districts, but will probably in
all cases have been members, and may even at the very time be members, of
the State legislature, where all the local information and interests of
the State are assembled, and from whence they may easily be conveyed by a
very few hands into the legislature of the United States.
(The observations made on the subject of taxation apply with greater force
to the case of the militia. For however different the rules of discipline
may be in different States, they are the same throughout each particular
State; and depend on circumstances which can differ but little in
different parts of the same State.)(E1)
(With regard to the regulation of the militia, there are scarcely any
circumstances in reference to which local knowledge can be said to be
necessary. The general face of the country, whether mountainous or level,
most fit for the operations of infantry or cavalry, is almost the only
consideration of this nature that can occur. The art of war teaches
general principles of organization, movement, and discipline, which apply
universally.)(E1)
The attentive reader will discern that the reasoning here used, to prove
the sufficiency of a moderate number of representatives, does not in any
respect contradict what was urged on another occasion with regard to the
extensive information which the representatives ought to possess, and the
time that might be necessary for acquiring it. This information, so far as
it may relate to local objects, is rendered necessary and difficult, not
by a difference of laws and local circumstances within a single State, but
of those among different States. Taking each State by itself, its laws are
the same, and its interests but little diversified. A few men, therefore,
will possess all the knowledge requisite for a proper representation of
them. Were the interests and affairs of each individual State perfectly
simple and uniform, a knowledge of them in one part would involve a
knowledge of them in every other, and the whole State might be competently
represented by a single member taken from any part of it. On a comparison
of the different States together, we find a great dissimilarity in their
laws, and in many other circumstances connected with the objects of
federal legislation, with all of which the federal representatives ought
to have some acquaintance. Whilst a few representatives, therefore, from
each State, may bring with them a due knowledge of their own State, every
representative will have much information to acquire concerning all the
other States. The changes of time, as was formerly remarked, on the
comparative situation of the different States, will have an assimilating
effect. The effect of time on the internal affairs of the States, taken
singly, will be just the contrary. At present some of the States are
little more than a society of husbandmen. Few of them have made much
progress in those branches of industry which give a variety and complexity
to the affairs of a nation. These, however, will in all of them be the
fruits of a more advanced population, and will require, on the part of
each State, a fuller representation. The foresight of the convention has
accordingly taken care that the progress of population may be accompanied
with a proper increase of the representative branch of the government.
The experience of Great Britain, which presents to mankind so many
political lessons, both of the monitory and exemplary kind, and which has
been frequently consulted in the course of these inquiries, corroborates
the result of the reflections which we have just made. The number of
inhabitants in the two kingdoms of England and Scotland cannot be stated
at less than eight millions. The representatives of these eight millions
in the House of Commons amount to five hundred and fifty-eight. Of this
number, one ninth are elected by three hundred and sixty-four persons, and
one half, by five thousand seven hundred and twenty-three persons.(1) It
cannot be supposed that the half thus elected, and who do not even reside
among the people at large, can add any thing either to the security of the
people against the government, or to the knowledge of their circumstances
and interests in the legislative councils. On the contrary, it is
notorious, that they are more frequently the representatives and
instruments of the executive magistrate, than the guardians and advocates
of the popular rights. They might therefore, with great propriety, be
considered as something more than a mere deduction from the real
representatives of the nation. We will, however, consider them in this
light alone, and will not extend the deduction to a considerable number of
others, who do not reside among their constitutents, are very faintly
connected with them, and have very little particular knowledge of their
affairs. With all these concessions, two hundred and seventy-nine persons
only will be the depository of the safety, interest, and happiness of
eight millions that is to say, there will be one representative only to
maintain the rights and explain the situation of TWENTY-EIGHT THOUSAND SIX
HUNDRED AND SEVENTY constitutents, in an assembly exposed to the whole
force of executive influence, and extending its authority to every object
of legislation within a nation whose affairs are in the highest degree
diversified and complicated. Yet it is very certain, not only that a
valuable portion of freedom has been preserved under all these
circumstances, but that the defects in the British code are chargeable, in
a very small proportion, on the ignorance of the legislature concerning
the circumstances of the people. Allowing to this case the weight which is
due to it, and comparing it with that of the House of Representatives as
above explained it seems to give the fullest assurance, that a
representative for every THIRTY THOUSAND INHABITANTS will render the
latter both a safe and competent guardian of the interests which will be
confided to it.
PUBLIUS
1. Burgh's "Political Disquisitions."
E1. Two versions of this paragraph appear in different editions.
FEDERALIST No. 57. The Alleged Tendency of the New Plan to Elevate the Few
at the Expense of the Many Considered in Connection with Representation.
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 19, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE THIRD charge against the House of Representatives is, that it will be
taken from that class of citizens which will have least sympathy with the
mass of the people, and be most likely to aim at an ambitious sacrifice of
the many to the aggrandizement of the few.
Of all the objections which have been framed against the federal
Constitution, this is perhaps the most extraordinary. Whilst the objection
itself is levelled against a pretended oligarchy, the principle of it
strikes at the very root of republican government.
The aim of every political constitution is, or ought to be, first to
obtain for rulers men who possess most wisdom to discern, and most virtue
to pursue, the common good of the society; and in the next place, to take
the most effectual precautions for keeping them virtuous whilst they
continue to hold their public trust. The elective mode of obtaining rulers
is the characteristic policy of republican government. The means relied on
in this form of government for preventing their degeneracy are numerous
and various. The most effectual one, is such a limitation of the term of
appointments as will maintain a proper responsibility to the people.
Let me now ask what circumstance there is in the constitution of the House
of Representatives that violates the principles of republican government,
or favors the elevation of the few on the ruins of the many? Let me ask
whether every circumstance is not, on the contrary, strictly conformable
to these principles, and scrupulously impartial to the rights and
pretensions of every class and description of citizens?
Who are to be the electors of the federal representatives? Not the rich,
more than the poor; not the learned, more than the ignorant; not the
haughty heirs of distinguished names, more than the humble sons of
obscurity and unpropitious fortune. The electors are to be the great body
of the people of the United States. They are to be the same who exercise
the right in every State of electing the corresponding branch of the
legislature of the State.
Who are to be the objects of popular choice? Every citizen whose merit may
recommend him to the esteem and confidence of his country. No
qualification of wealth, of birth, of religious faith, or of civil
profession is permitted to fetter the judgement or disappoint the
inclination of the people.
If we consider the situation of the men on whom the free suffrages of
their fellow-citizens may confer the representative trust, we shall find
it involving every security which can be devised or desired for their
fidelity to their constituents.
In the first place, as they will have been distinguished by the preference
of their fellow-citizens, we are to presume that in general they will be
somewhat distinguished also by those qualities which entitle them to it,
and which promise a sincere and scrupulous regard to the nature of their
engagements.
In the second place, they will enter into the public service under
circumstances which cannot fail to produce a temporary affection at least
to their constituents. There is in every breast a sensibility to marks of
honor, of favor, of esteem, and of confidence, which, apart from all
considerations of interest, is some pledge for grateful and benevolent
returns. Ingratitude is a common topic of declamation against human
nature; and it must be confessed that instances of it are but too frequent
and flagrant, both in public and in private life. But the universal and
extreme indignation which it inspires is itself a proof of the energy and
prevalence of the contrary sentiment.
In the third place, those ties which bind the representative to his
constituents are strengthened by motives of a more selfish nature. His
pride and vanity attach him to a form of government which favors his
pretensions and gives him a share in its honors and distinctions. Whatever
hopes or projects might be entertained by a few aspiring characters, it
must generally happen that a great proportion of the men deriving their
advancement from their influence with the people, would have more to hope
from a preservation of the favor, than from innovations in the government
subversive of the authority of the people.
All these securities, however, would be found very insufficient without
the restraint of frequent elections. Hence, in the fourth place, the House
of Representatives is so constituted as to support in the members an
habitual recollection of their dependence on the people. Before the
sentiments impressed on their minds by the mode of their elevation can be
effaced by the exercise of power, they will be compelled to anticipate the
moment when their power is to cease, when their exercise of it is to be
reviewed, and when they must descend to the level from which they were
raised; there forever to remain unless a faithful discharge of their trust
shall have established their title to a renewal of it.
I will add, as a fifth circumstance in the situation of the House of
Representatives, restraining them from oppressive measures, that they can
make no law which will not have its full operation on themselves and their
friends, as well as on the great mass of the society. This has always been
deemed one of the strongest bonds by which human policy can connect the
rulers and the people together. It creates between them that communion of
interests and sympathy of sentiments, of which few governments have
furnished examples; but without which every government degenerates into
tyranny. If it be asked, what is to restrain the House of Representatives
from making legal discriminations in favor of themselves and a particular
class of the society? I answer: the genius of the whole system; the nature
of just and constitutional laws; and above all, the vigilant and manly
spirit which actuates the people of America—a spirit which nourishes
freedom, and in return is nourished by it.
If this spirit shall ever be so far debased as to tolerate a law not
obligatory on the legislature, as well as on the people, the people will
be prepared to tolerate any thing but liberty.
Such will be the relation between the House of Representatives and their
constituents. Duty, gratitude, interest, ambition itself, are the chords
by which they will be bound to fidelity and sympathy with the great mass
of the people. It is possible that these may all be insufficient to
control the caprice and wickedness of man. But are they not all that
government will admit, and that human prudence can devise? Are they not
the genuine and the characteristic means by which republican government
provides for the liberty and happiness of the people? Are they not the
identical means on which every State government in the Union relies for
the attainment of these important ends? What then are we to understand by
the objection which this paper has combated? What are we to say to the men
who profess the most flaming zeal for republican government, yet boldly
impeach the fundamental principle of it; who pretend to be champions for
the right and the capacity of the people to choose their own rulers, yet
maintain that they will prefer those only who will immediately and
infallibly betray the trust committed to them?
Were the objection to be read by one who had not seen the mode prescribed
by the Constitution for the choice of representatives, he could suppose
nothing less than that some unreasonable qualification of property was
annexed to the right of suffrage; or that the right of eligibility was
limited to persons of particular families or fortunes; or at least that
the mode prescribed by the State constitutions was in some respect or
other, very grossly departed from. We have seen how far such a supposition
would err, as to the two first points. Nor would it, in fact, be less
erroneous as to the last. The only difference discoverable between the two
cases is, that each representative of the United States will be elected by
five or six thousand citizens; whilst in the individual States, the
election of a representative is left to about as many hundreds. Will it be
pretended that this difference is sufficient to justify an attachment to
the State governments, and an abhorrence to the federal government? If
this be the point on which the objection turns, it deserves to be
examined.
Is it supported by REASON? This cannot be said, without maintaining that
five or six thousand citizens are less capable of choosing a fit
representative, or more liable to be corrupted by an unfit one, than five
or six hundred. Reason, on the contrary, assures us, that as in so great a
number a fit representative would be most likely to be found, so the
choice would be less likely to be diverted from him by the intrigues of
the ambitious or the ambitious or the bribes of the rich.
Is the CONSEQUENCE from this doctrine admissible? If we say that five or
six hundred citizens are as many as can jointly exercise their right of
suffrage, must we not deprive the people of the immediate choice of their
public servants, in every instance where the administration of the
government does not require as many of them as will amount to one for that
number of citizens?
Is the doctrine warranted by FACTS? It was shown in the last paper, that
the real representation in the British House of Commons very little
exceeds the proportion of one for every thirty thousand inhabitants.
Besides a variety of powerful causes not existing here, and which favor in
that country the pretensions of rank and wealth, no person is eligible as
a representative of a county, unless he possess real estate of the clear
value of six hundred pounds sterling per year; nor of a city or borough,
unless he possess a like estate of half that annual value. To this
qualification on the part of the county representatives is added another
on the part of the county electors, which restrains the right of suffrage
to persons having a freehold estate of the annual value of more than
twenty pounds sterling, according to the present rate of money.
Notwithstanding these unfavorable circumstances, and notwithstanding some
very unequal laws in the British code, it cannot be said that the
representatives of the nation have elevated the few on the ruins of the
many.
But we need not resort to foreign experience on this subject. Our own is
explicit and decisive. The districts in New Hampshire in which the
senators are chosen immediately by the people, are nearly as large as will
be necessary for her representatives in the Congress. Those of
Massachusetts are larger than will be necessary for that purpose; and
those of New York still more so. In the last State the members of Assembly
for the cities and counties of New York and Albany are elected by very
nearly as many voters as will be entitled to a representative in the
Congress, calculating on the number of sixty-five representatives only. It
makes no difference that in these senatorial districts and counties a
number of representatives are voted for by each elector at the same time.
If the same electors at the same time are capable of choosing four or five
representatives, they cannot be incapable of choosing one. Pennsylvania is
an additional example. Some of her counties, which elect her State
representatives, are almost as large as her districts will be by which her
federal representatives will be elected. The city of Philadelphia is
supposed to contain between fifty and sixty thousand souls. It will
therefore form nearly two districts for the choice of federal
representatives. It forms, however, but one county, in which every elector
votes for each of its representatives in the State legislature. And what
may appear to be still more directly to our purpose, the whole city
actually elects a SINGLE MEMBER for the executive council. This is the
case in all the other counties of the State.
Are not these facts the most satisfactory proofs of the fallacy which has
been employed against the branch of the federal government under
consideration? Has it appeared on trial that the senators of New
Hampshire, Massachusetts, and New York, or the executive council of
Pennsylvania, or the members of the Assembly in the two last States, have
betrayed any peculiar disposition to sacrifice the many to the few, or are
in any respect less worthy of their places than the representatives and
magistrates appointed in other States by very small divisions of the
people?
But there are cases of a stronger complexion than any which I have yet
quoted. One branch of the legislature of Connecticut is so constituted
that each member of it is elected by the whole State. So is the governor
of that State, of Massachusetts, and of this State, and the president of
New Hampshire. I leave every man to decide whether the result of any one
of these experiments can be said to countenance a suspicion, that a
diffusive mode of choosing representatives of the people tends to elevate
traitors and to undermine the public liberty.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 58. Objection That The Number of Members Will Not Be
Augmented as the Progress of Population Demands.
Considered For the Independent Journal Wednesday, February 20, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE remaining charge against the House of Representatives, which I am to
examine, is grounded on a supposition that the number of members will not
be augmented from time to time, as the progress of population may demand.
It has been admitted, that this objection, if well supported, would have
great weight. The following observations will show that, like most other
objections against the Constitution, it can only proceed from a partial
view of the subject, or from a jealousy which discolors and disfigures
every object which is beheld.
1. Those who urge the objection seem not to have recollected that the
federal Constitution will not suffer by a comparison with the State
constitutions, in the security provided for a gradual augmentation of the
number of representatives. The number which is to prevail in the first
instance is declared to be temporary. Its duration is limited to the short
term of three years.
Within every successive term of ten years a census of inhabitants is to be
repeated. The unequivocal objects of these regulations are, first, to
readjust, from time to time, the apportionment of representatives to the
number of inhabitants, under the single exception that each State shall
have one representative at least; secondly, to augment the number of
representatives at the same periods, under the sole limitation that the
whole number shall not exceed one for every thirty thousand inhabitants.
If we review the constitutions of the several States, we shall find that
some of them contain no determinate regulations on this subject, that
others correspond pretty much on this point with the federal Constitution,
and that the most effectual security in any of them is resolvable into a
mere directory provision.
2. As far as experience has taken place on this subject, a gradual
increase of representatives under the State constitutions has at least
kept pace with that of the constituents, and it appears that the former
have been as ready to concur in such measures as the latter have been to
call for them.
3. There is a peculiarity in the federal Constitution which insures a
watchful attention in a majority both of the people and of their
representatives to a constitutional augmentation of the latter. The
peculiarity lies in this, that one branch of the legislature is a
representation of citizens, the other of the States: in the former,
consequently, the larger States will have most weight; in the latter, the
advantage will be in favor of the smaller States. From this circumstance
it may with certainty be inferred that the larger States will be strenuous
advocates for increasing the number and weight of that part of the
legislature in which their influence predominates. And it so happens that
four only of the largest will have a majority of the whole votes in the
House of Representatives. Should the representatives or people, therefore,
of the smaller States oppose at any time a reasonable addition of members,
a coalition of a very few States will be sufficient to overrule the
opposition; a coalition which, notwithstanding the rivalship and local
prejudices which might prevent it on ordinary occasions, would not fail to
take place, when not merely prompted by common interest, but justified by
equity and the principles of the Constitution.
It may be alleged, perhaps, that the Senate would be prompted by like
motives to an adverse coalition; and as their concurrence would be
indispensable, the just and constitutional views of the other branch might
be defeated. This is the difficulty which has probably created the most
serious apprehensions in the jealous friends of a numerous representation.
Fortunately it is among the difficulties which, existing only in
appearance, vanish on a close and accurate inspection. The following
reflections will, if I mistake not, be admitted to be conclusive and
satisfactory on this point.
Notwithstanding the equal authority which will subsist between the two
houses on all legislative subjects, except the originating of money bills,
it cannot be doubted that the House, composed of the greater number of
members, when supported by the more powerful States, and speaking the
known and determined sense of a majority of the people, will have no small
advantage in a question depending on the comparative firmness of the two
houses.
This advantage must be increased by the consciousness, felt by the same
side of being supported in its demands by right, by reason, and by the
Constitution; and the consciousness, on the opposite side, of contending
against the force of all these solemn considerations.
It is farther to be considered, that in the gradation between the smallest
and largest States, there are several, which, though most likely in
general to arrange themselves among the former are too little removed in
extent and population from the latter, to second an opposition to their
just and legitimate pretensions. Hence it is by no means certain that a
majority of votes, even in the Senate, would be unfriendly to proper
augmentations in the number of representatives.
It will not be looking too far to add, that the senators from all the new
States may be gained over to the just views of the House of
Representatives, by an expedient too obvious to be overlooked. As these
States will, for a great length of time, advance in population with
peculiar rapidity, they will be interested in frequent reapportionments of
the representatives to the number of inhabitants. The large States,
therefore, who will prevail in the House of Representatives, will have
nothing to do but to make reapportionments and augmentations mutually
conditions of each other; and the senators from all the most growing
States will be bound to contend for the latter, by the interest which
their States will feel in the former.
These considerations seem to afford ample security on this subject, and
ought alone to satisfy all the doubts and fears which have been indulged
with regard to it. Admitting, however, that they should all be
insufficient to subdue the unjust policy of the smaller States, or their
predominant influence in the councils of the Senate, a constitutional and
infallible resource still remains with the larger States, by which they
will be able at all times to accomplish their just purposes. The House of
Representatives cannot only refuse, but they alone can propose, the
supplies requisite for the support of government. They, in a word, hold
the purse—that powerful instrument by which we behold, in the
history of the British Constitution, an infant and humble representation
of the people gradually enlarging the sphere of its activity and
importance, and finally reducing, as far as it seems to have wished, all
the overgrown prerogatives of the other branches of the government. This
power over the purse may, in fact, be regarded as the most complete and
effectual weapon with which any constitution can arm the immediate
representatives of the people, for obtaining a redress of every grievance,
and for carrying into effect every just and salutary measure.
But will not the House of Representatives be as much interested as the
Senate in maintaining the government in its proper functions, and will
they not therefore be unwilling to stake its existence or its reputation
on the pliancy of the Senate? Or, if such a trial of firmness between the
two branches were hazarded, would not the one be as likely first to yield
as the other? These questions will create no difficulty with those who
reflect that in all cases the smaller the number, and the more permanent
and conspicuous the station, of men in power, the stronger must be the
interest which they will individually feel in whatever concerns the
government. Those who represent the dignity of their country in the eyes
of other nations, will be particularly sensible to every prospect of
public danger, or of dishonorable stagnation in public affairs. To those
causes we are to ascribe the continual triumph of the British House of
Commons over the other branches of the government, whenever the engine of
a money bill has been employed. An absolute inflexibility on the side of
the latter, although it could not have failed to involve every department
of the state in the general confusion, has neither been apprehended nor
experienced. The utmost degree of firmness that can be displayed by the
federal Senate or President, will not be more than equal to a resistance
in which they will be supported by constitutional and patriotic
principles.
In this review of the Constitution of the House of Representatives, I have
passed over the circumstances of economy, which, in the present state of
affairs, might have had some effect in lessening the temporary number of
representatives, and a disregard of which would probably have been as rich
a theme of declamation against the Constitution as has been shown by the
smallness of the number proposed. I omit also any remarks on the
difficulty which might be found, under present circumstances, in engaging
in the federal service a large number of such characters as the people
will probably elect. One observation, however, I must be permitted to add
on this subject as claiming, in my judgment, a very serious attention. It
is, that in all legislative assemblies the greater the number composing
them may be, the fewer will be the men who will in fact direct their
proceedings. In the first place, the more numerous an assembly may be, of
whatever characters composed, the greater is known to be the ascendency of
passion over reason. In the next place, the larger the number, the greater
will be the proportion of members of limited information and of weak
capacities. Now, it is precisely on characters of this description that
the eloquence and address of the few are known to act with all their
force. In the ancient republics, where the whole body of the people
assembled in person, a single orator, or an artful statesman, was
generally seen to rule with as complete a sway as if a sceptre had been
placed in his single hand. On the same principle, the more multitudinous a
representative assembly may be rendered, the more it will partake of the
infirmities incident to collective meetings of the people. Ignorance will
be the dupe of cunning, and passion the slave of sophistry and
declamation. The people can never err more than in supposing that by
multiplying their representatives beyond a certain limit, they strengthen
the barrier against the government of a few. Experience will forever
admonish them that, on the contrary, AFTER SECURING A SUFFICIENT NUMBER
FOR THE PURPOSES OF SAFETY, OF LOCAL INFORMATION, AND OF DIFFUSIVE
SYMPATHY WITH THE WHOLE SOCIETY, they will counteract their own views by
every addition to their representatives. The countenance of the government
may become more democratic, but the soul that animates it will be more
oligarchic. The machine will be enlarged, but the fewer, and often the
more secret, will be the springs by which its motions are directed.
As connected with the objection against the number of representatives, may
properly be here noticed, that which has been suggested against the number
made competent for legislative business. It has been said that more than a
majority ought to have been required for a quorum; and in particular
cases, if not in all, more than a majority of a quorum for a decision.
That some advantages might have resulted from such a precaution, cannot be
denied. It might have been an additional shield to some particular
interests, and another obstacle generally to hasty and partial measures.
But these considerations are outweighed by the inconveniences in the
opposite scale. In all cases where justice or the general good might
require new laws to be passed, or active measures to be pursued, the
fundamental principle of free government would be reversed. It would be no
longer the majority that would rule: the power would be transferred to the
minority. Were the defensive privilege limited to particular cases, an
interested minority might take advantage of it to screen themselves from
equitable sacrifices to the general weal, or, in particular emergencies,
to extort unreasonable indulgences. Lastly, it would facilitate and foster
the baneful practice of secessions; a practice which has shown itself even
in States where a majority only is required; a practice subversive of all
the principles of order and regular government; a practice which leads
more directly to public convulsions, and the ruin of popular governments,
than any other which has yet been displayed among us.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 59. Concerning the Power of Congress to Regulate the
Election of Members
From the New York Packet. Friday, February 22, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE natural order of the subject leads us to consider, in this place, that
provision of the Constitution which authorizes the national legislature to
regulate, in the last resort, the election of its own members. It is in
these words: "The TIMES, PLACES, and MANNER of holding elections for
senators and representatives shall be prescribed in each State by the
legislature thereof; but the Congress may, at any time, by law, make or
alter SUCH REGULATIONS, except as to the PLACES of choosing senators."(1)
This provision has not only been declaimed against by those who condemn
the Constitution in the gross, but it has been censured by those who have
objected with less latitude and greater moderation; and, in one instance
it has been thought exceptionable by a gentleman who has declared himself
the advocate of every other part of the system.
I am greatly mistaken, notwithstanding, if there be any article in the
whole plan more completely defensible than this. Its propriety rests upon
the evidence of this plain proposition, that EVERY GOVERNMENT OUGHT TO
CONTAIN IN ITSELF THE MEANS OF ITS OWN PRESERVATION. Every just reasoner
will, at first sight, approve an adherence to this rule, in the work of
the convention; and will disapprove every deviation from it which may not
appear to have been dictated by the necessity of incorporating into the
work some particular ingredient, with which a rigid conformity to the rule
was incompatible. Even in this case, though he may acquiesce in the
necessity, yet he will not cease to regard and to regret a departure from
so fundamental a principle, as a portion of imperfection in the system
which may prove the seed of future weakness, and perhaps anarchy.
It will not be alleged, that an election law could have been framed and
inserted in the Constitution, which would have been always applicable to
every probable change in the situation of the country; and it will
therefore not be denied, that a discretionary power over elections ought
to exist somewhere. It will, I presume, be as readily conceded, that there
were only three ways in which this power could have been reasonably
modified and disposed: that it must either have been lodged wholly in the
national legislature, or wholly in the State legislatures, or primarily in
the latter and ultimately in the former. The last mode has, with reason,
been preferred by the convention. They have submitted the regulation of
elections for the federal government, in the first instance, to the local
administrations; which, in ordinary cases, and when no improper views
prevail, may be both more convenient and more satisfactory; but they have
reserved to the national authority a right to interpose, whenever
extraordinary circumstances might render that interposition necessary to
its safety.
Nothing can be more evident, than that an exclusive power of regulating
elections for the national government, in the hands of the State
legislatures, would leave the existence of the Union entirely at their
mercy. They could at any moment annihilate it, by neglecting to provide
for the choice of persons to administer its affairs. It is to little
purpose to say, that a neglect or omission of this kind would not be
likely to take place. The constitutional possibility of the thing, without
an equivalent for the risk, is an unanswerable objection. Nor has any
satisfactory reason been yet assigned for incurring that risk. The
extravagant surmises of a distempered jealousy can never be dignified with
that character. If we are in a humor to presume abuses of power, it is as
fair to presume them on the part of the State governments as on the part
of the general government. And as it is more consonant to the rules of a
just theory, to trust the Union with the care of its own existence, than
to transfer that care to any other hands, if abuses of power are to be
hazarded on the one side or on the other, it is more rational to hazard
them where the power would naturally be placed, than where it would
unnaturally be placed.
Suppose an article had been introduced into the Constitution, empowering
the United States to regulate the elections for the particular States,
would any man have hesitated to condemn it, both as an unwarrantable
transposition of power, and as a premeditated engine for the destruction
of the State governments? The violation of principle, in this case, would
have required no comment; and, to an unbiased observer, it will not be
less apparent in the project of subjecting the existence of the national
government, in a similar respect, to the pleasure of the State
governments. An impartial view of the matter cannot fail to result in a
conviction, that each, as far as possible, ought to depend on itself for
its own preservation.
As an objection to this position, it may be remarked that the constitution
of the national Senate would involve, in its full extent, the danger which
it is suggested might flow from an exclusive power in the State
legislatures to regulate the federal elections. It may be alleged, that by
declining the appointment of Senators, they might at any time give a fatal
blow to the Union; and from this it may be inferred, that as its existence
would be thus rendered dependent upon them in so essential a point, there
can be no objection to intrusting them with it in the particular case
under consideration. The interest of each State, it may be added, to
maintain its representation in the national councils, would be a complete
security against an abuse of the trust.
This argument, though specious, will not, upon examination, be found
solid. It is certainly true that the State legislatures, by forbearing the
appointment of senators, may destroy the national government. But it will
not follow that, because they have a power to do this in one instance,
they ought to have it in every other. There are cases in which the
pernicious tendency of such a power may be far more decisive, without any
motive equally cogent with that which must have regulated the conduct of
the convention in respect to the formation of the Senate, to recommend
their admission into the system. So far as that construction may expose
the Union to the possibility of injury from the State legislatures, it is
an evil; but it is an evil which could not have been avoided without
excluding the States, in their political capacities, wholly from a place
in the organization of the national government. If this had been done, it
would doubtless have been interpreted into an entire dereliction of the
federal principle; and would certainly have deprived the State governments
of that absolute safeguard which they will enjoy under this provision. But
however wise it may have been to have submitted in this instance to an
inconvenience, for the attainment of a necessary advantage or a greater
good, no inference can be drawn from thence to favor an accumulation of
the evil, where no necessity urges, nor any greater good invites.
It may be easily discerned also that the national government would run a
much greater risk from a power in the State legislatures over the
elections of its House of Representatives, than from their power of
appointing the members of its Senate. The senators are to be chosen for
the period of six years; there is to be a rotation, by which the seats of
a third part of them are to be vacated and replenished every two years;
and no State is to be entitled to more than two senators; a quorum of the
body is to consist of sixteen members. The joint result of these
circumstances would be, that a temporary combination of a few States to
intermit the appointment of senators, could neither annul the existence
nor impair the activity of the body; and it is not from a general and
permanent combination of the States that we can have any thing to fear.
The first might proceed from sinister designs in the leading members of a
few of the State legislatures; the last would suppose a fixed and rooted
disaffection in the great body of the people, which will either never
exist at all, or will, in all probability, proceed from an experience of
the inaptitude of the general government to the advancement of their
happiness in which event no good citizen could desire its continuance.
But with regard to the federal House of Representatives, there is intended
to be a general election of members once in two years. If the State
legislatures were to be invested with an exclusive power of regulating
these elections, every period of making them would be a delicate crisis in
the national situation, which might issue in a dissolution of the Union,
if the leaders of a few of the most important States should have entered
into a previous conspiracy to prevent an election.
I shall not deny, that there is a degree of weight in the observation,
that the interests of each State, to be represented in the federal
councils, will be a security against the abuse of a power over its
elections in the hands of the State legislatures. But the security will
not be considered as complete, by those who attend to the force of an
obvious distinction between the interest of the people in the public
felicity, and the interest of their local rulers in the power and
consequence of their offices. The people of America may be warmly attached
to the government of the Union, at times when the particular rulers of
particular States, stimulated by the natural rivalship of power, and by
the hopes of personal aggrandizement, and supported by a strong faction in
each of those States, may be in a very opposite temper. This diversity of
sentiment between a majority of the people, and the individuals who have
the greatest credit in their councils, is exemplified in some of the
States at the present moment, on the present question. The scheme of
separate confederacies, which will always multiply the chances of
ambition, will be a never failing bait to all such influential characters
in the State administrations as are capable of preferring their own
emolument and advancement to the public weal. With so effectual a weapon
in their hands as the exclusive power of regulating elections for the
national government, a combination of a few such men, in a few of the most
considerable States, where the temptation will always be the strongest,
might accomplish the destruction of the Union, by seizing the opportunity
of some casual dissatisfaction among the people (and which perhaps they
may themselves have excited), to discontinue the choice of members for the
federal House of Representatives. It ought never to be forgotten, that a
firm union of this country, under an efficient government, will probably
be an increasing object of jealousy to more than one nation of Europe; and
that enterprises to subvert it will sometimes originate in the intrigues
of foreign powers, and will seldom fail to be patronized and abetted by
some of them. Its preservation, therefore ought in no case that can be
avoided, to be committed to the guardianship of any but those whose
situation will uniformly beget an immediate interest in the faithful and
vigilant performance of the trust.
PUBLIUS
1. 1st clause, 4th section, of the 1st article.
FEDERALIST No. 60. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the Power of
Congress to Regulate the Election of Members)
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, February 23, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE HAVE seen, that an uncontrollable power over the elections to the
federal government could not, without hazard, be committed to the State
legislatures. Let us now see, what would be the danger on the other side;
that is, from confiding the ultimate right of regulating its own elections
to the Union itself. It is not pretended, that this right would ever be
used for the exclusion of any State from its share in the representation.
The interest of all would, in this respect at least, be the security of
all. But it is alleged, that it might be employed in such a manner as to
promote the election of some favorite class of men in exclusion of others,
by confining the places of election to particular districts, and rendering
it impracticable to the citizens at large to partake in the choice. Of all
chimerical suppositions, this seems to be the most chimerical. On the one
hand, no rational calculation of probabilities would lead us to imagine
that the disposition which a conduct so violent and extraordinary would
imply, could ever find its way into the national councils; and on the
other, it may be concluded with certainty, that if so improper a spirit
should ever gain admittance into them, it would display itself in a form
altogether different and far more decisive.
The improbability of the attempt may be satisfactorily inferred from this
single reflection, that it could never be made without causing an
immediate revolt of the great body of the people, headed and directed by
the State governments. It is not difficult to conceive that this
characteristic right of freedom may, in certain turbulent and factious
seasons, be violated, in respect to a particular class of citizens, by a
victorious and overbearing majority; but that so fundamental a privilege,
in a country so situated and enlightened, should be invaded to the
prejudice of the great mass of the people, by the deliberate policy of the
government, without occasioning a popular revolution, is altogether
inconceivable and incredible.
In addition to this general reflection, there are considerations of a more
precise nature, which forbid all apprehension on the subject. The
dissimilarity in the ingredients which will compose the national
government, and still more in the manner in which they will be brought
into action in its various branches, must form a powerful obstacle to a
concert of views in any partial scheme of elections. There is sufficient
diversity in the state of property, in the genius, manners, and habits of
the people of the different parts of the Union, to occasion a material
diversity of disposition in their representatives towards the different
ranks and conditions in society. And though an intimate intercourse under
the same government will promote a gradual assimilation in some of these
respects, yet there are causes, as well physical as moral, which may, in a
greater or less degree, permanently nourish different propensities and
inclinations in this respect. But the circumstance which will be likely to
have the greatest influence in the matter, will be the dissimilar modes of
constituting the several component parts of the government. The House of
Representatives being to be elected immediately by the people, the Senate
by the State legislatures, the President by electors chosen for that
purpose by the people, there would be little probability of a common
interest to cement these different branches in a predilection for any
particular class of electors.
As to the Senate, it is impossible that any regulation of "time and
manner," which is all that is proposed to be submitted to the national
government in respect to that body, can affect the spirit which will
direct the choice of its members. The collective sense of the State
legislatures can never be influenced by extraneous circumstances of that
sort; a consideration which alone ought to satisfy us that the
discrimination apprehended would never be attempted. For what inducement
could the Senate have to concur in a preference in which itself would not
be included? Or to what purpose would it be established, in reference to
one branch of the legislature, if it could not be extended to the other?
The composition of the one would in this case counteract that of the
other. And we can never suppose that it would embrace the appointments to
the Senate, unless we can at the same time suppose the voluntary
co-operation of the State legislatures. If we make the latter supposition,
it then becomes immaterial where the power in question is placed—whether
in their hands or in those of the Union.
But what is to be the object of this capricious partiality in the national
councils? Is it to be exercised in a discrimination between the different
departments of industry, or between the different kinds of property, or
between the different degrees of property? Will it lean in favor of the
landed interest, or the moneyed interest, or the mercantile interest, or
the manufacturing interest? Or, to speak in the fashionable language of
the adversaries to the Constitution, will it court the elevation of "the
wealthy and the well-born," to the exclusion and debasement of all the
rest of the society?
If this partiality is to be exerted in favor of those who are concerned in
any particular description of industry or property, I presume it will
readily be admitted, that the competition for it will lie between landed
men and merchants. And I scruple not to affirm, that it is infinitely less
likely that either of them should gain an ascendant in the national
councils, than that the one or the other of them should predominate in all
the local councils. The inference will be, that a conduct tending to give
an undue preference to either is much less to be dreaded from the former
than from the latter.
The several States are in various degrees addicted to agriculture and
commerce. In most, if not all of them, agriculture is predominant. In a
few of them, however, commerce nearly divides its empire, and in most of
them has a considerable share of influence. In proportion as either
prevails, it will be conveyed into the national representation; and for
the very reason, that this will be an emanation from a greater variety of
interests, and in much more various proportions, than are to be found in
any single State, it will be much less apt to espouse either of them with
a decided partiality, than the representation of any single State.
In a country consisting chiefly of the cultivators of land, where the
rules of an equal representation obtain, the landed interest must, upon
the whole, preponderate in the government. As long as this interest
prevails in most of the State legislatures, so long it must maintain a
correspondent superiority in the national Senate, which will generally be
a faithful copy of the majorities of those assemblies. It cannot therefore
be presumed, that a sacrifice of the landed to the mercantile class will
ever be a favorite object of this branch of the federal legislature. In
applying thus particularly to the Senate a general observation suggested
by the situation of the country, I am governed by the consideration, that
the credulous votaries of State power cannot, upon their own principles,
suspect, that the State legislatures would be warped from their duty by
any external influence. But in reality the same situation must have the
same effect, in the primitive composition at least of the federal House of
Representatives: an improper bias towards the mercantile class is as
little to be expected from this quarter as from the other.
In order, perhaps, to give countenance to the objection at any rate, it
may be asked, is there not danger of an opposite bias in the national
government, which may dispose it to endeavor to secure a monopoly of the
federal administration to the landed class? As there is little likelihood
that the supposition of such a bias will have any terrors for those who
would be immediately injured by it, a labored answer to this question will
be dispensed with. It will be sufficient to remark, first, that for the
reasons elsewhere assigned, it is less likely that any decided partiality
should prevail in the councils of the Union than in those of any of its
members. Secondly, that there would be no temptation to violate the
Constitution in favor of the landed class, because that class would, in
the natural course of things, enjoy as great a preponderancy as itself
could desire. And thirdly, that men accustomed to investigate the sources
of public prosperity upon a large scale, must be too well convinced of the
utility of commerce, to be inclined to inflict upon it so deep a wound as
would result from the entire exclusion of those who would best understand
its interest from a share in the management of them. The importance of
commerce, in the view of revenue alone, must effectually guard it against
the enmity of a body which would be continually importuned in its favor,
by the urgent calls of public necessity.
I the rather consult brevity in discussing the probability of a preference
founded upon a discrimination between the different kinds of industry and
property, because, as far as I understand the meaning of the objectors,
they contemplate a discrimination of another kind. They appear to have in
view, as the objects of the preference with which they endeavor to alarm
us, those whom they designate by the description of "the wealthy and the
well-born." These, it seems, are to be exalted to an odious pre-eminence
over the rest of their fellow-citizens. At one time, however, their
elevation is to be a necessary consequence of the smallness of the
representative body; at another time it is to be effected by depriving the
people at large of the opportunity of exercising their right of suffrage
in the choice of that body.
But upon what principle is the discrimination of the places of election to
be made, in order to answer the purpose of the meditated preference? Are
"the wealthy and the well-born," as they are called, confined to
particular spots in the several States? Have they, by some miraculous
instinct or foresight, set apart in each of them a common place of
residence? Are they only to be met with in the towns or cities? Or are
they, on the contrary, scattered over the face of the country as avarice
or chance may have happened to cast their own lot or that of their
predecessors? If the latter is the case, (as every intelligent man knows
it to be,(1)) is it not evident that the policy of confining the places of
election to particular districts would be as subversive of its own aim as
it would be exceptionable on every other account? The truth is, that there
is no method of securing to the rich the preference apprehended, but by
prescribing qualifications of property either for those who may elect or
be elected. But this forms no part of the power to be conferred upon the
national government. Its authority would be expressly restricted to the
regulation of the TIMES, the PLACES, the MANNER of elections. The
qualifications of the persons who may choose or be chosen, as has been
remarked upon other occasions, are defined and fixed in the Constitution,
and are unalterable by the legislature.
Let it, however, be admitted, for argument sake, that the expedient
suggested might be successful; and let it at the same time be equally
taken for granted that all the scruples which a sense of duty or an
apprehension of the danger of the experiment might inspire, were overcome
in the breasts of the national rulers, still I imagine it will hardly be
pretended that they could ever hope to carry such an enterprise into
execution without the aid of a military force sufficient to subdue the
resistance of the great body of the people. The improbability of the
existence of a force equal to that object has been discussed and
demonstrated in different parts of these papers; but that the futility of
the objection under consideration may appear in the strongest light, it
shall be conceded for a moment that such a force might exist, and the
national government shall be supposed to be in the actual possession of
it. What will be the conclusion? With a disposition to invade the
essential rights of the community, and with the means of gratifying that
disposition, is it presumable that the persons who were actuated by it
would amuse themselves in the ridiculous task of fabricating election laws
for securing a preference to a favorite class of men? Would they not be
likely to prefer a conduct better adapted to their own immediate
aggrandizement? Would they not rather boldly resolve to perpetuate
themselves in office by one decisive act of usurpation, than to trust to
precarious expedients which, in spite of all the precautions that might
accompany them, might terminate in the dismission, disgrace, and ruin of
their authors? Would they not fear that citizens, not less tenacious than
conscious of their rights, would flock from the remote extremes of their
respective States to the places of election, to overthrow their tyrants,
and to substitute men who would be disposed to avenge the violated majesty
of the people?
PUBLIUS
1. Particularly in the Southern States and in this State.
FEDERALIST No. 61. The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the Power of
Congress to Regulate the Election of Members)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 26, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE more candid opposers of the provision respecting elections, contained
in the plan of the convention, when pressed in argument, will sometimes
concede the propriety of that provision; with this qualification, however,
that it ought to have been accompanied with a declaration, that all
elections should be had in the counties where the electors resided. This,
say they, was a necessary precaution against an abuse of the power. A
declaration of this nature would certainly have been harmless; so far as
it would have had the effect of quieting apprehensions, it might not have
been undesirable. But it would, in fact, have afforded little or no
additional security against the danger apprehended; and the want of it
will never be considered, by an impartial and judicious examiner, as a
serious, still less as an insuperable, objection to the plan. The
different views taken of the subject in the two preceding papers must be
sufficient to satisfy all dispassionate and discerning men, that if the
public liberty should ever be the victim of the ambition of the national
rulers, the power under examination, at least, will be guiltless of the
sacrifice.
If those who are inclined to consult their jealousy only, would exercise
it in a careful inspection of the several State constitutions, they would
find little less room for disquietude and alarm, from the latitude which
most of them allow in respect to elections, than from the latitude which
is proposed to be allowed to the national government in the same respect.
A review of their situation, in this particular, would tend greatly to
remove any ill impressions which may remain in regard to this matter. But
as that view would lead into long and tedious details, I shall content
myself with the single example of the State in which I write. The
constitution of New York makes no other provision for LOCALITY of
elections, than that the members of the Assembly shall be elected in the
COUNTIES; those of the Senate, in the great districts into which the State
is or may be divided: these at present are four in number, and comprehend
each from two to six counties. It may readily be perceived that it would
not be more difficult to the legislature of New York to defeat the
suffrages of the citizens of New York, by confining elections to
particular places, than for the legislature of the United States to defeat
the suffrages of the citizens of the Union, by the like expedient.
Suppose, for instance, the city of Albany was to be appointed the sole
place of election for the county and district of which it is a part, would
not the inhabitants of that city speedily become the only electors of the
members both of the Senate and Assembly for that county and district? Can
we imagine that the electors who reside in the remote subdivisions of the
counties of Albany, Saratoga, Cambridge, etc., or in any part of the
county of Montgomery, would take the trouble to come to the city of
Albany, to give their votes for members of the Assembly or Senate, sooner
than they would repair to the city of New York, to participate in the
choice of the members of the federal House of Representatives? The
alarming indifference discoverable in the exercise of so invaluable a
privilege under the existing laws, which afford every facility to it,
furnishes a ready answer to this question. And, abstracted from any
experience on the subject, we can be at no loss to determine, that when
the place of election is at an INCONVENIENT DISTANCE from the elector, the
effect upon his conduct will be the same whether that distance be twenty
miles or twenty thousand miles. Hence it must appear, that objections to
the particular modification of the federal power of regulating elections
will, in substance, apply with equal force to the modification of the like
power in the constitution of this State; and for this reason it will be
impossible to acquit the one, and to condemn the other. A similar
comparison would lead to the same conclusion in respect to the
constitutions of most of the other States.
If it should be said that defects in the State constitutions furnish no
apology for those which are to be found in the plan proposed, I answer,
that as the former have never been thought chargeable with inattention to
the security of liberty, where the imputations thrown on the latter can be
shown to be applicable to them also, the presumption is that they are
rather the cavilling refinements of a predetermined opposition, than the
well-founded inferences of a candid research after truth. To those who are
disposed to consider, as innocent omissions in the State constitutions,
what they regard as unpardonable blemishes in the plan of the convention,
nothing can be said; or at most, they can only be asked to assign some
substantial reason why the representatives of the people in a single State
should be more impregnable to the lust of power, or other sinister
motives, than the representatives of the people of the United States? If
they cannot do this, they ought at least to prove to us that it is easier
to subvert the liberties of three millions of people, with the advantage
of local governments to head their opposition, than of two hundred
thousand people who are destitute of that advantage. And in relation to
the point immediately under consideration, they ought to convince us that
it is less probable that a predominant faction in a single State should,
in order to maintain its superiority, incline to a preference of a
particular class of electors, than that a similar spirit should take
possession of the representatives of thirteen States, spread over a vast
region, and in several respects distinguishable from each other by a
diversity of local circumstances, prejudices, and interests.
Hitherto my observations have only aimed at a vindication of the provision
in question, on the ground of theoretic propriety, on that of the danger
of placing the power elsewhere, and on that of the safety of placing it in
the manner proposed. But there remains to be mentioned a positive
advantage which will result from this disposition, and which could not as
well have been obtained from any other: I allude to the circumstance of
uniformity in the time of elections for the federal House of
Representatives. It is more than possible that this uniformity may be
found by experience to be of great importance to the public welfare, both
as a security against the perpetuation of the same spirit in the body, and
as a cure for the diseases of faction. If each State may choose its own
time of election, it is possible there may be at least as many different
periods as there are months in the year. The times of election in the
several States, as they are now established for local purposes, vary
between extremes as wide as March and November. The consequence of this
diversity would be that there could never happen a total dissolution or
renovation of the body at one time. If an improper spirit of any kind
should happen to prevail in it, that spirit would be apt to infuse itself
into the new members, as they come forward in succession. The mass would
be likely to remain nearly the same, assimilating constantly to itself its
gradual accretions. There is a contagion in example which few men have
sufficient force of mind to resist. I am inclined to think that treble the
duration in office, with the condition of a total dissolution of the body
at the same time, might be less formidable to liberty than one third of
that duration subject to gradual and successive alterations.
Uniformity in the time of elections seems not less requisite for executing
the idea of a regular rotation in the Senate, and for conveniently
assembling the legislature at a stated period in each year.
It may be asked, Why, then, could not a time have been fixed in the
Constitution? As the most zealous adversaries of the plan of the
convention in this State are, in general, not less zealous admirers of the
constitution of the State, the question may be retorted, and it may be
asked, Why was not a time for the like purpose fixed in the constitution
of this State? No better answer can be given than that it was a matter
which might safely be entrusted to legislative discretion; and that if a
time had been appointed, it might, upon experiment, have been found less
convenient than some other time. The same answer may be given to the
question put on the other side. And it may be added that the supposed
danger of a gradual change being merely speculative, it would have been
hardly advisable upon that speculation to establish, as a fundamental
point, what would deprive several States of the convenience of having the
elections for their own governments and for the national government at the
same epochs.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 62. The Senate
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, February 27, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING examined the constitution of the House of Representatives, and
answered such of the objections against it as seemed to merit notice, I
enter next on the examination of the Senate. The heads into which this
member of the government may be considered are: I. The qualification of
senators; II. The appointment of them by the State legislatures; III. The
equality of representation in the Senate; IV. The number of senators, and
the term for which they are to be elected; V. The powers vested in the
Senate.
I. The qualifications proposed for senators, as distinguished from those
of representatives, consist in a more advanced age and a longer period of
citizenship. A senator must be thirty years of age at least; as a
representative must be twenty-five. And the former must have been a
citizen nine years; as seven years are required for the latter. The
propriety of these distinctions is explained by the nature of the
senatorial trust, which, requiring greater extent of information and
stability of character, requires at the same time that the senator should
have reached a period of life most likely to supply these advantages; and
which, participating immediately in transactions with foreign nations,
ought to be exercised by none who are not thoroughly weaned from the
prepossessions and habits incident to foreign birth and education. The
term of nine years appears to be a prudent mediocrity between a total
exclusion of adopted citizens, whose merits and talents may claim a share
in the public confidence, and an indiscriminate and hasty admission of
them, which might create a channel for foreign influence on the national
councils.
II. It is equally unnecessary to dilate on the appointment of senators by
the State legislatures. Among the various modes which might have been
devised for constituting this branch of the government, that which has
been proposed by the convention is probably the most congenial with the
public opinion. It is recommended by the double advantage of favoring a
select appointment, and of giving to the State governments such an agency
in the formation of the federal government as must secure the authority of
the former, and may form a convenient link between the two systems.
III. The equality of representation in the Senate is another point, which,
being evidently the result of compromise between the opposite pretensions
of the large and the small States, does not call for much discussion. If
indeed it be right, that among a people thoroughly incorporated into one
nation, every district ought to have a PROPORTIONAL share in the
government, and that among independent and sovereign States, bound
together by a simple league, the parties, however unequal in size, ought
to have an EQUAL share in the common councils, it does not appear to be
without some reason that in a compound republic, partaking both of the
national and federal character, the government ought to be founded on a
mixture of the principles of proportional and equal representation. But it
is superfluous to try, by the standard of theory, a part of the
Constitution which is allowed on all hands to be the result, not of
theory, but "of a spirit of amity, and that mutual deference and
concession which the peculiarity of our political situation rendered
indispensable." A common government, with powers equal to its objects, is
called for by the voice, and still more loudly by the political situation,
of America. A government founded on principles more consonant to the
wishes of the larger States, is not likely to be obtained from the smaller
States. The only option, then, for the former, lies between the proposed
government and a government still more objectionable. Under this
alternative, the advice of prudence must be to embrace the lesser evil;
and, instead of indulging a fruitless anticipation of the possible
mischiefs which may ensue, to contemplate rather the advantageous
consequences which may qualify the sacrifice.
In this spirit it may be remarked, that the equal vote allowed to each
State is at once a constitutional recognition of the portion of
sovereignty remaining in the individual States, and an instrument for
preserving that residuary sovereignty. So far the equality ought to be no
less acceptable to the large than to the small States; since they are not
less solicitous to guard, by every possible expedient, against an improper
consolidation of the States into one simple republic.
Another advantage accruing from this ingredient in the constitution of the
Senate is, the additional impediment it must prove against improper acts
of legislation. No law or resolution can now be passed without the
concurrence, first, of a majority of the people, and then, of a majority
of the States. It must be acknowledged that this complicated check on
legislation may in some instances be injurious as well as beneficial; and
that the peculiar defense which it involves in favor of the smaller
States, would be more rational, if any interests common to them, and
distinct from those of the other States, would otherwise be exposed to
peculiar danger. But as the larger States will always be able, by their
power over the supplies, to defeat unreasonable exertions of this
prerogative of the lesser States, and as the faculty and excess of
law-making seem to be the diseases to which our governments are most
liable, it is not impossible that this part of the Constitution may be
more convenient in practice than it appears to many in contemplation.
IV. The number of senators, and the duration of their appointment, come
next to be considered. In order to form an accurate judgment on both of
these points, it will be proper to inquire into the purposes which are to
be answered by a senate; and in order to ascertain these, it will be
necessary to review the inconveniences which a republic must suffer from
the want of such an institution.
First. It is a misfortune incident to republican government, though in a
less degree than to other governments, that those who administer it may
forget their obligations to their constituents, and prove unfaithful to
their important trust. In this point of view, a senate, as a second branch
of the legislative assembly, distinct from, and dividing the power with, a
first, must be in all cases a salutary check on the government. It doubles
the security to the people, by requiring the concurrence of two distinct
bodies in schemes of usurpation or perfidy, where the ambition or
corruption of one would otherwise be sufficient. This is a precaution
founded on such clear principles, and now so well understood in the United
States, that it would be more than superfluous to enlarge on it. I will
barely remark, that as the improbability of sinister combinations will be
in proportion to the dissimilarity in the genius of the two bodies, it
must be politic to distinguish them from each other by every circumstance
which will consist with a due harmony in all proper measures, and with the
genuine principles of republican government.
Second. The necessity of a senate is not less indicated by the propensity
of all single and numerous assemblies to yield to the impulse of sudden
and violent passions, and to be seduced by factious leaders into
intemperate and pernicious resolutions. Examples on this subject might be
cited without number; and from proceedings within the United States, as
well as from the history of other nations. But a position that will not be
contradicted, need not be proved. All that need be remarked is, that a
body which is to correct this infirmity ought itself to be free from it,
and consequently ought to be less numerous. It ought, moreover, to possess
great firmness, and consequently ought to hold its authority by a tenure
of considerable duration.
Third. Another defect to be supplied by a senate lies in a want of due
acquaintance with the objects and principles of legislation. It is not
possible that an assembly of men called for the most part from pursuits of
a private nature, continued in appointment for a short time, and led by no
permanent motive to devote the intervals of public occupation to a study
of the laws, the affairs, and the comprehensive interests of their
country, should, if left wholly to themselves, escape a variety of
important errors in the exercise of their legislative trust. It may be
affirmed, on the best grounds, that no small share of the present
embarrassments of America is to be charged on the blunders of our
governments; and that these have proceeded from the heads rather than the
hearts of most of the authors of them. What indeed are all the repealing,
explaining, and amending laws, which fill and disgrace our voluminous
codes, but so many monuments of deficient wisdom; so many impeachments
exhibited by each succeeding against each preceding session; so many
admonitions to the people, of the value of those aids which may be
expected from a well-constituted senate?
A good government implies two things: first, fidelity to the object of
government, which is the happiness of the people; secondly, a knowledge of
the means by which that object can be best attained. Some governments are
deficient in both these qualities; most governments are deficient in the
first. I scruple not to assert, that in American governments too little
attention has been paid to the last. The federal Constitution avoids this
error; and what merits particular notice, it provides for the last in a
mode which increases the security for the first.
Fourth. The mutability in the public councils arising from a rapid
succession of new members, however qualified they may be, points out, in
the strongest manner, the necessity of some stable institution in the
government. Every new election in the States is found to change one half
of the representatives. From this change of men must proceed a change of
opinions; and from a change of opinions, a change of measures. But a
continual change even of good measures is inconsistent with every rule of
prudence and every prospect of success. The remark is verified in private
life, and becomes more just, as well as more important, in national
transactions.
To trace the mischievous effects of a mutable government would fill a
volume. I will hint a few only, each of which will be perceived to be a
source of innumerable others.
In the first place, it forfeits the respect and confidence of other
nations, and all the advantages connected with national character. An
individual who is observed to be inconstant to his plans, or perhaps to
carry on his affairs without any plan at all, is marked at once, by all
prudent people, as a speedy victim to his own unsteadiness and folly. His
more friendly neighbors may pity him, but all will decline to connect
their fortunes with his; and not a few will seize the opportunity of
making their fortunes out of his. One nation is to another what one
individual is to another; with this melancholy distinction perhaps, that
the former, with fewer of the benevolent emotions than the latter, are
under fewer restraints also from taking undue advantage from the
indiscretions of each other. Every nation, consequently, whose affairs
betray a want of wisdom and stability, may calculate on every loss which
can be sustained from the more systematic policy of their wiser neighbors.
But the best instruction on this subject is unhappily conveyed to America
by the example of her own situation. She finds that she is held in no
respect by her friends; that she is the derision of her enemies; and that
she is a prey to every nation which has an interest in speculating on her
fluctuating councils and embarrassed affairs.
The internal effects of a mutable policy are still more calamitous. It
poisons the blessing of liberty itself. It will be of little avail to the
people, that the laws are made by men of their own choice, if the laws be
so voluminous that they cannot be read, or so incoherent that they cannot
be understood; if they be repealed or revised before they are promulgated,
or undergo such incessant changes that no man, who knows what the law is
to-day, can guess what it will be to-morrow. Law is defined to be a rule
of action; but how can that be a rule, which is little known, and less
fixed?
Another effect of public instability is the unreasonable advantage it
gives to the sagacious, the enterprising, and the moneyed few over the
industrious and uninformed mass of the people. Every new regulation
concerning commerce or revenue, or in any way affecting the value of the
different species of property, presents a new harvest to those who watch
the change, and can trace its consequences; a harvest, reared not by
themselves, but by the toils and cares of the great body of their
fellow-citizens. This is a state of things in which it may be said with
some truth that laws are made for the FEW, not for the MANY.
In another point of view, great injury results from an unstable
government. The want of confidence in the public councils damps every
useful undertaking, the success and profit of which may depend on a
continuance of existing arrangements. What prudent merchant will hazard
his fortunes in any new branch of commerce when he knows not but that his
plans may be rendered unlawful before they can be executed? What farmer or
manufacturer will lay himself out for the encouragement given to any
particular cultivation or establishment, when he can have no assurance
that his preparatory labors and advances will not render him a victim to
an inconstant government? In a word, no great improvement or laudable
enterprise can go forward which requires the auspices of a steady system
of national policy.
But the most deplorable effect of all is that diminution of attachment and
reverence which steals into the hearts of the people, towards a political
system which betrays so many marks of infirmity, and disappoints so many
of their flattering hopes. No government, any more than an individual,
will long be respected without being truly respectable; nor be truly
respectable, without possessing a certain portion of order and stability.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 63. The Senate Continued
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, March 1, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
A FIFTH desideratum, illustrating the utility of a senate, is the want of
a due sense of national character. Without a select and stable member of
the government, the esteem of foreign powers will not only be forfeited by
an unenlightened and variable policy, proceeding from the causes already
mentioned, but the national councils will not possess that sensibility to
the opinion of the world, which is perhaps not less necessary in order to
merit, than it is to obtain, its respect and confidence.
An attention to the judgment of other nations is important to every
government for two reasons: the one is, that, independently of the merits
of any particular plan or measure, it is desirable, on various accounts,
that it should appear to other nations as the offspring of a wise and
honorable policy; the second is, that in doubtful cases, particularly
where the national councils may be warped by some strong passion or
momentary interest, the presumed or known opinion of the impartial world
may be the best guide that can be followed. What has not America lost by
her want of character with foreign nations; and how many errors and
follies would she not have avoided, if the justice and propriety of her
measures had, in every instance, been previously tried by the light in
which they would probably appear to the unbiased part of mankind?
Yet however requisite a sense of national character may be, it is evident
that it can never be sufficiently possessed by a numerous and changeable
body. It can only be found in a number so small that a sensible degree of
the praise and blame of public measures may be the portion of each
individual; or in an assembly so durably invested with public trust, that
the pride and consequence of its members may be sensibly incorporated with
the reputation and prosperity of the community. The half-yearly
representatives of Rhode Island would probably have been little affected
in their deliberations on the iniquitous measures of that State, by
arguments drawn from the light in which such measures would be viewed by
foreign nations, or even by the sister States; whilst it can scarcely be
doubted that if the concurrence of a select and stable body had been
necessary, a regard to national character alone would have prevented the
calamities under which that misguided people is now laboring.
I add, as a SIXTH defect the want, in some important cases, of a due
responsibility in the government to the people, arising from that
frequency of elections which in other cases produces this responsibility.
This remark will, perhaps, appear not only new, but paradoxical. It must
nevertheless be acknowledged, when explained, to be as undeniable as it is
important.
Responsibility, in order to be reasonable, must be limited to objects
within the power of the responsible party, and in order to be effectual,
must relate to operations of that power, of which a ready and proper
judgment can be formed by the constituents. The objects of government may
be divided into two general classes: the one depending on measures which
have singly an immediate and sensible operation; the other depending on a
succession of well-chosen and well-connected measures, which have a
gradual and perhaps unobserved operation. The importance of the latter
description to the collective and permanent welfare of every country,
needs no explanation. And yet it is evident that an assembly elected for
so short a term as to be unable to provide more than one or two links in a
chain of measures, on which the general welfare may essentially depend,
ought not to be answerable for the final result, any more than a steward
or tenant, engaged for one year, could be justly made to answer for places
or improvements which could not be accomplished in less than half a dozen
years. Nor is it possible for the people to estimate the SHARE of
influence which their annual assemblies may respectively have on events
resulting from the mixed transactions of several years. It is sufficiently
difficult to preserve a personal responsibility in the members of a
NUMEROUS body, for such acts of the body as have an immediate, detached,
and palpable operation on its constituents.
The proper remedy for this defect must be an additional body in the
legislative department, which, having sufficient permanency to provide for
such objects as require a continued attention, and a train of measures,
may be justly and effectually answerable for the attainment of those
objects.
Thus far I have considered the circumstances which point out the necessity
of a well-constructed Senate only as they relate to the representatives of
the people. To a people as little blinded by prejudice or corrupted by
flattery as those whom I address, I shall not scruple to add, that such an
institution may be sometimes necessary as a defense to the people against
their own temporary errors and delusions. As the cool and deliberate sense
of the community ought, in all governments, and actually will, in all free
governments, ultimately prevail over the views of its rulers; so there are
particular moments in public affairs when the people, stimulated by some
irregular passion, or some illicit advantage, or misled by the artful
misrepresentations of interested men, may call for measures which they
themselves will afterwards be the most ready to lament and condemn. In
these critical moments, how salutary will be the interference of some
temperate and respectable body of citizens, in order to check the
misguided career, and to suspend the blow meditated by the people against
themselves, until reason, justice, and truth can regain their authority
over the public mind? What bitter anguish would not the people of Athens
have often escaped if their government had contained so provident a
safeguard against the tyranny of their own passions? Popular liberty might
then have escaped the indelible reproach of decreeing to the same citizens
the hemlock on one day and statues on the next.
It may be suggested, that a people spread over an extensive region cannot,
like the crowded inhabitants of a small district, be subject to the
infection of violent passions, or to the danger of combining in pursuit of
unjust measures. I am far from denying that this is a distinction of
peculiar importance. I have, on the contrary, endeavored in a former paper
to show, that it is one of the principal recommendations of a confederated
republic. At the same time, this advantage ought not to be considered as
superseding the use of auxiliary precautions. It may even be remarked,
that the same extended situation, which will exempt the people of America
from some of the dangers incident to lesser republics, will expose them to
the inconveniency of remaining for a longer time under the influence of
those misrepresentations which the combined industry of interested men may
succeed in distributing among them.
It adds no small weight to all these considerations, to recollect that
history informs us of no long-lived republic which had not a senate.
Sparta, Rome, and Carthage are, in fact, the only states to whom that
character can be applied. In each of the two first there was a senate for
life. The constitution of the senate in the last is less known.
Circumstantial evidence makes it probable that it was not different in
this particular from the two others. It is at least certain, that it had
some quality or other which rendered it an anchor against popular
fluctuations; and that a smaller council, drawn out of the senate, was
appointed not only for life, but filled up vacancies itself. These
examples, though as unfit for the imitation, as they are repugnant to the
genius, of America, are, notwithstanding, when compared with the fugitive
and turbulent existence of other ancient republics, very instructive
proofs of the necessity of some institution that will blend stability with
liberty. I am not unaware of the circumstances which distinguish the
American from other popular governments, as well ancient as modern; and
which render extreme circumspection necessary, in reasoning from the one
case to the other. But after allowing due weight to this consideration, it
may still be maintained, that there are many points of similitude which
render these examples not unworthy of our attention. Many of the defects,
as we have seen, which can only be supplied by a senatorial institution,
are common to a numerous assembly frequently elected by the people, and to
the people themselves. There are others peculiar to the former, which
require the control of such an institution. The people can never wilfully
betray their own interests; but they may possibly be betrayed by the
representatives of the people; and the danger will be evidently greater
where the whole legislative trust is lodged in the hands of one body of
men, than where the concurrence of separate and dissimilar bodies is
required in every public act.
The difference most relied on, between the American and other republics,
consists in the principle of representation; which is the pivot on which
the former move, and which is supposed to have been unknown to the latter,
or at least to the ancient part of them. The use which has been made of
this difference, in reasonings contained in former papers, will have shown
that I am disposed neither to deny its existence nor to undervalue its
importance. I feel the less restraint, therefore, in observing, that the
position concerning the ignorance of the ancient governments on the
subject of representation, is by no means precisely true in the latitude
commonly given to it. Without entering into a disquisition which here
would be misplaced, I will refer to a few known facts, in support of what
I advance.
In the most pure democracies of Greece, many of the executive functions
were performed, not by the people themselves, but by officers elected by
the people, and REPRESENTING the people in their EXECUTIVE capacity.
Prior to the reform of Solon, Athens was governed by nine Archons,
annually ELECTED BY THE PEOPLE AT LARGE. The degree of power delegated to
them seems to be left in great obscurity. Subsequent to that period, we
find an assembly, first of four, and afterwards of six hundred members,
annually ELECTED BY THE PEOPLE; and PARTIALLY representing them in their
LEGISLATIVE capacity, since they were not only associated with the people
in the function of making laws, but had the exclusive right of originating
legislative propositions to the people. The senate of Carthage, also,
whatever might be its power, or the duration of its appointment, appears
to have been ELECTIVE by the suffrages of the people. Similar instances
might be traced in most, if not all the popular governments of antiquity.
Lastly, in Sparta we meet with the Ephori, and in Rome with the Tribunes;
two bodies, small indeed in numbers, but annually ELECTED BY THE WHOLE
BODY OF THE PEOPLE, and considered as the REPRESENTATIVES of the people,
almost in their PLENIPOTENTIARY capacity. The Cosmi of Crete were also
annually ELECTED BY THE PEOPLE, and have been considered by some authors
as an institution analogous to those of Sparta and Rome, with this
difference only, that in the election of that representative body the
right of suffrage was communicated to a part only of the people.
From these facts, to which many others might be added, it is clear that
the principle of representation was neither unknown to the ancients nor
wholly overlooked in their political constitutions. The true distinction
between these and the American governments, lies IN THE TOTAL EXCLUSION OF
THE PEOPLE, IN THEIR COLLECTIVE CAPACITY, from any share in the LATTER,
and not in the TOTAL EXCLUSION OF THE REPRESENTATIVES OF THE PEOPLE from
the administration of the FORMER. The distinction, however, thus
qualified, must be admitted to leave a most advantageous superiority in
favor of the United States. But to insure to this advantage its full
effect, we must be careful not to separate it from the other advantage, of
an extensive territory. For it cannot be believed, that any form of
representative government could have succeeded within the narrow limits
occupied by the democracies of Greece.
In answer to all these arguments, suggested by reason, illustrated by
examples, and enforced by our own experience, the jealous adversary of the
Constitution will probably content himself with repeating, that a senate
appointed not immediately by the people, and for the term of six years,
must gradually acquire a dangerous pre-eminence in the government, and
finally transform it into a tyrannical aristocracy.
To this general answer, the general reply ought to be sufficient, that
liberty may be endangered by the abuses of liberty as well as by the
abuses of power; that there are numerous instances of the former as well
as of the latter; and that the former, rather than the latter, are
apparently most to be apprehended by the United States. But a more
particular reply may be given.
Before such a revolution can be effected, the Senate, it is to be
observed, must in the first place corrupt itself; must next corrupt the
State legislatures; must then corrupt the House of Representatives; and
must finally corrupt the people at large. It is evident that the Senate
must be first corrupted before it can attempt an establishment of tyranny.
Without corrupting the State legislatures, it cannot prosecute the
attempt, because the periodical change of members would otherwise
regenerate the whole body. Without exerting the means of corruption with
equal success on the House of Representatives, the opposition of that
coequal branch of the government would inevitably defeat the attempt; and
without corrupting the people themselves, a succession of new
representatives would speedily restore all things to their pristine order.
Is there any man who can seriously persuade himself that the proposed
Senate can, by any possible means within the compass of human address,
arrive at the object of a lawless ambition, through all these
obstructions?
If reason condemns the suspicion, the same sentence is pronounced by
experience. The constitution of Maryland furnishes the most apposite
example. The Senate of that State is elected, as the federal Senate will
be, indirectly by the people, and for a term less by one year only than
the federal Senate. It is distinguished, also, by the remarkable
prerogative of filling up its own vacancies within the term of its
appointment, and, at the same time, is not under the control of any such
rotation as is provided for the federal Senate. There are some other
lesser distinctions, which would expose the former to colorable
objections, that do not lie against the latter. If the federal Senate,
therefore, really contained the danger which has been so loudly
proclaimed, some symptoms at least of a like danger ought by this time to
have been betrayed by the Senate of Maryland, but no such symptoms have
appeared. On the contrary, the jealousies at first entertained by men of
the same description with those who view with terror the correspondent
part of the federal Constitution, have been gradually extinguished by the
progress of the experiment; and the Maryland constitution is daily
deriving, from the salutary operation of this part of it, a reputation in
which it will probably not be rivalled by that of any State in the Union.
But if anything could silence the jealousies on this subject, it ought to
be the British example. The Senate there instead of being elected for a
term of six years, and of being unconfined to particular families or
fortunes, is an hereditary assembly of opulent nobles. The House of
Representatives, instead of being elected for two years, and by the whole
body of the people, is elected for seven years, and, in very great
proportion, by a very small proportion of the people. Here,
unquestionably, ought to be seen in full display the aristocratic
usurpations and tyranny which are at some future period to be exemplified
in the United States. Unfortunately, however, for the anti-federal
argument, the British history informs us that this hereditary assembly has
not been able to defend itself against the continual encroachments of the
House of Representatives; and that it no sooner lost the support of the
monarch, than it was actually crushed by the weight of the popular branch.
As far as antiquity can instruct us on this subject, its examples support
the reasoning which we have employed. In Sparta, the Ephori, the annual
representatives of the people, were found an overmatch for the senate for
life, continually gained on its authority and finally drew all power into
their own hands. The Tribunes of Rome, who were the representatives of the
people, prevailed, it is well known, in almost every contest with the
senate for life, and in the end gained the most complete triumph over it.
The fact is the more remarkable, as unanimity was required in every act of
the Tribunes, even after their number was augmented to ten. It proves the
irresistible force possessed by that branch of a free government, which
has the people on its side. To these examples might be added that of
Carthage, whose senate, according to the testimony of Polybius, instead of
drawing all power into its vortex, had, at the commencement of the second
Punic War, lost almost the whole of its original portion.
Besides the conclusive evidence resulting from this assemblage of facts,
that the federal Senate will never be able to transform itself, by gradual
usurpations, into an independent and aristocratic body, we are warranted
in believing, that if such a revolution should ever happen from causes
which the foresight of man cannot guard against, the House of
Representatives, with the people on their side, will at all times be able
to bring back the Constitution to its primitive form and principles.
Against the force of the immediate representatives of the people, nothing
will be able to maintain even the constitutional authority of the Senate,
but such a display of enlightened policy, and attachment to the public
good, as will divide with that branch of the legislature the affections
and support of the entire body of the people themselves.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 64. The Powers of the Senate
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 5, 1788.
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS a just and not a new observation, that enemies to particular
persons, and opponents to particular measures, seldom confine their
censures to such things only in either as are worthy of blame. Unless on
this principle, it is difficult to explain the motives of their conduct,
who condemn the proposed Constitution in the aggregate, and treat with
severity some of the most unexceptionable articles in it.
The second section gives power to the President, "BY AND WITH THE ADVICE
AND CONSENT OF THE SENATE, TO MAKE TREATIES, PROVIDED TWO THIRDS OF THE
SENATORS PRESENT CONCUR."
The power of making treaties is an important one, especially as it relates
to war, peace, and commerce; and it should not be delegated but in such a
mode, and with such precautions, as will afford the highest security that
it will be exercised by men the best qualified for the purpose, and in the
manner most conducive to the public good. The convention appears to have
been attentive to both these points: they have directed the President to
be chosen by select bodies of electors, to be deputed by the people for
that express purpose; and they have committed the appointment of senators
to the State legislatures. This mode has, in such cases, vastly the
advantage of elections by the people in their collective capacity, where
the activity of party zeal, taking the advantage of the supineness, the
ignorance, and the hopes and fears of the unwary and interested, often
places men in office by the votes of a small proportion of the electors.
As the select assemblies for choosing the President, as well as the State
legislatures who appoint the senators, will in general be composed of the
most enlightened and respectable citizens, there is reason to presume that
their attention and their votes will be directed to those men only who
have become the most distinguished by their abilities and virtue, and in
whom the people perceive just grounds for confidence. The Constitution
manifests very particular attention to this object. By excluding men under
thirty-five from the first office, and those under thirty from the second,
it confines the electors to men of whom the people have had time to form a
judgment, and with respect to whom they will not be liable to be deceived
by those brilliant appearances of genius and patriotism, which, like
transient meteors, sometimes mislead as well as dazzle. If the observation
be well founded, that wise kings will always be served by able ministers,
it is fair to argue, that as an assembly of select electors possess, in a
greater degree than kings, the means of extensive and accurate information
relative to men and characters, so will their appointments bear at least
equal marks of discretion and discernment. The inference which naturally
results from these considerations is this, that the President and senators
so chosen will always be of the number of those who best understand our
national interests, whether considered in relation to the several States
or to foreign nations, who are best able to promote those interests, and
whose reputation for integrity inspires and merits confidence. With such
men the power of making treaties may be safely lodged.
Although the absolute necessity of system, in the conduct of any business,
is universally known and acknowledged, yet the high importance of it in
national affairs has not yet become sufficiently impressed on the public
mind. They who wish to commit the power under consideration to a popular
assembly, composed of members constantly coming and going in quick
succession, seem not to recollect that such a body must necessarily be
inadequate to the attainment of those great objects, which require to be
steadily contemplated in all their relations and circumstances, and which
can only be approached and achieved by measures which not only talents,
but also exact information, and often much time, are necessary to concert
and to execute. It was wise, therefore, in the convention to provide, not
only that the power of making treaties should be committed to able and
honest men, but also that they should continue in place a sufficient time
to become perfectly acquainted with our national concerns, and to form and
introduce a a system for the management of them. The duration prescribed
is such as will give them an opportunity of greatly extending their
political information, and of rendering their accumulating experience more
and more beneficial to their country. Nor has the convention discovered
less prudence in providing for the frequent elections of senators in such
a way as to obviate the inconvenience of periodically transferring those
great affairs entirely to new men; for by leaving a considerable residue
of the old ones in place, uniformity and order, as well as a constant
succession of official information will be preserved.
There are a few who will not admit that the affairs of trade and
navigation should be regulated by a system cautiously formed and steadily
pursued; and that both our treaties and our laws should correspond with
and be made to promote it. It is of much consequence that this
correspondence and conformity be carefully maintained; and they who assent
to the truth of this position will see and confess that it is well
provided for by making concurrence of the Senate necessary both to
treaties and to laws.
It seldom happens in the negotiation of treaties, of whatever nature, but
that perfect SECRECY and immediate DESPATCH are sometimes requisite. These
are cases where the most useful intelligence may be obtained, if the
persons possessing it can be relieved from apprehensions of discovery.
Those apprehensions will operate on those persons whether they are
actuated by mercenary or friendly motives; and there doubtless are many of
both descriptions, who would rely on the secrecy of the President, but who
would not confide in that of the Senate, and still less in that of a large
popular Assembly. The convention have done well, therefore, in so
disposing of the power of making treaties, that although the President
must, in forming them, act by the advice and consent of the Senate, yet he
will be able to manage the business of intelligence in such a manner as
prudence may suggest.
They who have turned their attention to the affairs of men, must have
perceived that there are tides in them; tides very irregular in their
duration, strength, and direction, and seldom found to run twice exactly
in the same manner or measure. To discern and to profit by these tides in
national affairs is the business of those who preside over them; and they
who have had much experience on this head inform us, that there frequently
are occasions when days, nay, even when hours, are precious. The loss of a
battle, the death of a prince, the removal of a minister, or other
circumstances intervening to change the present posture and aspect of
affairs, may turn the most favorable tide into a course opposite to our
wishes. As in the field, so in the cabinet, there are moments to be seized
as they pass, and they who preside in either should be left in capacity to
improve them. So often and so essentially have we heretofore suffered from
the want of secrecy and despatch, that the Constitution would have been
inexcusably defective, if no attention had been paid to those objects.
Those matters which in negotiations usually require the most secrecy and
the most despatch, are those preparatory and auxiliary measures which are
not otherwise important in a national view, than as they tend to
facilitate the attainment of the objects of the negotiation. For these,
the President will find no difficulty to provide; and should any
circumstance occur which requires the advice and consent of the Senate, he
may at any time convene them. Thus we see that the Constitution provides
that our negotiations for treaties shall have every advantage which can be
derived from talents, information, integrity, and deliberate
investigations, on the one hand, and from secrecy and despatch on the
other.
But to this plan, as to most others that have ever appeared, objections
are contrived and urged.
Some are displeased with it, not on account of any errors or defects in
it, but because, as the treaties, when made, are to have the force of
laws, they should be made only by men invested with legislative authority.
These gentlemen seem not to consider that the judgments of our courts, and
the commissions constitutionally given by our governor, are as valid and
as binding on all persons whom they concern, as the laws passed by our
legislature. All constitutional acts of power, whether in the executive or
in the judicial department, have as much legal validity and obligation as
if they proceeded from the legislature; and therefore, whatever name be
given to the power of making treaties, or however obligatory they may be
when made, certain it is, that the people may, with much propriety, commit
the power to a distinct body from the legislature, the executive, or the
judicial. It surely does not follow, that because they have given the
power of making laws to the legislature, that therefore they should
likewise give them the power to do every other act of sovereignty by which
the citizens are to be bound and affected.
Others, though content that treaties should be made in the mode proposed,
are averse to their being the SUPREME laws of the land. They insist, and
profess to believe, that treaties like acts of assembly, should be
repealable at pleasure. This idea seems to be new and peculiar to this
country, but new errors, as well as new truths, often appear. These
gentlemen would do well to reflect that a treaty is only another name for
a bargain, and that it would be impossible to find a nation who would make
any bargain with us, which should be binding on them ABSOLUTELY, but on us
only so long and so far as we may think proper to be bound by it. They who
make laws may, without doubt, amend or repeal them; and it will not be
disputed that they who make treaties may alter or cancel them; but still
let us not forget that treaties are made, not by only one of the
contracting parties, but by both; and consequently, that as the consent of
both was essential to their formation at first, so must it ever afterwards
be to alter or cancel them. The proposed Constitution, therefore, has not
in the least extended the obligation of treaties. They are just as
binding, and just as far beyond the lawful reach of legislative acts now,
as they will be at any future period, or under any form of government.
However useful jealousy may be in republics, yet when like bile in the
natural, it abounds too much in the body politic, the eyes of both become
very liable to be deceived by the delusive appearances which that malady
casts on surrounding objects. From this cause, probably, proceed the fears
and apprehensions of some, that the President and Senate may make treaties
without an equal eye to the interests of all the States. Others suspect
that two thirds will oppress the remaining third, and ask whether those
gentlemen are made sufficiently responsible for their conduct; whether, if
they act corruptly, they can be punished; and if they make disadvantageous
treaties, how are we to get rid of those treaties?
As all the States are equally represented in the Senate, and by men the
most able and the most willing to promote the interests of their
constituents, they will all have an equal degree of influence in that
body, especially while they continue to be careful in appointing proper
persons, and to insist on their punctual attendance. In proportion as the
United States assume a national form and a national character, so will the
good of the whole be more and more an object of attention, and the
government must be a weak one indeed, if it should forget that the good of
the whole can only be promoted by advancing the good of each of the parts
or members which compose the whole. It will not be in the power of the
President and Senate to make any treaties by which they and their families
and estates will not be equally bound and affected with the rest of the
community; and, having no private interests distinct from that of the
nation, they will be under no temptations to neglect the latter.
As to corruption, the case is not supposable. He must either have been
very unfortunate in his intercourse with the world, or possess a heart
very susceptible of such impressions, who can think it probable that the
President and two thirds of the Senate will ever be capable of such
unworthy conduct. The idea is too gross and too invidious to be
entertained. But in such a case, if it should ever happen, the treaty so
obtained from us would, like all other fraudulent contracts, be null and
void by the law of nations.
With respect to their responsibility, it is difficult to conceive how it
could be increased. Every consideration that can influence the human mind,
such as honor, oaths, reputations, conscience, the love of country, and
family affections and attachments, afford security for their fidelity. In
short, as the Constitution has taken the utmost care that they shall be
men of talents and integrity, we have reason to be persuaded that the
treaties they make will be as advantageous as, all circumstances
considered, could be made; and so far as the fear of punishment and
disgrace can operate, that motive to good behavior is amply afforded by
the article on the subject of impeachments.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 65. The Powers of the Senate Continued
From the New York Packet. Friday, March 7, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE remaining powers which the plan of the convention allots to the
Senate, in a distinct capacity, are comprised in their participation with
the executive in the appointment to offices, and in their judicial
character as a court for the trial of impeachments. As in the business of
appointments the executive will be the principal agent, the provisions
relating to it will most properly be discussed in the examination of that
department. We will, therefore, conclude this head with a view of the
judicial character of the Senate.
A well-constituted court for the trial of impeachments is an object not
more to be desired than difficult to be obtained in a government wholly
elective. The subjects of its jurisdiction are those offenses which
proceed from the misconduct of public men, or, in other words, from the
abuse or violation of some public trust. They are of a nature which may
with peculiar propriety be denominated POLITICAL, as they relate chiefly
to injuries done immediately to the society itself. The prosecution of
them, for this reason, will seldom fail to agitate the passions of the
whole community, and to divide it into parties more or less friendly or
inimical to the accused. In many cases it will connect itself with the
pre-existing factions, and will enlist all their animosities,
partialities, influence, and interest on one side or on the other; and in
such cases there will always be the greatest danger that the decision will
be regulated more by the comparative strength of parties, than by the real
demonstrations of innocence or guilt.
The delicacy and magnitude of a trust which so deeply concerns the
political reputation and existence of every man engaged in the
administration of public affairs, speak for themselves. The difficulty of
placing it rightly, in a government resting entirely on the basis of
periodical elections, will as readily be perceived, when it is considered
that the most conspicuous characters in it will, from that circumstance,
be too often the leaders or the tools of the most cunning or the most
numerous faction, and on this account, can hardly be expected to possess
the requisite neutrality towards those whose conduct may be the subject of
scrutiny.
The convention, it appears, thought the Senate the most fit depositary of
this important trust. Those who can best discern the intrinsic difficulty
of the thing, will be least hasty in condemning that opinion, and will be
most inclined to allow due weight to the arguments which may be supposed
to have produced it.
What, it may be asked, is the true spirit of the institution itself? Is it
not designed as a method of NATIONAL INQUEST into the conduct of public
men? If this be the design of it, who can so properly be the inquisitors
for the nation as the representatives of the nation themselves? It is not
disputed that the power of originating the inquiry, or, in other words, of
preferring the impeachment, ought to be lodged in the hands of one branch
of the legislative body. Will not the reasons which indicate the propriety
of this arrangement strongly plead for an admission of the other branch of
that body to a share of the inquiry? The model from which the idea of this
institution has been borrowed, pointed out that course to the convention.
In Great Britain it is the province of the House of Commons to prefer the
impeachment, and of the House of Lords to decide upon it. Several of the
State constitutions have followed the example. As well the latter, as the
former, seem to have regarded the practice of impeachments as a bridle in
the hands of the legislative body upon the executive servants of the
government. Is not this the true light in which it ought to be regarded?
Where else than in the Senate could have been found a tribunal
sufficiently dignified, or sufficiently independent? What other body would
be likely to feel CONFIDENCE ENOUGH IN ITS OWN SITUATION, to preserve,
unawed and uninfluenced, the necessary impartiality between an INDIVIDUAL
accused, and the REPRESENTATIVES OF THE PEOPLE, HIS ACCUSERS?
Could the Supreme Court have been relied upon as answering this
description? It is much to be doubted, whether the members of that
tribunal would at all times be endowed with so eminent a portion of
fortitude, as would be called for in the execution of so difficult a task;
and it is still more to be doubted, whether they would possess the degree
of credit and authority, which might, on certain occasions, be
indispensable towards reconciling the people to a decision that should
happen to clash with an accusation brought by their immediate
representatives. A deficiency in the first, would be fatal to the accused;
in the last, dangerous to the public tranquillity. The hazard in both
these respects, could only be avoided, if at all, by rendering that
tribunal more numerous than would consist with a reasonable attention to
economy. The necessity of a numerous court for the trial of impeachments,
is equally dictated by the nature of the proceeding. This can never be
tied down by such strict rules, either in the delineation of the offense
by the prosecutors, or in the construction of it by the judges, as in
common cases serve to limit the discretion of courts in favor of personal
security. There will be no jury to stand between the judges who are to
pronounce the sentence of the law, and the party who is to receive or
suffer it. The awful discretion which a court of impeachments must
necessarily have, to doom to honor or to infamy the most confidential and
the most distinguished characters of the community, forbids the commitment
of the trust to a small number of persons.
These considerations seem alone sufficient to authorize a conclusion, that
the Supreme Court would have been an improper substitute for the Senate,
as a court of impeachments. There remains a further consideration, which
will not a little strengthen this conclusion. It is this: The punishment
which may be the consequence of conviction upon impeachment, is not to
terminate the chastisement of the offender. After having been sentenced to
a perpetual ostracism from the esteem and confidence, and honors and
emoluments of his country, he will still be liable to prosecution and
punishment in the ordinary course of law. Would it be proper that the
persons who had disposed of his fame, and his most valuable rights as a
citizen in one trial, should, in another trial, for the same offense, be
also the disposers of his life and his fortune? Would there not be the
greatest reason to apprehend, that error, in the first sentence, would be
the parent of error in the second sentence? That the strong bias of one
decision would be apt to overrule the influence of any new lights which
might be brought to vary the complexion of another decision? Those who
know anything of human nature, will not hesitate to answer these questions
in the affirmative; and will be at no loss to perceive, that by making the
same persons judges in both cases, those who might happen to be the
objects of prosecution would, in a great measure, be deprived of the
double security intended them by a double trial. The loss of life and
estate would often be virtually included in a sentence which, in its
terms, imported nothing more than dismission from a present, and
disqualification for a future, office. It may be said, that the
intervention of a jury, in the second instance, would obviate the danger.
But juries are frequently influenced by the opinions of judges. They are
sometimes induced to find special verdicts, which refer the main question
to the decision of the court. Who would be willing to stake his life and
his estate upon the verdict of a jury acting under the auspices of judges
who had predetermined his guilt?
Would it have been an improvement of the plan, to have united the Supreme
Court with the Senate, in the formation of the court of impeachments? This
union would certainly have been attended with several advantages; but
would they not have been overbalanced by the signal disadvantage, already
stated, arising from the agency of the same judges in the double
prosecution to which the offender would be liable? To a certain extent,
the benefits of that union will be obtained from making the chief justice
of the Supreme Court the president of the court of impeachments, as is
proposed to be done in the plan of the convention; while the
inconveniences of an entire incorporation of the former into the latter
will be substantially avoided. This was perhaps the prudent mean. I
forbear to remark upon the additional pretext for clamor against the
judiciary, which so considerable an augmentation of its authority would
have afforded.
Would it have been desirable to have composed the court for the trial of
impeachments, of persons wholly distinct from the other departments of the
government? There are weighty arguments, as well against, as in favor of,
such a plan. To some minds it will not appear a trivial objection, that it
could tend to increase the complexity of the political machine, and to add
a new spring to the government, the utility of which would at best be
questionable. But an objection which will not be thought by any unworthy
of attention, is this: a court formed upon such a plan, would either be
attended with a heavy expense, or might in practice be subject to a
variety of casualties and inconveniences. It must either consist of
permanent officers, stationary at the seat of government, and of course
entitled to fixed and regular stipends, or of certain officers of the
State governments to be called upon whenever an impeachment was actually
depending. It will not be easy to imagine any third mode materially
different, which could rationally be proposed. As the court, for reasons
already given, ought to be numerous, the first scheme will be reprobated
by every man who can compare the extent of the public wants with the means
of supplying them. The second will be espoused with caution by those who
will seriously consider the difficulty of collecting men dispersed over
the whole Union; the injury to the innocent, from the procrastinated
determination of the charges which might be brought against them; the
advantage to the guilty, from the opportunities which delay would afford
to intrigue and corruption; and in some cases the detriment to the State,
from the prolonged inaction of men whose firm and faithful execution of
their duty might have exposed them to the persecution of an intemperate or
designing majority in the House of Representatives. Though this latter
supposition may seem harsh, and might not be likely often to be verified,
yet it ought not to be forgotten that the demon of faction will, at
certain seasons, extend his sceptre over all numerous bodies of men.
But though one or the other of the substitutes which have been examined,
or some other that might be devised, should be thought preferable to the
plan in this respect, reported by the convention, it will not follow that
the Constitution ought for this reason to be rejected. If mankind were to
resolve to agree in no institution of government, until every part of it
had been adjusted to the most exact standard of perfection, society would
soon become a general scene of anarchy, and the world a desert. Where is
the standard of perfection to be found? Who will undertake to unite the
discordant opinions of a whole community, in the same judgment of it; and
to prevail upon one conceited projector to renounce his INFALLIBLE
criterion for the FALLIBLE criterion of his more CONCEITED NEIGHBOR? To
answer the purpose of the adversaries of the Constitution, they ought to
prove, not merely that particular provisions in it are not the best which
might have been imagined, but that the plan upon the whole is bad and
pernicious.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 66. Objections to the Power of the Senate To Set as a Court
for Impeachments Further Considered.
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, March 8, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
A REVIEW of the principal objections that have appeared against the
proposed court for the trial of impeachments, will not improbably
eradicate the remains of any unfavorable impressions which may still exist
in regard to this matter.
The FIRST of these objections is, that the provision in question confounds
legislative and judiciary authorities in the same body, in violation of
that important and well-established maxim which requires a separation
between the different departments of power. The true meaning of this maxim
has been discussed and ascertained in another place, and has been shown to
be entirely compatible with a partial intermixture of those departments
for special purposes, preserving them, in the main, distinct and
unconnected. This partial intermixture is even, in some cases, not only
proper but necessary to the mutual defense of the several members of the
government against each other. An absolute or qualified negative in the
executive upon the acts of the legislative body, is admitted, by the
ablest adepts in political science, to be an indispensable barrier against
the encroachments of the latter upon the former. And it may, perhaps, with
no less reason be contended, that the powers relating to impeachments are,
as before intimated, an essential check in the hands of that body upon the
encroachments of the executive. The division of them between the two
branches of the legislature, assigning to one the right of accusing, to
the other the right of judging, avoids the inconvenience of making the
same persons both accusers and judges; and guards against the danger of
persecution, from the prevalency of a factious spirit in either of those
branches. As the concurrence of two thirds of the Senate will be requisite
to a condemnation, the security to innocence, from this additional
circumstance, will be as complete as itself can desire.
It is curious to observe, with what vehemence this part of the plan is
assailed, on the principle here taken notice of, by men who profess to
admire, without exception, the constitution of this State; while that
constitution makes the Senate, together with the chancellor and judges of
the Supreme Court, not only a court of impeachments, but the highest
judicatory in the State, in all causes, civil and criminal. The
proportion, in point of numbers, of the chancellor and judges to the
senators, is so inconsiderable, that the judiciary authority of New York,
in the last resort, may, with truth, be said to reside in its Senate. If
the plan of the convention be, in this respect, chargeable with a
departure from the celebrated maxim which has been so often mentioned, and
seems to be so little understood, how much more culpable must be the
constitution of New York?(1)
A SECOND objection to the Senate, as a court of impeachments, is, that it
contributes to an undue accumulation of power in that body, tending to
give to the government a countenance too aristocratic. The Senate, it is
observed, is to have concurrent authority with the Executive in the
formation of treaties and in the appointment to offices: if, say the
objectors, to these prerogatives is added that of deciding in all cases of
impeachment, it will give a decided predominancy to senatorial influence.
To an objection so little precise in itself, it is not easy to find a very
precise answer. Where is the measure or criterion to which we can appeal,
for determining what will give the Senate too much, too little, or barely
the proper degree of influence? Will it not be more safe, as well as more
simple, to dismiss such vague and uncertain calculations, to examine each
power by itself, and to decide, on general principles, where it may be
deposited with most advantage and least inconvenience?
If we take this course, it will lead to a more intelligible, if not to a
more certain result. The disposition of the power of making treaties,
which has obtained in the plan of the convention, will, then, if I mistake
not, appear to be fully justified by the considerations stated in a former
number, and by others which will occur under the next head of our
inquiries. The expediency of the junction of the Senate with the
Executive, in the power of appointing to offices, will, I trust, be placed
in a light not less satisfactory, in the disquisitions under the same
head. And I flatter myself the observations in my last paper must have
gone no inconsiderable way towards proving that it was not easy, if
practicable, to find a more fit receptacle for the power of determining
impeachments, than that which has been chosen. If this be truly the case,
the hypothetical dread of the too great weight of the Senate ought to be
discarded from our reasonings.
But this hypothesis, such as it is, has already been refuted in the
remarks applied to the duration in office prescribed for the senators. It
was by them shown, as well on the credit of historical examples, as from
the reason of the thing, that the most POPULAR branch of every government,
partaking of the republican genius, by being generally the favorite of the
people, will be as generally a full match, if not an overmatch, for every
other member of the Government.
But independent of this most active and operative principle, to secure the
equilibrium of the national House of Representatives, the plan of the
convention has provided in its favor several important counterpoises to
the additional authorities to be conferred upon the Senate. The exclusive
privilege of originating money bills will belong to the House of
Representatives. The same house will possess the sole right of instituting
impeachments: is not this a complete counterbalance to that of determining
them? The same house will be the umpire in all elections of the President,
which do not unite the suffrages of a majority of the whole number of
electors; a case which it cannot be doubted will sometimes, if not
frequently, happen. The constant possibility of the thing must be a
fruitful source of influence to that body. The more it is contemplated,
the more important will appear this ultimate though contingent power, of
deciding the competitions of the most illustrious citizens of the Union,
for the first office in it. It would not perhaps be rash to predict, that
as a mean of influence it will be found to outweigh all the peculiar
attributes of the Senate.
A THIRD objection to the Senate as a court of impeachments, is drawn from
the agency they are to have in the appointments to office. It is imagined
that they would be too indulgent judges of the conduct of men, in whose
official creation they had participated. The principle of this objection
would condemn a practice, which is to be seen in all the State
governments, if not in all the governments with which we are acquainted: I
mean that of rendering those who hold offices during pleasure, dependent
on the pleasure of those who appoint them. With equal plausibility might
it be alleged in this case, that the favoritism of the latter would always
be an asylum for the misbehavior of the former. But that practice, in
contradiction to this principle, proceeds upon the presumption, that the
responsibility of those who appoint, for the fitness and competency of the
persons on whom they bestow their choice, and the interest they will have
in the respectable and prosperous administration of affairs, will inspire
a sufficient disposition to dismiss from a share in it all such who, by
their conduct, shall have proved themselves unworthy of the confidence
reposed in them. Though facts may not always correspond with this
presumption, yet if it be, in the main, just, it must destroy the
supposition that the Senate, who will merely sanction the choice of the
Executive, should feel a bias, towards the objects of that choice, strong
enough to blind them to the evidences of guilt so extraordinary, as to
have induced the representatives of the nation to become its accusers.
If any further arguments were necessary to evince the improbability of
such a bias, it might be found in the nature of the agency of the Senate
in the business of appointments. It will be the office of the President to
NOMINATE, and, with the advice and consent of the Senate, to APPOINT.
There will, of course, be no exertion of CHOICE on the part of the Senate.
They may defeat one choice of the Executive, and oblige him to make
another; but they cannot themselves CHOOSE—they can only ratify or
reject the choice of the President. They might even entertain a preference
to some other person, at the very moment they were assenting to the one
proposed, because there might be no positive ground of opposition to him;
and they could not be sure, if they withheld their assent, that the
subsequent nomination would fall upon their own favorite, or upon any
other person in their estimation more meritorious than the one rejected.
Thus it could hardly happen, that the majority of the Senate would feel
any other complacency towards the object of an appointment than such as
the appearances of merit might inspire, and the proofs of the want of it
destroy.
A FOURTH objection to the Senate in the capacity of a court of
impeachments, is derived from its union with the Executive in the power of
making treaties. This, it has been said, would constitute the senators
their own judges, in every case of a corrupt or perfidious execution of
that trust. After having combined with the Executive in betraying the
interests of the nation in a ruinous treaty, what prospect, it is asked,
would there be of their being made to suffer the punishment they would
deserve, when they were themselves to decide upon the accusation brought
against them for the treachery of which they have been guilty?
This objection has been circulated with more earnestness and with greater
show of reason than any other which has appeared against this part of the
plan; and yet I am deceived if it does not rest upon an erroneous
foundation.
The security essentially intended by the Constitution against corruption
and treachery in the formation of treaties, is to be sought for in the
numbers and characters of those who are to make them. The JOINT AGENCY of
the Chief Magistrate of the Union, and of two thirds of the members of a
body selected by the collective wisdom of the legislatures of the several
States, is designed to be the pledge for the fidelity of the national
councils in this particular. The convention might with propriety have
meditated the punishment of the Executive, for a deviation from the
instructions of the Senate, or a want of integrity in the conduct of the
negotiations committed to him; they might also have had in view the
punishment of a few leading individuals in the Senate, who should have
prostituted their influence in that body as the mercenary instruments of
foreign corruption: but they could not, with more or with equal propriety,
have contemplated the impeachment and punishment of two thirds of the
Senate, consenting to an improper treaty, than of a majority of that or of
the other branch of the national legislature, consenting to a pernicious
or unconstitutional law—a principle which, I believe, has never been
admitted into any government. How, in fact, could a majority in the House
of Representatives impeach themselves? Not better, it is evident, than two
thirds of the Senate might try themselves. And yet what reason is there,
that a majority of the House of Representatives, sacrificing the interests
of the society by an unjust and tyrannical act of legislation, should
escape with impunity, more than two thirds of the Senate, sacrificing the
same interests in an injurious treaty with a foreign power? The truth is,
that in all such cases it is essential to the freedom and to the necessary
independence of the deliberations of the body, that the members of it
should be exempt from punishment for acts done in a collective capacity;
and the security to the society must depend on the care which is taken to
confide the trust to proper hands, to make it their interest to execute it
with fidelity, and to make it as difficult as possible for them to combine
in any interest opposite to that of the public good.
So far as might concern the misbehavior of the Executive in perverting the
instructions or contravening the views of the Senate, we need not be
apprehensive of the want of a disposition in that body to punish the abuse
of their confidence or to vindicate their own authority. We may thus far
count upon their pride, if not upon their virtue. And so far even as might
concern the corruption of leading members, by whose arts and influence the
majority may have been inveigled into measures odious to the community, if
the proofs of that corruption should be satisfactory, the usual propensity
of human nature will warrant us in concluding that there would be commonly
no defect of inclination in the body to divert the public resentment from
themselves by a ready sacrifice of the authors of their mismanagement and
disgrace.
PUBLIUS
1. In that of New Jersey, also, the final judiciary authority is in a
branch of the legislature. In New Hampshire, Massachusetts, Pennsylvania,
and South Carolina, one branch of the legislature is the court for the
trial of impeachments.
FEDERALIST No. 67. The Executive Department
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, March 11, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE constitution of the executive department of the proposed government,
claims next our attention.
There is hardly any part of the system which could have been attended with
greater difficulty in the arrangement of it than this; and there is,
perhaps, none which has been inveighed against with less candor or
criticised with less judgment.
Here the writers against the Constitution seem to have taken pains to
signalize their talent of misrepresentation. Calculating upon the aversion
of the people to monarchy, they have endeavored to enlist all their
jealousies and apprehensions in opposition to the intended President of
the United States; not merely as the embryo, but as the full-grown
progeny, of that detested parent. To establish the pretended affinity,
they have not scrupled to draw resources even from the regions of fiction.
The authorities of a magistrate, in few instances greater, in some
instances less, than those of a governor of New York, have been magnified
into more than royal prerogatives. He has been decorated with attributes
superior in dignity and splendor to those of a king of Great Britain. He
has been shown to us with the diadem sparkling on his brow and the
imperial purple flowing in his train. He has been seated on a throne
surrounded with minions and mistresses, giving audience to the envoys of
foreign potentates, in all the supercilious pomp of majesty. The images of
Asiatic despotism and voluptuousness have scarcely been wanting to crown
the exaggerated scene. We have been taught to tremble at the terrific
visages of murdering janizaries, and to blush at the unveiled mysteries of
a future seraglio.
Attempts so extravagant as these to disfigure or, it might rather be said,
to metamorphose the object, render it necessary to take an accurate view
of its real nature and form: in order as well to ascertain its true aspect
and genuine appearance, as to unmask the disingenuity and expose the
fallacy of the counterfeit resemblances which have been so insidiously, as
well as industriously, propagated.
In the execution of this task, there is no man who would not find it an
arduous effort either to behold with moderation, or to treat with
seriousness, the devices, not less weak than wicked, which have been
contrived to pervert the public opinion in relation to the subject. They
so far exceed the usual though unjustifiable licenses of party artifice,
that even in a disposition the most candid and tolerant, they must force
the sentiments which favor an indulgent construction of the conduct of
political adversaries to give place to a voluntary and unreserved
indignation. It is impossible not to bestow the imputation of deliberate
imposture and deception upon the gross pretense of a similitude between a
king of Great Britain and a magistrate of the character marked out for
that of the President of the United States. It is still more impossible to
withhold that imputation from the rash and barefaced expedients which have
been employed to give success to the attempted imposition.
In one instance, which I cite as a sample of the general spirit, the
temerity has proceeded so far as to ascribe to the President of the United
States a power which by the instrument reported is EXPRESSLY allotted to
the Executives of the individual States. I mean the power of filling
casual vacancies in the Senate.
This bold experiment upon the discernment of his countrymen has been
hazarded by a writer who (whatever may be his real merit) has had no
inconsiderable share in the applauses of his party(1); and who, upon this
false and unfounded suggestion, has built a series of observations equally
false and unfounded. Let him now be confronted with the evidence of the
fact, and let him, if he be able, justify or extenuate the shameful
outrage he has offered to the dictates of truth and to the rules of fair
dealing.
The second clause of the second section of the second article empowers the
President of the United States "to nominate, and by and with the advice
and consent of the Senate, to appoint ambassadors, other public ministers
and consuls, judges of the Supreme Court, and all other OFFICERS of United
States whose appointments are NOT in the Constitution OTHERWISE PROVIDED
FOR, and WHICH SHALL BE ESTABLISHED BY LAW." Immediately after this clause
follows another in these words: "The President shall have power to fill up
all VACANCIES that may happen DURING THE RECESS OF THE SENATE, by granting
commissions which shall EXPIRE AT THE END OF THEIR NEXT SESSION." It is
from this last provision that the pretended power of the President to fill
vacancies in the Senate has been deduced. A slight attention to the
connection of the clauses, and to the obvious meaning of the terms, will
satisfy us that the deduction is not even colorable.
The first of these two clauses, it is clear, only provides a mode for
appointing such officers, "whose appointments are NOT OTHERWISE PROVIDED
FOR in the Constitution, and which SHALL BE ESTABLISHED BY LAW"; of course
it cannot extend to the appointments of senators, whose appointments are
OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR in the Constitution(2), and who are ESTABLISHED BY
THE CONSTITUTION, and will not require a future establishment by law. This
position will hardly be contested.
The last of these two clauses, it is equally clear, cannot be understood
to comprehend the power of filling vacancies in the Senate, for the
following reasons: First. The relation in which that clause stands to the
other, which declares the general mode of appointing officers of the
United States, denotes it to be nothing more than a supplement to the
other, for the purpose of establishing an auxiliary method of appointment,
in cases to which the general method was inadequate. The ordinary power of
appointment is confined to the President and Senate JOINTLY, and can
therefore only be exercised during the session of the Senate; but as it
would have been improper to oblige this body to be continually in session
for the appointment of officers and as vacancies might happen IN THEIR
RECESS, which it might be necessary for the public service to fill without
delay, the succeeding clause is evidently intended to authorize the
President, SINGLY, to make temporary appointments "during the recess of
the Senate, by granting commissions which shall expire at the end of their
next session." Second. If this clause is to be considered as supplementary
to the one which precedes, the VACANCIES of which it speaks must be
construed to relate to the "officers" described in the preceding one; and
this, we have seen, excludes from its description the members of the
Senate. Third. The time within which the power is to operate, "during the
recess of the Senate," and the duration of the appointments, "to the end
of the next session" of that body, conspire to elucidate the sense of the
provision, which, if it had been intended to comprehend senators, would
naturally have referred the temporary power of filling vacancies to the
recess of the State legislatures, who are to make the permanent
appointments, and not to the recess of the national Senate, who are to
have no concern in those appointments; and would have extended the
duration in office of the temporary senators to the next session of the
legislature of the State, in whose representation the vacancies had
happened, instead of making it to expire at the end of the ensuing session
of the national Senate. The circumstances of the body authorized to make
the permanent appointments would, of course, have governed the
modification of a power which related to the temporary appointments; and
as the national Senate is the body, whose situation is alone contemplated
in the clause upon which the suggestion under examination has been
founded, the vacancies to which it alludes can only be deemed to respect
those officers in whose appointment that body has a concurrent agency with
the President. But last, the first and second clauses of the third section
of the first article, not only obviate all possibility of doubt, but
destroy the pretext of misconception. The former provides, that "the
Senate of the United States shall be composed of two Senators from each
State, chosen BY THE LEGISLATURE THEREOF for six years"; and the latter
directs, that, "if vacancies in that body should happen by resignation or
otherwise, DURING THE RECESS OF THE LEGISLATURE OF ANY STATE, the
Executive THEREOF may make temporary appointments until the NEXT MEETING
OF THE LEGISLATURE, which shall then fill such vacancies." Here is an
express power given, in clear and unambiguous terms, to the State
Executives, to fill casual vacancies in the Senate, by temporary
appointments; which not only invalidates the supposition, that the clause
before considered could have been intended to confer that power upon the
President of the United States, but proves that this supposition,
destitute as it is even of the merit of plausibility, must have originated
in an intention to deceive the people, too palpable to be obscured by
sophistry, too atrocious to be palliated by hypocrisy.
I have taken the pains to select this instance of misrepresentation, and
to place it in a clear and strong light, as an unequivocal proof of the
unwarrantable arts which are practiced to prevent a fair and impartial
judgment of the real merits of the Constitution submitted to the
consideration of the people. Nor have I scrupled, in so flagrant a case,
to allow myself a severity of animadversion little congenial with the
general spirit of these papers. I hesitate not to submit it to the
decision of any candid and honest adversary of the proposed government,
whether language can furnish epithets of too much asperity, for so
shameless and so prostitute an attempt to impose on the citizens of
America.
PUBLIUS
1. See CATO, No. V.
2. Article I, section 3, clause 1.
FEDERALIST No. 68. The Mode of Electing the President
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 12, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE mode of appointment of the Chief Magistrate of the United States is
almost the only part of the system, of any consequence, which has escaped
without severe censure, or which has received the slightest mark of
approbation from its opponents. The most plausible of these, who has
appeared in print, has even deigned to admit that the election of the
President is pretty well guarded.(1) I venture somewhat further, and
hesitate not to affirm, that if the manner of it be not perfect, it is at
least excellent. It unites in an eminent degree all the advantages, the
union of which was to be wished for.(E1)
It was desirable that the sense of the people should operate in the choice
of the person to whom so important a trust was to be confided. This end
will be answered by committing the right of making it, not to any
preestablished body, but to men chosen by the people for the special
purpose, and at the particular conjuncture.
It was equally desirable, that the immediate election should be made by
men most capable of analyzing the qualities adapted to the station, and
acting under circumstances favorable to deliberation, and to a judicious
combination of all the reasons and inducements which were proper to govern
their choice. A small number of persons, selected by their fellow-citizens
from the general mass, will be most likely to possess the information and
discernment requisite to such complicated investigations.
It was also peculiarly desirable to afford as little opportunity as
possible to tumult and disorder. This evil was not least to be dreaded in
the election of a magistrate, who was to have so important an agency in
the administration of the government as the President of the United
States. But the precautions which have been so happily concerted in the
system under consideration, promise an effectual security against this
mischief. The choice of SEVERAL, to form an intermediate body of electors,
will be much less apt to convulse the community with any extraordinary or
violent movements, than the choice of ONE who was himself to be the final
object of the public wishes. And as the electors, chosen in each State,
are to assemble and vote in the State in which they are chosen, this
detached and divided situation will expose them much less to heats and
ferments, which might be communicated from them to the people, than if
they were all to be convened at one time, in one place.
Nothing was more to be desired than that every practicable obstacle should
be opposed to cabal, intrigue, and corruption. These most deadly
adversaries of republican government might naturally have been expected to
make their approaches from more than one quarter, but chiefly from the
desire in foreign powers to gain an improper ascendant in our councils.
How could they better gratify this, than by raising a creature of their
own to the chief magistracy of the Union? But the convention have guarded
against all danger of this sort, with the most provident and judicious
attention. They have not made the appointment of the President to depend
on any preexisting bodies of men, who might be tampered with beforehand to
prostitute their votes; but they have referred it in the first instance to
an immediate act of the people of America, to be exerted in the choice of
persons for the temporary and sole purpose of making the appointment. And
they have excluded from eligibility to this trust, all those who from
situation might be suspected of too great devotion to the President in
office. No senator, representative, or other person holding a place of
trust or profit under the United States, can be of the numbers of the
electors. Thus without corrupting the body of the people, the immediate
agents in the election will at least enter upon the task free from any
sinister bias. Their transient existence, and their detached situation,
already taken notice of, afford a satisfactory prospect of their
continuing so, to the conclusion of it. The business of corruption, when
it is to embrace so considerable a number of men, requires time as well as
means. Nor would it be found easy suddenly to embark them, dispersed as
they would be over thirteen States, in any combinations founded upon
motives, which though they could not properly be denominated corrupt,
might yet be of a nature to mislead them from their duty.
Another and no less important desideratum was, that the Executive should
be independent for his continuance in office on all but the people
themselves. He might otherwise be tempted to sacrifice his duty to his
complaisance for those whose favor was necessary to the duration of his
official consequence. This advantage will also be secured, by making his
re-election to depend on a special body of representatives, deputed by the
society for the single purpose of making the important choice.
All these advantages will happily combine in the plan devised by the
convention; which is, that the people of each State shall choose a number
of persons as electors, equal to the number of senators and
representatives of such State in the national government, who shall
assemble within the State, and vote for some fit person as President.
Their votes, thus given, are to be transmitted to the seat of the national
government, and the person who may happen to have a majority of the whole
number of votes will be the President. But as a majority of the votes
might not always happen to centre in one man, and as it might be unsafe to
permit less than a majority to be conclusive, it is provided that, in such
a contingency, the House of Representatives shall select out of the
candidates who shall have the five highest number of votes, the man who in
their opinion may be best qualified for the office.
The process of election affords a moral certainty, that the office of
President will never fall to the lot of any man who is not in an eminent
degree endowed with the requisite qualifications. Talents for low
intrigue, and the little arts of popularity, may alone suffice to elevate
a man to the first honors in a single State; but it will require other
talents, and a different kind of merit, to establish him in the esteem and
confidence of the whole Union, or of so considerable a portion of it as
would be necessary to make him a successful candidate for the
distinguished office of President of the United States. It will not be too
strong to say, that there will be a constant probability of seeing the
station filled by characters pre-eminent for ability and virtue. And this
will be thought no inconsiderable recommendation of the Constitution, by
those who are able to estimate the share which the executive in every
government must necessarily have in its good or ill administration. Though
we cannot acquiesce in the political heresy of the poet who says:
"For forms of government let fools contest—That which is best
administered is best,"—yet we may safely pronounce, that the true
test of a good government is its aptitude and tendency to produce a good
administration.
The Vice-President is to be chosen in the same manner with the President;
with this difference, that the Senate is to do, in respect to the former,
what is to be done by the House of Representatives, in respect to the
latter.
The appointment of an extraordinary person, as Vice-President, has been
objected to as superfluous, if not mischievous. It has been alleged, that
it would have been preferable to have authorized the Senate to elect out
of their own body an officer answering that description. But two
considerations seem to justify the ideas of the convention in this
respect. One is, that to secure at all times the possibility of a definite
resolution of the body, it is necessary that the President should have
only a casting vote. And to take the senator of any State from his seat as
senator, to place him in that of President of the Senate, would be to
exchange, in regard to the State from which he came, a constant for a
contingent vote. The other consideration is, that as the Vice-President
may occasionally become a substitute for the President, in the supreme
executive magistracy, all the reasons which recommend the mode of election
prescribed for the one, apply with great if not with equal force to the
manner of appointing the other. It is remarkable that in this, as in most
other instances, the objection which is made would lie against the
constitution of this State. We have a Lieutenant-Governor, chosen by the
people at large, who presides in the Senate, and is the constitutional
substitute for the Governor, in casualties similar to those which would
authorize the Vice-President to exercise the authorities and discharge the
duties of the President.
PUBLIUS
1. Vide federal farmer.
E1. Some editions substitute "desired" for "wished for".
FEDERALIST No. 69. The Real Character of the Executive
From the New York Packet. Friday, March 14, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
I PROCEED now to trace the real characters of the proposed Executive, as
they are marked out in the plan of the convention. This will serve to
place in a strong light the unfairness of the representations which have
been made in regard to it.
The first thing which strikes our attention is, that the executive
authority, with few exceptions, is to be vested in a single magistrate.
This will scarcely, however, be considered as a point upon which any
comparison can be grounded; for if, in this particular, there be a
resemblance to the king of Great Britain, there is not less a resemblance
to the Grand Seignior, to the khan of Tartary, to the Man of the Seven
Mountains, or to the governor of New York.
That magistrate is to be elected for four years; and is to be re-eligible
as often as the people of the United States shall think him worthy of
their confidence. In these circumstances there is a total dissimilitude
between him and a king of Great Britain, who is an hereditary monarch,
possessing the crown as a patrimony descendible to his heirs forever; but
there is a close analogy between him and a governor of New York, who is
elected for three years, and is re-eligible without limitation or
intermission. If we consider how much less time would be requisite for
establishing a dangerous influence in a single State, than for
establishing a like influence throughout the United States, we must
conclude that a duration of four years for the Chief Magistrate of the
Union is a degree of permanency far less to be dreaded in that office,
than a duration of three years for a corresponding office in a single
State.
The President of the United States would be liable to be impeached, tried,
and, upon conviction of treason, bribery, or other high crimes or
misdemeanors, removed from office; and would afterwards be liable to
prosecution and punishment in the ordinary course of law. The person of
the king of Great Britain is sacred and inviolable; there is no
constitutional tribunal to which he is amenable; no punishment to which he
can be subjected without involving the crisis of a national revolution. In
this delicate and important circumstance of personal responsibility, the
President of Confederated America would stand upon no better ground than a
governor of New York, and upon worse ground than the governors of Maryland
and Delaware.
The President of the United States is to have power to return a bill,
which shall have passed the two branches of the legislature, for
reconsideration; and the bill so returned is to become a law, if, upon
that reconsideration, it be approved by two thirds of both houses. The
king of Great Britain, on his part, has an absolute negative upon the acts
of the two houses of Parliament. The disuse of that power for a
considerable time past does not affect the reality of its existence; and
is to be ascribed wholly to the crown's having found the means of
substituting influence to authority, or the art of gaining a majority in
one or the other of the two houses, to the necessity of exerting a
prerogative which could seldom be exerted without hazarding some degree of
national agitation. The qualified negative of the President differs widely
from this absolute negative of the British sovereign; and tallies exactly
with the revisionary authority of the council of revision of this State,
of which the governor is a constituent part. In this respect the power of
the President would exceed that of the governor of New York, because the
former would possess, singly, what the latter shares with the chancellor
and judges; but it would be precisely the same with that of the governor
of Massachusetts, whose constitution, as to this article, seems to have
been the original from which the convention have copied.
The President is to be the "commander-in-chief of the army and navy of the
United States, and of the militia of the several States, when called into
the actual service of the United States. He is to have power to grant
reprieves and pardons for offenses against the United States, except in
cases of impeachment; to recommend to the consideration of Congress such
measures as he shall judge necessary and expedient; to convene, on
extraordinary occasions, both houses of the legislature, or either of
them, and, in case of disagreement between them with respect to the time
of adjournment, to adjourn them to such time as he shall think proper; to
take care that the laws be faithfully executed; and to commission all
officers of the United States." In most of these particulars, the power of
the President will resemble equally that of the king of Great Britain and
of the governor of New York. The most material points of difference are
these:—First. The President will have only the occasional command of
such part of the militia of the nation as by legislative provision may be
called into the actual service of the Union. The king of Great Britain and
the governor of New York have at all times the entire command of all the
militia within their several jurisdictions. In this article, therefore,
the power of the President would be inferior to that of either the monarch
or the governor. Second. The President is to be commander-in-chief of the
army and navy of the United States. In this respect his authority would be
nominally the same with that of the king of Great Britain, but in
substance much inferior to it. It would amount to nothing more than the
supreme command and direction of the military and naval forces, as first
General and admiral of the Confederacy; while that of the British king
extends to the declaring of war and to the raising and regulating of
fleets and armies—all which, by the Constitution under
consideration, would appertain to the legislature.(1) The governor of New
York, on the other hand, is by the constitution of the State vested only
with the command of its militia and navy. But the constitutions of several
of the States expressly declare their governors to be commanders-in-chief,
as well of the army as navy; and it may well be a question, whether those
of New Hampshire and Massachusetts, in particular, do not, in this
instance, confer larger powers upon their respective governors, than could
be claimed by a President of the United States. Third. The power of the
President, in respect to pardons, would extend to all cases, except those
of impeachment. The governor of New York may pardon in all cases, even in
those of impeachment, except for treason and murder. Is not the power of
the governor, in this article, on a calculation of political consequences,
greater than that of the President? All conspiracies and plots against the
government, which have not been matured into actual treason, may be
screened from punishment of every kind, by the interposition of the
prerogative of pardoning. If a governor of New York, therefore, should be
at the head of any such conspiracy, until the design had been ripened into
actual hostility he could insure his accomplices and adherents an entire
impunity. A President of the Union, on the other hand, though he may even
pardon treason, when prosecuted in the ordinary course of law, could
shelter no offender, in any degree, from the effects of impeachment and
conviction. Would not the prospect of a total indemnity for all the
preliminary steps be a greater temptation to undertake and persevere in an
enterprise against the public liberty, than the mere prospect of an
exemption from death and confiscation, if the final execution of the
design, upon an actual appeal to arms, should miscarry? Would this last
expectation have any influence at all, when the probability was computed,
that the person who was to afford that exemption might himself be involved
in the consequences of the measure, and might be incapacitated by his
agency in it from affording the desired impunity? The better to judge of
this matter, it will be necessary to recollect, that, by the proposed
Constitution, the offense of treason is limited "to levying war upon the
United States, and adhering to their enemies, giving them aid and
comfort"; and that by the laws of New York it is confined within similar
bounds. Fourth. The President can only adjourn the national legislature in
the single case of disagreement about the time of adjournment. The British
monarch may prorogue or even dissolve the Parliament. The governor of New
York may also prorogue the legislature of this State for a limited time; a
power which, in certain situations, may be employed to very important
purposes.
The President is to have power, with the advice and consent of the Senate,
to make treaties, provided two thirds of the senators present concur. The
king of Great Britain is the sole and absolute representative of the
nation in all foreign transactions. He can of his own accord make treaties
of peace, commerce, alliance, and of every other description. It has been
insinuated, that his authority in this respect is not conclusive, and that
his conventions with foreign powers are subject to the revision, and stand
in need of the ratification, of Parliament. But I believe this doctrine
was never heard of, until it was broached upon the present occasion. Every
jurist(2) of that kingdom, and every other man acquainted with its
Constitution, knows, as an established fact, that the prerogative of
making treaties exists in the crown in its utmost plentitude; and that the
compacts entered into by the royal authority have the most complete legal
validity and perfection, independent of any other sanction. The
Parliament, it is true, is sometimes seen employing itself in altering the
existing laws to conform them to the stipulations in a new treaty; and
this may have possibly given birth to the imagination, that its
co-operation was necessary to the obligatory efficacy of the treaty. But
this parliamentary interposition proceeds from a different cause: from the
necessity of adjusting a most artificial and intricate system of revenue
and commercial laws, to the changes made in them by the operation of the
treaty; and of adapting new provisions and precautions to the new state of
things, to keep the machine from running into disorder. In this respect,
therefore, there is no comparison between the intended power of the
President and the actual power of the British sovereign. The one can
perform alone what the other can do only with the concurrence of a branch
of the legislature. It must be admitted, that, in this instance, the power
of the federal Executive would exceed that of any State Executive. But
this arises naturally from the sovereign power which relates to treaties.
If the Confederacy were to be dissolved, it would become a question,
whether the Executives of the several States were not solely invested with
that delicate and important prerogative.
The President is also to be authorized to receive ambassadors and other
public ministers. This, though it has been a rich theme of declamation, is
more a matter of dignity than of authority. It is a circumstance which
will be without consequence in the administration of the government; and
it was far more convenient that it should be arranged in this manner, than
that there should be a necessity of convening the legislature, or one of
its branches, upon every arrival of a foreign minister, though it were
merely to take the place of a departed predecessor.
The President is to nominate, and, with the advice and consent of the
Senate, to appoint ambassadors and other public ministers, judges of the
Supreme Court, and in general all officers of the United States
established by law, and whose appointments are not otherwise provided for
by the Constitution. The king of Great Britain is emphatically and truly
styled the fountain of honor. He not only appoints to all offices, but can
create offices. He can confer titles of nobility at pleasure; and has the
disposal of an immense number of church preferments. There is evidently a
great inferiority in the power of the President, in this particular, to
that of the British king; nor is it equal to that of the governor of New
York, if we are to interpret the meaning of the constitution of the State
by the practice which has obtained under it. The power of appointment is
with us lodged in a council, composed of the governor and four members of
the Senate, chosen by the Assembly. The governor claims, and has
frequently exercised, the right of nomination, and is entitled to a
casting vote in the appointment. If he really has the right of nominating,
his authority is in this respect equal to that of the President, and
exceeds it in the article of the casting vote. In the national government,
if the Senate should be divided, no appointment could be made; in the
government of New York, if the council should be divided, the governor can
turn the scale, and confirm his own nomination.(3) If we compare the
publicity which must necessarily attend the mode of appointment by the
President and an entire branch of the national legislature, with the
privacy in the mode of appointment by the governor of New York, closeted
in a secret apartment with at most four, and frequently with only two
persons; and if we at the same time consider how much more easy it must be
to influence the small number of which a council of appointment consists,
than the considerable number of which the national Senate would consist,
we cannot hesitate to pronounce that the power of the chief magistrate of
this State, in the disposition of offices, must, in practice, be greatly
superior to that of the Chief Magistrate of the Union.
Hence it appears that, except as to the concurrent authority of the
President in the article of treaties, it would be difficult to determine
whether that magistrate would, in the aggregate, possess more or less
power than the Governor of New York. And it appears yet more
unequivocally, that there is no pretense for the parallel which has been
attempted between him and the king of Great Britain. But to render the
contrast in this respect still more striking, it may be of use to throw
the principal circumstances of dissimilitude into a closer group.
The President of the United States would be an officer elected by the
people for four years; the king of Great Britain is a perpetual and
hereditary prince. The one would be amenable to personal punishment and
disgrace; the person of the other is sacred and inviolable. The one would
have a qualified negative upon the acts of the legislative body; the other
has an absolute negative. The one would have a right to command the
military and naval forces of the nation; the other, in addition to this
right, possesses that of declaring war, and of raising and regulating
fleets and armies by his own authority. The one would have a concurrent
power with a branch of the legislature in the formation of treaties; the
other is the sole possessor of the power of making treaties. The one would
have a like concurrent authority in appointing to offices; the other is
the sole author of all appointments. The one can confer no privileges
whatever; the other can make denizens of aliens, noblemen of commoners;
can erect corporations with all the rights incident to corporate bodies.
The one can prescribe no rules concerning the commerce or currency of the
nation; the other is in several respects the arbiter of commerce, and in
this capacity can establish markets and fairs, can regulate weights and
measures, can lay embargoes for a limited time, can coin money, can
authorize or prohibit the circulation of foreign coin. The one has no
particle of spiritual jurisdiction; the other is the supreme head and
governor of the national church! What answer shall we give to those who
would persuade us that things so unlike resemble each other? The same that
ought to be given to those who tell us that a government, the whole power
of which would be in the hands of the elective and periodical servants of
the people, is an aristocracy, a monarchy, and a despotism.
PUBLIUS
1. A writer in a Pennsylvania paper, under the signature of TAMONY, has
asserted that the king of Great Britain owes his prerogative as
commander-in-chief to an annual mutiny bill. The truth is, on the
contrary, that his prerogative, in this respect, is immemorial, and was
only disputed, "contrary to all reason and precedent," as Blackstone vol.
i., page 262, expresses it, by the Long Parliament of Charles I. but by
the statute the 13th of Charles II., chap. 6, it was declared to be in the
king alone, for that the sole supreme government and command of the
militia within his Majesty's realms and dominions, and of all forces by
sea and land, and of all forts and places of strength, EVER WAS AND IS the
undoubted right of his Majesty and his royal predecessors, kings and
queens of England, and that both or either house of Parliament cannot nor
ought to pretend to the same.
2. Vide Blackstone's Commentaries, Vol I., p. 257.
3. Candor, however, demands an acknowledgment that I do not think the
claim of the governor to a right of nomination well founded. Yet it is
always justifiable to reason from the practice of a government, till its
propriety has been constitutionally questioned. And independent of this
claim, when we take into view the other considerations, and pursue them
through all their consequences, we shall be inclined to draw much the same
conclusion.
FEDERALIST No. 70. The Executive Department Further Considered
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, March 15, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THERE is an idea, which is not without its advocates, that a vigorous
Executive is inconsistent with the genius of republican government. The
enlightened well-wishers to this species of government must at least hope
that the supposition is destitute of foundation; since they can never
admit its truth, without at the same time admitting the condemnation of
their own principles. Energy in the Executive is a leading character in
the definition of good government. It is essential to the protection of
the community against foreign attacks; it is not less essential to the
steady administration of the laws; to the protection of property against
those irregular and high-handed combinations which sometimes interrupt the
ordinary course of justice; to the security of liberty against the
enterprises and assaults of ambition, of faction, and of anarchy. Every
man the least conversant in Roman story, knows how often that republic was
obliged to take refuge in the absolute power of a single man, under the
formidable title of Dictator, as well against the intrigues of ambitious
individuals who aspired to the tyranny, and the seditions of whole classes
of the community whose conduct threatened the existence of all government,
as against the invasions of external enemies who menaced the conquest and
destruction of Rome.
There can be no need, however, to multiply arguments or examples on this
head. A feeble Executive implies a feeble execution of the government. A
feeble execution is but another phrase for a bad execution; and a
government ill executed, whatever it may be in theory, must be, in
practice, a bad government.
Taking it for granted, therefore, that all men of sense will agree in the
necessity of an energetic Executive, it will only remain to inquire, what
are the ingredients which constitute this energy? How far can they be
combined with those other ingredients which constitute safety in the
republican sense? And how far does this combination characterize the plan
which has been reported by the convention?
The ingredients which constitute energy in the Executive are, first,
unity; secondly, duration; thirdly, an adequate provision for its support;
fourthly, competent powers.
The ingredients which constitute safety in the republican sense are,
first, a due dependence on the people, secondly, a due responsibility.
Those politicians and statesmen who have been the most celebrated for the
soundness of their principles and for the justice of their views, have
declared in favor of a single Executive and a numerous legislature. They
have with great propriety, considered energy as the most necessary
qualification of the former, and have regarded this as most applicable to
power in a single hand, while they have, with equal propriety, considered
the latter as best adapted to deliberation and wisdom, and best calculated
to conciliate the confidence of the people and to secure their privileges
and interests.
That unity is conducive to energy will not be disputed. Decision,
activity, secrecy, and despatch will generally characterize the
proceedings of one man in a much more eminent degree than the proceedings
of any greater number; and in proportion as the number is increased, these
qualities will be diminished.
This unity may be destroyed in two ways: either by vesting the power in
two or more magistrates of equal dignity and authority; or by vesting it
ostensibly in one man, subject, in whole or in part, to the control and
co-operation of others, in the capacity of counsellors to him. Of the
first, the two Consuls of Rome may serve as an example; of the last, we
shall find examples in the constitutions of several of the States. New
York and New Jersey, if I recollect right, are the only States which have
intrusted the executive authority wholly to single men.(1) Both these
methods of destroying the unity of the Executive have their partisans; but
the votaries of an executive council are the most numerous. They are both
liable, if not to equal, to similar objections, and may in most lights be
examined in conjunction.
The experience of other nations will afford little instruction on this
head. As far, however, as it teaches any thing, it teaches us not to be
enamoured of plurality in the Executive. We have seen that the Achaeans,
on an experiment of two Praetors, were induced to abolish one. The Roman
history records many instances of mischiefs to the republic from the
dissensions between the Consuls, and between the military Tribunes, who
were at times substituted for the Consuls. But it gives us no specimens of
any peculiar advantages derived to the state from the circumstance of the
plurality of those magistrates. That the dissensions between them were not
more frequent or more fatal, is a matter of astonishment, until we advert
to the singular position in which the republic was almost continually
placed, and to the prudent policy pointed out by the circumstances of the
state, and pursued by the Consuls, of making a division of the government
between them. The patricians engaged in a perpetual struggle with the
plebeians for the preservation of their ancient authorities and dignities;
the Consuls, who were generally chosen out of the former body, were
commonly united by the personal interest they had in the defense of the
privileges of their order. In addition to this motive of union, after the
arms of the republic had considerably expanded the bounds of its empire,
it became an established custom with the Consuls to divide the
administration between themselves by lot—one of them remaining at
Rome to govern the city and its environs, the other taking the command in
the more distant provinces. This expedient must, no doubt, have had great
influence in preventing those collisions and rivalships which might
otherwise have embroiled the peace of the republic.
But quitting the dim light of historical research, attaching ourselves
purely to the dictates of reason and good sense, we shall discover much
greater cause to reject than to approve the idea of plurality in the
Executive, under any modification whatever.
Wherever two or more persons are engaged in any common enterprise or
pursuit, there is always danger of difference of opinion. If it be a
public trust or office, in which they are clothed with equal dignity and
authority, there is peculiar danger of personal emulation and even
animosity. From either, and especially from all these causes, the most
bitter dissensions are apt to spring. Whenever these happen, they lessen
the respectability, weaken the authority, and distract the plans and
operation of those whom they divide. If they should unfortunately assail
the supreme executive magistracy of a country, consisting of a plurality
of persons, they might impede or frustrate the most important measures of
the government, in the most critical emergencies of the state. And what is
still worse, they might split the community into the most violent and
irreconcilable factions, adhering differently to the different individuals
who composed the magistracy.
Men often oppose a thing, merely because they have had no agency in
planning it, or because it may have been planned by those whom they
dislike. But if they have been consulted, and have happened to disapprove,
opposition then becomes, in their estimation, an indispensable duty of
self-love. They seem to think themselves bound in honor, and by all the
motives of personal infallibility, to defeat the success of what has been
resolved upon contrary to their sentiments. Men of upright, benevolent
tempers have too many opportunities of remarking, with horror, to what
desperate lengths this disposition is sometimes carried, and how often the
great interests of society are sacrificed to the vanity, to the conceit,
and to the obstinacy of individuals, who have credit enough to make their
passions and their caprices interesting to mankind. Perhaps the question
now before the public may, in its consequences, afford melancholy proofs
of the effects of this despicable frailty, or rather detestable vice, in
the human character.
Upon the principles of a free government, inconveniences from the source
just mentioned must necessarily be submitted to in the formation of the
legislature; but it is unnecessary, and therefore unwise, to introduce
them into the constitution of the Executive. It is here too that they may
be most pernicious. In the legislature, promptitude of decision is oftener
an evil than a benefit. The differences of opinion, and the jarrings of
parties in that department of the government, though they may sometimes
obstruct salutary plans, yet often promote deliberation and
circumspection, and serve to check excesses in the majority. When a
resolution too is once taken, the opposition must be at an end. That
resolution is a law, and resistance to it punishable. But no favorable
circumstances palliate or atone for the disadvantages of dissension in the
executive department. Here, they are pure and unmixed. There is no point
at which they cease to operate. They serve to embarrass and weaken the
execution of the plan or measure to which they relate, from the first step
to the final conclusion of it. They constantly counteract those qualities
in the Executive which are the most necessary ingredients in its
composition—vigor and expedition, and this without any
counterbalancing good. In the conduct of war, in which the energy of the
Executive is the bulwark of the national security, every thing would be to
be apprehended from its plurality.
It must be confessed that these observations apply with principal weight
to the first case supposed—that is, to a plurality of magistrates of
equal dignity and authority a scheme, the advocates for which are not
likely to form a numerous sect; but they apply, though not with equal, yet
with considerable weight to the project of a council, whose concurrence is
made constitutionally necessary to the operations of the ostensible
Executive. An artful cabal in that council would be able to distract and
to enervate the whole system of administration. If no such cabal should
exist, the mere diversity of views and opinions would alone be sufficient
to tincture the exercise of the executive authority with a spirit of
habitual feebleness and dilatoriness.
(But one of the weightiest objections to a plurality in the Executive, and
which lies as much against the last as the first plan, is, that it tends
to conceal faults and destroy responsibility. Responsibility is of two
kinds—to censure and to punishment. The first is the more important
of the two, especially in an elective office. Man, in public trust, will
much oftener act in such a manner as to render him unworthy of being any
longer trusted, than in such a manner as to make him obnoxious to legal
punishment. But the multiplication of the Executive adds to the difficulty
of detection in either case. It often becomes impossible, amidst mutual
accusations, to determine on whom the blame or the punishment of a
pernicious measure, or series of pernicious measures, ought really to
fall. It is shifted from one to another with so much dexterity, and under
such plausible appearances, that the public opinion is left in suspense
about the real author. The circumstances which may have led to any
national miscarriage or misfortune are sometimes so complicated that,
where there are a number of actors who may have had different degrees and
kinds of agency, though we may clearly see upon the whole that there has
been mismanagement, yet it may be impracticable to pronounce to whose
account the evil which may have been incurred is truly chargeable.)(E1)
(But one of the weightiest objections to a plurality in the Executive, and
which lies as much against the last as the first plan, is, that it tends
to conceal faults and destroy responsibility.
Responsibility is of two kinds—to censure and to punishment. The
first is the more important of the two, especially in an elective office.
Man, in public trust, will much oftener act in such a manner as to render
him unworthy of being any longer trusted, than in such a manner as to make
him obnoxious to legal punishment. But the multiplication of the Executive
adds to the difficulty of detection in either case. It often becomes
impossible, amidst mutual accusations, to determine on whom the blame or
the punishment of a pernicious measure, or series of pernicious measures,
ought really to fall. It is shifted from one to another with so much
dexterity, and under such plausible appearances, that the public opinion
is left in suspense about the real author. The circumstances which may
have led to any national miscarriage or misfortune are sometimes so
complicated that, where there are a number of actors who may have had
different degrees and kinds of agency, though we may clearly see upon the
whole that there has been mismanagement, yet it may be impracticable to
pronounce to whose account the evil which may have been incurred is truly
chargeable.)(E1)
"I was overruled by my council. The council were so divided in their
opinions that it was impossible to obtain any better resolution on the
point." These and similar pretexts are constantly at hand, whether true or
false. And who is there that will either take the trouble or incur the
odium, of a strict scrutiny into the secret springs of the transaction?
Should there be found a citizen zealous enough to undertake the
unpromising task, if there happen to be collusion between the parties
concerned, how easy it is to clothe the circumstances with so much
ambiguity, as to render it uncertain what was the precise conduct of any
of those parties?
In the single instance in which the governor of this State is coupled with
a council—that is, in the appointment to offices, we have seen the
mischiefs of it in the view now under consideration. Scandalous
appointments to important offices have been made. Some cases, indeed, have
been so flagrant that ALL PARTIES have agreed in the impropriety of the
thing. When inquiry has been made, the blame has been laid by the governor
on the members of the council, who, on their part, have charged it upon
his nomination; while the people remain altogether at a loss to determine,
by whose influence their interests have been committed to hands so
unqualified and so manifestly improper. In tenderness to individuals, I
forbear to descend to particulars.
It is evident from these considerations, that the plurality of the
Executive tends to deprive the people of the two greatest securities they
can have for the faithful exercise of any delegated power, first, the
restraints of public opinion, which lose their efficacy, as well on
account of the division of the censure attendant on bad measures among a
number, as on account of the uncertainty on whom it ought to fall; and,
second, the opportunity of discovering with facility and clearness the
misconduct of the persons they trust, in order either to their removal
from office or to their actual punishment in cases which admit of it.
In England, the king is a perpetual magistrate; and it is a maxim which
has obtained for the sake of the public peace, that he is unaccountable
for his administration, and his person sacred. Nothing, therefore, can be
wiser in that kingdom, than to annex to the king a constitutional council,
who may be responsible to the nation for the advice they give. Without
this, there would be no responsibility whatever in the executive
department an idea inadmissible in a free government. But even there the
king is not bound by the resolutions of his council, though they are
answerable for the advice they give. He is the absolute master of his own
conduct in the exercise of his office, and may observe or disregard the
counsel given to him at his sole discretion.
But in a republic, where every magistrate ought to be personally
responsible for his behavior in office the reason which in the British
Constitution dictates the propriety of a council, not only ceases to
apply, but turns against the institution. In the monarchy of Great
Britain, it furnishes a substitute for the prohibited responsibility of
the chief magistrate, which serves in some degree as a hostage to the
national justice for his good behavior. In the American republic, it would
serve to destroy, or would greatly diminish, the intended and necessary
responsibility of the Chief Magistrate himself.
The idea of a council to the Executive, which has so generally obtained in
the State constitutions, has been derived from that maxim of republican
jealousy which considers power as safer in the hands of a number of men
than of a single man. If the maxim should be admitted to be applicable to
the case, I should contend that the advantage on that side would not
counterbalance the numerous disadvantages on the opposite side. But I do
not think the rule at all applicable to the executive power. I clearly
concur in opinion, in this particular, with a writer whom the celebrated
Junius pronounces to be "deep, solid, and ingenious," that "the executive
power is more easily confined when it is ONE";(2) that it is far more safe
there should be a single object for the jealousy and watchfulness of the
people; and, in a word, that all multiplication of the Executive is rather
dangerous than friendly to liberty.
A little consideration will satisfy us, that the species of security
sought for in the multiplication of the Executive, is unattainable.
Numbers must be so great as to render combination difficult, or they are
rather a source of danger than of security. The united credit and
influence of several individuals must be more formidable to liberty, than
the credit and influence of either of them separately. When power,
therefore, is placed in the hands of so small a number of men, as to admit
of their interests and views being easily combined in a common enterprise,
by an artful leader, it becomes more liable to abuse, and more dangerous
when abused, than if it be lodged in the hands of one man; who, from the
very circumstance of his being alone, will be more narrowly watched and
more readily suspected, and who cannot unite so great a mass of influence
as when he is associated with others. The Decemvirs of Rome, whose name
denotes their number,(3) were more to be dreaded in their usurpation than
any ONE of them would have been. No person would think of proposing an
Executive much more numerous than that body; from six to a dozen have been
suggested for the number of the council. The extreme of these numbers, is
not too great for an easy combination; and from such a combination America
would have more to fear, than from the ambition of any single individual.
A council to a magistrate, who is himself responsible for what he does,
are generally nothing better than a clog upon his good intentions, are
often the instruments and accomplices of his bad and are almost always a
cloak to his faults.
I forbear to dwell upon the subject of expense; though it be evident that
if the council should be numerous enough to answer the principal end aimed
at by the institution, the salaries of the members, who must be drawn from
their homes to reside at the seat of government, would form an item in the
catalogue of public expenditures too serious to be incurred for an object
of equivocal utility. I will only add that, prior to the appearance of the
Constitution, I rarely met with an intelligent man from any of the States,
who did not admit, as the result of experience, that the UNITY of the
executive of this State was one of the best of the distinguishing features
of our constitution.
PUBLIUS
1. New York has no council except for the single purpose of appointing to
offices; New Jersey has a council whom the governor may consult. But I
think, from the terms of the constitution, their resolutions do not bind
him.
2. De Lolme.
3. Ten.
E1. Two versions of these paragraphs appear in different editions.
FEDERALIST No. 71. The Duration in Office of the Executive
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, March 18, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
DURATION in office has been mentioned as the second requisite to the
energy of the Executive authority. This has relation to two objects: to
the personal firmness of the executive magistrate, in the employment of
his constitutional powers; and to the stability of the system of
administration which may have been adopted under his auspices. With regard
to the first, it must be evident, that the longer the duration in office,
the greater will be the probability of obtaining so important an
advantage. It is a general principle of human nature, that a man will be
interested in whatever he possesses, in proportion to the firmness or
precariousness of the tenure by which he holds it; will be less attached
to what he holds by a momentary or uncertain title, than to what he enjoys
by a durable or certain title; and, of course, will be willing to risk
more for the sake of the one, than for the sake of the other. This remark
is not less applicable to a political privilege, or honor, or trust, than
to any article of ordinary property. The inference from it is, that a man
acting in the capacity of chief magistrate, under a consciousness that in
a very short time he MUST lay down his office, will be apt to feel himself
too little interested in it to hazard any material censure or perplexity,
from the independent exertion of his powers, or from encountering the
ill-humors, however transient, which may happen to prevail, either in a
considerable part of the society itself, or even in a predominant faction
in the legislative body. If the case should only be, that he MIGHT lay it
down, unless continued by a new choice, and if he should be desirous of
being continued, his wishes, conspiring with his fears, would tend still
more powerfully to corrupt his integrity, or debase his fortitude. In
either case, feebleness and irresolution must be the characteristics of
the station.
There are some who would be inclined to regard the servile pliancy of the
Executive to a prevailing current, either in the community or in the
legislature, as its best recommendation. But such men entertain very crude
notions, as well of the purposes for which government was instituted, as
of the true means by which the public happiness may be promoted. The
republican principle demands that the deliberate sense of the community
should govern the conduct of those to whom they intrust the management of
their affairs; but it does not require an unqualified complaisance to
every sudden breeze of passion, or to every transient impulse which the
people may receive from the arts of men, who flatter their prejudices to
betray their interests. It is a just observation, that the people commonly
INTEND the PUBLIC GOOD. This often applies to their very errors. But their
good sense would despise the adulator who should pretend that they always
REASON RIGHT about the MEANS of promoting it. They know from experience
that they sometimes err; and the wonder is that they so seldom err as they
do, beset, as they continually are, by the wiles of parasites and
sycophants, by the snares of the ambitious, the avaricious, the desperate,
by the artifices of men who possess their confidence more than they
deserve it, and of those who seek to possess rather than to deserve it.
When occasions present themselves, in which the interests of the people
are at variance with their inclinations, it is the duty of the persons
whom they have appointed to be the guardians of those interests, to
withstand the temporary delusion, in order to give them time and
opportunity for more cool and sedate reflection. Instances might be cited
in which a conduct of this kind has saved the people from very fatal
consequences of their own mistakes, and has procured lasting monuments of
their gratitude to the men who had courage and magnanimity enough to serve
them at the peril of their displeasure.
But however inclined we might be to insist upon an unbounded complaisance
in the Executive to the inclinations of the people, we can with no
propriety contend for a like complaisance to the humors of the
legislature. The latter may sometimes stand in opposition to the former,
and at other times the people may be entirely neutral. In either
supposition, it is certainly desirable that the Executive should be in a
situation to dare to act his own opinion with vigor and decision.
The same rule which teaches the propriety of a partition between the
various branches of power, teaches us likewise that this partition ought
to be so contrived as to render the one independent of the other. To what
purpose separate the executive or the judiciary from the legislative, if
both the executive and the judiciary are so constituted as to be at the
absolute devotion of the legislative? Such a separation must be merely
nominal, and incapable of producing the ends for which it was established.
It is one thing to be subordinate to the laws, and another to be dependent
on the legislative body. The first comports with, the last violates, the
fundamental principles of good government; and, whatever may be the forms
of the Constitution, unites all power in the same hands. The tendency of
the legislative authority to absorb every other, has been fully displayed
and illustrated by examples in some preceding numbers. In governments
purely republican, this tendency is almost irresistible. The
representatives of the people, in a popular assembly, seem sometimes to
fancy that they are the people themselves, and betray strong symptoms of
impatience and disgust at the least sign of opposition from any other
quarter; as if the exercise of its rights, by either the executive or
judiciary, were a breach of their privilege and an outrage to their
dignity. They often appear disposed to exert an imperious control over the
other departments; and as they commonly have the people on their side,
they always act with such momentum as to make it very difficult for the
other members of the government to maintain the balance of the
Constitution.
It may perhaps be asked, how the shortness of the duration in office can
affect the independence of the Executive on the legislature, unless the
one were possessed of the power of appointing or displacing the other. One
answer to this inquiry may be drawn from the principle already remarked
that is, from the slender interest a man is apt to take in a short-lived
advantage, and the little inducement it affords him to expose himself, on
account of it, to any considerable inconvenience or hazard. Another
answer, perhaps more obvious, though not more conclusive, will result from
the consideration of the influence of the legislative body over the
people; which might be employed to prevent the re-election of a man who,
by an upright resistance to any sinister project of that body, should have
made himself obnoxious to its resentment.
It may be asked also, whether a duration of four years would answer the
end proposed; and if it would not, whether a less period, which would at
least be recommended by greater security against ambitious designs, would
not, for that reason, be preferable to a longer period, which was, at the
same time, too short for the purpose of inspiring the desired firmness and
independence of the magistrate.
It cannot be affirmed, that a duration of four years, or any other limited
duration, would completely answer the end proposed; but it would
contribute towards it in a degree which would have a material influence
upon the spirit and character of the government. Between the commencement
and termination of such a period, there would always be a considerable
interval, in which the prospect of annihilation would be sufficiently
remote, not to have an improper effect upon the conduct of a man indued
with a tolerable portion of fortitude; and in which he might reasonably
promise himself, that there would be time enough before it arrived, to
make the community sensible of the propriety of the measures he might
incline to pursue. Though it be probable that, as he approached the moment
when the public were, by a new election, to signify their sense of his
conduct, his confidence, and with it his firmness, would decline; yet both
the one and the other would derive support from the opportunities which
his previous continuance in the station had afforded him, of establishing
himself in the esteem and good-will of his constituents. He might, then,
hazard with safety, in proportion to the proofs he had given of his wisdom
and integrity, and to the title he had acquired to the respect and
attachment of his fellow-citizens. As, on the one hand, a duration of four
years will contribute to the firmness of the Executive in a sufficient
degree to render it a very valuable ingredient in the composition; so, on
the other, it is not enough to justify any alarm for the public liberty.
If a British House of Commons, from the most feeble beginnings, FROM THE
MERE POWER OF ASSENTING OR DISAGREEING TO THE IMPOSITION OF A NEW TAX,
have, by rapid strides, reduced the prerogatives of the crown and the
privileges of the nobility within the limits they conceived to be
compatible with the principles of a free government, while they raised
themselves to the rank and consequence of a coequal branch of the
legislature; if they have been able, in one instance, to abolish both the
royalty and the aristocracy, and to overturn all the ancient
establishments, as well in the Church as State; if they have been able, on
a recent occasion, to make the monarch tremble at the prospect of an
innovation(1) attempted by them, what would be to be feared from an
elective magistrate of four years' duration, with the confined authorities
of a President of the United States? What, but that he might be unequal to
the task which the Constitution assigns him? I shall only add, that if his
duration be such as to leave a doubt of his firmness, that doubt is
inconsistent with a jealousy of his encroachments.
PUBLIUS
1. This was the case with respect to Mr. Fox's India bill, which was
carried in the House of Commons, and rejected in the House of Lords, to
the entire satisfaction, as it is said, of the people.
FEDERALIST No. 72. The Same Subject Continued, and Re-Eligibility of the
Executive Considered.
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 19, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE administration of government, in its largest sense, comprehends all
the operations of the body politic, whether legislative, executive, or
judiciary; but in its most usual, and perhaps its most precise
signification. it is limited to executive details, and falls peculiarly
within the province of the executive department. The actual conduct of
foreign negotiations, the preparatory plans of finance, the application
and disbursement of the public moneys in conformity to the general
appropriations of the legislature, the arrangement of the army and navy,
the directions of the operations of war—these, and other matters of
a like nature, constitute what seems to be most properly understood by the
administration of government. The persons, therefore, to whose immediate
management these different matters are committed, ought to be considered
as the assistants or deputies of the chief magistrate, and on this
account, they ought to derive their offices from his appointment, at least
from his nomination, and ought to be subject to his superintendence. This
view of the subject will at once suggest to us the intimate connection
between the duration of the executive magistrate in office and the
stability of the system of administration. To reverse and undo what has
been done by a predecessor, is very often considered by a successor as the
best proof he can give of his own capacity and desert; and in addition to
this propensity, where the alteration has been the result of public
choice, the person substituted is warranted in supposing that the
dismission of his predecessor has proceeded from a dislike to his
measures; and that the less he resembles him, the more he will recommend
himself to the favor of his constituents. These considerations, and the
influence of personal confidences and attachments, would be likely to
induce every new President to promote a change of men to fill the
subordinate stations; and these causes together could not fail to occasion
a disgraceful and ruinous mutability in the administration of the
government.
With a positive duration of considerable extent, I connect the
circumstance of re-eligibility. The first is necessary to give to the
officer himself the inclination and the resolution to act his part well,
and to the community time and leisure to observe the tendency of his
measures, and thence to form an experimental estimate of their merits. The
last is necessary to enable the people, when they see reason to approve of
his conduct, to continue him in his station, in order to prolong the
utility of his talents and virtues, and to secure to the government the
advantage of permanency in a wise system of administration.
Nothing appears more plausible at first sight, nor more ill-founded upon
close inspection, than a scheme which in relation to the present point has
had some respectable advocates—I mean that of continuing the chief
magistrate in office for a certain time, and then excluding him from it,
either for a limited period or forever after. This exclusion, whether
temporary or perpetual, would have nearly the same effects, and these
effects would be for the most part rather pernicious than salutary.
One ill effect of the exclusion would be a diminution of the inducements
to good behavior. There are few men who would not feel much less zeal in
the discharge of a duty when they were conscious that the advantages of
the station with which it was connected must be relinquished at a
determinate period, than when they were permitted to entertain a hope of
obtaining, by meriting, a continuance of them. This position will not be
disputed so long as it is admitted that the desire of reward is one of the
strongest incentives of human conduct; or that the best security for the
fidelity of mankind is to make their interests coincide with their duty.
Even the love of fame, the ruling passion of the noblest minds, which
would prompt a man to plan and undertake extensive and arduous enterprises
for the public benefit, requiring considerable time to mature and perfect
them, if he could flatter himself with the prospect of being allowed to
finish what he had begun, would, on the contrary, deter him from the
undertaking, when he foresaw that he must quit the scene before he could
accomplish the work, and must commit that, together with his own
reputation, to hands which might be unequal or unfriendly to the task. The
most to be expected from the generality of men, in such a situation, is
the negative merit of not doing harm, instead of the positive merit of
doing good.
Another ill effect of the exclusion would be the temptation to sordid
views, to peculation, and, in some instances, to usurpation. An avaricious
man, who might happen to fill the office, looking forward to a time when
he must at all events yield up the emoluments he enjoyed, would feel a
propensity, not easy to be resisted by such a man, to make the best use of
the opportunity he enjoyed while it lasted, and might not scruple to have
recourse to the most corrupt expedients to make the harvest as abundant as
it was transitory; though the same man, probably, with a different
prospect before him, might content himself with the regular perquisites of
his situation, and might even be unwilling to risk the consequences of an
abuse of his opportunities. His avarice might be a guard upon his avarice.
Add to this that the same man might be vain or ambitious, as well as
avaricious. And if he could expect to prolong his honors by his good
conduct, he might hesitate to sacrifice his appetite for them to his
appetite for gain. But with the prospect before him of approaching an
inevitable annihilation, his avarice would be likely to get the victory
over his caution, his vanity, or his ambition.
An ambitious man, too, when he found himself seated on the summit of his
country's honors, when he looked forward to the time at which he must
descend from the exalted eminence for ever, and reflected that no exertion
of merit on his part could save him from the unwelcome reverse; such a
man, in such a situation, would be much more violently tempted to embrace
a favorable conjuncture for attempting the prolongation of his power, at
every personal hazard, than if he had the probability of answering the
same end by doing his duty.
Would it promote the peace of the community, or the stability of the
government to have half a dozen men who had had credit enough to be raised
to the seat of the supreme magistracy, wandering among the people like
discontented ghosts, and sighing for a place which they were destined
never more to possess?
A third ill effect of the exclusion would be, the depriving the community
of the advantage of the experience gained by the chief magistrate in the
exercise of his office. That experience is the parent of wisdom, is an
adage the truth of which is recognized by the wisest as well as the
simplest of mankind. What more desirable or more essential than this
quality in the governors of nations? Where more desirable or more
essential than in the first magistrate of a nation? Can it be wise to put
this desirable and essential quality under the ban of the Constitution,
and to declare that the moment it is acquired, its possessor shall be
compelled to abandon the station in which it was acquired, and to which it
is adapted? This, nevertheless, is the precise import of all those
regulations which exclude men from serving their country, by the choice of
their fellowcitizens, after they have by a course of service fitted
themselves for doing it with a greater degree of utility.
A fourth ill effect of the exclusion would be the banishing men from
stations in which, in certain emergencies of the state, their presence
might be of the greatest moment to the public interest or safety. There is
no nation which has not, at one period or another, experienced an absolute
necessity of the services of particular men in particular situations;
perhaps it would not be too strong to say, to the preservation of its
political existence. How unwise, therefore, must be every such
self-denying ordinance as serves to prohibit a nation from making use of
its own citizens in the manner best suited to its exigencies and
circumstances! Without supposing the personal essentiality of the man, it
is evident that a change of the chief magistrate, at the breaking out of a
war, or at any similar crisis, for another, even of equal merit, would at
all times be detrimental to the community, inasmuch as it would substitute
inexperience to experience, and would tend to unhinge and set afloat the
already settled train of the administration.
A fifth ill effect of the exclusion would be, that it would operate as a
constitutional interdiction of stability in the administration. By
necessitating a change of men, in the first office of the nation, it would
necessitate a mutability of measures. It is not generally to be expected,
that men will vary and measures remain uniform. The contrary is the usual
course of things. And we need not be apprehensive that there will be too
much stability, while there is even the option of changing; nor need we
desire to prohibit the people from continuing their confidence where they
think it may be safely placed, and where, by constancy on their part, they
may obviate the fatal inconveniences of fluctuating councils and a
variable policy.
These are some of the disadvantages which would flow from the principle of
exclusion. They apply most forcibly to the scheme of a perpetual
exclusion; but when we consider that even a partial exclusion would always
render the readmission of the person a remote and precarious object, the
observations which have been made will apply nearly as fully to one case
as to the other.
What are the advantages promised to counterbalance these disadvantages?
They are represented to be: 1st, greater independence in the magistrate;
2d, greater security to the people. Unless the exclusion be perpetual,
there will be no pretense to infer the first advantage. But even in that
case, may he have no object beyond his present station, to which he may
sacrifice his independence? May he have no connections, no friends, for
whom he may sacrifice it? May he not be less willing by a firm conduct, to
make personal enemies, when he acts under the impression that a time is
fast approaching, on the arrival of which he not only MAY, but MUST, be
exposed to their resentments, upon an equal, perhaps upon an inferior,
footing? It is not an easy point to determine whether his independence
would be most promoted or impaired by such an arrangement.
As to the second supposed advantage, there is still greater reason to
entertain doubts concerning it. If the exclusion were to be perpetual, a
man of irregular ambition, of whom alone there could be reason in any case
to entertain apprehension, would, with infinite reluctance, yield to the
necessity of taking his leave forever of a post in which his passion for
power and pre-eminence had acquired the force of habit. And if he had been
fortunate or adroit enough to conciliate the good-will of the people, he
might induce them to consider as a very odious and unjustifiable restraint
upon themselves, a provision which was calculated to debar them of the
right of giving a fresh proof of their attachment to a favorite. There may
be conceived circumstances in which this disgust of the people, seconding
the thwarted ambition of such a favorite, might occasion greater danger to
liberty, than could ever reasonably be dreaded from the possibility of a
perpetuation in office, by the voluntary suffrages of the community,
exercising a constitutional privilege.
There is an excess of refinement in the idea of disabling the people to
continue in office men who had entitled themselves, in their opinion, to
approbation and confidence; the advantages of which are at best
speculative and equivocal, and are overbalanced by disadvantages far more
certain and decisive.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 73. The Provision For The Support of the Executive, and the
Veto Power
From the New York Packet. Friday, March 21, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE third ingredient towards constituting the vigor of the executive
authority, is an adequate provision for its support. It is evident that,
without proper attention to this article, the separation of the executive
from the legislative department would be merely nominal and nugatory. The
legislature, with a discretionary power over the salary and emoluments of
the Chief Magistrate, could render him as obsequious to their will as they
might think proper to make him. They might, in most cases, either reduce
him by famine, or tempt him by largesses, to surrender at discretion his
judgment to their inclinations. These expressions, taken in all the
latitude of the terms, would no doubt convey more than is intended. There
are men who could neither be distressed nor won into a sacrifice of their
duty; but this stern virtue is the growth of few soils; and in the main it
will be found that a power over a man's support is a power over his will.
If it were necessary to confirm so plain a truth by facts, examples would
not be wanting, even in this country, of the intimidation or seduction of
the Executive by the terrors or allurements of the pecuniary arrangements
of the legislative body.
It is not easy, therefore, to commend too highly the judicious attention
which has been paid to this subject in the proposed Constitution. It is
there provided that "The President of the United States shall, at stated
times, receive for his services a compensation which shall neither be
increased nor diminished during the period for which he shall have been
elected; and he shall not receive within that period any other emolument
from the United States, or any of them." It is impossible to imagine any
provision which would have been more eligible than this. The legislature,
on the appointment of a President, is once for all to declare what shall
be the compensation for his services during the time for which he shall
have been elected. This done, they will have no power to alter it, either
by increase or diminution, till a new period of service by a new election
commences. They can neither weaken his fortitude by operating on his
necessities, nor corrupt his integrity by appealing to his avarice.
Neither the Union, nor any of its members, will be at liberty to give, nor
will he be at liberty to receive, any other emolument than that which may
have been determined by the first act. He can, of course, have no
pecuniary inducement to renounce or desert the independence intended for
him by the Constitution.
The last of the requisites to energy, which have been enumerated, are
competent powers. Let us proceed to consider those which are proposed to
be vested in the President of the United States.
The first thing that offers itself to our observation, is the qualified
negative of the President upon the acts or resolutions of the two houses
of the legislature; or, in other words, his power of returning all bills
with objections, to have the effect of preventing their becoming laws,
unless they should afterwards be ratified by two thirds of each of the
component members of the legislative body.
The propensity of the legislative department to intrude upon the rights,
and to absorb the powers, of the other departments, has been already
suggested and repeated; the insufficiency of a mere parchment delineation
of the boundaries of each, has also been remarked upon; and the necessity
of furnishing each with constitutional arms for its own defense, has been
inferred and proved. From these clear and indubitable principles results
the propriety of a negative, either absolute or qualified, in the
Executive, upon the acts of the legislative branches. Without the one or
the other, the former would be absolutely unable to defend himself against
the depredations of the latter. He might gradually be stripped of his
authorities by successive resolutions, or annihilated by a single vote.
And in the one mode or the other, the legislative and executive powers
might speedily come to be blended in the same hands. If even no propensity
had ever discovered itself in the legislative body to invade the rights of
the Executive, the rules of just reasoning and theoretic propriety would
of themselves teach us, that the one ought not to be left to the mercy of
the other, but ought to possess a constitutional and effectual power of
self-defense.
But the power in question has a further use. It not only serves as a
shield to the Executive, but it furnishes an additional security against
the enaction of improper laws. It establishes a salutary check upon the
legislative body, calculated to guard the community against the effects of
faction, precipitancy, or of any impulse unfriendly to the public good,
which may happen to influence a majority of that body.
The propriety of a negative has, upon some occasions, been combated by an
observation, that it was not to be presumed a single man would possess
more virtue and wisdom than a number of men; and that unless this
presumption should be entertained, it would be improper to give the
executive magistrate any species of control over the legislative body.
But this observation, when examined, will appear rather specious than
solid. The propriety of the thing does not turn upon the supposition of
superior wisdom or virtue in the Executive, but upon the supposition that
the legislature will not be infallible; that the love of power may
sometimes betray it into a disposition to encroach upon the rights of
other members of the government; that a spirit of faction may sometimes
pervert its deliberations; that impressions of the moment may sometimes
hurry it into measures which itself, on maturer reflexion, would condemn.
The primary inducement to conferring the power in question upon the
Executive is, to enable him to defend himself; the secondary one is to
increase the chances in favor of the community against the passing of bad
laws, through haste, inadvertence, or design. The oftener the measure is
brought under examination, the greater the diversity in the situations of
those who are to examine it, the less must be the danger of those errors
which flow from want of due deliberation, or of those missteps which
proceed from the contagion of some common passion or interest. It is far
less probable, that culpable views of any kind should infect all the parts
of the government at the same moment and in relation to the same object,
than that they should by turns govern and mislead every one of them.
It may perhaps be said that the power of preventing bad laws includes that
of preventing good ones; and may be used to the one purpose as well as to
the other. But this objection will have little weight with those who can
properly estimate the mischiefs of that inconstancy and mutability in the
laws, which form the greatest blemish in the character and genius of our
governments. They will consider every institution calculated to restrain
the excess of law-making, and to keep things in the same state in which
they happen to be at any given period, as much more likely to do good than
harm; because it is favorable to greater stability in the system of
legislation. The injury which may possibly be done by defeating a few good
laws, will be amply compensated by the advantage of preventing a number of
bad ones.
Nor is this all. The superior weight and influence of the legislative body
in a free government, and the hazard to the Executive in a trial of
strength with that body, afford a satisfactory security that the negative
would generally be employed with great caution; and there would oftener be
room for a charge of timidity than of rashness in the exercise of it. A
king of Great Britain, with all his train of sovereign attributes, and
with all the influence he draws from a thousand sources, would, at this
day, hesitate to put a negative upon the joint resolutions of the two
houses of Parliament. He would not fail to exert the utmost resources of
that influence to strangle a measure disagreeable to him, in its progress
to the throne, to avoid being reduced to the dilemma of permitting it to
take effect, or of risking the displeasure of the nation by an opposition
to the sense of the legislative body. Nor is it probable, that he would
ultimately venture to exert his prerogatives, but in a case of manifest
propriety, or extreme necessity. All well-informed men in that kingdom
will accede to the justness of this remark. A very considerable period has
elapsed since the negative of the crown has been exercised.
If a magistrate so powerful and so well fortified as a British monarch,
would have scruples about the exercise of the power under consideration,
how much greater caution may be reasonably expected in a President of the
United States, clothed for the short period of four years with the
executive authority of a government wholly and purely republican?
It is evident that there would be greater danger of his not using his
power when necessary, than of his using it too often, or too much. An
argument, indeed, against its expediency, has been drawn from this very
source. It has been represented, on this account, as a power odious in
appearance, useless in practice. But it will not follow, that because it
might be rarely exercised, it would never be exercised. In the case for
which it is chiefly designed, that of an immediate attack upon the
constitutional rights of the Executive, or in a case in which the public
good was evidently and palpably sacrificed, a man of tolerable firmness
would avail himself of his constitutional means of defense, and would
listen to the admonitions of duty and responsibility. In the former
supposition, his fortitude would be stimulated by his immediate interest
in the power of his office; in the latter, by the probability of the
sanction of his constituents, who, though they would naturally incline to
the legislative body in a doubtful case, would hardly suffer their
partiality to delude them in a very plain case. I speak now with an eye to
a magistrate possessing only a common share of firmness. There are men
who, under any circumstances, will have the courage to do their duty at
every hazard.
But the convention have pursued a mean in this business, which will both
facilitate the exercise of the power vested in this respect in the
executive magistrate, and make its efficacy to depend on the sense of a
considerable part of the legislative body. Instead of an absolute
negative, it is proposed to give the Executive the qualified negative
already described. This is a power which would be much more readily
exercised than the other. A man who might be afraid to defeat a law by his
single VETO, might not scruple to return it for reconsideration; subject
to being finally rejected only in the event of more than one third of each
house concurring in the sufficiency of his objections. He would be
encouraged by the reflection, that if his opposition should prevail, it
would embark in it a very respectable proportion of the legislative body,
whose influence would be united with his in supporting the propriety of
his conduct in the public opinion. A direct and categorical negative has
something in the appearance of it more harsh, and more apt to irritate,
than the mere suggestion of argumentative objections to be approved or
disapproved by those to whom they are addressed. In proportion as it would
be less apt to offend, it would be more apt to be exercised; and for this
very reason, it may in practice be found more effectual. It is to be hoped
that it will not often happen that improper views will govern so large a
proportion as two thirds of both branches of the legislature at the same
time; and this, too, in spite of the counterposing weight of the
Executive. It is at any rate far less probable that this should be the
case, than that such views should taint the resolutions and conduct of a
bare majority. A power of this nature in the Executive, will often have a
silent and unperceived, though forcible, operation. When men, engaged in
unjustifiable pursuits, are aware that obstructions may come from a
quarter which they cannot control, they will often be restrained by the
bare apprehension of opposition, from doing what they would with eagerness
rush into, if no such external impediments were to be feared.
This qualified negative, as has been elsewhere remarked, is in this State
vested in a council, consisting of the governor, with the chancellor and
judges of the Supreme Court, or any two of them. It has been freely
employed upon a variety of occasions, and frequently with success. And its
utility has become so apparent, that persons who, in compiling the
Constitution, were violent opposers of it, have from experience become its
declared admirers.(1)
I have in another place remarked, that the convention, in the formation of
this part of their plan, had departed from the model of the constitution
of this State, in favor of that of Massachusetts. Two strong reasons may
be imagined for this preference. One is that the judges, who are to be the
interpreters of the law, might receive an improper bias, from having given
a previous opinion in their revisionary capacities; the other is that by
being often associated with the Executive, they might be induced to embark
too far in the political views of that magistrate, and thus a dangerous
combination might by degrees be cemented between the executive and
judiciary departments. It is impossible to keep the judges too distinct
from every other avocation than that of expounding the laws. It is
peculiarly dangerous to place them in a situation to be either corrupted
or influenced by the Executive.
PUBLIUS
1. Mr. Abraham Yates, a warm opponent of the plan of the convention is of
this number.
FEDERALIST No. 74. The Command of the Military and Naval Forces, and the
Pardoning Power of the Executive.
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, March 25, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE President of the United States is to be "commander-in-chief of the
army and navy of the United States, and of the militia of the several
States when called into the actual service of the United States." The
propriety of this provision is so evident in itself, and it is, at the
same time, so consonant to the precedents of the State constitutions in
general, that little need be said to explain or enforce it. Even those of
them which have, in other respects, coupled the chief magistrate with a
council, have for the most part concentrated the military authority in him
alone. Of all the cares or concerns of government, the direction of war
most peculiarly demands those qualities which distinguish the exercise of
power by a single hand. The direction of war implies the direction of the
common strength; and the power of directing and employing the common
strength, forms a usual and essential part in the definition of the
executive authority.
"The President may require the opinion, in writing, of the principal
officer in each of the executive departments, upon any subject relating to
the duties of their respective officers." This I consider as a mere
redundancy in the plan, as the right for which it provides would result of
itself from the office.
He is also to be authorized to grant "reprieves and pardons for offenses
against the United States, except in cases of impeachment." Humanity and
good policy conspire to dictate, that the benign prerogative of pardoning
should be as little as possible fettered or embarrassed. The criminal code
of every country partakes so much of necessary severity, that without an
easy access to exceptions in favor of unfortunate guilt, justice would
wear a countenance too sanguinary and cruel. As the sense of
responsibility is always strongest, in proportion as it is undivided, it
may be inferred that a single man would be most ready to attend to the
force of those motives which might plead for a mitigation of the rigor of
the law, and least apt to yield to considerations which were calculated to
shelter a fit object of its vengeance. The reflection that the fate of a
fellow-creature depended on his sole fiat, would naturally inspire
scrupulousness and caution; the dread of being accused of weakness or
connivance, would beget equal circumspection, though of a different kind.
On the other hand, as men generally derive confidence from their numbers,
they might often encourage each other in an act of obduracy, and might be
less sensible to the apprehension of suspicion or censure for an
injudicious or affected clemency. On these accounts, one man appears to be
a more eligible dispenser of the mercy of government, than a body of men.
The expediency of vesting the power of pardoning in the President has, if
I mistake not, been only contested in relation to the crime of treason.
This, it has been urged, ought to have depended upon the assent of one, or
both, of the branches of the legislative body. I shall not deny that there
are strong reasons to be assigned for requiring in this particular the
concurrence of that body, or of a part of it. As treason is a crime
levelled at the immediate being of the society, when the laws have once
ascertained the guilt of the offender, there seems a fitness in referring
the expediency of an act of mercy towards him to the judgment of the
legislature. And this ought the rather to be the case, as the supposition
of the connivance of the Chief Magistrate ought not to be entirely
excluded. But there are also strong objections to such a plan. It is not
to be doubted, that a single man of prudence and good sense is better
fitted, in delicate conjunctures, to balance the motives which may plead
for and against the remission of the punishment, than any numerous body
whatever. It deserves particular attention, that treason will often be
connected with seditions which embrace a large proportion of the
community; as lately happened in Massachusetts. In every such case, we
might expect to see the representation of the people tainted with the same
spirit which had given birth to the offense. And when parties were pretty
equally matched, the secret sympathy of the friends and favorers of the
condemned person, availing itself of the good-nature and weakness of
others, might frequently bestow impunity where the terror of an example
was necessary. On the other hand, when the sedition had proceeded from
causes which had inflamed the resentments of the major party, they might
often be found obstinate and inexorable, when policy demanded a conduct of
forbearance and clemency. But the principal argument for reposing the
power of pardoning in this case to the Chief Magistrate is this: in
seasons of insurrection or rebellion, there are often critical moments,
when a well-timed offer of pardon to the insurgents or rebels may restore
the tranquillity of the commonwealth; and which, if suffered to pass
unimproved, it may never be possible afterwards to recall. The dilatory
process of convening the legislature, or one of its branches, for the
purpose of obtaining its sanction to the measure, would frequently be the
occasion of letting slip the golden opportunity. The loss of a week, a
day, an hour, may sometimes be fatal. If it should be observed, that a
discretionary power, with a view to such contingencies, might be
occasionally conferred upon the President, it may be answered in the first
place, that it is questionable, whether, in a limited Constitution, that
power could be delegated by law; and in the second place, that it would
generally be impolitic beforehand to take any step which might hold out
the prospect of impunity. A proceeding of this kind, out of the usual
course, would be likely to be construed into an argument of timidity or of
weakness, and would have a tendency to embolden guilt.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 75. The Treaty-Making Power of the Executive
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 26, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE President is to have power, "by and with the advice and consent of the
Senate, to make treaties, provided two thirds of the senators present
concur." Though this provision has been assailed, on different grounds,
with no small degree of vehemence, I scruple not to declare my firm
persuasion, that it is one of the best digested and most unexceptionable
parts of the plan. One ground of objection is the trite topic of the
intermixture of powers; some contending that the President ought alone to
possess the power of making treaties; others, that it ought to have been
exclusively deposited in the Senate. Another source of objection is
derived from the small number of persons by whom a treaty may be made. Of
those who espouse this objection, a part are of opinion that the House of
Representatives ought to have been associated in the business, while
another part seem to think that nothing more was necessary than to have
substituted two thirds of all the members of the Senate, to two thirds of
the members present. As I flatter myself the observations made in a
preceding number upon this part of the plan must have sufficed to place
it, to a discerning eye, in a very favorable light, I shall here content
myself with offering only some supplementary remarks, principally with a
view to the objections which have been just stated.
With regard to the intermixture of powers, I shall rely upon the
explanations already given in other places, of the true sense of the rule
upon which that objection is founded; and shall take it for granted, as an
inference from them, that the union of the Executive with the Senate, in
the article of treaties, is no infringement of that rule. I venture to
add, that the particular nature of the power of making treaties indicates
a peculiar propriety in that union. Though several writers on the subject
of government place that power in the class of executive authorities, yet
this is evidently an arbitrary disposition; for if we attend carefully to
its operation, it will be found to partake more of the legislative than of
the executive character, though it does not seem strictly to fall within
the definition of either of them. The essence of the legislative authority
is to enact laws, or, in other words, to prescribe rules for the
regulation of the society; while the execution of the laws, and the
employment of the common strength, either for this purpose or for the
common defense, seem to comprise all the functions of the executive
magistrate. The power of making treaties is, plainly, neither the one nor
the other. It relates neither to the execution of the subsisting laws, nor
to the enaction of new ones; and still less to an exertion of the common
strength. Its objects are CONTRACTS with foreign nations, which have the
force of law, but derive it from the obligations of good faith. They are
not rules prescribed by the sovereign to the subject, but agreements
between sovereign and sovereign. The power in question seems therefore to
form a distinct department, and to belong, properly, neither to the
legislative nor to the executive. The qualities elsewhere detailed as
indispensable in the management of foreign negotiations, point out the
Executive as the most fit agent in those transactions; while the vast
importance of the trust, and the operation of treaties as laws, plead
strongly for the participation of the whole or a portion of the
legislative body in the office of making them.
However proper or safe it may be in governments where the executive
magistrate is an hereditary monarch, to commit to him the entire power of
making treaties, it would be utterly unsafe and improper to intrust that
power to an elective magistrate of four years' duration. It has been
remarked, upon another occasion, and the remark is unquestionably just,
that an hereditary monarch, though often the oppressor of his people, has
personally too much stake in the government to be in any material danger
of being corrupted by foreign powers. But a man raised from the station of
a private citizen to the rank of chief magistrate, possessed of a moderate
or slender fortune, and looking forward to a period not very remote when
he may probably be obliged to return to the station from which he was
taken, might sometimes be under temptations to sacrifice his duty to his
interest, which it would require superlative virtue to withstand. An
avaricious man might be tempted to betray the interests of the state to
the acquisition of wealth. An ambitious man might make his own
aggrandizement, by the aid of a foreign power, the price of his treachery
to his constituents. The history of human conduct does not warrant that
exalted opinion of human virtue which would make it wise in a nation to
commit interests of so delicate and momentous a kind, as those which
concern its intercourse with the rest of the world, to the sole disposal
of a magistrate created and circumstanced as would be a President of the
United States.
To have intrusted the power of making treaties to the Senate alone, would
have been to relinquish the benefits of the constitutional agency of the
President in the conduct of foreign negotiations. It is true that the
Senate would, in that case, have the option of employing him in this
capacity, but they would also have the option of letting it alone, and
pique or cabal might induce the latter rather than the former. Besides
this, the ministerial servant of the Senate could not be expected to enjoy
the confidence and respect of foreign powers in the same degree with the
constitutional representatives of the nation, and, of course, would not be
able to act with an equal degree of weight or efficacy. While the Union
would, from this cause, lose a considerable advantage in the management of
its external concerns, the people would lose the additional security which
would result from the co-operation of the Executive. Though it would be
imprudent to confide in him solely so important a trust, yet it cannot be
doubted that his participation would materially add to the safety of the
society. It must indeed be clear to a demonstration that the joint
possession of the power in question, by the President and Senate, would
afford a greater prospect of security, than the separate possession of it
by either of them. And whoever has maturely weighed the circumstances
which must concur in the appointment of a President, will be satisfied
that the office will always bid fair to be filled by men of such
characters as to render their concurrence in the formation of treaties
peculiarly desirable, as well on the score of wisdom, as on that of
integrity.
The remarks made in a former number, which have been alluded to in another
part of this paper, will apply with conclusive force against the admission
of the House of Representatives to a share in the formation of treaties.
The fluctuating and, taking its future increase into the account, the
multitudinous composition of that body, forbid us to expect in it those
qualities which are essential to the proper execution of such a trust.
Accurate and comprehensive knowledge of foreign politics; a steady and
systematic adherence to the same views; a nice and uniform sensibility to
national character; decision, secrecy, and despatch, are incompatible with
the genius of a body so variable and so numerous. The very complication of
the business, by introducing a necessity of the concurrence of so many
different bodies, would of itself afford a solid objection. The greater
frequency of the calls upon the House of Representatives, and the greater
length of time which it would often be necessary to keep them together
when convened, to obtain their sanction in the progressive stages of a
treaty, would be a source of so great inconvenience and expense as alone
ought to condemn the project.
The only objection which remains to be canvassed, is that which would
substitute the proportion of two thirds of all the members composing the
senatorial body, to that of two thirds of the members present. It has been
shown, under the second head of our inquiries, that all provisions which
require more than the majority of any body to its resolutions, have a
direct tendency to embarrass the operations of the government, and an
indirect one to subject the sense of the majority to that of the minority.
This consideration seems sufficient to determine our opinion, that the
convention have gone as far in the endeavor to secure the advantage of
numbers in the formation of treaties as could have been reconciled either
with the activity of the public councils or with a reasonable regard to
the major sense of the community. If two thirds of the whole number of
members had been required, it would, in many cases, from the
non-attendance of a part, amount in practice to a necessity of unanimity.
And the history of every political establishment in which this principle
has prevailed, is a history of impotence, perplexity, and disorder. Proofs
of this position might be adduced from the examples of the Roman
Tribuneship, the Polish Diet, and the States-General of the Netherlands,
did not an example at home render foreign precedents unnecessary.
To require a fixed proportion of the whole body would not, in all
probability, contribute to the advantages of a numerous agency, better
then merely to require a proportion of the attending members. The former,
by making a determinate number at all times requisite to a resolution,
diminishes the motives to punctual attendance. The latter, by making the
capacity of the body to depend on a proportion which may be varied by the
absence or presence of a single member, has the contrary effect. And as,
by promoting punctuality, it tends to keep the body complete, there is
great likelihood that its resolutions would generally be dictated by as
great a number in this case as in the other; while there would be much
fewer occasions of delay. It ought not to be forgotten that, under the
existing Confederation, two members may, and usually do, represent a
State; whence it happens that Congress, who now are solely invested with
all the powers of the Union, rarely consist of a greater number of persons
than would compose the intended Senate. If we add to this, that as the
members vote by States, and that where there is only a single member
present from a State, his vote is lost, it will justify a supposition that
the active voices in the Senate, where the members are to vote
individually, would rarely fall short in number of the active voices in
the existing Congress. When, in addition to these considerations, we take
into view the co-operation of the President, we shall not hesitate to
infer that the people of America would have greater security against an
improper use of the power of making treaties, under the new Constitution,
than they now enjoy under the Confederation. And when we proceed still one
step further, and look forward to the probable augmentation of the Senate,
by the erection of new States, we shall not only perceive ample ground of
confidence in the sufficiency of the members to whose agency that power
will be intrusted, but we shall probably be led to conclude that a body
more numerous than the Senate would be likely to become, would be very
little fit for the proper discharge of the trust.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 76. The Appointing Power of the Executive
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, April 1, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE President is "to nominate, and, by and with the advice and consent of
the Senate, to appoint ambassadors, other public ministers and consuls,
judges of the Supreme Court, and all other officers of the United States
whose appointments are not otherwise provided for in the Constitution. But
the Congress may by law vest the appointment of such inferior officers as
they think proper, in the President alone, or in the courts of law, or in
the heads of departments. The President shall have power to fill up all
vacancies which may happen during the recess of the Senate, by granting
commissions which shall expire at the end of their next session."
It has been observed in a former paper, that "the true test of a good
government is its aptitude and tendency to produce a good administration."
If the justness of this observation be admitted, the mode of appointing
the officers of the United States contained in the foregoing clauses,
must, when examined, be allowed to be entitled to particular commendation.
It is not easy to conceive a plan better calculated than this to promote a
judicious choice of men for filling the offices of the Union; and it will
not need proof, that on this point must essentially depend the character
of its administration.
It will be agreed on all hands, that the power of appointment, in ordinary
cases, ought to be modified in one of three ways. It ought either to be
vested in a single man, or in a select assembly of a moderate number; or
in a single man, with the concurrence of such an assembly. The exercise of
it by the people at large will be readily admitted to be impracticable; as
waiving every other consideration, it would leave them little time to do
anything else. When, therefore, mention is made in the subsequent
reasonings of an assembly or body of men, what is said must be understood
to relate to a select body or assembly, of the description already given.
The people collectively, from their number and from their dispersed
situation, cannot be regulated in their movements by that systematic
spirit of cabal and intrigue, which will be urged as the chief objections
to reposing the power in question in a body of men.
Those who have themselves reflected upon the subject, or who have attended
to the observations made in other parts of these papers, in relation to
the appointment of the President, will, I presume, agree to the position,
that there would always be great probability of having the place supplied
by a man of abilities, at least respectable. Premising this, I proceed to
lay it down as a rule, that one man of discernment is better fitted to
analyze and estimate the peculiar qualities adapted to particular offices,
than a body of men of equal or perhaps even of superior discernment.
The sole and undivided responsibility of one man will naturally beget a
livelier sense of duty and a more exact regard to reputation. He will, on
this account, feel himself under stronger obligations, and more interested
to investigate with care the qualities requisite to the stations to be
filled, and to prefer with impartiality the persons who may have the
fairest pretensions to them. He will have fewer personal attachments to
gratify, than a body of men who may each be supposed to have an equal
number; and will be so much the less liable to be misled by the sentiments
of friendship and of affection. A single well-directed man, by a single
understanding, cannot be distracted and warped by that diversity of views,
feelings, and interests, which frequently distract and warp the
resolutions of a collective body. There is nothing so apt to agitate the
passions of mankind as personal considerations whether they relate to
ourselves or to others, who are to be the objects of our choice or
preference. Hence, in every exercise of the power of appointing to
offices, by an assembly of men, we must expect to see a full display of
all the private and party likings and dislikes, partialities and
antipathies, attachments and animosities, which are felt by those who
compose the assembly. The choice which may at any time happen to be made
under such circumstances, will of course be the result either of a victory
gained by one party over the other, or of a compromise between the
parties. In either case, the intrinsic merit of the candidate will be too
often out of sight. In the first, the qualifications best adapted to
uniting the suffrages of the party, will be more considered than those
which fit the person for the station. In the last, the coalition will
commonly turn upon some interested equivalent: "Give us the man we wish
for this office, and you shall have the one you wish for that." This will
be the usual condition of the bargain. And it will rarely happen that the
advancement of the public service will be the primary object either of
party victories or of party negotiations.
The truth of the principles here advanced seems to have been felt by the
most intelligent of those who have found fault with the provision made, in
this respect, by the convention. They contend that the President ought
solely to have been authorized to make the appointments under the federal
government. But it is easy to show, that every advantage to be expected
from such an arrangement would, in substance, be derived from the power of
nomination, which is proposed to be conferred upon him; while several
disadvantages which might attend the absolute power of appointment in the
hands of that officer would be avoided. In the act of nomination, his
judgment alone would be exercised; and as it would be his sole duty to
point out the man who, with the approbation of the Senate, should fill an
office, his responsibility would be as complete as if he were to make the
final appointment. There can, in this view, be no difference between
nominating and appointing. The same motives which would influence a proper
discharge of his duty in one case, would exist in the other. And as no man
could be appointed but on his previous nomination, every man who might be
appointed would be, in fact, his choice.
But might not his nomination be overruled? I grant it might, yet this
could only be to make place for another nomination by himself. The person
ultimately appointed must be the object of his preference, though perhaps
not in the first degree. It is also not very probable that his nomination
would often be overruled. The Senate could not be tempted, by the
preference they might feel to another, to reject the one proposed; because
they could not assure themselves, that the person they might wish would be
brought forward by a second or by any subsequent nomination. They could
not even be certain, that a future nomination would present a candidate in
any degree more acceptable to them; and as their dissent might cast a kind
of stigma upon the individual rejected, and might have the appearance of a
reflection upon the judgment of the chief magistrate, it is not likely
that their sanction would often be refused, where there were not special
and strong reasons for the refusal.
To what purpose then require the co-operation of the Senate? I answer,
that the necessity of their concurrence would have a powerful, though, in
general, a silent operation. It would be an excellent check upon a spirit
of favoritism in the President, and would tend greatly to prevent the
appointment of unfit characters from State prejudice, from family
connection, from personal attachment, or from a view to popularity. In
addition to this, it would be an efficacious source of stability in the
administration.
It will readily be comprehended, that a man who had himself the sole
disposition of offices, would be governed much more by his private
inclinations and interests, than when he was bound to submit the propriety
of his choice to the discussion and determination of a different and
independent body, and that body an entire branch of the legislature. The
possibility of rejection would be a strong motive to care in proposing.
The danger to his own reputation, and, in the case of an elective
magistrate, to his political existence, from betraying a spirit of
favoritism, or an unbecoming pursuit of popularity, to the observation of
a body whose opinion would have great weight in forming that of the
public, could not fail to operate as a barrier to the one and to the
other. He would be both ashamed and afraid to bring forward, for the most
distinguished or lucrative stations, candidates who had no other merit
than that of coming from the same State to which he particularly belonged,
or of being in some way or other personally allied to him, or of
possessing the necessary insignificance and pliancy to render them the
obsequious instruments of his pleasure.
To this reasoning it has been objected that the President, by the
influence of the power of nomination, may secure the complaisance of the
Senate to his views. This supposition of universal venalty in human nature
is little less an error in political reasoning, than the supposition of
universal rectitude. The institution of delegated power implies, that
there is a portion of virtue and honor among mankind, which may be a
reasonable foundation of confidence; and experience justifies the theory.
It has been found to exist in the most corrupt periods of the most corrupt
governments. The venalty of the British House of Commons has been long a
topic of accusation against that body, in the country to which they belong
as well as in this; and it cannot be doubted that the charge is, to a
considerable extent, well founded. But it is as little to be doubted, that
there is always a large proportion of the body, which consists of
independent and public-spirited men, who have an influential weight in the
councils of the nation. Hence it is (the present reign not excepted) that
the sense of that body is often seen to control the inclinations of the
monarch, both with regard to men and to measures. Though it might
therefore be allowable to suppose that the Executive might occasionally
influence some individuals in the Senate, yet the supposition, that he
could in general purchase the integrity of the whole body, would be forced
and improbable. A man disposed to view human nature as it is, without
either flattering its virtues or exaggerating its vices, will see
sufficient ground of confidence in the probity of the Senate, to rest
satisfied, not only that it will be impracticable to the Executive to
corrupt or seduce a majority of its members, but that the necessity of its
co-operation, in the business of appointments, will be a considerable and
salutary restraint upon the conduct of that magistrate. Nor is the
integrity of the Senate the only reliance. The Constitution has provided
some important guards against the danger of executive influence upon the
legislative body: it declares that "No senator or representative shall
during the time for which he was elected, be appointed to any civil office
under the United States, which shall have been created, or the emoluments
whereof shall have been increased, during such time; and no person,
holding any office under the United States, shall be a member of either
house during his continuance in office."
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 77. The Appointing Power Continued and Other Powers of the
Executive Considered.
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, April 2, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT HAS been mentioned as one of the advantages to be expected from the
co-operation of the Senate, in the business of appointments, that it would
contribute to the stability of the administration. The consent of that
body would be necessary to displace as well as to appoint. A change of the
Chief Magistrate, therefore, would not occasion so violent or so general a
revolution in the officers of the government as might be expected, if he
were the sole disposer of offices. Where a man in any station had given
satisfactory evidence of his fitness for it, a new President would be
restrained from attempting a change in favor of a person more agreeable to
him, by the apprehension that a discountenance of the Senate might
frustrate the attempt, and bring some degree of discredit upon himself.
Those who can best estimate the value of a steady administration, will be
most disposed to prize a provision which connects the official existence
of public men with the approbation or disapprobation of that body which,
from the greater permanency of its own composition, will in all
probability be less subject to inconstancy than any other member of the
government.
To this union of the Senate with the President, in the article of
appointments, it has in some cases been suggested that it would serve to
give the President an undue influence over the Senate, and in others that
it would have an opposite tendency—a strong proof that neither
suggestion is true.
To state the first in its proper form, is to refute it. It amounts to
this: the President would have an improper influence over the Senate,
because the Senate would have the power of restraining him. This is an
absurdity in terms. It cannot admit of a doubt that the entire power of
appointment would enable him much more effectually to establish a
dangerous empire over that body, than a mere power of nomination subject
to their control.
Let us take a view of the converse of the proposition: "the Senate would
influence the Executive." As I have had occasion to remark in several
other instances, the indistinctness of the objection forbids a precise
answer. In what manner is this influence to be exerted? In relation to
what objects? The power of influencing a person, in the sense in which it
is here used, must imply a power of conferring a benefit upon him. How
could the Senate confer a benefit upon the President by the manner of
employing their right of negative upon his nominations? If it be said they
might sometimes gratify him by an acquiescence in a favorite choice, when
public motives might dictate a different conduct, I answer, that the
instances in which the President could be personally interested in the
result, would be too few to admit of his being materially affected by the
compliances of the Senate. The POWER which can originate the disposition
of honors and emoluments, is more likely to attract than to be attracted
by the POWER which can merely obstruct their course. If by influencing the
President be meant restraining him, this is precisely what must have been
intended. And it has been shown that the restraint would be salutary, at
the same time that it would not be such as to destroy a single advantage
to be looked for from the uncontrolled agency of that Magistrate. The
right of nomination would produce all the (good, without the ill.)(E1)
(good of that of appointment, and would in a great measure avoid its
evils.)(E1)
Upon a comparison of the plan for the appointment of the officers of the
proposed government with that which is established by the constitution of
this State, a decided preference must be given to the former. In that plan
the power of nomination is unequivocally vested in the Executive. And as
there would be a necessity for submitting each nomination to the judgment
of an entire branch of the legislature, the circumstances attending an
appointment, from the mode of conducting it, would naturally become
matters of notoriety; and the public would be at no loss to determine what
part had been performed by the different actors. The blame of a bad
nomination would fall upon the President singly and absolutely. The
censure of rejecting a good one would lie entirely at the door of the
Senate; aggravated by the consideration of their having counteracted the
good intentions of the Executive. If an ill appointment should be made,
the Executive for nominating, and the Senate for approving, would
participate, though in different degrees, in the opprobrium and disgrace.
The reverse of all this characterizes the manner of appointment in this
State. The council of appointment consists of from three to five persons,
of whom the governor is always one. This small body, shut up in a private
apartment, impenetrable to the public eye, proceed to the execution of the
trust committed to them. It is known that the governor claims the right of
nomination, upon the strength of some ambiguous expressions in the
constitution; but it is not known to what extent, or in what manner he
exercises it; nor upon what occasions he is contradicted or opposed. The
censure of a bad appointment, on account of the uncertainty of its author,
and for want of a determinate object, has neither poignancy nor duration.
And while an unbounded field for cabal and intrigue lies open, all idea of
responsibility is lost. The most that the public can know, is that the
governor claims the right of nomination; that two out of the
inconsiderable number of four men can too often be managed without much
difficulty; that if some of the members of a particular council should
happen to be of an uncomplying character, it is frequently not impossible
to get rid of their opposition by regulating the times of meeting in such
a manner as to render their attendance inconvenient; and that from
whatever cause it may proceed, a great number of very improper
appointments are from time to time made. Whether a governor of this State
avails himself of the ascendant he must necessarily have, in this delicate
and important part of the administration, to prefer to offices men who are
best qualified for them, or whether he prostitutes that advantage to the
advancement of persons whose chief merit is their implicit devotion to his
will, and to the support of a despicable and dangerous system of personal
influence, are questions which, unfortunately for the community, can only
be the subjects of speculation and conjecture.
Every mere council of appointment, however constituted, will be a
conclave, in which cabal and intrigue will have their full scope. Their
number, without an unwarrantable increase of expense, cannot be large
enough to preclude a facility of combination. And as each member will have
his friends and connections to provide for, the desire of mutual
gratification will beget a scandalous bartering of votes and bargaining
for places. The private attachments of one man might easily be satisfied;
but to satisfy the private attachments of a dozen, or of twenty men, would
occasion a monopoly of all the principal employments of the government in
a few families, and would lead more directly to an aristocracy or an
oligarchy than any measure that could be contrived. If, to avoid an
accumulation of offices, there was to be a frequent change in the persons
who were to compose the council, this would involve the mischiefs of a
mutable administration in their full extent. Such a council would also be
more liable to executive influence than the Senate, because they would be
fewer in number, and would act less immediately under the public
inspection. Such a council, in fine, as a substitute for the plan of the
convention, would be productive of an increase of expense, a
multiplication of the evils which spring from favoritism and intrigue in
the distribution of public honors, a decrease of stability in the
administration of the government, and a diminution of the security against
an undue influence of the Executive. And yet such a council has been
warmly contended for as an essential amendment in the proposed
Constitution.
I could not with propriety conclude my observations on the subject of
appointments without taking notice of a scheme for which there have
appeared some, though but few advocates; I mean that of uniting the House
of Representatives in the power of making them. I shall, however, do
little more than mention it, as I cannot imagine that it is likely to gain
the countenance of any considerable part of the community. A body so
fluctuating and at the same time so numerous, can never be deemed proper
for the exercise of that power. Its unfitness will appear manifest to all,
when it is recollected that in half a century it may consist of three or
four hundred persons. All the advantages of the stability, both of the
Executive and of the Senate, would be defeated by this union, and infinite
delays and embarrassments would be occasioned. The example of most of the
States in their local constitutions encourages us to reprobate the idea.
The only remaining powers of the Executive are comprehended in giving
information to Congress of the state of the Union; in recommending to
their consideration such measures as he shall judge expedient; in
convening them, or either branch, upon extraordinary occasions; in
adjourning them when they cannot themselves agree upon the time of
adjournment; in receiving ambassadors and other public ministers; in
faithfully executing the laws; and in commissioning all the officers of
the United States.
Except some cavils about the power of convening either house of the
legislature, and that of receiving ambassadors, no objection has been made
to this class of authorities; nor could they possibly admit of any. It
required, indeed, an insatiable avidity for censure to invent exceptions
to the parts which have been excepted to. In regard to the power of
convening either house of the legislature, I shall barely remark, that in
respect to the Senate at least, we can readily discover a good reason for
it. AS this body has a concurrent power with the Executive in the article
of treaties, it might often be necessary to call it together with a view
to this object, when it would be unnecessary and improper to convene the
House of Representatives. As to the reception of ambassadors, what I have
said in a former paper will furnish a sufficient answer.
We have now completed a survey of the structure and powers of the
executive department, which, I have endeavored to show, combines, as far
as republican principles will admit, all the requisites to energy. The
remaining inquiry is: Does it also combine the requisites to safety, in a
republican sense—a due dependence on the people, a due
responsibility? The answer to this question has been anticipated in the
investigation of its other characteristics, and is satisfactorily
deducible from these circumstances; from the election of the President
once in four years by persons immediately chosen by the people for that
purpose; and from his being at all times liable to impeachment, trial,
dismission from office, incapacity to serve in any other, and to
forfeiture of life and estate by subsequent prosecution in the common
course of law. But these precautions, great as they are, are not the only
ones which the plan of the convention has provided in favor of the public
security. In the only instances in which the abuse of the executive
authority was materially to be feared, the Chief Magistrate of the United
States would, by that plan, be subjected to the control of a branch of the
legislative body. What more could be desired by an enlightened and
reasonable people?
PUBLIUS
E1. These two alternate endings of this sentence appear in different
editions.
FEDERALIST No. 78. The Judiciary Department
From McLEAN'S Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE PROCEED now to an examination of the judiciary department of the
proposed government.
In unfolding the defects of the existing Confederation, the utility and
necessity of a federal judicature have been clearly pointed out. It is the
less necessary to recapitulate the considerations there urged, as the
propriety of the institution in the abstract is not disputed; the only
questions which have been raised being relative to the manner of
constituting it, and to its extent. To these points, therefore, our
observations shall be confined.
The manner of constituting it seems to embrace these several objects: 1st.
The mode of appointing the judges. 2d. The tenure by which they are to
hold their places. 3d. The partition of the judiciary authority between
different courts, and their relations to each other.
First. As to the mode of appointing the judges; this is the same with that
of appointing the officers of the Union in general, and has been so fully
discussed in the two last numbers, that nothing can be said here which
would not be useless repetition.
Second. As to the tenure by which the judges are to hold their places;
this chiefly concerns their duration in office; the provisions for their
support; the precautions for their responsibility.
According to the plan of the convention, all judges who may be appointed
by the United States are to hold their offices during good behavior; which
is conformable to the most approved of the State constitutions and among
the rest, to that of this State. Its propriety having been drawn into
question by the adversaries of that plan, is no light symptom of the rage
for objection, which disorders their imaginations and judgments. The
standard of good behavior for the continuance in office of the judicial
magistracy, is certainly one of the most valuable of the modern
improvements in the practice of government. In a monarchy it is an
excellent barrier to the despotism of the prince; in a republic it is a no
less excellent barrier to the encroachments and oppressions of the
representative body. And it is the best expedient which can be devised in
any government, to secure a steady, upright, and impartial administration
of the laws.
Whoever attentively considers the different departments of power must
perceive, that, in a government in which they are separated from each
other, the judiciary, from the nature of its functions, will always be the
least dangerous to the political rights of the Constitution; because it
will be least in a capacity to annoy or injure them. The Executive not
only dispenses the honors, but holds the sword of the community. The
legislature not only commands the purse, but prescribes the rules by which
the duties and rights of every citizen are to be regulated. The judiciary,
on the contrary, has no influence over either the sword or the purse; no
direction either of the strength or of the wealth of the society; and can
take no active resolution whatever. It may truly be said to have neither
FORCE nor WILL, but merely judgment; and must ultimately depend upon the
aid of the executive arm even for the efficacy of its judgments.
This simple view of the matter suggests several important consequences. It
proves incontestably, that the judiciary is beyond comparison the weakest
of the three departments of power(1); that it can never attack with
success either of the other two; and that all possible care is requisite
to enable it to defend itself against their attacks. It equally proves,
that though individual oppression may now and then proceed from the courts
of justice, the general liberty of the people can never be endangered from
that quarter; I mean so long as the judiciary remains truly distinct from
both the legislature and the Executive. For I agree, that "there is no
liberty, if the power of judging be not separated from the legislative and
executive powers."(2) And it proves, in the last place, that as liberty
can have nothing to fear from the judiciary alone, but would have every
thing to fear from its union with either of the other departments; that as
all the effects of such a union must ensue from a dependence of the former
on the latter, notwithstanding a nominal and apparent separation; that as,
from the natural feebleness of the judiciary, it is in continual jeopardy
of being overpowered, awed, or influenced by its co-ordinate branches; and
that as nothing can contribute so much to its firmness and independence as
permanency in office, this quality may therefore be justly regarded as an
indispensable ingredient in its constitution, and, in a great measure, as
the citadel of the public justice and the public security.
The complete independence of the courts of justice is peculiarly essential
in a limited Constitution. By a limited Constitution, I understand one
which contains certain specified exceptions to the legislative authority;
such, for instance, as that it shall pass no bills of attainder, no ex
post facto laws, and the like. Limitations of this kind can be preserved
in practice no other way than through the medium of courts of justice,
whose duty it must be to declare all acts contrary to the manifest tenor
of the Constitution void. Without this, all the reservations of particular
rights or privileges would amount to nothing.
Some perplexity respecting the rights of the courts to pronounce
legislative acts void, because contrary to the Constitution, has arisen
from an imagination that the doctrine would imply a superiority of the
judiciary to the legislative power. It is urged that the authority which
can declare the acts of another void, must necessarily be superior to the
one whose acts may be declared void. As this doctrine is of great
importance in all the American constitutions, a brief discussion of the
ground on which it rests cannot be unacceptable.
There is no position which depends on clearer principles, than that every
act of a delegated authority, contrary to the tenor of the commission
under which it is exercised, is void. No legislative act, therefore,
contrary to the Constitution, can be valid. To deny this, would be to
affirm, that the deputy is greater than his principal; that the servant is
above his master; that the representatives of the people are superior to
the people themselves; that men acting by virtue of powers, may do not
only what their powers do not authorize, but what they forbid.
If it be said that the legislative body are themselves the constitutional
judges of their own powers, and that the construction they put upon them
is conclusive upon the other departments, it may be answered, that this
cannot be the natural presumption, where it is not to be collected from
any particular provisions in the Constitution. It is not otherwise to be
supposed, that the Constitution could intend to enable the representatives
of the people to substitute their will to that of their constituents. It
is far more rational to suppose, that the courts were designed to be an
intermediate body between the people and the legislature, in order, among
other things, to keep the latter within the limits assigned to their
authority. The interpretation of the laws is the proper and peculiar
province of the courts. A constitution is, in fact, and must be regarded
by the judges, as a fundamental law. It therefore belongs to them to
ascertain its meaning, as well as the meaning of any particular act
proceeding from the legislative body. If there should happen to be an
irreconcilable variance between the two, that which has the superior
obligation and validity ought, of course, to be preferred; or, in other
words, the Constitution ought to be preferred to the statute, the
intention of the people to the intention of their agents.
Nor does this conclusion by any means suppose a superiority of the
judicial to the legislative power. It only supposes that the power of the
people is superior to both; and that where the will of the legislature,
declared in its statutes, stands in opposition to that of the people,
declared in the Constitution, the judges ought to be governed by the
latter rather than the former. They ought to regulate their decisions by
the fundamental laws, rather than by those which are not fundamental.
This exercise of judicial discretion, in determining between two
contradictory laws, is exemplified in a familiar instance. It not
uncommonly happens, that there are two statutes existing at one time,
clashing in whole or in part with each other, and neither of them
containing any repealing clause or expression. In such a case, it is the
province of the courts to liquidate and fix their meaning and operation.
So far as they can, by any fair construction, be reconciled to each other,
reason and law conspire to dictate that this should be done; where this is
impracticable, it becomes a matter of necessity to give effect to one, in
exclusion of the other. The rule which has obtained in the courts for
determining their relative validity is, that the last in order of time
shall be preferred to the first. But this is a mere rule of construction,
not derived from any positive law, but from the nature and reason of the
thing. It is a rule not enjoined upon the courts by legislative provision,
but adopted by themselves, as consonant to truth and propriety, for the
direction of their conduct as interpreters of the law. They thought it
reasonable, that between the interfering acts of an EQUAL authority, that
which was the last indication of its will should have the preference.
But in regard to the interfering acts of a superior and subordinate
authority, of an original and derivative power, the nature and reason of
the thing indicate the converse of that rule as proper to be followed.
They teach us that the prior act of a superior ought to be preferred to
the subsequent act of an inferior and subordinate authority; and that
accordingly, whenever a particular statute contravenes the Constitution,
it will be the duty of the judicial tribunals to adhere to the latter and
disregard the former.
It can be of no weight to say that the courts, on the pretense of a
repugnancy, may substitute their own pleasure to the constitutional
intentions of the legislature. This might as well happen in the case of
two contradictory statutes; or it might as well happen in every
adjudication upon any single statute. The courts must declare the sense of
the law; and if they should be disposed to exercise WILL instead of
JUDGMENT, the consequence would equally be the substitution of their
pleasure to that of the legislative body. The observation, if it prove any
thing, would prove that there ought to be no judges distinct from that
body.
If, then, the courts of justice are to be considered as the bulwarks of a
limited Constitution against legislative encroachments, this consideration
will afford a strong argument for the permanent tenure of judicial
offices, since nothing will contribute so much as this to that independent
spirit in the judges which must be essential to the faithful performance
of so arduous a duty.
This independence of the judges is equally requisite to guard the
Constitution and the rights of individuals from the effects of those ill
humors, which the arts of designing men, or the influence of particular
conjunctures, sometimes disseminate among the people themselves, and
which, though they speedily give place to better information, and more
deliberate reflection, have a tendency, in the meantime, to occasion
dangerous innovations in the government, and serious oppressions of the
minor party in the community. Though I trust the friends of the proposed
Constitution will never concur with its enemies,(3) in questioning that
fundamental principle of republican government, which admits the right of
the people to alter or abolish the established Constitution, whenever they
find it inconsistent with their happiness, yet it is not to be inferred
from this principle, that the representatives of the people, whenever a
momentary inclination happens to lay hold of a majority of their
constituents, incompatible with the provisions in the existing
Constitution, would, on that account, be justifiable in a violation of
those provisions; or that the courts would be under a greater obligation
to connive at infractions in this shape, than when they had proceeded
wholly from the cabals of the representative body. Until the people have,
by some solemn and authoritative act, annulled or changed the established
form, it is binding upon themselves collectively, as well as individually;
and no presumption, or even knowledge, of their sentiments, can warrant
their representatives in a departure from it, prior to such an act. But it
is easy to see, that it would require an uncommon portion of fortitude in
the judges to do their duty as faithful guardians of the Constitution,
where legislative invasions of it had been instigated by the major voice
of the community.
But it is not with a view to infractions of the Constitution only, that
the independence of the judges may be an essential safeguard against the
effects of occasional ill humors in the society. These sometimes extend no
farther than to the injury of the private rights of particular classes of
citizens, by unjust and partial laws. Here also the firmness of the
judicial magistracy is of vast importance in mitigating the severity and
confining the operation of such laws. It not only serves to moderate the
immediate mischiefs of those which may have been passed, but it operates
as a check upon the legislative body in passing them; who, perceiving that
obstacles to the success of iniquitous intention are to be expected from
the scruples of the courts, are in a manner compelled, by the very motives
of the injustice they meditate, to qualify their attempts. This is a
circumstance calculated to have more influence upon the character of our
governments, than but few may be aware of. The benefits of the integrity
and moderation of the judiciary have already been felt in more States than
one; and though they may have displeased those whose sinister expectations
they may have disappointed, they must have commanded the esteem and
applause of all the virtuous and disinterested. Considerate men, of every
description, ought to prize whatever will tend to beget or fortify that
temper in the courts: as no man can be sure that he may not be to-morrow
the victim of a spirit of injustice, by which he may be a gainer to-day.
And every man must now feel, that the inevitable tendency of such a spirit
is to sap the foundations of public and private confidence, and to
introduce in its stead universal distrust and distress.
That inflexible and uniform adherence to the rights of the Constitution,
and of individuals, which we perceive to be indispensable in the courts of
justice, can certainly not be expected from judges who hold their offices
by a temporary commission. Periodical appointments, however regulated, or
by whomsoever made, would, in some way or other, be fatal to their
necessary independence. If the power of making them was committed either
to the Executive or legislature, there would be danger of an improper
complaisance to the branch which possessed it; if to both, there would be
an unwillingness to hazard the displeasure of either; if to the people, or
to persons chosen by them for the special purpose, there would be too
great a disposition to consult popularity, to justify a reliance that
nothing would be consulted but the Constitution and the laws.
There is yet a further and a weightier reason for the permanency of the
judicial offices, which is deducible from the nature of the qualifications
they require. It has been frequently remarked, with great propriety, that
a voluminous code of laws is one of the inconveniences necessarily
connected with the advantages of a free government. To avoid an arbitrary
discretion in the courts, it is indispensable that they should be bound
down by strict rules and precedents, which serve to define and point out
their duty in every particular case that comes before them; and it will
readily be conceived from the variety of controversies which grow out of
the folly and wickedness of mankind, that the records of those precedents
must unavoidably swell to a very considerable bulk, and must demand long
and laborious study to acquire a competent knowledge of them. Hence it is,
that there can be but few men in the society who will have sufficient
skill in the laws to qualify them for the stations of judges. And making
the proper deductions for the ordinary depravity of human nature, the
number must be still smaller of those who unite the requisite integrity
with the requisite knowledge. These considerations apprise us, that the
government can have no great option between fit character; and that a
temporary duration in office, which would naturally discourage such
characters from quitting a lucrative line of practice to accept a seat on
the bench, would have a tendency to throw the administration of justice
into hands less able, and less well qualified, to conduct it with utility
and dignity. In the present circumstances of this country, and in those in
which it is likely to be for a long time to come, the disadvantages on
this score would be greater than they may at first sight appear; but it
must be confessed, that they are far inferior to those which present
themselves under the other aspects of the subject.
Upon the whole, there can be no room to doubt that the convention acted
wisely in copying from the models of those constitutions which have
established good behavior as the tenure of their judicial offices, in
point of duration; and that so far from being blamable on this account,
their plan would have been inexcusably defective, if it had wanted this
important feature of good government. The experience of Great Britain
affords an illustrious comment on the excellence of the institution.
PUBLIUS
1. The celebrated Montesquieu, speaking of them, says: "Of the three
powers above mentioned, the judiciary is next to nothing."—Spirit of
Laws. Vol. I, page 186.
2. Idem, page 181.
3. Vide Protest of the Minority of the Convention of Pennsylvania,
Martin's Speech, etc.
FEDERALIST No. 79. The Judiciary Continued
From MCLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
NEXT to permanency in office, nothing can contribute more to the
independence of the judges than a fixed provision for their support. The
remark made in relation to the President is equally applicable here. In
the general course of human nature, a power over a man's subsistence
amounts to a power over his will. And we can never hope to see realized in
practice, the complete separation of the judicial from the legislative
power, in any system which leaves the former dependent for pecuniary
resources on the occasional grants of the latter. The enlightened friends
to good government in every State, have seen cause to lament the want of
precise and explicit precautions in the State constitutions on this head.
Some of these indeed have declared that permanent(1) salaries should be
established for the judges; but the experiment has in some instances shown
that such expressions are not sufficiently definite to preclude
legislative evasions. Something still more positive and unequivocal has
been evinced to be requisite. The plan of the convention accordingly has
provided that the judges of the United States "shall at stated times
receive for their services a compensation which shall not be diminished
during their continuance in office."
This, all circumstances considered, is the most eligible provision that
could have been devised. It will readily be understood that the
fluctuations in the value of money and in the state of society rendered a
fixed rate of compensation in the Constitution inadmissible. What might be
extravagant to-day, might in half a century become penurious and
inadequate. It was therefore necessary to leave it to the discretion of
the legislature to vary its provisions in conformity to the variations in
circumstances, yet under such restrictions as to put it out of the power
of that body to change the condition of the individual for the worse. A
man may then be sure of the ground upon which he stands, and can never be
deterred from his duty by the apprehension of being placed in a less
eligible situation. The clause which has been quoted combines both
advantages. The salaries of judicial officers may from time to time be
altered, as occasion shall require, yet so as never to lessen the
allowance with which any particular judge comes into office, in respect to
him. It will be observed that a difference has been made by the convention
between the compensation of the President and of the judges, That of the
former can neither be increased nor diminished; that of the latter can
only not be diminished. This probably arose from the difference in the
duration of the respective offices. As the President is to be elected for
no more than four years, it can rarely happen that an adequate salary,
fixed at the commencement of that period, will not continue to be such to
its end. But with regard to the judges, who, if they behave properly, will
be secured in their places for life, it may well happen, especially in the
early stages of the government, that a stipend, which would be very
sufficient at their first appointment, would become too small in the
progress of their service.
This provision for the support of the judges bears every mark of prudence
and efficacy; and it may be safely affirmed that, together with the
permanent tenure of their offices, it affords a better prospect of their
independence than is discoverable in the constitutions of any of the
States in regard to their own judges.
The precautions for their responsibility are comprised in the article
respecting impeachments. They are liable to be impeached for malconduct by
the House of Representatives, and tried by the Senate; and, if convicted,
may be dismissed from office, and disqualified for holding any other. This
is the only provision on the point which is consistent with the necessary
independence of the judicial character, and is the only one which we find
in our own Constitution in respect to our own judges.
The want of a provision for removing the judges on account of inability
has been a subject of complaint. But all considerate men will be sensible
that such a provision would either not be practiced upon or would be more
liable to abuse than calculated to answer any good purpose. The
mensuration of the faculties of the mind has, I believe, no place in the
catalogue of known arts. An attempt to fix the boundary between the
regions of ability and inability, would much oftener give scope to
personal and party attachments and enmities than advance the interests of
justice or the public good. The result, except in the case of insanity,
must for the most part be arbitrary; and insanity, without any formal or
express provision, may be safely pronounced to be a virtual
disqualification.
The constitution of New York, to avoid investigations that must forever be
vague and dangerous, has taken a particular age as the criterion of
inability. No man can be a judge beyond sixty. I believe there are few at
present who do not disapprove of this provision. There is no station, in
relation to which it is less proper than to that of a judge. The
deliberating and comparing faculties generally preserve their strength
much beyond that period in men who survive it; and when, in addition to
this circumstance, we consider how few there are who outlive the season of
intellectual vigor, and how improbable it is that any considerable portion
of the bench, whether more or less numerous, should be in such a situation
at the same time, we shall be ready to conclude that limitations of this
sort have little to recommend them. In a republic, where fortunes are not
affluent, and pensions not expedient, the dismission of men from stations
in which they have served their country long and usefully, on which they
depend for subsistence, and from which it will be too late to resort to
any other occupation for a livelihood, ought to have some better apology
to humanity than is to be found in the imaginary danger of a superannuated
bench.
PUBLIUS
1. Vide Constitution of Massachusetts, Chapter 2, Section 1, Article 13.
FEDERALIST No. 80. The Powers of the Judiciary
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
TO JUDGE with accuracy of the proper extent of the federal judicature, it
will be necessary to consider, in the first place, what are its proper
objects.
It seems scarcely to admit of controversy, that the judiciary authority of
the Union ought to extend to these several descriptions of cases: 1st, to
all those which arise out of the laws of the United States, passed in
pursuance of their just and constitutional powers of legislation; 2d, to
all those which concern the execution of the provisions expressly
contained in the articles of Union; 3d, to all those in which the United
States are a party; 4th, to all those which involve the PEACE of the
CONFEDERACY, whether they relate to the intercourse between the United
States and foreign nations, or to that between the States themselves; 5th,
to all those which originate on the high seas, and are of admiralty or
maritime jurisdiction; and, lastly, to all those in which the State
tribunals cannot be supposed to be impartial and unbiased.
The first point depends upon this obvious consideration, that there ought
always to be a constitutional method of giving efficacy to constitutional
provisions. What, for instance, would avail restrictions on the authority
of the State legislatures, without some constitutional mode of enforcing
the observance of them? The States, by the plan of the convention, are
prohibited from doing a variety of things, some of which are incompatible
with the interests of the Union, and others with the principles of good
government. The imposition of duties on imported articles, and the
emission of paper money, are specimens of each kind. No man of sense will
believe, that such prohibitions would be scrupulously regarded, without
some effectual power in the government to restrain or correct the
infractions of them. This power must either be a direct negative on the
State laws, or an authority in the federal courts to overrule such as
might be in manifest contravention of the articles of Union. There is no
third course that I can imagine. The latter appears to have been thought
by the convention preferable to the former, and, I presume, will be most
agreeable to the States.
As to the second point, it is impossible, by any argument or comment, to
make it clearer than it is in itself. If there are such things as
political axioms, the propriety of the judicial power of a government
being coextensive with its legislative, may be ranked among the number.
The mere necessity of uniformity in the interpretation of the national
laws, decides the question. Thirteen independent courts of final
jurisdiction over the same causes, arising upon the same laws, is a hydra
in government, from which nothing but contradiction and confusion can
proceed.
Still less need be said in regard to the third point. Controversies
between the nation and its members or citizens, can only be properly
referred to the national tribunals. Any other plan would be contrary to
reason, to precedent, and to decorum.
The fourth point rests on this plain proposition, that the peace of the
WHOLE ought not to be left at the disposal of a PART. The Union will
undoubtedly be answerable to foreign powers for the conduct of its
members. And the responsibility for an injury ought ever to be accompanied
with the faculty of preventing it. As the denial or perversion of justice
by the sentences of courts, as well as in any other manner, is with reason
classed among the just causes of war, it will follow that the federal
judiciary ought to have cognizance of all causes in which the citizens of
other countries are concerned. This is not less essential to the
preservation of the public faith, than to the security of the public
tranquillity. A distinction may perhaps be imagined between cases arising
upon treaties and the laws of nations and those which may stand merely on
the footing of the municipal law. The former kind may be supposed proper
for the federal jurisdiction, the latter for that of the States. But it is
at least problematical, whether an unjust sentence against a foreigner,
where the subject of controversy was wholly relative to the lex loci,
would not, if unredressed, be an aggression upon his sovereign, as well as
one which violated the stipulations of a treaty or the general law of
nations. And a still greater objection to the distinction would result
from the immense difficulty, if not impossibility, of a practical
discrimination between the cases of one complexion and those of the other.
So great a proportion of the cases in which foreigners are parties,
involve national questions, that it is by far most safe and most expedient
to refer all those in which they are concerned to the national tribunals.
The power of determining causes between two States, between one State and
the citizens of another, and between the citizens of different States, is
perhaps not less essential to the peace of the Union than that which has
been just examined. History gives us a horrid picture of the dissensions
and private wars which distracted and desolated Germany prior to the
institution of the Imperial Chamber by Maximilian, towards the close of
the fifteenth century; and informs us, at the same time, of the vast
influence of that institution in appeasing the disorders and establishing
the tranquillity of the empire. This was a court invested with authority
to decide finally all differences among the members of the Germanic body.
A method of terminating territorial disputes between the States, under the
authority of the federal head, was not unattended to, even in the
imperfect system by which they have been hitherto held together. But there
are many other sources, besides interfering claims of boundary, from which
bickerings and animosities may spring up among the members of the Union.
To some of these we have been witnesses in the course of our past
experience. It will readily be conjectured that I allude to the fraudulent
laws which have been passed in too many of the States. And though the
proposed Constitution establishes particular guards against the repetition
of those instances which have heretofore made their appearance, yet it is
warrantable to apprehend that the spirit which produced them will assume
new shapes, that could not be foreseen nor specifically provided against.
Whatever practices may have a tendency to disturb the harmony between the
States, are proper objects of federal superintendence and control.
It may be esteemed the basis of the Union, that "the citizens of each
State shall be entitled to all the privileges and immunities of citizens
of the several States." And if it be a just principle that every
government ought to possess the means of executing its own provisions by
its own authority, it will follow, that in order to the inviolable
maintenance of that equality of privileges and immunities to which the
citizens of the Union will be entitled, the national judiciary ought to
preside in all cases in which one State or its citizens are opposed to
another State or its citizens. To secure the full effect of so fundamental
a provision against all evasion and subterfuge, it is necessary that its
construction should be committed to that tribunal which, having no local
attachments, will be likely to be impartial between the different States
and their citizens, and which, owing its official existence to the Union,
will never be likely to feel any bias inauspicious to the principles on
which it is founded.
The fifth point will demand little animadversion. The most bigoted
idolizers of State authority have not thus far shown a disposition to deny
the national judiciary the cognizances of maritime causes. These so
generally depend on the laws of nations, and so commonly affect the rights
of foreigners, that they fall within the considerations which are relative
to the public peace. The most important part of them are, by the present
Confederation, submitted to federal jurisdiction.
The reasonableness of the agency of the national courts in cases in which
the State tribunals cannot be supposed to be impartial, speaks for itself.
No man ought certainly to be a judge in his own cause, or in any cause in
respect to which he has the least interest or bias. This principle has no
inconsiderable weight in designating the federal courts as the proper
tribunals for the determination of controversies between different States
and their citizens. And it ought to have the same operation in regard to
some cases between citizens of the same State. Claims to land under grants
of different States, founded upon adverse pretensions of boundary, are of
this description. The courts of neither of the granting States could be
expected to be unbiased. The laws may have even prejudged the question,
and tied the courts down to decisions in favor of the grants of the State
to which they belonged. And even where this had not been done, it would be
natural that the judges, as men, should feel a strong predilection to the
claims of their own government.
Having thus laid down and discussed the principles which ought to regulate
the constitution of the federal judiciary, we will proceed to test, by
these principles, the particular powers of which, according to the plan of
the convention, it is to be composed. It is to comprehend "all cases in
law and equity arising under the Constitution, the laws of the United
States, and treaties made, or which shall be made, under their authority;
to all cases affecting ambassadors, other public ministers, and consuls;
to all cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction; to controversies to
which the United States shall be a party; to controversies between two or
more States; between a State and citizens of another State; between
citizens of different States; between citizens of the same State claiming
lands and grants of different States; and between a State or the citizens
thereof and foreign states, citizens, and subjects." This constitutes the
entire mass of the judicial authority of the Union. Let us now review it
in detail. It is, then, to extend:
First. To all cases in law and equity, arising under the Constitution and
the laws of the United States. This corresponds with the two first classes
of causes, which have been enumerated, as proper for the jurisdiction of
the United States. It has been asked, what is meant by "cases arising
under the Constitution," in contradiction from those "arising under the
laws of the United States"? The difference has been already explained. All
the restrictions upon the authority of the State legislatures furnish
examples of it. They are not, for instance, to emit paper money; but the
interdiction results from the Constitution, and will have no connection
with any law of the United States. Should paper money, notwithstanding, be
emited, the controversies concerning it would be cases arising under the
Constitution and not the laws of the United States, in the ordinary
signification of the terms. This may serve as a sample of the whole.
It has also been asked, what need of the word "equity". What equitable
causes can grow out of the Constitution and laws of the United States?
There is hardly a subject of litigation between individuals, which may not
involve those ingredients of fraud, accident, trust, or hardship, which
would render the matter an object of equitable rather than of legal
jurisdiction, as the distinction is known and established in several of
the States. It is the peculiar province, for instance, of a court of
equity to relieve against what are called hard bargains: these are
contracts in which, though there may have been no direct fraud or deceit,
sufficient to invalidate them in a court of law, yet there may have been
some undue and unconscionable advantage taken of the necessities or
misfortunes of one of the parties, which a court of equity would not
tolerate. In such cases, where foreigners were concerned on either side,
it would be impossible for the federal judicatories to do justice without
an equitable as well as a legal jurisdiction. Agreements to convey lands
claimed under the grants of different States, may afford another example
of the necessity of an equitable jurisdiction in the federal courts. This
reasoning may not be so palpable in those States where the formal and
technical distinction between LAW and EQUITY is not maintained, as in this
State, where it is exemplified by every day's practice.
The judiciary authority of the Union is to extend:
Second. To treaties made, or which shall be made, under the authority of
the United States, and to all cases affecting ambassadors, other public
ministers, and consuls. These belong to the fourth class of the enumerated
cases, as they have an evident connection with the preservation of the
national peace.
Third. To cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction. These form,
altogether, the fifth of the enumerated classes of causes proper for the
cognizance of the national courts.
Fourth. To controversies to which the United States shall be a party.
These constitute the third of those classes.
Fifth. To controversies between two or more States; between a State and
citizens of another State; between citizens of different States. These
belong to the fourth of those classes, and partake, in some measure, of
the nature of the last.
Sixth. To cases between the citizens of the same State, claiming lands
under grants of different States. These fall within the last class, and
are the only instances in which the proposed Constitution directly
contemplates the cognizance of disputes between the citizens of the same
State.
Seventh. To cases between a State and the citizens thereof, and foreign
States, citizens, or subjects. These have been already explained to belong
to the fourth of the enumerated classes, and have been shown to be, in a
peculiar manner, the proper subjects of the national judicature.
From this review of the particular powers of the federal judiciary, as
marked out in the Constitution, it appears that they are all conformable
to the principles which ought to have governed the structure of that
department, and which were necessary to the perfection of the system. If
some partial inconveniences should appear to be connected with the
incorporation of any of them into the plan, it ought to be recollected
that the national legislature will have ample authority to make such
exceptions, and to prescribe such regulations as will be calculated to
obviate or remove these inconveniences. The possibility of particular
mischiefs can never be viewed, by a wellinformed mind, as a solid
objection to a general principle, which is calculated to avoid general
mischiefs and to obtain general advantages.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 81. The Judiciary Continued, and the Distribution of the
Judicial Authority.
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
LET US now return to the partition of the judiciary authority between
different courts, and their relations to each other.
"The judicial power of the United States is" (by the plan of the
convention) "to be vested in one Supreme Court, and in such inferior
courts as the Congress may, from time to time, ordain and establish."(1)
That there ought to be one court of supreme and final jurisdiction, is a
proposition which is not likely to be contested. The reasons for it have
been assigned in another place, and are too obvious to need repetition.
The only question that seems to have been raised concerning it, is,
whether it ought to be a distinct body or a branch of the legislature. The
same contradiction is observable in regard to this matter which has been
remarked in several other cases. The very men who object to the Senate as
a court of impeachments, on the ground of an improper intermixture of
powers, advocate, by implication at least, the propriety of vesting the
ultimate decision of all causes, in the whole or in a part of the
legislative body.
The arguments, or rather suggestions, upon which this charge is founded,
are to this effect: "The authority of the proposed Supreme Court of the
United States, which is to be a separate and independent body, will be
superior to that of the legislature. The power of construing the laws
according to the spirit of the Constitution, will enable that court to
mould them into whatever shape it may think proper; especially as its
decisions will not be in any manner subject to the revision or correction
of the legislative body. This is as unprecedented as it is dangerous. In
Britain, the judicial power, in the last resort, resides in the House of
Lords, which is a branch of the legislature; and this part of the British
government has been imitated in the State constitutions in general. The
Parliament of Great Britain, and the legislatures of the several States,
can at any time rectify, by law, the exceptionable decisions of their
respective courts. But the errors and usurpations of the Supreme Court of
the United States will be uncontrollable and remediless." This, upon
examination, will be found to be made up altogether of false reasoning
upon misconceived fact.
In the first place, there is not a syllable in the plan under
consideration which directly empowers the national courts to construe the
laws according to the spirit of the Constitution, or which gives them any
greater latitude in this respect than may be claimed by the courts of
every State. I admit, however, that the Constitution ought to be the
standard of construction for the laws, and that wherever there is an
evident opposition, the laws ought to give place to the Constitution. But
this doctrine is not deducible from any circumstance peculiar to the plan
of the convention, but from the general theory of a limited Constitution;
and as far as it is true, is equally applicable to most, if not to all the
State governments. There can be no objection, therefore, on this account,
to the federal judicature which will not lie against the local judicatures
in general, and which will not serve to condemn every constitution that
attempts to set bounds to legislative discretion.
But perhaps the force of the objection may be thought to consist in the
particular organization of the Supreme Court; in its being composed of a
distinct body of magistrates, instead of being one of the branches of the
legislature, as in the government of Great Britain and that of the State.
To insist upon this point, the authors of the objection must renounce the
meaning they have labored to annex to the celebrated maxim, requiring a
separation of the departments of power. It shall, nevertheless, be
conceded to them, agreeably to the interpretation given to that maxim in
the course of these papers, that it is not violated by vesting the
ultimate power of judging in a PART of the legislative body. But though
this be not an absolute violation of that excellent rule, yet it verges so
nearly upon it, as on this account alone to be less eligible than the mode
preferred by the convention. From a body which had even a partial agency
in passing bad laws, we could rarely expect a disposition to temper and
moderate them in the application. The same spirit which had operated in
making them, would be too apt in interpreting them; still less could it be
expected that men who had infringed the Constitution in the character of
legislators, would be disposed to repair the breach in the character of
judges. Nor is this all. Every reason which recommends the tenure of good
behavior for judicial offices, militates against placing the judiciary
power, in the last resort, in a body composed of men chosen for a limited
period. There is an absurdity in referring the determination of causes, in
the first instance, to judges of permanent standing; in the last, to those
of a temporary and mutable constitution. And there is a still greater
absurdity in subjecting the decisions of men, selected for their knowledge
of the laws, acquired by long and laborious study, to the revision and
control of men who, for want of the same advantage, cannot but be
deficient in that knowledge. The members of the legislature will rarely be
chosen with a view to those qualifications which fit men for the stations
of judges; and as, on this account, there will be great reason to
apprehend all the ill consequences of defective information, so, on
account of the natural propensity of such bodies to party divisions, there
will be no less reason to fear that the pestilential breath of faction may
poison the fountains of justice. The habit of being continually marshalled
on opposite sides will be too apt to stifle the voice both of law and of
equity.
These considerations teach us to applaud the wisdom of those States who
have committed the judicial power, in the last resort, not to a part of
the legislature, but to distinct and independent bodies of men. Contrary
to the supposition of those who have represented the plan of the
convention, in this respect, as novel and unprecedented, it is but a copy
of the constitutions of New Hampshire, Massachusetts, Pennsylvania,
Delaware, Maryland, Virginia, North Carolina, South Carolina, and Georgia;
and the preference which has been given to those models is highly to be
commended.
It is not true, in the second place, that the Parliament of Great Britain,
or the legislatures of the particular States, can rectify the
exceptionable decisions of their respective courts, in any other sense
than might be done by a future legislature of the United States. The
theory, neither of the British, nor the State constitutions, authorizes
the revisal of a judicial sentence by a legislative act. Nor is there any
thing in the proposed Constitution, more than in either of them, by which
it is forbidden. In the former, as well as in the latter, the impropriety
of the thing, on the general principles of law and reason, is the sole
obstacle. A legislature, without exceeding its province, cannot reverse a
determination once made in a particular case; though it may prescribe a
new rule for future cases. This is the principle, and it applies in all
its consequences, exactly in the same manner and extent, to the State
governments, as to the national government now under consideration. Not
the least difference can be pointed out in any view of the subject.
It may in the last place be observed that the supposed danger of judiciary
encroachments on the legislative authority, which has been upon many
occasions reiterated, is in reality a phantom. Particular misconstructions
and contraventions of the will of the legislature may now and then happen;
but they can never be so extensive as to amount to an inconvenience, or in
any sensible degree to affect the order of the political system. This may
be inferred with certainty, from the general nature of the judicial power,
from the objects to which it relates, from the manner in which it is
exercised, from its comparative weakness, and from its total incapacity to
support its usurpations by force. And the inference is greatly fortified
by the consideration of the important constitutional check which the power
of instituting impeachments in one part of the legislative body, and of
determining upon them in the other, would give to that body upon the
members of the judicial department. This is alone a complete security.
There never can be danger that the judges, by a series of deliberate
usurpations on the authority of the legislature, would hazard the united
resentment of the body intrusted with it, while this body was possessed of
the means of punishing their presumption, by degrading them from their
stations. While this ought to remove all apprehensions on the subject, it
affords, at the same time, a cogent argument for constituting the Senate a
court for the trial of impeachments.
Having now examined, and, I trust, removed the objections to the distinct
and independent organization of the Supreme Court, I proceed to consider
the propriety of the power of constituting inferior courts,(2) and the
relations which will subsist between these and the former.
The power of constituting inferior courts is evidently calculated to
obviate the necessity of having recourse to the Supreme Court in every
case of federal cognizance. It is intended to enable the national
government to institute or authorize, in each State or district of the
United States, a tribunal competent to the determination of matters of
national jurisdiction within its limits.
But why, it is asked, might not the same purpose have been accomplished by
the instrumentality of the State courts? This admits of different answers.
Though the fitness and competency of those courts should be allowed in the
utmost latitude, yet the substance of the power in question may still be
regarded as a necessary part of the plan, if it were only to empower the
national legislature to commit to them the cognizance of causes arising
out of the national Constitution. To confer the power of determining such
causes upon the existing courts of the several States, would perhaps be as
much "to constitute tribunals," as to create new courts with the like
power. But ought not a more direct and explicit provision to have been
made in favor of the State courts? There are, in my opinion, substantial
reasons against such a provision: the most discerning cannot foresee how
far the prevalency of a local spirit may be found to disqualify the local
tribunals for the jurisdiction of national causes; whilst every man may
discover, that courts constituted like those of some of the States would
be improper channels of the judicial authority of the Union. State judges,
holding their offices during pleasure, or from year to year, will be too
little independent to be relied upon for an inflexible execution of the
national laws. And if there was a necessity for confiding the original
cognizance of causes arising under those laws to them there would be a
correspondent necessity for leaving the door of appeal as wide as
possible. In proportion to the grounds of confidence in, or distrust of,
the subordinate tribunals, ought to be the facility or difficulty of
appeals. And well satisfied as I am of the propriety of the appellate
jurisdiction, in the several classes of causes to which it is extended by
the plan of the convention. I should consider every thing calculated to
give, in practice, an unrestrained course to appeals, as a source of
public and private inconvenience.
I am not sure, but that it will be found highly expedient and useful, to
divide the United States into four or five or half a dozen districts; and
to institute a federal court in each district, in lieu of one in every
State. The judges of these courts, with the aid of the State judges, may
hold circuits for the trial of causes in the several parts of the
respective districts. Justice through them may be administered with ease
and despatch; and appeals may be safely circumscribed within a narrow
compass. This plan appears to me at present the most eligible of any that
could be adopted; and in order to it, it is necessary that the power of
constituting inferior courts should exist in the full extent in which it
is to be found in the proposed Constitution.
These reasons seem sufficient to satisfy a candid mind, that the want of
such a power would have been a great defect in the plan. Let us now
examine in what manner the judicial authority is to be distributed between
the supreme and the inferior courts of the Union.
The Supreme Court is to be invested with original jurisdiction, only "in
cases affecting ambassadors, other public ministers, and consuls, and
those in which A STATE shall be a party." Public ministers of every class
are the immediate representatives of their sovereigns. All questions in
which they are concerned are so directly connected with the public peace,
that, as well for the preservation of this, as out of respect to the
sovereignties they represent, it is both expedient and proper that such
questions should be submitted in the first instance to the highest
judicatory of the nation. Though consuls have not in strictness a
diplomatic character, yet as they are the public agents of the nations to
which they belong, the same observation is in a great measure applicable
to them. In cases in which a State might happen to be a party, it would
ill suit its dignity to be turned over to an inferior tribunal.
Though it may rather be a digression from the immediate subject of this
paper, I shall take occasion to mention here a supposition which has
excited some alarm upon very mistaken grounds. It has been suggested that
an assignment of the public securities of one State to the citizens of
another, would enable them to prosecute that State in the federal courts
for the amount of those securities; a suggestion which the following
considerations prove to be without foundation.
It is inherent in the nature of sovereignty not to be amenable to the suit
of an individual without its consent. This is the general sense, and the
general practice of mankind; and the exemption, as one of the attributes
of sovereignty, is now enjoyed by the government of every State in the
Union. Unless, therefore, there is a surrender of this immunity in the
plan of the convention, it will remain with the States, and the danger
intimated must be merely ideal. The circumstances which are necessary to
produce an alienation of State sovereignty were discussed in considering
the article of taxation, and need not be repeated here. A recurrence to
the principles there established will satisfy us, that there is no color
to pretend that the State governments would, by the adoption of that plan,
be divested of the privilege of paying their own debts in their own way,
free from every constraint but that which flows from the obligations of
good faith. The contracts between a nation and individuals are only
binding on the conscience of the sovereign, and have no pretensions to a
compulsive force. They confer no right of action, independent of the
sovereign will. To what purpose would it be to authorize suits against
States for the debts they owe? How could recoveries be enforced? It is
evident, it could not be done without waging war against the contracting
State; and to ascribe to the federal courts, by mere implication, and in
destruction of a pre-existing right of the State governments, a power
which would involve such a consequence, would be altogether forced and
unwarrantable.
Let us resume the train of our observations. We have seen that the
original jurisdiction of the Supreme Court would be confined to two
classes of causes, and those of a nature rarely to occur. In all other
cases of federal cognizance, the original jurisdiction would appertain to
the inferior tribunals; and the Supreme Court would have nothing more than
an appellate jurisdiction, "with such exceptions and under such
regulations as the Congress shall make."
The propriety of this appellate jurisdiction has been scarcely called in
question in regard to matters of law; but the clamors have been loud
against it as applied to matters of fact. Some well-intentioned men in
this State, deriving their notions from the language and forms which
obtain in our courts, have been induced to consider it as an implied
supersedure of the trial by jury, in favor of the civil-law mode of trial,
which prevails in our courts of admiralty, probate, and chancery. A
technical sense has been affixed to the term "appellate," which, in our
law parlance, is commonly used in reference to appeals in the course of
the civil law. But if I am not misinformed, the same meaning would not be
given to it in any part of New England. There an appeal from one jury to
another, is familiar both in language and practice, and is even a matter
of course, until there have been two verdicts on one side. The word
"appellate," therefore, will not be understood in the same sense in New
England as in New York, which shows the impropriety of a technical
interpretation derived from the jurisprudence of any particular State. The
expression, taken in the abstract, denotes nothing more than the power of
one tribunal to review the proceedings of another, either as to the law or
fact, or both. The mode of doing it may depend on ancient custom or
legislative provision (in a new government it must depend on the latter),
and may be with or without the aid of a jury, as may be judged advisable.
If, therefore, the re-examination of a fact once determined by a jury,
should in any case be admitted under the proposed Constitution, it may be
so regulated as to be done by a second jury, either by remanding the cause
to the court below for a second trial of the fact, or by directing an
issue immediately out of the Supreme Court.
But it does not follow that the re-examination of a fact once ascertained
by a jury, will be permitted in the Supreme Court. Why may not it be said,
with the strictest propriety, when a writ of error is brought from an
inferior to a superior court of law in this State, that the latter has
jurisdiction of the fact as well as the law? It is true it cannot
institute a new inquiry concerning the fact, but it takes cognizance of it
as it appears upon the record, and pronounces the law arising upon it.(3)
This is jurisdiction of both fact and law; nor is it even possible to
separate them. Though the common-law courts of this State ascertain
disputed facts by a jury, yet they unquestionably have jurisdiction of
both fact and law; and accordingly when the former is agreed in the
pleadings, they have no recourse to a jury, but proceed at once to
judgment. I contend, therefore, on this ground, that the expressions,
"appellate jurisdiction, both as to law and fact," do not necessarily
imply a re-examination in the Supreme Court of facts decided by juries in
the inferior courts.
The following train of ideas may well be imagined to have influenced the
convention, in relation to this particular provision. The appellate
jurisdiction of the Supreme Court (it may have been argued) will extend to
causes determinable in different modes, some in the course of the COMMON
LAW, others in the course of the CIVIL LAW. In the former, the revision of
the law only will be, generally speaking, the proper province of the
Supreme Court; in the latter, the re-examination of the fact is agreeable
to usage, and in some cases, of which prize causes are an example, might
be essential to the preservation of the public peace. It is therefore
necessary that the appellate jurisdiction should, in certain cases, extend
in the broadest sense to matters of fact. It will not answer to make an
express exception of cases which shall have been originally tried by a
jury, because in the courts of some of the States all causes are tried in
this mode(4); and such an exception would preclude the revision of matters
of fact, as well where it might be proper, as where it might be improper.
To avoid all inconveniencies, it will be safest to declare generally, that
the Supreme Court shall possess appellate jurisdiction both as to law and
fact, and that this jurisdiction shall be subject to such exceptions and
regulations as the national legislature may prescribe. This will enable
the government to modify it in such a manner as will best answer the ends
of public justice and security.
This view of the matter, at any rate, puts it out of all doubt that the
supposed abolition of the trial by jury, by the operation of this
provision, is fallacious and untrue. The legislature of the United States
would certainly have full power to provide, that in appeals to the Supreme
Court there should be no re-examination of facts where they had been tried
in the original causes by juries. This would certainly be an authorized
exception; but if, for the reason already intimated, it should be thought
too extensive, it might be qualified with a limitation to such causes only
as are determinable at common law in that mode of trial.
The amount of the observations hitherto made on the authority of the
judicial department is this: that it has been carefully restricted to
those causes which are manifestly proper for the cognizance of the
national judicature; that in the partition of this authority a very small
portion of original jurisdiction has been preserved to the Supreme Court,
and the rest consigned to the subordinate tribunals; that the Supreme
Court will possess an appellate jurisdiction, both as to law and fact, in
all the cases referred to them, both subject to any exceptions and
regulations which may be thought advisable; that this appellate
jurisdiction does, in no case, abolish the trial by jury; and that an
ordinary degree of prudence and integrity in the national councils will
insure us solid advantages from the establishment of the proposed
judiciary, without exposing us to any of the inconveniences which have
been predicted from that source.
PUBLIUS
1. Article 3, Sec. 1.
2. This power has been absurdly represented as intended to abolish all the
county courts in the several States, which are commonly called inferior
courts. But the expressions of the Constitution are, to constitute
"tribunals INFERIOR TO THE SUPREME COURT"; and the evident design of the
provision is to enable the institution of local courts, subordinate to the
Supreme, either in States or larger districts. It is ridiculous to imagine
that county courts were in contemplation.
3. This word is composed of JUS and DICTIO, juris dictio or a speaking and
pronouncing of the law.
4. I hold that the States will have concurrent jurisdiction with the
subordinate federal judicatories, in many cases of federal cognizance, as
will be explained in my next paper.
FEDERALIST No. 82. The Judiciary Continued.
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE erection of a new government, whatever care or wisdom may distinguish
the work, cannot fail to originate questions of intricacy and nicety; and
these may, in a particular manner, be expected to flow from the
establishment of a constitution founded upon the total or partial
incorporation of a number of distinct sovereignties. 'Tis time only that
can mature and perfect so compound a system, can liquidate the meaning of
all the parts, and can adjust them to each other in a harmonious and
consistent WHOLE.
Such questions, accordingly, have arisen upon the plan proposed by the
convention, and particularly concerning the judiciary department. The
principal of these respect the situation of the State courts in regard to
those causes which are to be submitted to federal jurisdiction. Is this to
be exclusive, or are those courts to possess a concurrent jurisdiction? If
the latter, in what relation will they stand to the national tribunals?
These are inquiries which we meet with in the mouths of men of sense, and
which are certainly entitled to attention.
The principles established in a former paper(1) teach us that the States
will retain all pre-existing authorities which may not be exclusively
delegated to the federal head; and that this exclusive delegation can only
exist in one of three cases: where an exclusive authority is, in express
terms, granted to the Union; or where a particular authority is granted to
the Union, and the exercise of a like authority is prohibited to the
States; or where an authority is granted to the Union, with which a
similar authority in the States would be utterly incompatible. Though
these principles may not apply with the same force to the judiciary as to
the legislative power, yet I am inclined to think that they are, in the
main, just with respect to the former, as well as the latter. And under
this impression, I shall lay it down as a rule, that the State courts will
retain the jurisdiction they now have, unless it appears to be taken away
in one of the enumerated modes.
The only thing in the proposed Constitution, which wears the appearance of
confining the causes of federal cognizance to the federal courts, is
contained in this passage: "THE JUDICIAL POWER of the United States shall
be vested in one Supreme Court, and in such inferior courts as the
Congress shall from time to time ordain and establish." This might either
be construed to signify, that the supreme and subordinate courts of the
Union should alone have the power of deciding those causes to which their
authority is to extend; or simply to denote, that the organs of the
national judiciary should be one Supreme Court, and as many subordinate
courts as Congress should think proper to appoint; or in other words, that
the United States should exercise the judicial power with which they are
to be invested, through one supreme tribunal, and a certain number of
inferior ones, to be instituted by them. The first excludes, the last
admits, the concurrent jurisdiction of the State tribunals; and as the
first would amount to an alienation of State power by implication, the
last appears to me the most natural and the most defensible construction.
But this doctrine of concurrent jurisdiction is only clearly applicable to
those descriptions of causes of which the State courts have previous
cognizance. It is not equally evident in relation to cases which may grow
out of, and be peculiar to, the Constitution to be established; for not to
allow the State courts a right of jurisdiction in such cases, can hardly
be considered as the abridgment of a pre-existing authority. I mean not
therefore to contend that the United States, in the course of legislation
upon the objects intrusted to their direction, may not commit the decision
of causes arising upon a particular regulation to the federal courts
solely, if such a measure should be deemed expedient; but I hold that the
State courts will be divested of no part of their primitive jurisdiction,
further than may relate to an appeal; and I am even of opinion that in
every case in which they were not expressly excluded by the future acts of
the national legislature, they will of course take cognizance of the
causes to which those acts may give birth. This I infer from the nature of
judiciary power, and from the general genius of the system. The judiciary
power of every government looks beyond its own local or municipal laws,
and in civil cases lays hold of all subjects of litigation between parties
within its jurisdiction, though the causes of dispute are relative to the
laws of the most distant part of the globe. Those of Japan, not less than
of New York, may furnish the objects of legal discussion to our courts.
When in addition to this we consider the State governments and the
national governments, as they truly are, in the light of kindred systems,
and as parts of ONE WHOLE, the inference seems to be conclusive, that the
State courts would have a concurrent jurisdiction in all cases arising
under the laws of the Union, where it was not expressly prohibited.
Here another question occurs: What relation would subsist between the
national and State courts in these instances of concurrent jurisdiction? I
answer, that an appeal would certainly lie from the latter, to the Supreme
Court of the United States. The Constitution in direct terms gives an
appellate jurisdiction to the Supreme Court in all the enumerated cases of
federal cognizance in which it is not to have an original one, without a
single expression to confine its operation to the inferior federal courts.
The objects of appeal, not the tribunals from which it is to be made, are
alone contemplated. From this circumstance, and from the reason of the
thing, it ought to be construed to extend to the State tribunals. Either
this must be the case, or the local courts must be excluded from a
concurrent jurisdiction in matters of national concern, else the judiciary
authority of the Union may be eluded at the pleasure of every plaintiff or
prosecutor. Neither of these consequences ought, without evident
necessity, to be involved; the latter would be entirely inadmissible, as
it would defeat some of the most important and avowed purposes of the
proposed government, and would essentially embarrass its measures. Nor do
I perceive any foundation for such a supposition. Agreeably to the remark
already made, the national and State systems are to be regarded as ONE
WHOLE. The courts of the latter will of course be natural auxiliaries to
the execution of the laws of the Union, and an appeal from them will as
naturally lie to that tribunal which is destined to unite and assimilate
the principles of national justice and the rules of national decisions.
The evident aim of the plan of the convention is, that all the causes of
the specified classes shall, for weighty public reasons, receive their
original or final determination in the courts of the Union. To confine,
therefore, the general expressions giving appellate jurisdiction to the
Supreme Court, to appeals from the subordinate federal courts, instead of
allowing their extension to the State courts, would be to abridge the
latitude of the terms, in subversion of the intent, contrary to every
sound rule of interpretation.
But could an appeal be made to lie from the State courts to the
subordinate federal judicatories? This is another of the questions which
have been raised, and of greater difficulty than the former. The following
considerations countenance the affirmative. The plan of the convention, in
the first place, authorizes the national legislature "to constitute
tribunals inferior to the Supreme Court."(2) It declares, in the next
place, that "the JUDICIAL POWER of the United States shall be vested in
one Supreme Court, and in such inferior courts as Congress shall ordain
and establish"; and it then proceeds to enumerate the cases to which this
judicial power shall extend. It afterwards divides the jurisdiction of the
Supreme Court into original and appellate, but gives no definition of that
of the subordinate courts. The only outlines described for them, are that
they shall be "inferior to the Supreme Court," and that they shall not
exceed the specified limits of the federal judiciary. Whether their
authority shall be original or appellate, or both, is not declared. All
this seems to be left to the discretion of the legislature. And this being
the case, I perceive at present no impediment to the establishment of an
appeal from the State courts to the subordinate national tribunals; and
many advantages attending the power of doing it may be imagined. It would
diminish the motives to the multiplication of federal courts, and would
admit of arrangements calculated to contract the appellate jurisdiction of
the Supreme Court. The State tribunals may then be left with a more entire
charge of federal causes; and appeals, in most cases in which they may be
deemed proper, instead of being carried to the Supreme Court, may be made
to lie from the State courts to district courts of the Union.
PUBLIUS
1. No. 31.
2. Sec. 8, Art. 1.
FEDERALIST No. 83. The Judiciary Continued in Relation to Trial by Jury
From MCLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE objection to the plan of the convention, which has met with most
success in this State, and perhaps in several of the other States, is that
relative to the want of a constitutional provision for the trial by jury
in civil cases. The disingenuous form in which this objection is usually
stated has been repeatedly adverted to and exposed, but continues to be
pursued in all the conversations and writings of the opponents of the
plan. The mere silence of the Constitution in regard to civil causes, is
represented as an abolition of the trial by jury, and the declamations to
which it has afforded a pretext are artfully calculated to induce a
persuasion that this pretended abolition is complete and universal,
extending not only to every species of civil, but even to criminal causes.
To argue with respect to the latter would, however, be as vain and
fruitless as to attempt the serious proof of the existence of matter, or
to demonstrate any of those propositions which, by their own internal
evidence, force conviction, when expressed in language adapted to convey
their meaning.
With regard to civil causes, subtleties almost too contemptible for
refutation have been employed to countenance the surmise that a thing
which is only not provided for, is entirely abolished. Every man of
discernment must at once perceive the wide difference between silence and
abolition. But as the inventors of this fallacy have attempted to support
it by certain legal maxims of interpretation, which they have perverted
from their true meaning, it may not be wholly useless to explore the
ground they have taken.
The maxims on which they rely are of this nature: "A specification of
particulars is an exclusion of generals"; or, "The expression of one thing
is the exclusion of another." Hence, say they, as the Constitution has
established the trial by jury in criminal cases, and is silent in respect
to civil, this silence is an implied prohibition of trial by jury in
regard to the latter.
The rules of legal interpretation are rules of common sense, adopted by
the courts in the construction of the laws. The true test, therefore, of a
just application of them is its conformity to the source from which they
are derived. This being the case, let me ask if it is consistent with
common-sense to suppose that a provision obliging the legislative power to
commit the trial of criminal causes to juries, is a privation of its right
to authorize or permit that mode of trial in other cases? Is it natural to
suppose, that a command to do one thing is a prohibition to the doing of
another, which there was a previous power to do, and which is not
incompatible with the thing commanded to be done? If such a supposition
would be unnatural and unreasonable, it cannot be rational to maintain
that an injunction of the trial by jury in certain cases is an
interdiction of it in others.
A power to constitute courts is a power to prescribe the mode of trial;
and consequently, if nothing was said in the Constitution on the subject
of juries, the legislature would be at liberty either to adopt that
institution or to let it alone. This discretion, in regard to criminal
causes, is abridged by the express injunction of trial by jury in all such
cases; but it is, of course, left at large in relation to civil causes,
there being a total silence on this head. The specification of an
obligation to try all criminal causes in a particular mode, excludes
indeed the obligation or necessity of employing the same mode in civil
causes, but does not abridge the power of the legislature to exercise that
mode if it should be thought proper. The pretense, therefore, that the
national legislature would not be at full liberty to submit all the civil
causes of federal cognizance to the determination of juries, is a pretense
destitute of all just foundation.
From these observations this conclusion results: that the trial by jury in
civil cases would not be abolished; and that the use attempted to be made
of the maxims which have been quoted, is contrary to reason and
common-sense, and therefore not admissible. Even if these maxims had a
precise technical sense, corresponding with the idea of those who employ
them upon the present occasion, which, however, is not the case, they
would still be inapplicable to a constitution of government. In relation
to such a subject, the natural and obvious sense of its provisions, apart
from any technical rules, is the true criterion of construction.
Having now seen that the maxims relied upon will not bear the use made of
them, let us endeavor to ascertain their proper use and true meaning. This
will be best done by examples. The plan of the convention declares that
the power of Congress, or, in other words, of the national legislature,
shall extend to certain enumerated cases. This specification of
particulars evidently excludes all pretension to a general legislative
authority, because an affirmative grant of special powers would be absurd,
as well as useless, if a general authority was intended.
In like manner the judicial authority of the federal judicatures is
declared by the Constitution to comprehend certain cases particularly
specified. The expression of those cases marks the precise limits, beyond
which the federal courts cannot extend their jurisdiction, because the
objects of their cognizance being enumerated, the specification would be
nugatory if it did not exclude all ideas of more extensive authority.
These examples are sufficient to elucidate the maxims which have been
mentioned, and to designate the manner in which they should be used. But
that there may be no misapprehensions upon this subject, I shall add one
case more, to demonstrate the proper use of these maxims, and the abuse
which has been made of them.
Let us suppose that by the laws of this State a married woman was
incapable of conveying her estate, and that the legislature, considering
this as an evil, should enact that she might dispose of her property by
deed executed in the presence of a magistrate. In such a case there can be
no doubt but the specification would amount to an exclusion of any other
mode of conveyance, because the woman having no previous power to alienate
her property, the specification determines the particular mode which she
is, for that purpose, to avail herself of. But let us further suppose that
in a subsequent part of the same act it should be declared that no woman
should dispose of any estate of a determinate value without the consent of
three of her nearest relations, signified by their signing the deed; could
it be inferred from this regulation that a married woman might not procure
the approbation of her relations to a deed for conveying property of
inferior value? The position is too absurd to merit a refutation, and yet
this is precisely the position which those must establish who contend that
the trial by juries in civil cases is abolished, because it is expressly
provided for in cases of a criminal nature.
From these observations it must appear unquestionably true, that trial by
jury is in no case abolished by the proposed Constitution, and it is
equally true, that in those controversies between individuals in which the
great body of the people are likely to be interested, that institution
will remain precisely in the same situation in which it is placed by the
State constitutions, and will be in no degree altered or influenced by the
adoption of the plan under consideration. The foundation of this assertion
is, that the national judiciary will have no cognizance of them, and of
course they will remain determinable as heretofore by the State courts
only, and in the manner which the State constitutions and laws prescribe.
All land causes, except where claims under the grants of different States
come into question, and all other controversies between the citizens of
the same State, unless where they depend upon positive violations of the
articles of union, by acts of the State legislatures, will belong
exclusively to the jurisdiction of the State tribunals. Add to this, that
admiralty causes, and almost all those which are of equity jurisdiction,
are determinable under our own government without the intervention of a
jury, and the inference from the whole will be, that this institution, as
it exists with us at present, cannot possibly be affected to any great
extent by the proposed alteration in our system of government.
The friends and adversaries of the plan of the convention, if they agree
in nothing else, concur at least in the value they set upon the trial by
jury; or if there is any difference between them it consists in this: the
former regard it as a valuable safeguard to liberty; the latter represent
it as the very palladium of free government. For my own part, the more the
operation of the institution has fallen under my observation, the more
reason I have discovered for holding it in high estimation; and it would
be altogether superfluous to examine to what extent it deserves to be
esteemed useful or essential in a representative republic, or how much
more merit it may be entitled to, as a defense against the oppressions of
an hereditary monarch, than as a barrier to the tyranny of popular
magistrates in a popular government. Discussions of this kind would be
more curious than beneficial, as all are satisfied of the utility of the
institution, and of its friendly aspect to liberty. But I must acknowledge
that I cannot readily discern the inseparable connection between the
existence of liberty, and the trial by jury in civil cases. Arbitrary
impeachments, arbitrary methods of prosecuting pretended offenses, and
arbitrary punishments upon arbitrary convictions, have ever appeared to me
to be the great engines of judicial despotism; and these have all relation
to criminal proceedings. The trial by jury in criminal cases, aided by the
habeas corpus act, seems therefore to be alone concerned in the question.
And both of these are provided for, in the most ample manner, in the plan
of the convention.
It has been observed, that trial by jury is a safeguard against an
oppressive exercise of the power of taxation. This observation deserves to
be canvassed.
It is evident that it can have no influence upon the legislature, in
regard to the amount of taxes to be laid, to the objects upon which they
are to be imposed, or to the rule by which they are to be apportioned. If
it can have any influence, therefore, it must be upon the mode of
collection, and the conduct of the officers intrusted with the execution
of the revenue laws.
As to the mode of collection in this State, under our own Constitution,
the trial by jury is in most cases out of use. The taxes are usually
levied by the more summary proceeding of distress and sale, as in cases of
rent. And it is acknowledged on all hands, that this is essential to the
efficacy of the revenue laws. The dilatory course of a trial at law to
recover the taxes imposed on individuals, would neither suit the
exigencies of the public nor promote the convenience of the citizens. It
would often occasion an accumulation of costs, more burdensome than the
original sum of the tax to be levied.
And as to the conduct of the officers of the revenue, the provision in
favor of trial by jury in criminal cases, will afford the security aimed
at. Wilful abuses of a public authority, to the oppression of the subject,
and every species of official extortion, are offenses against the
government, for which the persons who commit them may be indicted and
punished according to the circumstances of the case.
The excellence of the trial by jury in civil cases appears to depend on
circumstances foreign to the preservation of liberty. The strongest
argument in its favor is, that it is a security against corruption. As
there is always more time and better opportunity to tamper with a standing
body of magistrates than with a jury summoned for the occasion, there is
room to suppose that a corrupt influence would more easily find its way to
the former than to the latter. The force of this consideration is,
however, diminished by others. The sheriff, who is the summoner of
ordinary juries, and the clerks of courts, who have the nomination of
special juries, are themselves standing officers, and, acting
individually, may be supposed more accessible to the touch of corruption
than the judges, who are a collective body. It is not difficult to see,
that it would be in the power of those officers to select jurors who would
serve the purpose of the party as well as a corrupted bench. In the next
place, it may fairly be supposed, that there would be less difficulty in
gaining some of the jurors promiscuously taken from the public mass, than
in gaining men who had been chosen by the government for their probity and
good character. But making every deduction for these considerations, the
trial by jury must still be a valuable check upon corruption. It greatly
multiplies the impediments to its success. As matters now stand, it would
be necessary to corrupt both court and jury; for where the jury have gone
evidently wrong, the court will generally grant a new trial, and it would
be in most cases of little use to practice upon the jury, unless the court
could be likewise gained. Here then is a double security; and it will
readily be perceived that this complicated agency tends to preserve the
purity of both institutions. By increasing the obstacles to success, it
discourages attempts to seduce the integrity of either. The temptations to
prostitution which the judges might have to surmount, must certainly be
much fewer, while the co-operation of a jury is necessary, than they might
be, if they had themselves the exclusive determination of all causes.
Notwithstanding, therefore, the doubts I have expressed, as to the
essentiality of trial by jury in civil cases to liberty, I admit that it
is in most cases, under proper regulations, an excellent method of
determining questions of property; and that on this account alone it would
be entitled to a constitutional provision in its favor if it were possible
to fix the limits within which it ought to be comprehended. There is,
however, in all cases, great difficulty in this; and men not blinded by
enthusiasm must be sensible that in a federal government, which is a
composition of societies whose ideas and institutions in relation to the
matter materially vary from each other, that difficulty must be not a
little augmented. For my own part, at every new view I take of the
subject, I become more convinced of the reality of the obstacles which, we
are authoritatively informed, prevented the insertion of a provision on
this head in the plan of the convention.
The great difference between the limits of the jury trial in different
States is not generally understood; and as it must have considerable
influence on the sentence we ought to pass upon the omission complained of
in regard to this point, an explanation of it is necessary. In this State,
our judicial establishments resemble, more nearly than in any other, those
of Great Britain. We have courts of common law, courts of probates
(analogous in certain matters to the spiritual courts in England), a court
of admiralty and a court of chancery. In the courts of common law only,
the trial by jury prevails, and this with some exceptions. In all the
others a single judge presides, and proceeds in general either according
to the course of the canon or civil law, without the aid of a jury.(1) In
New Jersey, there is a court of chancery which proceeds like ours, but
neither courts of admiralty nor of probates, in the sense in which these
last are established with us. In that State the courts of common law have
the cognizance of those causes which with us are determinable in the
courts of admiralty and of probates, and of course the jury trial is more
extensive in New Jersey than in New York. In Pennsylvania, this is perhaps
still more the case, for there is no court of chancery in that State, and
its common-law courts have equity jurisdiction. It has a court of
admiralty, but none of probates, at least on the plan of ours. Delaware
has in these respects imitated Pennsylvania. Maryland approaches more
nearly to New York, as does also Virginia, except that the latter has a
plurality of chancellors. North Carolina bears most affinity to
Pennsylvania; South Carolina to Virginia. I believe, however, that in some
of those States which have distinct courts of admiralty, the causes
depending in them are triable by juries. In Georgia there are none but
common-law courts, and an appeal of course lies from the verdict of one
jury to another, which is called a special jury, and for which a
particular mode of appointment is marked out. In Connecticut, they have no
distinct courts either of chancery or of admiralty, and their courts of
probates have no jurisdiction of causes. Their common-law courts have
admiralty and, to a certain extent, equity jurisdiction. In cases of
importance, their General Assembly is the only court of chancery. In
Connecticut, therefore, the trial by jury extends in practice further than
in any other State yet mentioned. Rhode Island is, I believe, in this
particular, pretty much in the situation of Connecticut. Massachusetts and
New Hampshire, in regard to the blending of law, equity, and admiralty
jurisdictions, are in a similar predicament. In the four Eastern States,
the trial by jury not only stands upon a broader foundation than in the
other States, but it is attended with a peculiarity unknown, in its full
extent, to any of them. There is an appeal of course from one jury to
another, till there have been two verdicts out of three on one side.
From this sketch it appears that there is a material diversity, as well in
the modification as in the extent of the institution of trial by jury in
civil cases, in the several States; and from this fact these obvious
reflections flow: first, that no general rule could have been fixed upon
by the convention which would have corresponded with the circumstances of
all the States; and secondly, that more or at least as much might have
been hazarded by taking the system of any one State for a standard, as by
omitting a provision altogether and leaving the matter, as has been done,
to legislative regulation.
The propositions which have been made for supplying the omission have
rather served to illustrate than to obviate the difficulty of the thing.
The minority of Pennsylvania have proposed this mode of expression for the
purpose—"Trial by jury shall be as heretofore"—and this I
maintain would be senseless and nugatory. The United States, in their
united or collective capacity, are the OBJECT to which all general
provisions in the Constitution must necessarily be construed to refer. Now
it is evident that though trial by jury, with various limitations, is
known in each State individually, yet in the United States, as such, it is
at this time altogether unknown, because the present federal government
has no judiciary power whatever; and consequently there is no proper
antecedent or previous establishment to which the term heretofore could
relate. It would therefore be destitute of a precise meaning, and
inoperative from its uncertainty.
As, on the one hand, the form of the provision would not fulfil the intent
of its proposers, so, on the other, if I apprehend that intent rightly, it
would be in itself inexpedient. I presume it to be, that causes in the
federal courts should be tried by jury, if, in the State where the courts
sat, that mode of trial would obtain in a similar case in the State
courts; that is to say, admiralty causes should be tried in Connecticut by
a jury, in New York without one. The capricious operation of so dissimilar
a method of trial in the same cases, under the same government, is of
itself sufficient to indispose every wellregulated judgment towards it.
Whether the cause should be tried with or without a jury, would depend, in
a great number of cases, on the accidental situation of the court and
parties.
But this is not, in my estimation, the greatest objection. I feel a deep
and deliberate conviction that there are many cases in which the trial by
jury is an ineligible one. I think it so particularly in cases which
concern the public peace with foreign nations—that is, in most cases
where the question turns wholly on the laws of nations. Of this nature,
among others, are all prize causes. Juries cannot be supposed competent to
investigations that require a thorough knowledge of the laws and usages of
nations; and they will sometimes be under the influence of impressions
which will not suffer them to pay sufficient regard to those
considerations of public policy which ought to guide their inquiries.
There would of course be always danger that the rights of other nations
might be infringed by their decisions, so as to afford occasions of
reprisal and war. Though the proper province of juries be to determine
matters of fact, yet in most cases legal consequences are complicated with
fact in such a manner as to render a separation impracticable.
It will add great weight to this remark, in relation to prize causes, to
mention that the method of determining them has been thought worthy of
particular regulation in various treaties between different powers of
Europe, and that, pursuant to such treaties, they are determinable in
Great Britain, in the last resort, before the king himself, in his privy
council, where the fact, as well as the law, undergoes a re-examination.
This alone demonstrates the impolicy of inserting a fundamental provision
in the Constitution which would make the State systems a standard for the
national government in the article under consideration, and the danger of
encumbering the government with any constitutional provisions the
propriety of which is not indisputable.
My convictions are equally strong that great advantages result from the
separation of the equity from the law jurisdiction, and that the causes
which belong to the former would be improperly committed to juries. The
great and primary use of a court of equity is to give relief in
extraordinary cases, which are exceptions(2) to general rules. To unite
the jurisdiction of such cases with the ordinary jurisdiction, must have a
tendency to unsettle the general rules, and to subject every case that
arises to a special determination; while a separation of the one from the
other has the contrary effect of rendering one a sentinel over the other,
and of keeping each within the expedient limits. Besides this, the
circumstances that constitute cases proper for courts of equity are in
many instances so nice and intricate, that they are incompatible with the
genius of trials by jury. They require often such long, deliberate, and
critical investigation as would be impracticable to men called from their
occupations, and obliged to decide before they were permitted to return to
them. The simplicity and expedition which form the distinguishing
characters of this mode of trial require that the matter to be decided
should be reduced to some single and obvious point; while the litigations
usual in chancery frequently comprehend a long train of minute and
independent particulars.
It is true that the separation of the equity from the legal jurisdiction
is peculiar to the English system of jurisprudence: which is the model
that has been followed in several of the States. But it is equally true
that the trial by jury has been unknown in every case in which they have
been united. And the separation is essential to the preservation of that
institution in its pristine purity. The nature of a court of equity will
readily permit the extension of its jurisdiction to matters of law; but it
is not a little to be suspected, that the attempt to extend the
jurisdiction of the courts of law to matters of equity will not only be
unproductive of the advantages which may be derived from courts of
chancery, on the plan upon which they are established in this State, but
will tend gradually to change the nature of the courts of law, and to
undermine the trial by jury, by introducing questions too complicated for
a decision in that mode.
These appeared to be conclusive reasons against incorporating the systems
of all the States, in the formation of the national judiciary, according
to what may be conjectured to have been the attempt of the Pennsylvania
minority. Let us now examine how far the proposition of Massachusetts is
calculated to remedy the supposed defect.
It is in this form: "In civil actions between citizens of different
States, every issue of fact, arising in actions at common law, may be
tried by a jury if the parties, or either of them request it."
This, at best, is a proposition confined to one description of causes; and
the inference is fair, either that the Massachusetts convention considered
that as the only class of federal causes, in which the trial by jury would
be proper; or that if desirous of a more extensive provision, they found
it impracticable to devise one which would properly answer the end. If the
first, the omission of a regulation respecting so partial an object can
never be considered as a material imperfection in the system. If the last,
it affords a strong corroboration of the extreme difficulty of the thing.
But this is not all: if we advert to the observations already made
respecting the courts that subsist in the several States of the Union, and
the different powers exercised by them, it will appear that there are no
expressions more vague and indeterminate than those which have been
employed to characterize that species of causes which it is intended shall
be entitled to a trial by jury. In this State, the boundaries between
actions at common law and actions of equitable jurisdiction, are
ascertained in conformity to the rules which prevail in England upon that
subject. In many of the other States the boundaries are less precise. In
some of them every cause is to be tried in a court of common law, and upon
that foundation every action may be considered as an action at common law,
to be determined by a jury, if the parties, or either of them, choose it.
Hence the same irregularity and confusion would be introduced by a
compliance with this proposition, that I have already noticed as resulting
from the regulation proposed by the Pennsylvania minority. In one State a
cause would receive its determination from a jury, if the parties, or
either of them, requested it; but in another State, a cause exactly
similar to the other, must be decided without the intervention of a jury,
because the State judicatories varied as to common-law jurisdiction.
It is obvious, therefore, that the Massachusetts proposition, upon this
subject cannot operate as a general regulation, until some uniform plan,
with respect to the limits of common-law and equitable jurisdictions,
shall be adopted by the different States. To devise a plan of that kind is
a task arduous in itself, and which it would require much time and
reflection to mature. It would be extremely difficult, if not impossible,
to suggest any general regulation that would be acceptable to all the
States in the Union, or that would perfectly quadrate with the several
State institutions.
It may be asked, Why could not a reference have been made to the
constitution of this State, taking that, which is allowed by me to be a
good one, as a standard for the United States? I answer that it is not
very probable the other States would entertain the same opinion of our
institutions as we do ourselves. It is natural to suppose that they are
hitherto more attached to their own, and that each would struggle for the
preference. If the plan of taking one State as a model for the whole had
been thought of in the convention, it is to be presumed that the adoption
of it in that body would have been rendered difficult by the predilection
of each representation in favor of its own government; and it must be
uncertain which of the States would have been taken as the model. It has
been shown that many of them would be improper ones. And I leave it to
conjecture, whether, under all circumstances, it is most likely that New
York, or some other State, would have been preferred. But admit that a
judicious selection could have been effected in the convention, still
there would have been great danger of jealousy and disgust in the other
States, at the partiality which had been shown to the institutions of one.
The enemies of the plan would have been furnished with a fine pretext for
raising a host of local prejudices against it, which perhaps might have
hazarded, in no inconsiderable degree, its final establishment.
To avoid the embarrassments of a definition of the cases which the trial
by jury ought to embrace, it is sometimes suggested by men of enthusiastic
tempers, that a provision might have been inserted for establishing it in
all cases whatsoever. For this I believe, no precedent is to be found in
any member of the Union; and the considerations which have been stated in
discussing the proposition of the minority of Pennsylvania, must satisfy
every sober mind that the establishment of the trial by jury in all cases
would have been an unpardonable error in the plan.
In short, the more it is considered the more arduous will appear the task
of fashioning a provision in such a form as not to express too little to
answer the purpose, or too much to be advisable; or which might not have
opened other sources of opposition to the great and essential object of
introducing a firm national government.
I cannot but persuade myself, on the other hand, that the different lights
in which the subject has been placed in the course of these observations,
will go far towards removing in candid minds the apprehensions they may
have entertained on the point. They have tended to show that the security
of liberty is materially concerned only in the trial by jury in criminal
cases, which is provided for in the most ample manner in the plan of the
convention; that even in far the greatest proportion of civil cases, and
those in which the great body of the community is interested, that mode of
trial will remain in its full force, as established in the State
constitutions, untouched and unaffected by the plan of the convention;
that it is in no case abolished(3) by that plan; and that there are great
if not insurmountable difficulties in the way of making any precise and
proper provision for it in a Constitution for the United States.
The best judges of the matter will be the least anxious for a
constitutional establishment of the trial by jury in civil cases, and will
be the most ready to admit that the changes which are continually
happening in the affairs of society may render a different mode of
determining questions of property preferable in many cases in which that
mode of trial now prevails. For my part, I acknowledge myself to be
convinced that even in this State it might be advantageously extended to
some cases to which it does not at present apply, and might as
advantageously be abridged in others. It is conceded by all reasonable men
that it ought not to obtain in all cases. The examples of innovations
which contract its ancient limits, as well in these States as in Great
Britain, afford a strong presumption that its former extent has been found
inconvenient, and give room to suppose that future experience may discover
the propriety and utility of other exceptions. I suspect it to be
impossible in the nature of the thing to fix the salutary point at which
the operation of the institution ought to stop, and this is with me a
strong argument for leaving the matter to the discretion of the
legislature.
This is now clearly understood to be the case in Great Britain, and it is
equally so in the State of Connecticut; and yet it may be safely affirmed
that more numerous encroachments have been made upon the trial by jury in
this State since the Revolution, though provided for by a positive article
of our constitution, than has happened in the same time either in
Connecticut or Great Britain. It may be added that these encroachments
have generally originated with the men who endeavor to persuade the people
they are the warmest defenders of popular liberty, but who have rarely
suffered constitutional obstacles to arrest them in a favorite career. The
truth is that the general GENIUS of a government is all that can be
substantially relied upon for permanent effects. Particular provisions,
though not altogether useless, have far less virtue and efficacy than are
commonly ascribed to them; and the want of them will never be, with men of
sound discernment, a decisive objection to any plan which exhibits the
leading characters of a good government.
It certainly sounds not a little harsh and extraordinary to affirm that
there is no security for liberty in a Constitution which expressly
establishes the trial by jury in criminal cases, because it does not do it
in civil also; while it is a notorious fact that Connecticut, which has
been always regarded as the most popular State in the Union, can boast of
no constitutional provision for either.
PUBLIUS
1. It has been erroneously insinuated with regard to the court of
chancery, that this court generally tries disputed facts by a jury. The
truth is, that references to a jury in that court rarely happen, and are
in no case necessary but where the validity of a devise of land comes into
question.
2. It is true that the principles by which that relief is governed are now
reduced to a regular system; but it is not the less true that they are in
the main applicable to SPECIAL circumstances, which form exceptions to
general rules.
3. Vide No. 81, in which the supposition of its being abolished by the
appellate jurisdiction in matters of fact being vested in the Supreme
Court, is examined and refuted.
FEDERALIST No. 84. Certain General and Miscellaneous Objections to the
Constitution Considered and Answered.
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN THE course of the foregoing review of the Constitution, I have taken
notice of, and endeavored to answer most of the objections which have
appeared against it. There, however, remain a few which either did not
fall naturally under any particular head or were forgotten in their proper
places. These shall now be discussed; but as the subject has been drawn
into great length, I shall so far consult brevity as to comprise all my
observations on these miscellaneous points in a single paper.
The most considerable of the remaining objections is that the plan of the
convention contains no bill of rights. Among other answers given to this,
it has been upon different occasions remarked that the constitutions of
several of the States are in a similar predicament. I add that New York is
of the number. And yet the opposers of the new system, in this State, who
profess an unlimited admiration for its constitution, are among the most
intemperate partisans of a bill of rights. To justify their zeal in this
matter, they allege two things: one is that, though the constitution of
New York has no bill of rights prefixed to it, yet it contains, in the
body of it, various provisions in favor of particular privileges and
rights, which, in substance amount to the same thing; the other is, that
the Constitution adopts, in their full extent, the common and statute law
of Great Britain, by which many other rights, not expressed in it, are
equally secured.
To the first I answer, that the Constitution proposed by the convention
contains, as well as the constitution of this State, a number of such
provisions.
Independent of those which relate to the structure of the government, we
find the following: Article 1, section 3, clause 7—"Judgment in
cases of impeachment shall not extend further than to removal from office,
and disqualification to hold and enjoy any office of honor, trust, or
profit under the United States; but the party convicted shall,
nevertheless, be liable and subject to indictment, trial, judgment, and
punishment according to law." Section 9, of the same article, clause 2—"The
privilege of the writ of habeas corpus shall not be suspended, unless when
in cases of rebellion or invasion the public safety may require it."
Clause 3—"No bill of attainder or ex-post-facto law shall be
passed." Clause 7—"No title of nobility shall be granted by the
United States; and no person holding any office of profit or trust under
them, shall, without the consent of the Congress, accept of any present,
emolument, office, or title of any kind whatever, from any king, prince,
or foreign state." Article 3, section 2, clause 3—"The trial of all
crimes, except in cases of impeachment, shall be by jury; and such trial
shall be held in the State where the said crimes shall have been
committed; but when not committed within any State, the trial shall be at
such place or places as the Congress may by law have directed." Section 3,
of the same article—"Treason against the United States shall consist
only in levying war against them, or in adhering to their enemies, giving
them aid and comfort. No person shall be convicted of treason, unless on
the testimony of two witnesses to the same overt act, or on confession in
open court." And clause 3, of the same section—"The Congress shall
have power to declare the punishment of treason; but no attainder of
treason shall work corruption of blood, or forfeiture, except during the
life of the person attainted."
It may well be a question, whether these are not, upon the whole, of equal
importance with any which are to be found in the constitution of this
State. The establishment of the writ of habeas corpus, the prohibition of
ex post facto laws, and of TITLES OF NOBILITY, to which we have no
corresponding provision in our Constitution, are perhaps greater
securities to liberty and republicanism than any it contains. The creation
of crimes after the commission of the fact, or, in other words, the
subjecting of men to punishment for things which, when they were done,
were breaches of no law, and the practice of arbitrary imprisonments, have
been, in all ages, the favorite and most formidable instruments of
tyranny. The observations of the judicious Blackstone,(1) in reference to
the latter, are well worthy of recital: "To bereave a man of life, (says
he) or by violence to confiscate his estate, without accusation or trial,
would be so gross and notorious an act of despotism, as must at once
convey the alarm of tyranny throughout the whole nation; but confinement
of the person, by secretly hurrying him to jail, where his sufferings are
unknown or forgotten, is a less public, a less striking, and therefore a
more dangerous engine of arbitrary government." And as a remedy for this
fatal evil he is everywhere peculiarly emphatical in his encomiums on the
habeas corpus act, which in one place he calls "the BULWARK of the British
Constitution."(2)
Nothing need be said to illustrate the importance of the prohibition of
titles of nobility. This may truly be denominated the corner-stone of
republican government; for so long as they are excluded, there can never
be serious danger that the government will be any other than that of the
people.
To the second that is, to the pretended establishment of the common and
state law by the Constitution, I answer, that they are expressly made
subject "to such alterations and provisions as the legislature shall from
time to time make concerning the same." They are therefore at any moment
liable to repeal by the ordinary legislative power, and of course have no
constitutional sanction. The only use of the declaration was to recognize
the ancient law and to remove doubts which might have been occasioned by
the Revolution. This consequently can be considered as no part of a
declaration of rights, which under our constitutions must be intended as
limitations of the power of the government itself.
It has been several times truly remarked that bills of rights are, in
their origin, stipulations between kings and their subjects, abridgements
of prerogative in favor of privilege, reservations of rights not
surrendered to the prince. Such was MAGNA CHARTA, obtained by the barons,
sword in hand, from King John. Such were the subsequent confirmations of
that charter by succeeding princes. Such was the Petition of Right
assented to by Charles I., in the beginning of his reign. Such, also, was
the Declaration of Right presented by the Lords and Commons to the Prince
of Orange in 1688, and afterwards thrown into the form of an act of
parliament called the Bill of Rights. It is evident, therefore, that,
according to their primitive signification, they have no application to
constitutions professedly founded upon the power of the people, and
executed by their immediate representatives and servants. Here, in
strictness, the people surrender nothing; and as they retain every thing
they have no need of particular reservations. "WE, THE PEOPLE of the
United States, to secure the blessings of liberty to ourselves and our
posterity, do ordain and establish this Constitution for the United States
of America." Here is a better recognition of popular rights, than volumes
of those aphorisms which make the principal figure in several of our State
bills of rights, and which would sound much better in a treatise of ethics
than in a constitution of government.
But a minute detail of particular rights is certainly far less applicable
to a Constitution like that under consideration, which is merely intended
to regulate the general political interests of the nation, than to a
constitution which has the regulation of every species of personal and
private concerns. If, therefore, the loud clamors against the plan of the
convention, on this score, are well founded, no epithets of reprobation
will be too strong for the constitution of this State. But the truth is,
that both of them contain all which, in relation to their objects, is
reasonably to be desired.
I go further, and affirm that bills of rights, in the sense and to the
extent in which they are contended for, are not only unnecessary in the
proposed Constitution, but would even be dangerous. They would contain
various exceptions to powers not granted; and, on this very account, would
afford a colorable pretext to claim more than were granted. For why
declare that things shall not be done which there is no power to do? Why,
for instance, should it be said that the liberty of the press shall not be
restrained, when no power is given by which restrictions may be imposed? I
will not contend that such a provision would confer a regulating power;
but it is evident that it would furnish, to men disposed to usurp, a
plausible pretense for claiming that power. They might urge with a
semblance of reason, that the Constitution ought not to be charged with
the absurdity of providing against the abuse of an authority which was not
given, and that the provision against restraining the liberty of the press
afforded a clear implication, that a power to prescribe proper regulations
concerning it was intended to be vested in the national government. This
may serve as a specimen of the numerous handles which would be given to
the doctrine of constructive powers, by the indulgence of an injudicious
zeal for bills of rights.
On the subject of the liberty of the press, as much as has been said, I
cannot forbear adding a remark or two: in the first place, I observe, that
there is not a syllable concerning it in the constitution of this State;
in the next, I contend, that whatever has been said about it in that of
any other State, amounts to nothing. What signifies a declaration, that
"the liberty of the press shall be inviolably preserved"? What is the
liberty of the press? Who can give it any definition which would not leave
the utmost latitude for evasion? I hold it to be impracticable; and from
this I infer, that its security, whatever fine declarations may be
inserted in any constitution respecting it, must altogether depend on
public opinion, and on the general spirit of the people and of the
government.(3) And here, after all, as is intimated upon another occasion,
must we seek for the only solid basis of all our rights.
There remains but one other view of this matter to conclude the point. The
truth is, after all the declamations we have heard, that the Constitution
is itself, in every rational sense, and to every useful purpose, A BILL OF
RIGHTS. The several bills of rights in Great Britain form its
Constitution, and conversely the constitution of each State is its bill of
rights. And the proposed Constitution, if adopted, will be the bill of
rights of the Union. Is it one object of a bill of rights to declare and
specify the political privileges of the citizens in the structure and
administration of the government? This is done in the most ample and
precise manner in the plan of the convention; comprehending various
precautions for the public security, which are not to be found in any of
the State constitutions. Is another object of a bill of rights to define
certain immunities and modes of proceeding, which are relative to personal
and private concerns? This we have seen has also been attended to, in a
variety of cases, in the same plan. Adverting therefore to the substantial
meaning of a bill of rights, it is absurd to allege that it is not to be
found in the work of the convention. It may be said that it does not go
far enough, though it will not be easy to make this appear; but it can
with no propriety be contended that there is no such thing. It certainly
must be immaterial what mode is observed as to the order of declaring the
rights of the citizens, if they are to be found in any part of the
instrument which establishes the government. And hence it must be
apparent, that much of what has been said on this subject rests merely on
verbal and nominal distinctions, entirely foreign from the substance of
the thing.
Another objection which has been made, and which, from the frequency of
its repetition, it is to be presumed is relied on, is of this nature: "It
is improper (say the objectors) to confer such large powers, as are
proposed, upon the national government, because the seat of that
government must of necessity be too remote from many of the States to
admit of a proper knowledge on the part of the constituent, of the conduct
of the representative body." This argument, if it proves any thing, proves
that there ought to be no general government whatever. For the powers
which, it seems to be agreed on all hands, ought to be vested in the
Union, cannot be safely intrusted to a body which is not under every
requisite control. But there are satisfactory reasons to show that the
objection is in reality not well founded. There is in most of the
arguments which relate to distance a palpable illusion of the imagination.
What are the sources of information by which the people in Montgomery
County must regulate their judgment of the conduct of their
representatives in the State legislature? Of personal observation they can
have no benefit. This is confined to the citizens on the spot. They must
therefore depend on the information of intelligent men, in whom they
confide; and how must these men obtain their information? Evidently from
the complexion of public measures, from the public prints, from
correspondences with their representatives, and with other persons who
reside at the place of their deliberations. This does not apply to
Montgomery County only, but to all the counties at any considerable
distance from the seat of government.
It is equally evident that the same sources of information would be open
to the people in relation to the conduct of their representatives in the
general government, and the impediments to a prompt communication which
distance may be supposed to create, will be overbalanced by the effects of
the vigilance of the State governments. The executive and legislative
bodies of each State will be so many sentinels over the persons employed
in every department of the national administration; and as it will be in
their power to adopt and pursue a regular and effectual system of
intelligence, they can never be at a loss to know the behavior of those
who represent their constituents in the national councils, and can readily
communicate the same knowledge to the people. Their disposition to apprise
the community of whatever may prejudice its interests from another
quarter, may be relied upon, if it were only from the rivalship of power.
And we may conclude with the fullest assurance that the people, through
that channel, will be better informed of the conduct of their national
representatives, than they can be by any means they now possess of that of
their State representatives.
It ought also to be remembered that the citizens who inhabit the country
at and near the seat of government will, in all questions that affect the
general liberty and prosperity, have the same interest with those who are
at a distance, and that they will stand ready to sound the alarm when
necessary, and to point out the actors in any pernicious project. The
public papers will be expeditious messengers of intelligence to the most
remote inhabitants of the Union.
Among the many curious objections which have appeared against the proposed
Constitution, the most extraordinary and the least colorable is derived
from the want of some provision respecting the debts due to the United
States. This has been represented as a tacit relinquishment of those
debts, and as a wicked contrivance to screen public defaulters. The
newspapers have teemed with the most inflammatory railings on this head;
yet there is nothing clearer than that the suggestion is entirely void of
foundation, the offspring of extreme ignorance or extreme dishonesty. In
addition to the remarks I have made upon the subject in another place, I
shall only observe that as it is a plain dictate of common-sense, so it is
also an established doctrine of political law, that "States neither lose
any of their rights, nor are discharged from any of their obligations, by
a change in the form of their civil government."(4)
The last objection of any consequence, which I at present recollect, turns
upon the article of expense. If it were even true, that the adoption of
the proposed government would occasion a considerable increase of expense,
it would be an objection that ought to have no weight against the plan.
The great bulk of the citizens of America are with reason convinced, that
Union is the basis of their political happiness. Men of sense of all
parties now, with few exceptions, agree that it cannot be preserved under
the present system, nor without radical alterations; that new and
extensive powers ought to be granted to the national head, and that these
require a different organization of the federal government—a single
body being an unsafe depositary of such ample authorities. In conceding
all this, the question of expense must be given up; for it is impossible,
with any degree of safety, to narrow the foundation upon which the system
is to stand. The two branches of the legislature are, in the first
instance, to consist of only sixty-five persons, which is the same number
of which Congress, under the existing Confederation, may be composed. It
is true that this number is intended to be increased; but this is to keep
pace with the progress of the population and resources of the country. It
is evident that a less number would, even in the first instance, have been
unsafe, and that a continuance of the present number would, in a more
advanced stage of population, be a very inadequate representation of the
people.
Whence is the dreaded augmentation of expense to spring? One source
indicated, is the multiplication of offices under the new government. Let
us examine this a little.
It is evident that the principal departments of the administration under
the present government, are the same which will be required under the new.
There are now a Secretary of War, a Secretary of Foreign Affairs, a
Secretary for Domestic Affairs, a Board of Treasury, consisting of three
persons, a Treasurer, assistants, clerks, etc. These officers are
indispensable under any system, and will suffice under the new as well as
the old. As to ambassadors and other ministers and agents in foreign
countries, the proposed Constitution can make no other difference than to
render their characters, where they reside, more respectable, and their
services more useful. As to persons to be employed in the collection of
the revenues, it is unquestionably true that these will form a very
considerable addition to the number of federal officers; but it will not
follow that this will occasion an increase of public expense. It will be
in most cases nothing more than an exchange of State for national
officers. In the collection of all duties, for instance, the persons
employed will be wholly of the latter description. The States individually
will stand in no need of any for this purpose. What difference can it make
in point of expense to pay officers of the customs appointed by the State
or by the United States? There is no good reason to suppose that either
the number or the salaries of the latter will be greater than those of the
former.
Where then are we to seek for those additional articles of expense which
are to swell the account to the enormous size that has been represented to
us? The chief item which occurs to me respects the support of the judges
of the United States. I do not add the President, because there is now a
president of Congress, whose expenses may not be far, if any thing, short
of those which will be incurred on account of the President of the United
States. The support of the judges will clearly be an extra expense, but to
what extent will depend on the particular plan which may be adopted in
regard to this matter. But upon no reasonable plan can it amount to a sum
which will be an object of material consequence.
Let us now see what there is to counterbalance any extra expense that may
attend the establishment of the proposed government. The first thing which
presents itself is that a great part of the business which now keeps
Congress sitting through the year will be transacted by the President.
Even the management of foreign negotiations will naturally devolve upon
him, according to general principles concerted with the Senate, and
subject to their final concurrence. Hence it is evident that a portion of
the year will suffice for the session of both the Senate and the House of
Representatives; we may suppose about a fourth for the latter and a third,
or perhaps half, for the former. The extra business of treaties and
appointments may give this extra occupation to the Senate. From this
circumstance we may infer that, until the House of Representatives shall
be increased greatly beyond its present number, there will be a
considerable saving of expense from the difference between the constant
session of the present and the temporary session of the future Congress.
But there is another circumstance of great importance in the view of
economy. The business of the United States has hitherto occupied the State
legislatures, as well as Congress. The latter has made requisitions which
the former have had to provide for. Hence it has happened that the
sessions of the State legislatures have been protracted greatly beyond
what was necessary for the execution of the mere local business of the
States. More than half their time has been frequently employed in matters
which related to the United States. Now the members who compose the
legislatures of the several States amount to two thousand and upwards,
which number has hitherto performed what under the new system will be done
in the first instance by sixty-five persons, and probably at no future
period by above a fourth or fifth of that number. The Congress under the
proposed government will do all the business of the United States
themselves, without the intervention of the State legislatures, who
thenceforth will have only to attend to the affairs of their particular
States, and will not have to sit in any proportion as long as they have
heretofore done. This difference in the time of the sessions of the State
legislatures will be clear gain, and will alone form an article of saving,
which may be regarded as an equivalent for any additional objects of
expense that may be occasioned by the adoption of the new system.
The result from these observations is that the sources of additional
expense from the establishment of the proposed Constitution are much fewer
than may have been imagined; that they are counterbalanced by considerable
objects of saving; and that while it is questionable on which side the
scale will preponderate, it is certain that a government less expensive
would be incompetent to the purposes of the Union.
PUBLIUS
1. Vide Blackstone's Commentaries, Vol. 1, p. 136.
2. Idem, Vol. 4, p. 438.
3. To show that there is a power in the Constitution by which the liberty
of the press may be affected, recourse has been had to the power of
taxation. It is said that duties may be laid upon the publications so high
as to amount to a prohibition. I know not by what logic it could be
maintained, that the declarations in the State constitutions, in favor of
the freedom of the press, would be a constitutional impediment to the
imposition of duties upon publications by the State legislatures. It
cannot certainly be pretended that any degree of duties, however low,
would be an abridgment of the liberty of the press. We know that
newspapers are taxed in Great Britain, and yet it is notorious that the
press nowhere enjoys greater liberty than in that country. And if duties
of any kind may be laid without a violation of that liberty, it is evident
that the extent must depend on legislative discretion, respecting the
liberty of the press, will give it no greater security than it will have
without them. The same invasions of it may be effected under the State
constitutions which contain those declarations through the means of
taxation, as under the proposed Constitution, which has nothing of the
kind. It would be quite as significant to declare that government ought to
be free, that taxes ought not to be excessive, etc., as that the liberty
of the press ought not to be restrained.
4. Vide Rutherford's Institutes, Vol. 2, Book II, Chapter X, Sections XIV
and XV. Vide also Grotius, Book II, Chapter IX, Sections VIII and IX.
FEDERALIST No. 85. Concluding Remarks
From MCLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
ACCORDING to the formal division of the subject of these papers, announced
in my first number, there would appear still to remain for discussion two
points: "the analogy of the proposed government to your own State
constitution," and "the additional security which its adoption will afford
to republican government, to liberty, and to property." But these heads
have been so fully anticipated and exhausted in the progress of the work,
that it would now scarcely be possible to do any thing more than repeat,
in a more dilated form, what has been heretofore said, which the advanced
stage of the question, and the time already spent upon it, conspire to
forbid.
It is remarkable, that the resemblance of the plan of the convention to
the act which organizes the government of this State holds, not less with
regard to many of the supposed defects, than to the real excellences of
the former. Among the pretended defects are the re-eligibility of the
Executive, the want of a council, the omission of a formal bill of rights,
the omission of a provision respecting the liberty of the press. These and
several others which have been noted in the course of our inquiries are as
much chargeable on the existing constitution of this State, as on the one
proposed for the Union; and a man must have slender pretensions to
consistency, who can rail at the latter for imperfections which he finds
no difficulty in excusing in the former. Nor indeed can there be a better
proof of the insincerity and affectation of some of the zealous
adversaries of the plan of the convention among us, who profess to be the
devoted admirers of the government under which they live, than the fury
with which they have attacked that plan, for matters in regard to which
our own constitution is equally or perhaps more vulnerable.
The additional securities to republican government, to liberty and to
property, to be derived from the adoption of the plan under consideration,
consist chiefly in the restraints which the preservation of the Union will
impose on local factions and insurrections, and on the ambition of
powerful individuals in single States, who may acquire credit and
influence enough, from leaders and favorites, to become the despots of the
people; in the diminution of the opportunities to foreign intrigue, which
the dissolution of the Confederacy would invite and facilitate; in the
prevention of extensive military establishments, which could not fail to
grow out of wars between the States in a disunited situation; in the
express guaranty of a republican form of government to each; in the
absolute and universal exclusion of titles of nobility; and in the
precautions against the repetition of those practices on the part of the
State governments which have undermined the foundations of property and
credit, have planted mutual distrust in the breasts of all classes of
citizens, and have occasioned an almost universal prostration of morals.
Thus have I, fellow-citizens, executed the task I had assigned to myself;
with what success, your conduct must determine. I trust at least you will
admit that I have not failed in the assurance I gave you respecting the
spirit with which my endeavors should be conducted. I have addressed
myself purely to your judgments, and have studiously avoided those
asperities which are too apt to disgrace political disputants of all
parties, and which have been not a little provoked by the language and
conduct of the opponents of the Constitution. The charge of a conspiracy
against the liberties of the people, which has been indiscriminately
brought against the advocates of the plan, has something in it too wanton
and too malignant, not to excite the indignation of every man who feels in
his own bosom a refutation of the calumny. The perpetual changes which
have been rung upon the wealthy, the well-born, and the great, have been
such as to inspire the disgust of all sensible men. And the unwarrantable
concealments and misrepresentations which have been in various ways
practiced to keep the truth from the public eye, have been of a nature to
demand the reprobation of all honest men. It is not impossible that these
circumstances may have occasionally betrayed me into intemperances of
expression which I did not intend; it is certain that I have frequently
felt a struggle between sensibility and moderation; and if the former has
in some instances prevailed, it must be my excuse that it has been neither
often nor much.
Let us now pause and ask ourselves whether, in the course of these papers,
the proposed Constitution has not been satisfactorily vindicated from the
aspersions thrown upon it; and whether it has not been shown to be worthy
of the public approbation, and necessary to the public safety and
prosperity. Every man is bound to answer these questions to himself,
according to the best of his conscience and understanding, and to act
agreeably to the genuine and sober dictates of his judgment. This is a
duty from which nothing can give him a dispensation. 'T is one that he is
called upon, nay, constrained by all the obligations that form the bands
of society, to discharge sincerely and honestly. No partial motive, no
particular interest, no pride of opinion, no temporary passion or
prejudice, will justify to himself, to his country, or to his posterity,
an improper election of the part he is to act. Let him beware of an
obstinate adherence to party; let him reflect that the object upon which
he is to decide is not a particular interest of the community, but the
very existence of the nation; and let him remember that a majority of
America has already given its sanction to the plan which he is to approve
or reject.
I shall not dissemble that I feel an entire confidence in the arguments
which recommend the proposed system to your adoption, and that I am unable
to discern any real force in those by which it has been opposed. I am
persuaded that it is the best which our political situation, habits, and
opinions will admit, and superior to any the revolution has produced.
Concessions on the part of the friends of the plan, that it has not a
claim to absolute perfection, have afforded matter of no small triumph to
its enemies. "Why," say they, "should we adopt an imperfect thing? Why not
amend it and make it perfect before it is irrevocably established?" This
may be plausible enough, but it is only plausible. In the first place I
remark, that the extent of these concessions has been greatly exaggerated.
They have been stated as amounting to an admission that the plan is
radically defective, and that without material alterations the rights and
the interests of the community cannot be safely confided to it. This, as
far as I have understood the meaning of those who make the concessions, is
an entire perversion of their sense. No advocate of the measure can be
found, who will not declare as his sentiment, that the system, though it
may not be perfect in every part, is, upon the whole, a good one; is the
best that the present views and circumstances of the country will permit;
and is such an one as promises every species of security which a
reasonable people can desire.
I answer in the next place, that I should esteem it the extreme of
imprudence to prolong the precarious state of our national affairs, and to
expose the Union to the jeopardy of successive experiments, in the
chimerical pursuit of a perfect plan. I never expect to see a perfect work
from imperfect man. The result of the deliberations of all collective
bodies must necessarily be a compound, as well of the errors and
prejudices, as of the good sense and wisdom, of the individuals of whom
they are composed. The compacts which are to embrace thirteen distinct
States in a common bond of amity and union, must as necessarily be a
compromise of as many dissimilar interests and inclinations. How can
perfection spring from such materials?
The reasons assigned in an excellent little pamphlet lately published in
this city,(1) are unanswerable to show the utter improbability of
assembling a new convention, under circumstances in any degree so
favorable to a happy issue, as those in which the late convention met,
deliberated, and concluded. I will not repeat the arguments there used, as
I presume the production itself has had an extensive circulation. It is
certainly well worthy the perusal of every friend to his country. There
is, however, one point of light in which the subject of amendments still
remains to be considered, and in which it has not yet been exhibited to
public view. I cannot resolve to conclude without first taking a survey of
it in this aspect.
It appears to me susceptible of absolute demonstration, that it will be
far more easy to obtain subsequent than previous amendments to the
Constitution. The moment an alteration is made in the present plan, it
becomes, to the purpose of adoption, a new one, and must undergo a new
decision of each State. To its complete establishment throughout the
Union, it will therefore require the concurrence of thirteen States. If,
on the contrary, the Constitution proposed should once be ratified by all
the States as it stands, alterations in it may at any time be effected by
nine States. Here, then, the chances are as thirteen to nine(2) in favor
of subsequent amendment, rather than of the original adoption of an entire
system.
This is not all. Every Constitution for the United States must inevitably
consist of a great variety of particulars, in which thirteen independent
States are to be accommodated in their interests or opinions of interest.
We may of course expect to see, in any body of men charged with its
original formation, very different combinations of the parts upon
different points. Many of those who form a majority on one question, may
become the minority on a second, and an association dissimilar to either
may constitute the majority on a third. Hence the necessity of moulding
and arranging all the particulars which are to compose the whole, in such
a manner as to satisfy all the parties to the compact; and hence, also, an
immense multiplication of difficulties and casualties in obtaining the
collective assent to a final act. The degree of that multiplication must
evidently be in a ratio to the number of particulars and the number of
parties.
But every amendment to the Constitution, if once established, would be a
single proposition, and might be brought forward singly. There would then
be no necessity for management or compromise, in relation to any other
point—no giving nor taking. The will of the requisite number would
at once bring the matter to a decisive issue. And consequently, whenever
nine, or rather ten States, were united in the desire of a particular
amendment, that amendment must infallibly take place. There can,
therefore, be no comparison between the facility of affecting an
amendment, and that of establishing in the first instance a complete
Constitution.
In opposition to the probability of subsequent amendments, it has been
urged that the persons delegated to the administration of the national
government will always be disinclined to yield up any portion of the
authority of which they were once possessed. For my own part I acknowledge
a thorough conviction that any amendments which may, upon mature
consideration, be thought useful, will be applicable to the organization
of the government, not to the mass of its powers; and on this account
alone, I think there is no weight in the observation just stated. I also
think there is little weight in it on another account. The intrinsic
difficulty of governing THIRTEEN STATES at any rate, independent of
calculations upon an ordinary degree of public spirit and integrity, will,
in my opinion constantly impose on the national rulers the necessity of a
spirit of accommodation to the reasonable expectations of their
constituents. But there is yet a further consideration, which proves
beyond the possibility of a doubt, that the observation is futile. It is
this that the national rulers, whenever nine States concur, will have no
option upon the subject. By the fifth article of the plan, the Congress
will be obliged "on the application of the legislatures of two thirds of
the States (which at present amount to nine), to call a convention for
proposing amendments, which shall be valid, to all intents and purposes,
as part of the Constitution, when ratified by the legislatures of three
fourths of the States, or by conventions in three fourths thereof." The
words of this article are peremptory. The Congress "shall call a
convention." Nothing in this particular is left to the discretion of that
body. And of consequence, all the declamation about the disinclination to
a change vanishes in air. Nor however difficult it may be supposed to
unite two thirds or three fourths of the State legislatures, in amendments
which may affect local interests, can there be any room to apprehend any
such difficulty in a union on points which are merely relative to the
general liberty or security of the people. We may safely rely on the
disposition of the State legislatures to erect barriers against the
encroachments of the national authority.
If the foregoing argument is a fallacy, certain it is that I am myself
deceived by it, for it is, in my conception, one of those rare instances
in which a political truth can be brought to the test of a mathematical
demonstration. Those who see the matter in the same light with me, however
zealous they may be for amendments, must agree in the propriety of a
previous adoption, as the most direct road to their own object.
The zeal for attempts to amend, prior to the establishment of the
Constitution, must abate in every man who is ready to accede to the truth
of the following observations of a writer equally solid and ingenious: "To
balance a large state or society (says he), whether monarchical or
republican, on general laws, is a work of so great difficulty, that no
human genius, however comprehensive, is able, by the mere dint of reason
and reflection, to effect it. The judgments of many must unite in the
work; EXPERIENCE must guide their labor; TIME must bring it to perfection,
and the FEELING of inconveniences must correct the mistakes which they
inevitably fall into in their first trials and experiments."(3) These
judicious reflections contain a lesson of moderation to all the sincere
lovers of the Union, and ought to put them upon their guard against
hazarding anarchy, civil war, a perpetual alienation of the States from
each other, and perhaps the military despotism of a victorious demagogue,
in the pursuit of what they are not likely to obtain, but from TIME and
EXPERIENCE. It may be in me a defect of political fortitude, but I
acknowledge that I cannot entertain an equal tranquillity with those who
affect to treat the dangers of a longer continuance in our present
situation as imaginary. A NATION, without a NATIONAL GOVERNMENT, is, in my
view, an awful spectacle. The establishment of a Constitution, in time of
profound peace, by the voluntary consent of a whole people, is a PRODIGY,
to the completion of which I look forward with trembling anxiety. I can
reconcile it to no rules of prudence to let go the hold we now have, in so
arduous an enterprise, upon seven out of the thirteen States, and after
having passed over so considerable a part of the ground, to recommence the
course. I dread the more the consequences of new attempts, because I know
that POWERFUL INDIVIDUALS, in this and in other States, are enemies to a
general national government in every possible shape.
PUBLIUS
1. Entitled "An Address to the People of the State of New York."
2. It may rather be said TEN, for though two thirds may set on foot the
measure, three fourths must ratify.
3. Hume's Essays, Vol. I, p. 128: "The Rise of Arts and Sciences."
End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Federalist Papers, by
Alexander Hamilton, John Jay, and James Madison
*** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE FEDERALIST PAPERS ***
***** This file should be named 1404-h.htm or 1404-h.zip *****
This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
http://www.gutenberg.org/1/4/0/1404/
Produced by The Consitution Society, Anonymous Volunteers, and David Widger
Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
will be renamed.
Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
(and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
redistribution.
*** START: FULL LICENSE ***
THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
http://gutenberg.org/license).
Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works
1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works. See paragraph 1.E below.
1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
States.
1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
copied or distributed:
This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
1.E.9.
1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
Gutenberg-tm License.
1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
that
- You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
- You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
License. You must require such a user to return or
destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
of receipt of the work.
- You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
1.F.
1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
"Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
your equipment.
1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
DAMAGE.
1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
opportunities to fix the problem.
1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
people in all walks of life.
Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
Foundation
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
page at http://pglaf.org
For additional contact information:
Dr. Gregory B. Newby
Chief Executive and Director
gbnewby@pglaf.org
Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation
Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
status with the IRS.
The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
approach us with offers to donate.
International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works.
Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
http://www.gutenberg.org
This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.